Selected quad for the lemma: judgement_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
judgement_n day_n esay_n impenitent_a 21 3 17.3608 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A22507 A commentarie vpon the fourth booke of Moses, called Numbers Containing, the foundation of the church and common-wealth of the Israelites, while they walked and wandered in the vvildernesse. Laying before vs the vnchangeable loue of God promised and exhibited to this people ... Heerein also the reader shall finde more then fiue hundred theologicall questions, decided and determined by William Attersoll, minister of the word. Attersoll, William, d. 1640.; Attersoll, William, d. 1640. Pathway to Canaan.; Attersoll, William, d. 1640. Continuation of the exposition of the booke of Numbers. 1618 (1618) STC 893; ESTC S106852 2,762,938 1,336

There are 103 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

destruction_n be_v fearful_a to_o all_o man_n to_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o abuse_v not_o the_o patience_n of_o god_n by_o live_v in_o know_a sin_n and_o flatter_a ourselves_o in_o it_o lest_o we_o be_v sweep_v away_o sudden_o many_o man_n be_v oftentimes_o pray_v and_o desire_v god_n to_o keep_v they_o from_o sudden_a death_n they_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n die_v sudden_o yet_o these_o man_n by_o abuse_v the_o patience_n of_o god_n and_o continue_v in_o sin_n do_v take_v the_o direct_a way_n and_o course_n to_o bring_v sudden_a death_n and_o destruction_n upon_o themselves_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a token_n of_o a_o plain_a and_o rank_n hypocrite_n to_o crave_v to_o be_v keep_v from_o sudden_a death_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n to_o do_v nothing_o but_o practice_v and_o commit_v sin_n with_o greediness_n certain_o he_o that_o thus_o pray_v do_v it_o for_o no_o other_o end_n but_o because_o he_o be_v desirous_a to_o live_v long_o to_o commit_v evil_a he_o be_v afraid_a to_o come_v to_o a_o account_n and_o yet_o he_o will_v live_v long_o to_o make_v his_o account_n great_a and_o more_o fearful_a will_v we_o not_o therefore_o be_v sudden_o destroy_v we_o must_v labour_v to_o see_v the_o plague_n and_o fly_v but_o whither_o not_o from_o god_n for_o he_o be_v far_o swift_a than_o possible_o we_o can_v be_v who_o ride_v upon_o the_o wing_n of_o the_o wind_n and_o can_v quick_o overtake_v we_o we_o must_v fly_v to_o god_n and_o seek_v to_o he_o for_o pardon_v betimes_o and_o labour_v earnest_o for_o a_o reconciliation_n with_o he_o the_o bird_n of_o the_o air_n escape_v the_o snare_n of_o the_o fowler_n by_o fly_v but_o whither_o and_o how_o be_v it_o and_o what_o do_v they_o not_o by_o fly_v down_o on_o the_o earth_n for_o so_o they_o be_v take_v but_o by_o fly_v upward_o the_o high_a so_o much_o the_o safe_a so_o shall_v we_o fly_v not_o down_o from_o god_n but_o fly_v on_o high_a fly_v up_o to_o god_n and_o seek_v unto_o he_o for_o he_o we_o have_v offend_v and_o of_o he_o we_o must_v crave_v and_o shall_v obtain_v forgiveness_n let_v we_o prevent_v his_o judgement_n by_o our_o repentance_n otherwise_o we_o shall_v perish_v sudden_o and_o when_o once_o we_o have_v obtain_v his_o favour_n and_o make_v peace_n with_o he_o though_o sudden_a death_n come_v upon_o we_o as_o it_o do_v upon_o righteous_a abel_n well-meaning_a vzzah_n religious_a and_o godly_a josiah_n yet_o happy_a and_o bless_a shall_v we_o be_v it_o be_v wisdom_n not_o to_o put_v off_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n neither_o our_o particular_a day_n of_o judgement_n amos_n 6_o 3._o it_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o many_o evil_n when_o a_o man_n never_o think_v upon_o the_o day_n of_o his_o dissolution_n and_o dream_v that_o the_o day_n of_o come_v to_o his_o answer_n be_v not_o near_o many_o impenitent_a person_n put_v off_o the_o day_n of_o their_o repentance_n in_o hope_n to_o have_v time_n enough_o hereafter_o whereas_o repentance_n be_v not_o in_o our_o own_o power_n and_o that_o which_o be_v late_o be_v seldom_o true_a and_o his_o judgement_n be_v sudden_a yea_o so_o sudden_a that_o sundry_a which_o promise_v unto_o their_o soul_n many_o year_n leisure_n and_o liberty_n to_o repent_v have_v not_o have_v so_o much_o warning_n as_o to_o say_v lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o we_o have_v have_v many_o example_n of_o this_o daily_a and_o therefore_o let_v we_o be_v evermore_o ready_a and_o prepare_v before_o hand_n chap._n xii_o moses_n in_o this_o chapter_n go_v forward_o to_o set_v down_o another_o murmur_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d mur●_n against_o 〈◊〉_d which_o do_v near_o touch_v he_o then_o the_o former_a such_o as_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o chapter_n before_o infect_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o whole_a people_n this_o be_v more_o particular_a and_o be_v direct_v direct_o against_o himself_o raise_v by_o his_o own_o sister_n and_o brother_n both_o elder_a than_o himself_o wherein_o consider_v two_o thing_n first_o their_o sin_n second_o the_o process_n of_o god_n against_o they_o for_o their_o sin_n touch_v the_o first_o observe_v that_o though_o both_o of_o they_o sin_v yet_o miriam_n his_o sister_n have_v the_o chief_a hand_n in_o the_o sin_n who_o draw_v aaron_n by_o persuasion_n into_o a_o practice_n and_o participation_n of_o it_o as_o the_o people_n have_v do_v before_o when_o they_o move_v he_o to_o make_v the_o golden_a calf_n exod._n 32_o 1_o 2._o they_o be_v the_o author_n of_o that_o idolatry_n aaron_n be_v draw_v to_o consent_v unto_o it_o ●er_n miriam_n 〈◊〉_d chief_a ●er_n that_o she_o be_v the_o first_o in_o this_o trespass_n may_v appear_v first_o because_o the_o verb_n in_o the_o original_n be_v of_o the_o feminine_a gender_n and_o join_v in_o construction_n with_o miriam_n which_o serve_v also_o to_o strengthen_v the_o reason_n second_o she_o be_v name_v in_o the_o first_o place_n not_o prefer_v for_o honour_n sake_n for_o there_o be_v no_o honour_n in_o commit_v of_o evil_a but_o because_o she_o have_v the_o principal_a hand_n in_o it_o three_o because_o the_o punishment_n fall_v only_o upon_o she_o and_o not_o upon_o aaron_n who_o be_v even_o constrain_v by_o her_o importunity_n as_o it_o be_v against_o his_o will_n to_o join_v with_o she_o mar●e_n occasions_n 〈◊〉_d mar●e_n the_o occasion_n which_o both_o of_o they_o take_v to_o exalt_v and_o magnify_v themselves_o and_o to_o call_v the_o authority_n of_o moses_n in_o question_n be_v double_a his_o marriage_n and_o his_o call_n the_o marriage_n of_o moses_n be_v with_o the_o woman_n that_o be_v a_o cushite_v which_o seem_v to_o be_v no_o other_o than_o zipporah_n the_o midianite_n for_o first_o we_o read_v not_o of_o her_o death_n who_o be_v bring_v to_o he_o by_o her_o father_n immediate_o before_o the_o give_n of_o the_o law_n exod._n ●8_o 5._o again_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o he_o will_v marry_v two_o wife_n especial_o be_v now_o 80._o year_n old_a unfit_a for_o any_o new_a marriage_n and_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o first_o institution_n three_o we_o read_v of_o no_o other_o son_n that_o he_o have_v but_o gershom_n and_o eliezer_n exod._n 2_o 2_o 22_o and_o 4_o 20._o &_o 18_o 3._o 1_o chron._n 23_o 14_o 15._o both_o which_o he_o have_v by_o zipporah_n the_o daughter_n of_o jethro_n marry_v who_o this_o woman_n be_v that_o moses_n marry_v so_o that_o woman_n be_v like_a to_o be_v no_o other_o than_o this_o zipporah_n who_o he_o marry_v when_o he_o flee_v out_o of_o egypt_n and_o sojourn_v in_o midian_a for_o the_o midianite_n be_v call_v cushites_n not_o that_o they_o come_v of_o cush_n the_o elder_a son_n of_o ham_n gen._n 10_o 6._o but_o because_o they_o possess_v part_n of_o the_o land_n of_o cush_n and_o it_o may_v well_o be_v that_o some_o strife_n and_o contention_n arise_v first_o of_o all_o between_o zipporah_n and_o miriam_n a_o common_a thing_n unto_o that_o sex_n as_o fall_v out_o between_o sarah_n &_o agar_n between_o rahel_n and_o leah_n and_o between_o hannah_n and_o peninnah_n and_o haply_o it_o may_v be_v for_o place_n and_o precedency_n miriam_n bear_v herself_o bold_a that_o she_o be_v a_o prophetess_n and_o of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n but_o zipporah_n a_o foreigner_n and_o a_o stranger_n from_o israel_n and_o on_o the_o other_o zipporah_n allege_v and_o pretend_v for_o herself_o that_o she_o be_v the_o wife_n of_o moses_n the_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o people_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o chief_a room_n be_v due_a to_o he_o before_o other_o man_n so_o to_o she_o before_o other_o woman_n the_o other_o occasion_n be_v the_o office_n and_o call_n of_o moses_n they_o envy_v his_o dignity_n and_o authority_n for_o 8._o genesis_n 13_o 8._o as_o in_o of_o abraham_n house_n the_o strife_n arise_v among_o the_o herdsman_n of_o his_o cattle_n and_o of_o lot_n the_o flame_n whereof_o burn_v so_o fast_o that_o it_o catch_v hold_v upon_o the_o master_n themselves_o and_o have_v quite_o consume_v they_o have_v it_o not_o be_v wise_o &_o timely_o prevent_v so_o this_o quarrel_n as_o a_o spark_n of_o fire_n arise_v among_o the_o woman_n for_o the_o uppermost_a room_n and_o chief_a seat_n cover_v for_o a_o season_n under_o the_o ash_n at_o length_n break_v out_o into_o a_o flame_n and_o catch_v hold_v of_o moses_n against_o who_o miriam_n and_o aaron_n strive_v as_o if_o they_o fhould_v say_v thou_o be_v not_o so_o great_a a_o prophet_n as_o thou_o will_v be_v account_v have_v not_o the_o seventy_o elder_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o pprophecy_n as_o well_o as_o thou_o and_o have_v not_o we_o that_o gift_n also_o this_o be_v amplify_v by_o a_o double_a effect_n one_o in_o god_n he_o hear_v it_o the_o other_o in_o moses_n he_o hold_v his_o
peter_n they_o fall_v by_o frailty_n with_o david_n but_o they_o rise_v not_o by_o repentance_n with_o david_n they_o sin_n with_o solomon_n but_o they_o repent_v not_o with_o he_o ●7_n 〈◊〉_d ●7_n they_o sin_n with_o the_o jew_n but_o they_o be_v not_o prick_v in_o heart_n with_o the_o jew_n say_v what_o shall_v we_o do_v they_o persecute_v the_o saint_n of_o god_n with_o the_o jailer_n 16.29_o act_n 16.29_o but_o they_o tremble_v not_o at_o their_o sin_n nor_o seek_v to_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n say_v sir_n what_o must_v we_o do_v to_o be_v save_v they_o break_v out_o with_o their_o tongue_n and_o justify_v themselves_o as_o job_n but_o they_o set_v not_o a_o watch_n before_o the_o door_n of_o their_o lip_n 6._o job_n 42_o 6._o they_o do_v not_o abhor_v themselves_o neither_o repent_v in_o dust_n and_o ash_n with_o job_n say_v 39.1_o psal_n 39.1_o i_o will_v t●ke_v heed_n to_o my_o way_n that_o i_o sin_v not_o with_o my_o tongue_n i_o will_v keep_v my_o mouth_n bridle_v they_o fly_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n with_o jonah_n but_o they_o remember_v not_o to_o pray_v with_o he_o for_o pardon_n 1.8_o ●on_n 1.3_o and_o ●_o 1.8_o acknowledge_v that_o such_o as_o wait_v upon_o lie_a vanity_n forsake_v their_o own_o mercy_n let_v we_o therefore_o all_o learn_v to_o profit_v by_o the_o favourable_a deal_n of_o god_n towards_o offender_n neither_o abuse_v his_o love_a kindness_n nor_o continue_v in_o sin_n nor_o presume_v of_o his_o mercy_n assure_v ourselves_o that_o if_o the_o person_n receive_v pardon_n be_v such_o as_o be_v penitent_a then_o assure_o to_o the_o impenitent_a there_o be_v no_o forgiveness_n this_o the_o apostle_n set_v down_o rom._n 2.4_o 5._o the_o acceptable_a time_n of_o repentance_n for_o all_o of_o we_o be_v the_o time_n present_a what_o time_n we_o have_v to_o come_v be_v uncertain_a late_o repentance_n be_v oftentimes_o constrain_v and_o seldom_o true_a repentance_n the_o long_a a_o disease_a man_n continue_v in_o his_o sickness_n the_o hard_a be_v his_o recovery_n let_v we_o not_o delay_n and_o defer_v our_o repentance_n this_o be_v the_o bless_a time_n and_o the_o acceptable_a season_n to_o day_n therefore_o if_o we_o will_v hear_v his_o voice_n let_v we_o not_o harden_v our_o heart_n in_o sin_n heb._n 3.7_o 8._o four_o let_v we_o not_o spare_v to_o seek_v the_o salvation_n use_v 4_o and_o thirst_n after_o the_o conversion_n even_o of_o the_o great_a sinner_n let_v we_o not_o account_v their_o estate_n and_o condition_n forlorn_a and_o desperate_a neither_o judge_v any_o before_o the_o time_n 4.5_o 1_o cor._n 4.5_o until_o the_o lord_n come_v who_o will_v lighten_v thing_n that_o be_v hide_v in_o darkness_n and_o make_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heart_n manifest_a and_o then_o shall_v every_o man_n have_v praise_n of_o god_n the_o husbandman_n wait_v for_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n 7_o james_n 5_o 7_o and_o have_v long_a patience_n for_o it_o until_o he_o receive_v the_o former_a and_o latter_a rain_n now_o we_o be_v god_n labourer_n and_o husbandman_n 9.6.7_o 1_o cor._n 3_o 9.6.7_o you_o be_v god_n husbandry_n and_o god_n building_n paul_n plant_v and_o apollo_n water_v but_o god_n give_v the_o increase_n so_o then_o neither_o be_v he_o that_o plant_v any_o thing_n neither_o he_o that_o water_v but_o god_n that_o give_v the_o increase_n we_o be_v unto_o god_n the_o sweet_a savour_n of_o christ_n in_o they_o that_o be_v save_v 15.16_o 2_o cor._n 2_o 15.16_o and_o in_o they_o which_o perish_v to_o the_o one_o we_o be_v the_o savour_n of_o death_n to_o death_n and_o to_o the_o other_o the_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n this_o must_v be_v our_o comfort_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o discomfort_n injurious_a deal_n and_o hard_a measure_n offer_v unto_o we_o to_o know_v that_o every_o man_n shall_v receive_v his_o wage_n according_a to_o his_o labour_n and_o the_o prophet_n prophesy_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o shall_v spread_v out_o his_o hand_n all_o day_n unto_o a_o rebellious_a people_n make_v this_o his_o stay_n and_o staff_n of_o rest_n 4._o esay_n 49_o 4._o i_o have_v labour_v in_o vain_a i_o have_v spend_v my_o strength_n in_o vain_a and_o for_o nothing_o but_o my_o judgement_n be_v with_o the_o lord_n and_o my_o work_n with_o my_o god_n let_v we_o therefore_o go_v justile_a forward_o in_o build_v up_o the_o house_n of_o god_n preach_v in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n and_o commit_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o work_n and_o success_n of_o all_o our_o labour_n to_o the_o lord_n who_o word_n be_v never_o deliver_v nor_o hear_v in_o vain_a as_o the_o apostle_n urge_v it_o 2_o ti._n 2.24_o 25_o 26._o use_v 5_o last_o see_v god_n be_v merciful_a to_o miserable_a sinner_n as_o a_o good_a shepherd_n take_v they_o out_o of_o the_o jaw_n of_o the_o lion_n bring_v they_o unto_o the_o sheepefolde_a and_o feed_v they_o in_o green_a pasture_n let_v we_o seek_v to_o be_v like_o our_o heavenly_a father_n in_o show_v mercy_n and_o forgiveness_n towards_o such_o as_o greevous_o offend_v against_o us._n every_o man_n experience_n tell_v and_o teach_v he_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o be_v exceed_o great_a we_o feel_v it_o towards_o ourselves_o we_o see_v it_o daily_o towards_o other_o we_o read_v that_o blasphemy_n itself_o find_v place_n for_o pardon_n 12.31_o mat._n 12.31_o we_o find_v this_o to_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n the_o lord_n the_o lord_n 7_o exod._n 34.6_o 7_o gracious_a and_o merciful_a slow_a to_o anger_n and_o abundant_a in_o goodness_n reserve_v mercy_n for_o thousand_o forgive_a iniquity_n trangression_n and_o sin_n if_o we_o will_v be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n we_o must_v resemble_v our_o heavenly_a father_n we_o must_v express_v the_o lively_a lineament_n of_o his_o face_n we_o must_v be_v transform_v into_o his_o likeness_n and_o bear_v his_o image_n in_o all_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n this_o the_o apostle_n teach_v col._n 3.12_o 13._o to_o this_o purpose_n christ_n propound_v the_o parable_n matthew_n chapter_n 18._o verse_n 32_o 33_o 35._o teach_v we_o that_o we_o must_v forgive_v small_a thing_n that_o receive_v the_o pardon_n of_o great_a we_o must_v remit_v a_o sew_v penny_n because_o god_n forgive_v we_o many_o talent_n a_o huge_a sum_n a_o infinite_a debt_n but_o if_o we_o will_v not_o forgive_v nor_o forget_v the_o trespass_n do_v to_o we_o we_o be_v stamp_v in_o the_o image_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v malicious_a and_o a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n &_o we_o make_v a_o law_n against_o ourselves_o inasmuch_o as_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o lord_n so_o towards_o we_o as_o we_o deal_v towards_o our_o brethren_n for_o there_o shall_v be_v judgement_n merciless_a to_o he_o that_o show_v not_o mercy_n 7.2_o jam._n 2.13_o mat._n 7.2_o and_o with_o what_o measure_n we_o meet_v it_o shall_v be_v measure_v to_o we_o again_o verse_n 9_o moses_n make_v a_o serpent_n of_o brass_n and_o set_v it_o upon_o apole_n and_o when_o a_o serpent_n have_v bite_v a_o man_n than_o he_o look_v to_o the_o serpent_n of_o brass_n and_o live_v we_o see_v before_o how_o the_o prayer_n of_o moses_n be_v hear_v and_o the_o remedy_n provide_v of_o god_n to_o heal_v the_o people_n we_o see_v in_o god_n the_o greatness_n of_o his_o compassion_n we_o see_v in_o the_o people_n the_o fruit_n of_o their_o confession_n we_o see_v in_o moses_n the_o grace_n of_o meekness_n and_o gentleness_n suffer_v all_o thing_n and_o endure_v all_o thing_n here_o there_o be_v offer_v to_o our_o consideration_n the_o obedience_n of_o moses_n the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o serpent_n and_o the_o recovery_n of_o the_o people_n moses_n do_v not_o here_o consult_v with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n neither_o do_v he_o use_v carnal_a wisdom_n to_o be_v his_o counsellor_n which_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o enemy_n to_o god_n he_o do_v not_o reason_n whether_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o a_o piece_n of_o brass_n shall_v remedy_v this_o bite_n or_o whether_o a_o dead_a thing_n shall_v give_v life_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o receive_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n he_o prepare_v himself_o make_v ready_a a_o brazen_a serpent_n pitch_v it_o upon_o a_o high_a pole_n the_o people_n look_v upon_o it_o and_o be_v recover_v this_o cure_n be_v not_o by_o physic_n or_o chirurgery_n or_o by_o inherent_a virtue_n in_o the_o brass_n as_o in_o a_o medicine_n but_o by_o cast_v up_o the_o eye_n upon_o the_o serpent_n and_o believe_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n who_o have_v appoint_v the_o serpent_n for_o that_o purpose_n we_o be_v all_o of_o we_o from_o hence_o to_o learn_v and_o consider_v that_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n stand_v on_o the_o pole_n be_v a_o type_n and_o figure_n of_o christ_n crucify_v crucify_v doctrine_n the_o
name_n if_o he_o deliver_v his_o will_n to_o his_o enemy_n he_o will_v show_v himself_o to_o his_o friend_n if_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o instruct_v such_o as_o be_v stranger_n doubtless_o he_o will_v open_v himself_o and_o reveal_v his_o secret_n to_o those_o that_o be_v citizen_n of_o his_o kingdom_n if_o the_o servant_n be_v teach_v by_o he_o who_o do_v not_o know_v what_o his_o master_n do_v he_o will_v not_o pass_v over_o his_o own_o son_n who_o shall_v be_v heir_n of_o his_o inheritance_n that_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o they_o that_o desire_v the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o way_n for_o he_o will_v fulfil_v the_o desire_n of_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o he_o also_o will_v hear_v their_o cry_n and_o will_v save_v they_o psalm_n 145_o 19_o thus_o do_v david_n assure_v his_o son_n solomon_n stand_v by_o he_o when_o he_o be_v go_v the_o way_n of_o all_o flesh_n if_o thou_o seek_v he_o he_o will_v be_v find_v of_o thou_o but_o if_o thou_o forsake_v he_o he_o will_v cast_v thou_o off_o for_o ever_o 1_o chron._n 28_o 2._o &_o 2_o chron._n 15_o 2_o 3._o so_o when_o the_o noble_a eunuch_n repair_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o give_v himself_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n that_o his_o knowledge_n may_v be_v increase_v &_o the_o word_n of_o god_n dwell_v plentiful_o in_o he_o the_o lord_n send_v philip_n unto_o he_o 8.35_o act_n 8.35_o who_o join_v himself_o to_o his_o chariot_n and_o expound_v unto_o he_o the_o way_n of_o god_n more_o perfect_o likewise_o when_o cornelius_n the_o captain_n ●_o act_n ●_o a_o devout_a man_n and_o one_o that_o fear_v god_n have_v pray_v to_o god_n for_o further_a knowledge_n that_o god_n who_o have_v begin_v his_o good_a work_n in_o he_o will_v bring_v he_o to_o perfection_n he_o be_v direct_v to_o send_v for_o peter_n who_o shall_v tell_v he_o what_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v verify_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n math_n 13_o 12_o and_o 25_o 29._o unto_o every_o man_n that_o have_v it_o shall_v be_v give_v and_o he_o shall_v have_v abundance_n but_o whosoever_o have_v not_o from_o he_o shall_v be_v take_v away_o even_o that_o he_o have_v will_v we_o then_o know_v why_o we_o be_v ignorant_a in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n weak_a in_o faith_n bare_a and_o barren_a in_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n we_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n offer_v himself_o to_o those_o that_o seek_v he_o and_o open_v to_o those_o that_o knock_v at_o his_o gate_n neither_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o his_o grace_n nor_o know_v the_o want_n of_o they_o in_o ourselves_o or_o other_o four_o let_v we_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o god_n use_v use_v and_o do_v good_a to_o those_o that_o be_v evil_a he_o make_v the_o sun_n to_o rise_v upon_o the_o evil_a and_o the_o good_a he_o send_v rain_n on_o the_o just_a and_o unjust_a so_o shall_v we_o do_v good_a to_o all_o although_o especial_o to_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n math._n 5_o 45._o gal._n 6_o 10._o let_v not_o their_o unworthiness_n hinder_v our_o goodness_n but_o labour_v that_o our_o light_n may_v so_o shine_v before_o they_o that_o we_o may_v gain_v they_o to_o the_o faith_n &_o heap_v coal_n of_o fire_n upon_o their_o head_n let_v we_o admonish_v and_o exhort_v they_o with_o all_o patience_n and_o long-suffering_a that_o they_o may_v come_v out_o of_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n of_o who_o they_o be_v hold_v let_v we_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n and_o 1_o cor._n 9.22_o take_v all_o occasion_n to_o win_v those_o that_o be_v without_o that_o by_o all_o mean_v we_o may_v save_v some_o what_o though_o they_o be_v not_o turn_v and_o convert_v to_o god_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n &_o we_o seem_v to_o bestow_v our_o labour_n in_o vain_a many_o be_v enlighten_v of_o god_n that_o be_v not_o save_v they_o attain_v to_o knowledge_n that_o never_o grow_v to_o faith_n we_o be_v the_o sweet_a savour_n of_o god_n as_o well_o in_o they_o that_o perish_v as_o in_o they_o that_o be_v save_v to_o the_o one_o we_o be_v the_o savour_n of_o life_n to_o life_n and_o to_o the_o other_o the_o savour_n of_o death_n to_o death_n 2._o cor._n 2_o 15_o 16._o and_o this_o must_v serve_v and_o suffice_v to_o comfort_v we_o and_o strengthen_v we_o to_o bear_v out_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o day_n &_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o burden_n that_o lie_v upon_o our_o shoulder_n to_o consider_v that_o howsoever_o our_o person_n be_v entertain_v &_o our_o doctrine_n receive_v 4●_n esay_n 4●_n and_o our_o strength_n be_v waste_v and_o consume_v in_o vain_a yet_o our_o judgement_n be_v with_o the_o lord_n and_o our_o work_n with_o our_o god_n who_o will_v reward_v we_o according_a to_o our_o labour_n last_o vs●_n vs●_n see_v god_n make_v know_v his_o will_n and_o word_n to_o wicked_a and_o profane_a man_n who_o be_v sundry_a way_n enlighten_v with_o many_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n let_v we_o not_o rest_v in_o seek_v after_o common_a gift_n but_o labour_n to_o be_v partaker_n of_o such_o as_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o elect_a and_o do_v always_o accompany_v salvation_n and_o eternal_a life_n this_o be_v it_o that_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v unto_o 1._o cor._n 14_o where_o mention_v diverse_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o gift_n of_o knowledge_n the_o work_v of_o miracle_n the_o word_n of_o wisdom_n the_o power_n of_o heal_v the_o discern_v of_o spirit_n the_o diversity_n of_o tongue_n the_o interpretation_n of_o tongue_n all_o wh●ch_n be_v common_a to_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n both_o good_a &_o bad_a he_o add_v as_o the_o use_n that_o now_o we_o teach_v &_o persuade_v but_o desire_v you_o the_o best_a gift_n and_o i_o will_v show_v you_o a_o more_o excellent_a way_n 1_o cor._n 14_o 30_o 31._o let_v we_o not_o therefore_o content_v ourselves_o with_o such_o knowledge_n and_o illumination_n as_o the_o reprobate_n and_o ungodly_a have_v but_o let_v we_o covet_v such_o as_o be_v peculiar_a and_o proper_a to_o the_o elect_a that_o we_o may_v be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n may_v dwell_v in_o we_o not_o for_o a_o time_n but_o for_o ever_o and_o dispose_v our_o heart_n as_o the_o owner_n of_o the_o house_n and_o govern_v it_o whole_o after_o his_o own_o will_n let_v we_o labour_n to_o feel_v a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o our_o reconciliation_n to_o god_n in_o christ_n 6._o 〈◊〉_d 3._o 〈…〉_o 5._o 〈◊〉_d 25._o 〈◊〉_d 6._o the_o gift_n of_o regeneration_n a_o die_a unto_o sin_n arise_v up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n the_o grace_n of_o hearty_a prayer_n comfort_n in_o distress_n and_o such_o like_a which_z the_o elect_v of_o god_n find_v in_o some_o measure_n wrought_v in_o they_o these_o be_v infallible_a note_n of_o election_n these_o be_v the_o best_a gift_n that_o the_o apostle_n urge_v these_o be_v such_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o we_o must_v delight_v in_o and_o follow_v after_o if_o these_o be_v in_o we_o &_o do_v abound_v we_o shall_v have_v that_o peace_n of_o conscience_n through_o they_o that_o pass_v all_o understanding_n if_o these_o be_v not_o in_o we_o whatsoever_o knowledge_n we_o have_v beside_o though_o we_o have_v taste_v of_o the_o heavenly_a gift_n be_v enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n taste_v of_o the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n and_o receive_v the_o gospel_n with_o joy_n we_o shall_v find_v no_o more_o sound_a comfort_n in_o they_o than_o balaam_n do_v in_o this_o place_n by_o the_o revelation_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n 15_o balak_n yet_o send_v again_o more_o prince_n and_o more_o honourable_a than_o they_o 16_o who_o come_v to_o balaam_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o thus_o say_v balak_n the_o son_n of_o zippor_n be_v not_o thou_o stay_v i_o pray_v thou_o from_o come_v to_o i_o 17_o for_o i_o will_v promote_v thou_o unto_o great_a honour_n and_o will_v do_v whatsoever_o thou_o say_v unto_o i_o come_v therefore_o i_o pray_v thou_o curse_v for_o i_o this_o people_n 18_o and_o balaam_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o the_o servant_n of_o balak_n if_o balak_n will_v give_v i_o his_o house_n full_a of_o silver_n and_o gold_n i_o can_v go_v beyond_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n my_o god_n to_o do_v less_o or_o more_o 19_o and_o now_o i_o pray_v you_o tarry_v you_o here_o also_o this_o night_n that_o i_o may_v wit_v what_o the_o lord_n will_v say_v unto_o i_o more_o 20_o and_o god_n come_v unto_o balaam_n by_o night_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o forasmuch_o as_o man_n be_v come_v to_o call_v thou_o rise_v up_o and_o go_v with_o they_o but_o only_o what_o thing_n i_o say_v unto_o thou_o that_o shall_v thou_o do_v 21_o so_o balaam_n rise_v up_o early_o
or_o be_v in_o our_o mind_n as_o when_o they_o be_v relieve_v and_o help_v out_o of_o their_o misery_n for_o as_o we_o remember_v god_n when_o we_o serve_v he_o so_o we_o remember_v the_o needy_a when_o we_o succour_v they_o it_o be_v note_v of_o saul_n and_o all_o israel_n that_o they_o go_v to_o relieve_v jabesh_n gilead_n when_o it_o be_v beleaguer_v by_o nahash_n the_o ammonite_n who_o will_v make_v a_o covenant_n with_o they_o upon_o no_o other_o condition_n but_o that_o he_o may_v thrust_v out_o all_o their_o right_a eye_n and_o lay_v it_o for_o a_o reproach_n upon_o all_o israel_n 1_o sam._n 11_o 1_o 2._o so_o do_v david_n and_o his_o man_n go_v to_o relieve_v keilah_n spoil_v and_o oppress_v by_o the_o philistines_n chap._n 23_o 5._o the_o book_n of_o the_o judge_n be_v full_a of_o this_o argument_n they_o think_v it_o their_o duty_n to_o relieve_v the_o enthral_a estate_n &_o poor_a condition_n of_o the_o church_n lie_v under_o the_o hard_a yoke_n and_o heavy_a servitude_n of_o the_o moabite_n the_o canaanite_n the_o midianite_n the_o ammonite_n the_o philistines_n and_o sundry_a other_o so_o that_o all_o god_n servant_n although_o themselves_o be_v free_a from_o trouble_n yet_o must_v they_o put_v too_o their_o hand_n and_o set_v too_o their_o shoulder_n and_o employ_v all_o their_o strength_n as_o far_o as_o god_n enable_v they_o to_o deliver_v the_o church_n from_o trouble_n and_o to_o procure_v the_o present_a benefit_n and_o good_a estate_n thereof_o we_o show_v before_o in_o this_o chapter_n that_o we_o must_v have_v some_o compassion_n and_o a_o fellow-feeling_n of_o the_o misery_n and_o affliction_n of_o god_n people_n this_o doctrine_n go_v far_a and_z pierce_v deep_a and_o teach_v that_o we_o must_v put_v forth_o ourselves_o to_o maintain_v the_o public_a cause_n of_o the_o afflict_a church_n and_o procure_v the_o peace_n thereof_o reason_n 1_o and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v this_o because_o of_o the_o wicked_a mind_n and_o wretched_a end_n that_o the_o ungodly_a set_v before_o their_o eye_n for_o what_o be_v it_o i_o pray_v you_o that_o the_o enemy_n the_o common_a adversary_n and_o oppressor_n of_o the_o church_n look_v after_o and_o lay_v before_o he_o be_v it_o the_o person_n of_o they_o that_o they_o seek_v to_o spoil_v or_o be_v it_o to_o take_v away_o their_o good_n and_o substance_n from_o they_o or_o any_o other_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v dear_a unto_o they_o in_o earthly_a thing_n all_o these_o indeed_o be_v seek_v after_o but_o be_v these_o the_o chief_a mark_n and_o scope_n that_o they_o aim_v after_o or_o will_v these_o take_v away_o content_v they_o no_o no_o they_o shoot_v at_o a_o far_a thing_n to_o deface_v the_o service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o to_o blaspheme_v his_o glorious_a name_n be_v themselves_o the_o child_n of_o darkness_n and_o not_o able_a to_o bear_v the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n they_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o same_o the_o city_n and_o altar_n of_o our_o god_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o great_a account_n and_o in_o high_a price_n more_o dear_a to_o we_o then_o thousand_o of_o gold_n and_o silver_n for_o which_o we_o must_v be_v content_a to_o leave_v father_n and_o mother_n wife_n and_o child_n that_o we_o may_v with_o freedom_n of_o conscience_n enjoy_v &_o profess_v the_o truth_n this_o meditation_n be_v it_o that_o move_v joab_n when_o he_o go_v out_o with_o a_o strong_a hand_n &_o see_v the_o enemy_n gather_v together_o to_o root_v out_o the_o church_n out_o of_o the_o land_n and_o the_o truth_n out_o of_o the_o church_n to_o fight_v against_o they_o 2._o sam._n 10_o 12._o be_v of_o good_a courage_n and_o let_v we_o play_v the_o man_n for_o our_o people_n and_o for_o the_o city_n of_o our_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n do_v that_o which_o seem_v he_o good_a whe●e_v he_o show_v that_o the_o chief_a motive_n to_o wax_v strong_a and_o valiant_a in_o battle_n be_v to_o maintain_v the_o city_n and_o service_n of_o god_n seco●●●y_o this_o have_v promise_n of_o a_o great_a blessing_n reason_n 2_o and_o a_o good_a issue_n it_o be_v no_o vain_a or_o fruitless_a thing_n whereunto_o we_o be_v move_v many_o man_n be_v discomfit_v and_o quite_o out_o of_o heart_n because_o they_o see_v no_o blessing_n annex_v but_o howsoever_o the_o persecuter_n and_o oppressor_n for_o a_o time_n prevayl_v and_o enter_v into_o the_o house_n and_o habitation_n of_o god_n yet_o their_o destruction_n sleep_v not_o god_n have_v reserve_v they_o as_o the_o chaff_n before_o the_o wind_n and_o as_o the_o stubble_n before_o the_o fire_n rest_a therefore_o on_o the_o gracious_a promise_n of_o god_n and_o know_v that_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v perish_v 17._o math._n 5_o 17._o but_o no_o one_o jot_n shall_v pass_v or_o fail_v from_o his_o word_n be_v assure_v that_o the_o covenant_n that_o he_o have_v make_v be_v sure_a than_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o day_n and_o the_o night_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o of_o the_o moon_n we_o must_v arm_v ourselves_o with_o this_o assure_a persuasion_n that_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o enemy_n be_v determine_v as_o esay_n 16_o 3_o 4._o speak_v to_o moab_n he_o say_v take_v counsel_n execute_v judgement_n &c_n &c_n then_o he_o add_v the_o reason_n for_o the_o extortioner_n be_v at_o a_o end_n the_o spoiler_n cease_v the_o oppressor_n be_v consume_v out_o of_o the_o land_n esay_n 16_o 3_o 4._o wherefore_o albeit_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o people_n seem_v long_o to_o flourish_v to_o glory_v in_o their_o wickedness_n and_o to_o insult_v over_o the_o godly_a that_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n yet_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v the_o wrath_n and_o vengeance_n of_o god_n so_o that_o none_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a to_o thrust_v themselves_o into_o danger_n to_o maintain_v the_o common_a cause_n of_o the_o church_n the_o use_n follow_v first_o this_o put_v we_o in_o use_n 1_o mind_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o oftentimes_o endure_v more_o trouble_n in_o this_o world_n both_o inward_o &_o outward_o than_o any_o other_o as_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v show_v and_o prove_v by_o the_o example_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n joseph_n job_n jeremy_n david_n and_o christ_n himself_o the_o perfect_a pattern_n of_o suffer_a affliction_n it_o be_v not_o otherwise_o with_o his_o apostle_n also_o and_o experience_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o church_n in_o this_o world_n fare_v no_o better_a as_o it_o complain_v lamen_n 1_o 12._o be_v it_o nothing_o to_o you_o all_o you_o that_o pass_v by_o behold_v and_o see_v if_o there_o be_v any_o sorrow_n like_a unto_o my_o sorrow_n which_o be_v do_v unto_o i_o wherewith_o the_o lord_n have_v afflict_v i_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o anger_n thus_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n to_o wean_v they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o the_o world_n because_o he_o love_v they_o &_o will_v have_v they_o long_o after_o heaven_n and_o heavenly_a thing_n we_o be_v oftentimes_o so_o perverse_a and_o untoward_a that_o we_o must_v be_v put_v into_o the_o fire_n that_o we_o may_v be_v refine_v and_o reform_v and_o must_v endure_v many_o grievous_a correction_n that_o we_o may_v be_v frame_v to_o delight_v in_o spiritual_a thing_n beside_o satan_n and_o his_o instrument_n do_v hate_v we_o and_o labour_v continual_o to_o seek_v our_o destruction_n and_o therefore_o let_v we_o never_o promise_v to_o ourselves_o worldly_a peace_n and_o prosperity_n neither_o be_v offend_v at_o the_o great_a affliction_n which_o we_o hear_v to_o come_v upon_o the_o godly_a but_o rather_o prepare_v ourselves_o to_o look_v for_o one_o trouble_n to_o come_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o another_o while_o we_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n use_v 2_o second_o conclude_v from_o hence_o the_o fearful_a woeful_a &_o miserable_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n when_o all_o the_o friend_n and_o comforter_n of_o it_o be_v go_v when_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v the_o shield_n and_o shelter_v of_o it_o do_v fly_v back_o and_o dare_v not_o show_v their_o face_n as_o often_o it_o fall_v out_o then_o only_a faith_n for_o the_o present_a and_o hope_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v must_v hold_v up_o our_o head_n that_o we_o sink_v not_o into_o the_o bottom_n of_o despair_n this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o prophet_n say_v i_o look_v and_o there_o be_v none_o to_o help_v and_o i_o wonder_v that_o there_o be_v none_o to_o uphold_v therefore_o my_o own_o arm_n bring_v salvation_n to_o i_o etc._n etc._n and_o i_o will_v tread_v down_o the_o people_n in_o my_o anger_n and_o make_v they_o drink_v in_o my_o fury_n etc._n etc._n esay_n 63_o 5_o 6._o when_o haman_n the_o adversary_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o malice_n be_v hereditary_a unto_o he_o and_o derive_v from_o his_o father_n have_v plot_v the_o ruin_n
josiah_n be_v name_v of_o god_n long_o before_o he_o be_v bear_v as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o king_n chap._n 13._o and_o the_o second_o verse_n and_o so_o be_v cyus_n 2._o esay_n 45_o 1_o 2._o as_o appear_v in_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o isaiah_n for_o when_o the_o prophet_n be_v send_v to_o cry_v out_o against_o the_o altar_n at_o bethel_n he_o say_v o_o altar_n altar_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n behold_v a_o child_n shall_v be_v bear_v to_o the_o house_n of_o david_n josiah_n by_o name_n and_o upon_o thou_o shall_v he_o sacrifice_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o high_a place_n that_o burn_v incense_n upon_o thou_o &_o they_o shall_v burn_v man_n bone_n upon_o thou_o this_o be_v threaten_v long_o before_o josiah_n be_v bear_v yet_o god_n know_v his_o name_n before_o he_o be_v and_o reveal_v he_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v alive_a in_o that_o time_n the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o cyrus_n the_o deliverer_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o the_o lord_n name_v and_o appoint_v to_o free_v his_o people_n from_o the_o bondage_n &_o captivity_n wherein_o they_o live_v albeit_o at_o that_o time_n he_o be_v not_o bear_v nor_o in_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o nor_o josiah_n in_o three_o hundred_o after_o his_o name_n be_v publish_v see_v therefore_o the_o very_a hair_n of_o our_o head_n be_v number_v see_v christ_n be_v the_o good_a shepherd_n of_o his_o sheep_n and_o see_v all_o thing_n both_o past_a and_o to_o come_v be_v present_a with_o god_n so_o that_o he_o behold_v they_o with_o one_o act_n we_o conclude_v that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v know_v to_o he_o and_o that_o particular_o use_v 1_o the_o use_v first_o this_o give_v singular_a comfort_n to_o all_o god_n child_n if_o any_o thing_n else_o be_v able_a to_o minister_v they_o comfort_n if_o a_o earthly_a prince_n shall_v vouchsafe_v to_o look_v upon_o we_o &_o show_v we_o this_o favour_n to_o single_a we_o out_o from_o the_o rest_n and_o call_v we_o by_o our_o name_n how_o will_v we_o rejoice_v and_o how_o much_o will_v we_o esteem_v that_o the_o king_n will_v stoop_v so_o low_a as_o to_o know_v we_o so_o do_v this_o doctrine_n seal_v up_o to_o our_o heart_n this_o great_a consolation_n that_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n do_v know_v we_o by_o our_o name_n be_v we_o then_o in_o trouble_n and_o persecution_n be_v we_o account_v silly_a man_n obscure_a base_a and_o unregarded_a do_v we_o live_v as_o contemptible_a person_n to_o the_o man_n of_o this_o world_n and_o will_v they_o not_o once_o vouchsafe_v to_o know_v we_o let_v not_o this_o trouble_n or_o grieve_v we_o let_v it_o not_o dismay_v or_o discomfort_v we_o we_o can_v sink_v down_o in_o destruction_n but_o rather_o let_v we_o lift_v up_o our_o head_n assure_v ourselves_o that_o albeit_o they_o turn_v themselves_o from_o we_o yet_o god_n look_v upon_o we_o though_o they_o reproach_n we_o yet_o he_o will_v respect_v we_o and_o though_o they_o seek_v to_o root_v out_o our_o name_n from_o the_o earth_n yet_o he_o will_v know_v we_o and_o call_v we_o by_o our_o name_n thus_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o moses_n and_o encourage_v he_o exod._n 33._o and_o show_v how_o he_o regard_v he_o in_o all_o trouble_n because_o he_o know_v he_o by_o name_n thou_o have_v find_v grace_n in_o my_o sight_n and_o i_o know_v thou_o by_o name_n 12.17_o exo._n 33_o 12.17_o where_o we_o see_v he_o join_v these_o two_o together_o find_v grace_n in_o his_o sight_n and_o know_v he_o by_o name_n the_o like_a do_v christ_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n that_o return_v from_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n 20._o luke_n 10_o 20._o in_o this_o rejoice_v not_o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v subdue_v unto_o you_o but_o rather_o rejoice_v because_o your_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n and_o indeed_o what_o great_a comfort_n can_v there_o be_v then_o this_o if_o thou_o have_v all_o the_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o life_n for_o a_o season_n and_o have_v thy_o name_n write_v in_o the_o black_a book_n of_o reprobation_n and_o thy_o condemnation_n grave_v in_o thy_o forehead_n what_o can_v the_o former_a allurement_n comfort_v thou_o or_o how_o can_v they_o drive_v horror_n and_o heaviness_n from_o thy_o heart_n so_o when_o he_o send_v out_o his_o apostle_n and_o give_v they_o power_n to_o cast_v out_o unclean_a spirit_n and_o to_o heal_v all_o sickness_n have_v teach_v they_o that_o the_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n be_v number_v 28._o math._n 10_o 28._o he_o add_v fear_v you_o not_o they_o that_o kill_v the_o body_n and_o be_v not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n but_o rather_o fear_v he_o which_o be_v able_a to_o destroy_v both_o soul_n and_o body_n in_o hell_n so_o then_o here_o we_o have_v the_o foundation_n of_o sound_n comfort_v lay_v before_o we_o and_o this_o we_o must_v lay_v up_o in_o store_n against_o the_o day_n of_o tentation_n and_o time_n of_o trouble_n for_o albeit_o we_o live_v now_o in_o time_n of_o peace_n and_o plenty_n yet_o we_o know_v not_o how_o long_o they_o shall_v continue_v and_o how_o soon_o they_o may_v be_v take_v from_o we_o and_o we_o be_v scourge_v with_o the_o contrary_a judgement_n it_o be_v a_o rule_n in_o our_o holy_a religion_n that_o the_o church_n must_v taste_v of_o the_o cross_n and_o god_n will_v try_v we_o this_o way_n that_o we_o may_v be_v acquaint_v with_o our_o own_o infirmity_n that_o we_o may_v be_v preserve_v from_o many_o grievous_a sin_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v condemn_v with_o the_o world_n that_o other_o behold_v god_n hand_n correct_v his_o church_n for_o sin_n may_v learn_v thereby_o to_o hate_v and_o abhor_v sin_n and_o to_o love_v righteousness_n and_o that_o the_o church_n may_v gain_v glory_n to_o god_n name_n by_o strive_v for_o the_o truth_n unto_o the_o death_n but_o when_o the_o cross_n be_v any_o way_n up_o on_o we_o and_o we_o feel_v the_o sharpness_n of_o his_o rod_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o sink_v down_o to_o desperation_n and_o to_o say_v we_o be_v no_o more_o have_v in_o remembrance_n as_o psal_n 10_o 1._o why_o stand_v thou_o far_o off_o o_o lord_n and_o hide_v thou_o in_o due_a time_n even_o in_o affliction_n and_o afterward_o psal_n 22_o 1_o 2._o my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o and_o be_v so_o farr●_n from_o my_o health_n and_o from_o the_o word_n of_o my_o roar_n o_o my_o god_n i_o cry_v by_o day_n but_o thou_o hear_v not_o and_o by_o night_n but_o have_v no_o audience_n thus_o be_v we_o incline_v to_o judge_v in_o our_o misery_n and_o to_o think_v god_n to_o have_v forget_v we_o and_o to_o be_v utter_o absent_a from_o us._n but_o if_o we_o in_o time_n of_o trouble_n remember_v he_o and_o his_o name_n he_o will_v remember_v we_o and_o our_o name_n for_o good_a &_o not_o for_o evil_a if_o we_o can_v say_v in_o trouble_n i_o will_v delight_v in_o thy_o statute_n i_o will_v not_o forget_v thy_o word_n 163._o psal_n 119_o 16_o 6●_n 163._o behold_v my_o affliction_n &_o deliver_v i_o for_o i_o have_v not_o forget_v thy_o law_n we_o may_v lay_v this_o up_o as_o a_o truth_n &_o plant_v it_o as_o a_o chief_a plant_n in_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o heart_n that_o god_n will_v never_o forget_v we_o nor_o put_v we_o out_o of_o his_o sight_n for_o ever_o true_a it_o be_v he_o will_v prove_v his_o people_n and_o try_v their_o faith_n for_o a_o season_n but_o he_o will_v never_o forsake_v they_o nor_o leave_v they_o as_o a_o prey_n in_o the_o jaw_n of_o their_o enemy_n who_o rejoice_v at_o their_o fall_n and_o delight_v themselves_o in_o their_o adversity_n and_o as_o true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o ungodly_a triumph_n over_o they_o &_o trample_v upon_o they_o even_o as_o abject_n and_o man_n out_o of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n but_o if_o we_o wait_v a_o little_a while_n he_o will_v remember_v his_o people_n according_a to_o his_o mercy_n and_o recompense_v his_o adversary_n according_a to_o their_o iniquity_n this_o do_v the_o prophet_n declare_v psal_n 10._o where_o he_o complain_v of_o the_o fraud_n wrong_v rapine_n and_o tyranny_n of_o the_o ungodly_a he_o have_v say_v in_o his_o heart_n god_n have_v forget_v he_o hide_v away_o his_o face_n 14._o psal_n 10_o 11_o 12_o 14._o and_o will_v never_o see_v yet_o thou_o have_v see_v it_o for_o thou_o behold_v mischief_n and_o wrong_n that_o thou_o may_v take_v it_o into_o thy_o own_o hand_n the_o poor_a commit_v himself_o to_o thou_o for_o thou_o be_v the_o helper_n of_o the_o fatherless_a howsoever_o therefore_o the_o faithful_a say_v they_o be_v forsake_v and_o the_o unfaithful_a judge_v they_o also_o to_o be_v forsake_v yet_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o the_o tentation_n of_o the_o
accept_v and_o approve_v of_o his_o creature_n to_o be_v he_o vouchsafe_v to_o they_o his_o special_a favour_n &_o love_v they_o as_o his_o own_o child_n of_o this_o the_o psalmist_n say_v the_o lord_n know_v the_o way_n of_o the_o righteous_a or_o godly_a 6_o psal_n 1_o 6_o but_o the_o way_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v perish_v so_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 11_o 2._o god_n have_v not_o cast_v away_o his_o people_n who_o he_o know_v before_o that_o be_v who_o he_o approve_v and_o love_v the_o other_o be_v that_o knowledge_n whereby_o he_o disallow_v of_o the_o wicked_a and_o disavow_v they_o to_o be_v his_o and_o therefore_o he_o will_v not_o show_v forth_o his_o mercy_n towards_o they_o and_o of_o this_o we_o now_o speak_v which_o set_v forth_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o misery_n and_o unhappiness_n though_o he_o know_v they_o by_o the_o general_a knowledge_n of_o his_o power_n and_o providence_n 9_o psal_n 34_o 16._o job_n ●9_n 21._o psalm_n 31_o 3._o jeremy_n 9_o 12._o exod._n 6_o 6._o psal_n 110_o 1._o &_o 114_o 7._o &_o 27_o 8_o 9_o yet_o he_o will_v not_o see_v they_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o pity_n nor_o touch_v they_o with_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o favour_n nor_o hear_v they_o with_o the_o ear_n of_o his_o bounty_n nor_o speak_v unto_o they_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o goodness_n nor_o compass_v they_o with_o the_o arm_n of_o his_o protection_n nor_o come_v unto_o they_o with_o the_o foot_n of_o his_o presence_n nor_o behold_v they_o with_o the_o face_n and_o countenance_n of_o his_o love_a kindness_n can_v there_o be_v a_o more_o miserable_a condition_n describe_v and_o feel_v then_o this_o be_v yet_o these_o be_v they_o that_o count_v themselves_o happy_a and_o entitle_v themselves_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o as_o soon_o shall_v they_o bring_v heaven_n and_o earth_n together_o and_o make_v a_o agreement_n between_o fire_n and_o water_n between_o god_n and_o the_o devil_n between_o righteousness_n and_o unrighteousness_n as_o procure_v the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o so_o long_o as_o they_o walk_v in_o their_o evil_a way_n for_o as_o they_o regard_v not_o to_o know_v god_n in_o his_o word_n so_o he_o regard_v not_o to_o know_v they_o with_o his_o grace_n in_o this_o life_n and_o to_o crown_v they_o with_o his_o glory_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v these_o be_v they_o that_o job_n speak_v of_o chap._n 21._o ver_fw-la 14_o 15._o who_o say_v unto_o god_n depart_v from_o we_o for_o we_o desire_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o way_n who_o be_v the_o almighty_a that_o we_o shall_v serve_v he_o and_o what_o profit_n shall_v we_o have_v if_o we_o shall_v pray_v unto_o he_o though_o they_o speak_v not_o this_o with_o their_o tongue_n nor_o utter_v such_o word_n with_o their_o mouth_n yet_o such_o corruption_n and_o atheism_n be_v in_o their_o heart_n for_o there_o be_v a_o double_a kind_n of_o voice_n and_o a_o twofold_n speak_v one_o with_o the_o tongue_n the_o other_o with_o the_o heart_n and_o the_o fool_n speak_v with_o they_o both_o sometime_o with_o the_o former_a and_o sometime_o with_o the_o latter_a on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o lord_n recompense_v they_o according_a to_o their_o word_n and_o work_n and_o meet_v with_o they_o according_a to_o their_o sin_n for_o he_o will_v profess_v unto_o they_o his_o despise_n of_o they_o as_o they_o have_v despise_v he_o and_o his_o pass_v by_o of_o they_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n as_o they_o have_v pass_v by_o he_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o mercy_n this_o be_v it_o which_o christ_n himself_o speak_v in_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o just_a condemnation_n of_o the_o reprobate_n math._n 7_o 23._o then_o will_v i_o profess_v to_o they_o i_o never_o know_v you_o depart_v from_o i_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n here_o be_v a_o description_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o all_o unreformed_a and_o unrepentant_a person_n god_n disclaim_v they_o &_o command_v they_o to_o depart_v out_o of_o his_o sight_n both_o these_o be_v join_v together_o and_o both_o of_o they_o be_v most_o fearful_a if_o god_n once_o disclaim_v we_o who_o can_v lay_v claim_n to_o we_o but_o the_o devil_n if_o we_o may_v not_o enjoy_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n who_o fellowship_n shall_v we_o enjoy_v but_o the_o devil_n and_o mark_v with_o i_o how_o god_n just_o repay_v such_o man_n and_o find_v they_o out_o in_o their_o own_o wickedness_n they_o say_v to_o god_n in_o their_o life_n as_o we_o hear_v before_o out_o of_o job_n depart_v from_o we_o and_o god_n in_o the_o last_o day_n shall_v say_v to_o they_o depart_v from_o i_o they_o say_v in_o their_o life_n to_o god_n we_o desire_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o way_n and_o he_o shall_v say_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n i_o know_v you_o not_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n they_o will_v not_o know_v the_o lord_n who_o he_o be_v and_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o know_v they_o with_o his_o favour_n but_o with_o his_o fury_n not_o with_o mercy_n but_o with_o judgement_n not_o with_o glory_n but_o with_o shame_n and_o contempt_n pour_v upon_o they_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o in_o another_o place_n amplify_a the_o last_o judgement_n he_o say_v then_o shall_v they_o begin_v to_o say_v 27_o luk_n 13_o 26_o 27_o we_o have_v eat_v and_o drink_v in_o thy_o presence_n and_o thou_o have_v teach_v in_o our_o street_n but_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o tell_v you_o i_o know_v you_o not_o whence_o you_o be_v depart_v from_o i_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n let_v we_o therefore_o all_o betimes_o seek_v to_o know_v the_o lord_n to_o have_v he_o dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n to_o call_v upon_o he_o and_o to_o attend_v unto_o his_o word_n with_o fear_n and_o reverence_n that_o he_o may_v know_v we_o and_o accept_v of_o us._n when_o a_o certain_a man_n go_v down_o from_o jerusalem_n to_o jericho_n fall_v among_o thief_n be_v rob_v of_o his_o good_n 33._o luke_n 10_o 31_o 32_o 33._o strip_v of_o his_o raiment_n wound_v in_o his_o body_n and_o leave_v half_o dead_a do_v it_o not_o increase_v his_o sorrow_n and_o misery_n that_o a_o certain_a priest_n see_v he_o and_o pass_v by_o on_o the_o other_o side_n and_o that_o likewise_o a_o levite_n come_v near_o to_o the_o place_n look_v upon_o he_o and_o depart_v his_o way_n without_o counsel_n or_o comfort_n without_o succour_n or_o assistance_n this_o do_v add_v to_o the_o heap_n of_o his_o misery_n but_o how_o much_o more_o lamentable_a shall_v it_o be_v when_o we_o shall_v lie_v not_o half_o dead_a but_o without_o any_o life_n of_o god_n in_o we_o without_o any_o pity_n show_v unto_o we_o without_o any_o samaritan_n to_o have_v compassion_n upon_o we_o to_o bind_v up_o our_o wound_n to_o pour_v in_o oil_n and_o wine_n to_o give_v we_o any_o ease_n or_o to_o make_v provision_n for_o we_o when_o god_n will_v not_o know_v we_o none_o of_o his_o creature_n shall_v acknowledge_v we_o or_o comfort_v we_o or_o call_v we_o by_o our_o name_n it_o shall_v be_v with_o we_o as_o with_o the_o rich_a man_n to_o who_o the_o scripture_n vouchsafe_v to_o give_v no_o name_n as_o not_o worthy_a to_o be_v speak_v of_o 19_o luke_n 16_o 19_o verify_v the_o say_n of_o the_o wiseman_n prou._n 10_o 7._o the_o memorial_n of_o the_o just_a shall_v be_v bless_v but_o the_o name_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v rot_v see_v therefore_o god_n promise_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o all_o such_o as_o be_v his_o it_o follow_v he_o will_v not_o know_v that_o be_v love_n or_o allow_v the_o wicked_a or_o their_o deed_n and_o therefore_o their_o condition_n must_v needs_o be_v miserable_a as_o be_v out_o of_o his_o number_n use_v 3_o three_o see_v all_o that_o be_v god_n be_v number_v of_o he_o and_o have_v their_o name_n write_v in_o his_o book_n this_o serve_v to_o seal_v up_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o election_n to_o eternal_a life_n for_o if_o god_n know_v we_o even_o by_o name_n our_o name_n shall_v never_o be_v blot_v out_o of_o his_o account_n but_o remain_v there_o grave_v for_o ever_o this_o the_o apostle_n teach_v 2_o tim._n 2_o 19_o the_o foundation_n of_o god_n remain_v sure_a and_o have_v this_o seal_n the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o and_o let_v every_o one_o that_o call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n depart_v from_o iniquity_n where_o he_o show_v that_o god_n decree_n be_v infallible_a and_o unchangeable_a and_o build_v upon_o a_o sure_a foundation_n that_o can_v be_v remoove_v true_a it_o be_v satan_n will_v not_o cease_v to_o winnow_v we_o the_o world_n to_o allure_v we_o the_o flesh_n to_o corrupt_v we_o and_o sundry_a other_o tentation_n to_o set_v upon_o we_o yet_o the_o elect_a shall_v
and_o speak_v unto_o you_o but_o you_o will_v not_o hear_v nor_o answer_n i_o say_v obey_v my_o voice_n and_o i_o will_v be_v your_o god_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n and_o walk_v you_o in_o all_o the_o way_n that_o i_o have_v command_v you_o that_o it_o may_v be_v well_o unto_o you_o but_o they_o will_v not_o obey_v nor_o incline_v their_o ear_n but_o go_v after_o the_o counsel_n and_o stubbornness_n of_o their_o wicked_a heart_n &_o go_v backward_o and_o not_o forward_o i_o have_v send_v unto_o you_o all_o my_o servant_n the_o prophet_n rise_v up_o early_o every_o day_n and_o send_v they_o yet_o will_v they_o not_o hear_v i_o but_o harden_v their_o neck_n and_o do_v worse_a than_o their_o father_n thus_o he_o lay_v open_v their_o sin_n therefore_o no_o marvel_n if_o that_o he_o threaten_v to_o stretch_v out_o his_o hand_n against_o they_o so_o that_o the_o famine_n shall_v pinch_v they_o the_o sword_n shall_v slay_v they_o the_o pestilence_n shall_v waste_v they_o the_o dog_n shall_v tear_v they_o the_o wild_a beast_n destroy_v they_o and_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o heaven_n devour_v they_o second_o as_o it_o reprove_v those_o that_o refuse_v to_o hear_v reproof_n the_o second_o reproof_n so_o it_o condemn_v such_o as_o only_o hear_v and_o go_v no_o further_o these_o rest_n in_o it_o as_o if_o they_o have_v do_v their_o duty_n and_o as_o if_o no_o more_o be_v require_v at_o their_o hand_n but_o know_v this_o and_o mark_v it_o that_o outward_a service_n separate_v from_o inward_a obedience_n be_v not_o respect_v but_o reject_v of_o god_n this_o naked_a hear_n be_v a_o halt_n with_o god_n which_o he_o can_v suffer_v if_o we_o keep_v from_o he_o the_o heart_n he_o care_v not_o for_o the_o eye_n or_o the_o tongue_n or_o the_o ear_n this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o prophet_n say_v when_o you_o fast_v and_o mourn_v in_o the_o five_o and_o seven_o month_n 7_o zach._n 7_o 5_o 6_o 7_o even_o these_o seventy_o year_n do_v you_o fast_o unto_o i_o do_v i_o approve_v it_o shall_v you_o not_o hear_v the_o word_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v cry_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o former_a prophet_n when_o jerusalem_n be_v inhabit_v and_o in_o prosperity_n and_o the_o city_n thereof_o round_o about_o she_o when_o the_o south_n and_o the_o plain_n be_v inhabit_v to_o like_o purpose_n be_v esaiah_n bold_a and_o say_v what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v with_o the_o multitude_n of_o your_o sacrifice_n 13.14.15_o esay_n 1_o 11.12_o 13.14.15_o say_v the_o lord_n i_o be_o full_a of_o the_o burn_a offering_n of_o ram_n i_o desire_v not_o the_o blood_n of_o bullock_n when_o you_o come_v to_o appear_v before_o i_o who_o require_v this_o of_o your_o hand_n to_o tread_v in_o my_o court_n bring_v no_o more_o oblation_n in_o vain_a incense_n be_v a_o abomination_n unto_o i_o i_o can_v suffer_v your_o new_a moon_n nor_o sabbath_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v a_o burden_n unto_o i_o i_o be_o weary_a to_o bear_v they_o and_o when_o you_o shall_v stretch_v out_o your_o hand_n i_o will_v hide_v m●ne_a eye_n from_o you_o and_o though_o you_o make_v many_o prayer_n i_o will_v not_o hear_v be_v not_o these_o his_o own_o ordinance_n do_v not_o he_o appoint_v the_o solemn_a time_n of_o his_o worship_n and_o command_v sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n to_o be_v offer_v unto_o he_o yes_o he_o set_v they_o in_o his_o church_n and_o be_v the_o author_n of_o they_o but_o they_o perform_v they_o in_o a_o evil_a manner_n without_o faith_n without_o repentance_n without_o love_n without_o conscience_n and_o therefore_o as_o they_o do_v they_o god_n loathe_v they_o so_o may_v it_o be_v say_v of_o our_o common_a and_o customary_a hear_n remove_v from_o faith_n &_o obedience_n who_o require_v it_o at_o our_o hand_n the_o lord_n can_v abide_v it_o he_o can_v suffer_v it_o it_o be_v a_o burden_n unto_o he_o that_o he_o can_v bear_v god_n join_v hear_v and_o obey_v together_o and_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o make_v a_o divorce_n between_o they_o this_o do_v the_o prophet_n jeremy_n denounce_v against_o all_o hypocritical_a hearer_n chap_v 11._o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n 5_o jere._n 11_o 3_o 4_o 5_o curse_v be_v the_o man_n that_o obey_v not_o the_o word_n of_o this_o covenant_n which_o i_o command_v unto_o your_o father_n etc._n etc._n he_o protest_v unto_o they_o and_o their_o father_n rise_v early_o and_o say_v obey_v my_o voice_n yet_o they_o will_v not_o obey_v nor_o incline_v their_o ear_n but_o every_o one_o walk_v in_o the_o stubbornness_n of_o his_o wicked_a heart_n thus_o they_o make_v a_o conspiracy_n against_o god_n and_o he_o bring_v his_o curse_n upon_o they_o thus_o our_o saviour_n teach_v it_o shall_v be_v with_o many_o in_o the_o last_o day_n that_o see_v his_o person_n and_o hear_v his_o doctrine_n they_o converse_v and_o continue_v with_o he_o and_o be_v partaker_n of_o his_o miracle_n and_o ministry_n who_o shall_v then_o begin_v to_o say_v we_o have_v eat_v and_o drink_v in_o thy_o presence_n and_o thou_o have_v teach_v in_o our_o street_n 27._o lu._n 13_o 26_o 27._o but_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o tell_v you_o i_o know_v you_o not_o whence_o you_o be_v depart_v from_o i_o all_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n woe_n shall_v then_o be_v to_o all_o such_o hearer_n and_o curse_a shall_v their_o state_n and_o condition_n be_v these_o have_v a_o heavy_a account_n to_o make_v then_o such_o as_o never_o be_v hearer_n and_o never_o have_v so_o great_a mercy_n offer_v unto_o they_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n pronounce_v sundry_a woe_n against_o bethsaida_n corazin_n and_o capernaum_n who_o have_v the_o word_n and_o other_o mean_n of_o salvation_n offer_v unto_o they_o yet_o live_v without_o repentance_n and_o be_v pronounce_v to_o be_v worse_o than_o the_o sodomite_n for_o the_o great_a mercy_n be_v abuse_v the_o deep_a judgement_n be_v deserve_v let_v we_o set_v this_o capernaum_n a_o city_n in_o galilee_n before_o our_o eye_n and_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o in_o a_o glass_n that_o therein_o we_o may_v behold_v ourselves_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v bring_v up_o there_o and_o because_o he_o do_v so_o much_o frequent_v it_o and_o be_v conversant_a there_o many_o thought_n he_o have_v be_v bear_v there_o so_o that_o it_o be_v call_v his_o own_o city_n mat._n 9_o 1._o second_o the_o miracle_n which_o he_o wrought_v there_o be_v many_o he_o heal_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o centurion_n and_o a_o man_n that_o have_v a_o unclean_a spirit_n 5._o math._n 8_o 5._o in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o nazarite_n as_o it_o be_v envy_v and_o repine_v thereat_o that_o that_o place_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o they_o say_v unto_o he_o whatsoever_o we_o have_v h●ard_o do_v in_o capernaum_n do_v it_o here_o likewise_o in_o th●ne_n own_o country_n 4.23_o luc._n 4.23_o thereby_o imply_v that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o miracle_n have_v not_o be_v do_v among_o they_o but_o among_o the_o capernaite_v three_o there_o he_o begin_v to_o preach_v say_v repent_v 4.31.32_o math._n 4.13.17_o mark_n 1.14_o john_n 6_o 59_o luc._n 4.31.32_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o there_o he_o preach_v of_o the_o eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o drink_n of_o his_o blood_n likewise_o he_o teach_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n in_o their_o synagogue_n with_o power_n and_o authority_n so_o that_o they_o be_v astonish_v at_o his_o doctrine_n in_o all_o these_o respect_n and_o privilege_n partly_o of_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o person_n partly_o of_o the_o work_n of_o his_o miracle_n &_o partly_o of_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o gospel_n christ_n pronounce_v that_o they_o be_v lift_v up_o to_o heaven_n 23.24_o mat._n 11_o 23.24_o &_o high_o advance_v above_o many_o other_o town_n &_o city_n that_o want_v the_o see_v and_o hear_v of_o he_o but_o because_o they_o become_v unthankful_a and_o to_o all_o these_o do_v not_o join_v true_a obedience_n he_o denounce_v against_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v down_o to_o hell_n the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v render_v in_o the_o next_o word_n for_o if_o the_o great_a work_n which_o have_v be_v do_v in_o thou_o have_v be_v do_v among_o they_o of_o sodom_n they_o have_v remain_v to_o this_o day_n but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o they_o of_o the_o land_n of_o sodom_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o for_o thou_o a_o heavy_a doom_n and_o a_o most_o fearful_a sentence_n and_o yet_o most_o just_a and_o righteous_a if_o it_o be_v weigh_v in_o the_o balance_n of_o justice_n 16._o the_o sin_n of_o capernaum_n great_a than_o of_o sodom_n gen._n 19_o 3._o rom_n 1_o 27_o 28._o ezek._n 16._o sodom_n indeed_o be_v guilty_a of_o uncleanness_n and_o
beastliness_n one_o with_o another_o whereby_o man_n with_o man_n wrought_v filthiness_n &_o receive_v in_o themselves_o such_o recompense_n of_o their_o error_n as_o be_v meet_v their_o sin_n be_v fullness_n of_o bread_n abundance_n of_o idleness_n contempt_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o pride_n of_o life_n yet_o capernaum_n tread_v under_o foot_n the_o glorious_a gospel_n and_o despise_v the_o word_n of_o salvation_n be_v the_o great_a sinner_n against_o which_o sort_n of_o sinner_n the_o apostle_n be_v command_v to_o shake_v off_o the_o dust_n of_o their_o foot_n as_o a_o witness_n against_o they_o the_o which_o show_v the_o horriblenesse_n of_o their_o sin_n that_o make_v no_o reckon_n of_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n offer_v unto_o they_o to_o reconcile_v they_o to_o god_n sodom_n have_v the_o light_n of_o nature_n that_o shine_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o preach_v within_o their_o conscience_n in_o that_o they_o be_v man_n that_o those_o sin_n be_v unlawful_a of_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o light_n shine_v in_o the_o darkness_n 5._o john_n 1_o 5._o and_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v it_o not_o but_o capernaum_n have_v a_o great_a and_o perfect_a light_n even_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n to_o teach_v they_o and_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n to_o shine_v upon_o they_o which_o far_o excel_v the_o other_o and_o give_v they_o a_o more_o certain_a direction_n to_o lead_v their_o life_n sodom_n indeed_o have_v lot_n a_o holy_a and_o righteous_a man_n among_o they_o 8._o 2_o pet._n 2_o 8._o who_o soul_n they_o vex_v from_o day_n to_o day_n by_o their_o unclean_a conversation_n but_o capernaum_n have_v a_o great_a than_o lot_n they_o have_v the_o gracious_a presence_n of_o christ_n jesus_n who_o word_n be_v with_o authority_n and_o not_o as_o the_o scribe_n who_o glory_n be_v as_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n full_a of_o grace_n and_o truth_n john_n 1_o 14._o again_o sodom_n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o type_n and_o shadow_n of_o the_o law_n they_o want_v the_o sacrifice_n and_o ceremony_n which_o the_o jew_n have_v but_o capernaum_n have_v the_o body_n itself_o they_o see_v he_o they_o touch_v he_o they_o hear_v he_o they_o handle_v he_o yet_o they_o repent_v not_o but_o remain_v disobedient_a sodom_n have_v only_o the_o make_n of_o the_o creature_n and_o the_o workmanship_n of_o the_o heaven_n as_o god_n great_a book_n to_o behold_v and_o look_v upon_o to_o be_v their_o schoolmaster_n &_o instructer_n 21._o psalm_n 19_o 1_o rom._n 1_o 20_o 21._o which_o declare_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n &_o show_v forth_o his_o deity_n but_o capernaum_n have_v more_o even_o a_o plain_a path_n beat_v before_o they_o to_o walk_v in_o and_o a_o sit_v light_a to_o guide_v they_o in_o all_o their_o way_n the_o eternal_a word_n of_o god_n that_o endure_v for_o ever_o if_o then_o sodom_n shall_v be_v whip_v sure_o capernaum_n must_v be_v scourge_v if_o sodom_n rebuke_v capernaum_n punish_v if_o sodom_n imprison_v and_o damn_a capernaum_n shall_v be_v throw_v down_o into_o the_o neathermost_a hell_n and_o gulf_n of_o perdition_n if_o the_o burden_n lay_v upon_o sodom_n be_v grievous_a that_o lay_v upon_o capernaum_n shall_v be_v more_o grievous_a and_o intolerable_a for_o god_n will_v reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n so_o that_o with_o what_o measure_n we_o meet_v 6._o roman_n 2_o 6._o with_o the_o same_o it_o shall_v be_v measure_v to_o we_o again_o sodom_n be_v the_o less_o sinner_n &_o therefore_o liable_a to_o the_o less_o punishment_n capernaum_n be_v the_o great_a sinner_n a_o great_a contemner_n of_o great_a blessing_n and_o therefore_o guilty_a of_o the_o great_a damnation_n to_o what_o end_n may_v some_o say_v do_v this_o comparison_n serve_v or_o what_o have_v we_o to_o do_v with_o sodom_n which_o be_v consume_v to_o ash_n with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n long_o ago_o or_o what_o do_v capernaum_n belong_v to_o we_o yes_o it_o concern_v we_o and_o if_o we_o change_v the_o name_n the_o time_n and_o the_o place_n this_o whole_a comparison_n teach_v we_o wisdom_n and_o touch_v we_o near_o for_o have_v any_o nation_n under_o the_o heaven_n be_v lift_v up_o high_o towards_o the_o heaven_n than_o we_o have_v not_o the_o word_n be_v plentiful_o preach_v among_o we_o have_v we_o not_o have_v the_o sacrament_n due_o administer_v unto_o we_o have_v we_o not_o receive_v his_o mercy_n abundant_o pour_v upon_o we_o yet_o what_o people_n have_v be_v more_o unthankful_a more_o disobedient_a more_o rebellious_a what_o can_v the_o lord_n have_v do_v for_o we_o that_o he_o have_v not_o do_v and_o shall_v we_o so_o reward_v he_o with_o unkindness_n for_o his_o mercy_n let_v we_o take_v heed_n lest_o if_o we_o be_v like_o capernaun_n in_o sin_n the_o threaten_v do_o fall_v upon_o we_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o sodom_n &_o gomorrah_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o for_o us._n for_o if_o sodom_n do_v not_o escape_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n who_o have_v only_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n not_o the_o lantern_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o shine_v among_o they_o &_o to_o give_v light_n unto_o they_o how_o shall_v we_o escape_v or_o be_v without_o excuse_n if_o we_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o son_n of_o god_n if_o we_o cast_v out_o of_o our_o heart_n the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n if_o we_o count_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o testament_n as_o a_o unholy_a thing_n and_o do_v despite_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n three_o reproof_n the_o 3._o reproof_n this_o doctrine_n reprove_v those_o that_o be_v ready_a to_o hear_v and_o content_a to_o obey_v but_o it_o be_v no_o far_o then_o stand_v with_o their_o own_o lust_n and_o like_n these_o be_v like_o saul_n in_o obedience_n they_o think_v they_o have_v great_a wrong_n to_o be_v charge_v with_o rebellion_n and_o disobedience_n they_o have_v open_a mouth_n to_o say_v 20._o 1_o sa._n 15_o 13_o 20._o bless_v be_v thou_o of_o the_o lord_n i_o have_v fulfil_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n i_o have_v obey_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n i_o have_v go_v the_o way_n which_o the_o lord_n send_v i_o &c_n &c_n yet_o he_o be_v there_o charge_v with_o treason_n and_o rebellion_n against_o god_n and_o threaten_v to_o have_v the_o kingdom_n rend_v from_o he_o thus_o be_v it_o with_o many_o in_o our_o day_n they_o profess_v obedience_n but_o their_o life_n swarm_v with_o the_o fruit_n of_o disobedience_n like_v to_o the_o son_n who_o be_v command_v of_o his_o father_n to_o go_v &_o work_v in_o his_o vineyard_n answer_v i_o will_v sir_n but_o he_o stand_v still_o &_o go_v not_o 21.30_o math._n 21.30_o these_o be_v they_o that_o draw_v near_o to_o god_n with_o their_o mouth_n but_o be_v disobedient_a in_o deed_n &_o their_o real_a disobedience_n shall_v procure_v a_o real_a vengeance_n on_o they_o it_o be_v strange_a to_o see_v how_o many_o of_o this_o sort_n of_o man_n pretend_v a_o willingness_n to_o obey_v &_o will_v be_v account_v in_o the_o number_n of_o obedient_a child_n as_o if_o they_o be_v whole_o make_v of_o obedience_n and_o yet_o they_o will_v not_o submit_v themselves_o whole_o to_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n but_o mince_v the_o matter_n and_o part_v stake_n with_o god_n somewhat_o they_o will_v do_v to_o stop_v man_n mouth_n and_o to_o get_v the_o applause_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o be_v account_v religious_a but_o they_o be_v not_o mind_v to_o deal_v sincere_o and_o entire_o with_o god_n like_o those_o that_o have_v a_o journey_n to_o go_v be_v soon_o weary_a and_o stand_v still_o when_o they_o be_v go_v half_o the_o way_n these_o be_v they_o that_o will_v not_o be_v atheist_n but_o have_v the_o true_a god_n for_o their_o god_n yet_o do_v they_o love_v their_o riches_n their_o pleasure_n their_o belly_n and_o their_o delight_n above_o he_o 16._o revel_v 3_o 16._o and_o set_v their_o affection_n whole_o upon_o they_o they_o can_v abide_v idolatry_n nor_o to_o be_v esteem_v idolater_n yet_o they_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n of_o pray_v unto_o he_o public_o and_o private_o neglect_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n hear_v of_o his_o word_n read_v meditation_n conference_n and_o such_o like_a help_n be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o the_o apostle_n reprove_v rom._n 2_o 22._o thou_o abhor_v idol_n yet_o commit_v sacrilege_n they_o will_v not_o forswear_v themselves_o nor_o fall_v into_o perjury_n but_o they_o will_v swear_v and_o lie_v too_o for_o a_o advantage_n they_o will_v not_o seem_v to_o abuse_v the_o title_n of_o god_n and_o to_o take_v his_o name_n in_o vain_a but_o you_o shall_v hear_v they_o even_o in_o their_o communication_n to_o swear_v by_o their_o faith_n and_o troth_n and_o they_o engage_v they_o so_o long_o
whether_o they_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n then_o shall_v the_o faithful_a be_v full_o glorify_v and_o inherit_v the_o crown_n of_o eternal_a life_n this_o howsoever_o it_o be_v oftentimes_o and_o faithful_o promise_v of_o god_n yet_o have_v be_v and_o be_v deride_v of_o many_o who_o shall_v in_o the_o end_n pay_v the_o price_n of_o their_o folly_n and_o infidelity_n &_o feel_v that_o god_n truth_n be_v stable_n and_o sure_a then_o the_o heaven_n 4._o 2_o pet._n 3_o 3_o 4._o this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o apostle_n peter_n testify_v this_o first_o understand_v that_o there_o shall_v come_v in_o the_o last_o day_n mocker_n which_o will_v walk_v after_o their_o lust_n and_o say_v where_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n for_o since_o the_o father_n die_v all_o thing_n continue_v alike_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o creation_n but_o whatsoever_o these_o atheist_n dream_v of_o the_o glorious_a appearance_n of_o christ_n his_o second_o come_v and_o howsoever_o they_o put_v the_o evil_a day_n far_o from_o they_o yet_o the_o lord_n of_o that_o promise_n be_v not_o slack_v as_o some_o man_n count_v slackness_n but_o be_v patient_a towards_o we_o and_o will_v have_v no_o man_n to_o perish_v nevertheless_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n will_v come_v as_o a_o thief_n in_o the_o night_n in_o the_o which_o the_o heaven_n shall_v pass_v away_o with_o a_o noise_n and_o the_o element_n shall_v melt_v with_o heat_n and_o the_o earth_n with_o the_o work_n that_o be_v therein_o shall_v be_v burn_v up_o this_o we_o see_v not_o yet_o perform_v 17._o 1_o thess_n 4_o 17._o neither_o be_v we_o make_v partaker_n of_o eternal_a life_n when_o we_o shall_v ever_o rest_v &_o remain_v with_o the_o lord_n and_o nothing_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o his_o glorious_a and_o comfortable_a presence_n this_o doctrine_n therefore_o serve_v to_o uphold_v our_o faith_n in_o this_o point_n and_o whensoever_o we_o read_v of_o any_o promise_n that_o god_n have_v in_o mercy_n make_v to_o his_o church_n albeit_o it_o be_v for_o a_o time_n defer_v not_o present_o accomplish_v let_v we_o wait_v with_o patience_n and_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o the_o experience_n of_o his_o former_a promise_n which_o we_o see_v already_o fulfil_v and_o say_v with_o the_o apostle_n 12_o 2_o tim._n 1_o 12_o i_o know_v who_o i_o have_v believe_v and_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v that_o which_o i_o have_v commit_v to_o he_o against_o that_o day_n we_o be_v sure_o we_o build_v not_o in_o the_o air_n we_o beat_v not_o the_o air_n but_o we_o build_v upon_o assure_v foundation_n that_o shall_v never_o decay_v or_o deceive_v us._n for_o who_o ever_o put_v his_o trust_n in_o he_o and_o be_v confound_v or_o who_o do_v set_v up_o his_o rest_n on_o he_o and_o go_v away_o ashamed_a hence_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n say_v math._n 5_o 17_o 18._o think_v not_o that_o i_o be_o come_v to_o destroy_v the_o law_n or_o the_o prophet_n i_o be_o not_o come_v to_o destroy_v they_o but_o to_o fulfil_v they_o for_o true_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o till_o heaven_n and_o earth_n perish_v one_o jot_n or_o one_o title_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v not_o escape_v till_o all_o thing_n be_v fulfil_v this_o be_v needful_a for_o we_o to_o consider_v &_o remember_v for_o our_o faith_n be_v often_o shake_v with_o doubt_v and_o infidelity_n that_o which_o we_o see_v not_o we_o many_o time_n believe_v not_o and_o so_o we_o be_v shake_v through_o our_o weakness_n as_o with_o the_o wind_n but_o we_o must_v make_v god_n our_o rock_n and_o rest_n on_o his_o unchangeable_a word_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o and_o can_v lie_v second_o see_v god_n promise_n be_v so_o use_v 2_o sure_o ground_v upon_o the_o immutabilitie_n of_o god_n truth_n that_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o they_o shall_v fail_v or_o he_o deceive_v this_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v as_o true_a that_o his_o judgement_n shall_v not_o fail_v but_o follow_v the_o wicked_a at_o the_o heel_n for_o god_n be_v as_o unchangeable_a in_o the_o one_o as_o in_o the_o other_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a error_n to_o imagine_v that_o god_n will_v undoubted_o perform_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o mercy_n and_o not_o the_o threaten_n of_o his_o justice_n true_a it_o be_v many_o presume_v of_o his_o goodness_n but_o they_o doubt_v of_o his_o righteousness_n this_o be_v to_o set_v up_o a_o abominable_a idol_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o to_o deny_v the_o infiniteness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o majesty_n and_o to_o devise_v a_o god_n make_v altogether_o of_o mercy_n if_o god_n be_v true_a in_o the_o one_o he_o be_v also_o as_o true_a in_o the_o other_o if_o he_o fail_v in_o the_o one_o he_o change_v also_o in_o the_o other_o this_o use_n be_v direct_o conclude_v by_o joshua_n in_o the_o exhortation_n that_o he_o make_v to_o the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o join_v themselves_o to_o the_o idolatrous_a nation_n but_o love_v the_o lord_n their_o god_n and_o cleave_v unto_o he_o with_o full_a purpose_n of_o heart_n when_o he_o say_v chap._n 23._o ver_fw-la 14_o 15._o behold_v this_o day_n do_v i_o enter_v into_o the_o way_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o you_o know_v in_o your_o heart_n and_o in_o all_o your_o soul_n that_o nothing_o have_v fail_v of_o all_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n promise_v you_o but_o all_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v unto_o you_o nothing_o have_v fail_v thereof_o therefore_o as_o all_o good_a thing_n be_v come_v upon_o you_o which_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n promise_v you_o so_o shall_v the_o lord_n bring_v upon_o you_o every_o evil_a thing_n until_o he_o have_v destroy_v you_o out_o of_o this_o good_a land_n which_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n have_v give_v you_o in_o which_o word_n he_o teach_v that_o his_o threaten_n be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o his_o promise_n and_o his_o judgement_n as_o certain_a as_o his_o mercy_n 17.18_o 2_o king_n 7_o 1_o 2_o 17.18_o this_o appear_v by_o a_o notable_a example_n which_o god_n show_v at_o the_o break_n up_o of_o the_o long_a siege_n of_o samaria_n he_o promise_v to_o the_o faithful_a that_o will_v believe_v plenty_n and_o abundance_n the_o next_o day_n and_o he_o threaten_v to_o the_o prince_n on_o who_o hand_n the_o king_n lean_v that_o he_o shall_v see_v it_o with_o his_o eye_n but_o he_o shall_v not_o eat_v thereof_o here_o god_n do_v promise_v good_a and_o threaten_v evil_a do_v he_o show_v forth_o the_o work_n of_o his_o mercy_n and_o not_o of_o his_o judgement_n of_o his_o goodness_n not_o of_o his_o wrath_n yes_o of_o his_o wrath_n and_o judgement_n for_o the_o people_n tread_v upon_o he_o in_o the_o gate_n and_o he_o die_v as_o the_o man_n of_o god_n have_v say_v so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v this_o serve_v to_o show_v the_o woeful_a estate_n and_o condition_n of_o all_o ungodly_a man_n &_o unrepentant_a sinner_n for_o howsoever_o they_o flatter_v themselves_o &_o put_v away_o the_o evil_a day_n far_o from_o they_o be_v delude_v and_o as_o it_o be_v charm_v with_o a_o proud_a presumption_n of_o god_n mercy_n yet_o the_o threaten_n of_o god_n the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o terror_n of_o their_o conscience_n which_o stand_v against_o they_o shall_v abide_v for_o ever_o and_o therefore_o so_o long_o as_o they_o go_v forward_o in_o sin_n and_o proceed_v in_o the_o wickedness_n of_o their_o heart_n they_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o mourn_v and_o lament_v forasmuch_o as_o the_o threaten_n manifest_v in_o the_o word_n be_v inviolable_a and_o unchangeable_a let_v all_o those_o that_o lie_v in_o any_o sin_n repent_v &_o while_o it_o be_v call_v to_o day_n hear_v his_o voice_n lest_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n which_o shall_v certain_o be_v fulfil_v do_v seize_v upon_o they_o and_o they_o be_v carry_v to_o utter_v destruction_n the_o prophet_n esay_n denounce_v many_o woe_n against_o wicked_a man_n 22._o esay_n 5_o 8_o 11_o 18_o 20_o 21_o 22._o woe_n unto_o they_o that_o join_v house_n to_o house_n and_o lay_v field_n to_o field_n till_o there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o the_o poor_a woe_n unto_o they_o that_o rise_v up_o early_o to_o follow_v drunkenness_n and_o to_o they_o that_o continue_v till_o night_n woe_n unto_o they_o that_o draw_v iniquity_n with_o cord_n of_o vanity_n and_o sin_n as_o with_o cart-rope_n woe_n unto_o they_o that_o speak_v good_a of_o evil_n and_o evil_a of_o good_a which_o put_v darkness_n for_o light_n and_o light_n for_o darkness_n that_o put_v bitter_a for_o sweet_a &_o sweet_a for_o sour_a woe_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v wise_a in_o their_o own_o eye_n &_o prudent_a in_o their_o own_o sight_n woe_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v mighty_a to_o drink_v wine_n and_o to_o they_o that_o be_v strong_a to_o
pour_v in_o strong_a drink_n here_o be_v many_o woe_n and_o fearful_a threaten_n of_o many_o misery_n and_o do_v the_o ungodly_a think_v to_o escape_v or_o that_o these_o thing_n do_v not_o deep_o concern_v they_o our_o saviour_n denounce_v a_o great_a woe_n against_o all_o contemner_n of_o the_o gospel_n &_o tell_v they_o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o tyre_n &_o sidon_n nay_o for_o sodom_n and_o gomorra_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n 24_o mat._n 11_o 22_o 24_o then_o for_o they_o must_v not_o these_o denunciation_n be_v accomplish_v or_o do_v we_o remain_v as_o infidel_n and_o think_v they_o shall_v never_o be_v perform_v or_o if_o they_o be_v perform_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v exempt_v or_o excuse_v it_o can_v be_v that_o his_o word_n shall_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n and_o take_v none_o effect_v let_v we_o fear_v these_o terrible_a threaten_n humble_v ourselves_o before_o he_o and_o forsake_v our_o evil_a way_n let_v we_o betake_v ourselves_o unto_o he_o and_o let_v we_o turn_v unto_o his_o word_n for_o the_o word_n will_v never_o turn_v unto_o we_o and_o bend_v itself_o to_o our_o pleasure_n the_o scripture_n be_v full_a &_o replenish_v with_o such_o heavy_a threaten_n as_o may_v serve_v to_o strike_v a_o fear_n and_o terror_n into_o our_o heart_n the_o prophet_n amos_n 3._o amos_n 6_o 1_o 3._o denounce_v a_o woe_n to_o they_o that_o be_v at_o ease_n in_o zion_n that_o put_v far_o away_o the_o evil_a day_n and_o approach_v to_o the_o seat_n of_o iniquity_n and_o be_v not_o sorry_a for_o the_o affliction_n of_o joseph_n the_o prophet_n malachi_n foretell_v 1._o mal._n 4_o 1._o that_o the_o day_n come_v which_o shall_v burn_v as_o a_o oven_n and_o all_o the_o proud_a yea_o all_o that_o do_v wicked_o shall_v be_v stubble_n and_o the_o day_n that_o come_v shall_v burn_v they_o up_o and_o shall_v leave_v they_o neither_o root_n nor_o branch_n these_o threaten_n be_v sure_a than_o the_o heaven_n which_o shall_v pass_v away_o but_o these_o shall_v never_o pass_v away_o and_o therefore_o woe_n to_o they_o that_o repent_v not_o nor_o return_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v take_v sudden_o in_o they_o as_o in_o a_o snare_n and_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o deliver_v they_o they_o may_v think_v themselves_o forgive_v or_o at_o least_o forget_v but_o poor_a soul_n they_o be_v deceive_v it_o be_v not_o length_n of_o time_n that_o can_v help_v they_o nor_o strength_n of_o their_o arm_n that_o can_v save_v they_o nor_o the_o wedge_n of_o gold_n that_o can_v deliver_v they_o for_o riches_n avail_v not_o in_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n 4_o prover._n 11_o 4_o nor_o serve_v to_o pacify_v his_o indignation_n but_o righteousness_n deliver_v from_o death_n three_o as_o we_o learn_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n in_o use_n 3_o his_o threaten_n so_o there_o arise_v from_o hence_o a_o most_o excellent_a ground_n of_o assure_a comfort_n for_o all_o god_n servant_n to_o establish_v their_o heart_n in_o the_o immutability_n of_o all_o his_o promise_n many_o be_v the_o particular_a promise_n set_v down_o in_o the_o word_n &_o as_o many_o as_o be_v there_o mention_v so_o many_o particular_a comfort_n be_v minister_v unto_o we_o as_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o believe_v they_o and_o as_o it_o be_v clasp_v our_o arm_n about_o they_o may_v have_v strong_a consolation_n and_o boldness_n to_o come_v to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n wherefore_o whensoever_o we_o feel_v the_o weakness_n of_o our_o faith_n we_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o his_o word_n as_o they_o which_o have_v a_o dim_a sight_n and_o weak_a eye_n use_v the_o help_n of_o their_o spectacle_n and_o thereby_o find_v comfort_n so_o shall_v we_o when_o we_o be_v at_o any_o time_n trouble_v with_o doubt_v help_v our_o spiritual_a eyesight_n with_o often_o look_v into_o the_o glass_n of_o his_o word_n and_o meditate_v continual_o upon_o his_o promise_n it_o be_v endless_a and_o infinite_a to_o speak_v of_o all_o his_o gracious_a promise_n mention_v in_o his_o word_n some_o be_v of_o temporal_a blessing_n and_o other_o of_o spiritual_a and_o eternal_a in_o both_o we_o ought_v to_o rest_v upon_o the_o unchangeableness_n of_o his_o will_n who_o be_v not_o as_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v any_o way_n deceive_v we_o as_o those_o that_o use_v to_o promise_n much_o &_o perform_v little_a his_o promise_n be_v certain_a and_o very_o good_a payment_n if_o we_o dare_v trust_v he_o of_o his_o word_n 37.25_o psal_n 37.25_o it_o be_v he_o that_o have_v say_v i_o have_v be_v young_a and_o be_o old_a yet_o i_o see_v never_o the_o righteous_a forsake_v nor_o his_o seed_n beg_v bread_n it_o be_v he_o that_o have_v speak_v 7._o heb._n 13.6_o 7._o i_o will_v not_o fail_v thou_o neither_o forsake_v thou_o so_o that_o we_o may_v bold_o say_v the_o lord_n be_v my_o helper_n neither_o will_v i_o fear_v what_o man_n can_v do_v unto_o i_o 33_o matthew_n 6_o 33_o it_o be_v he_o that_o have_v promise_v seek_v you_o first_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o his_o righteousness_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v minister_v unto_o you_o we_o see_v how_o much_o many_o man_n vex_v &_o torment_v themselves_o about_o earthly_a &_o transitory_a thing_n they_o fear_v they_o shall_v want_v before_o they_o die_v and_o give_v themselves_o to_o unlawful_a shift_n to_o maintain_v themselves_o and_o their_o estate_n the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v because_o they_o have_v unbelieved_a heart_n they_o can_v cast_v themselves_o and_o their_o care_n upon_o the_o lord_n they_o will_v not_o seek_v his_o love_n and_o favour_n they_o labour_v not_o to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o he_o in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o whatsoever_o he_o promise_v unto_o they_o of_o his_o word_n they_o believe_v nothing_o at_o all_o take_v a_o example_n of_o god_n providence_n over_o his_o people_n while_o they_o walk_v and_o wander_v in_o the_o wilderness_n they_o have_v neither_o seed_n time_n nor_o harvest_n and_o they_o be_v a_o huge_a multitude_n of_o more_o than_o six_o hundred_o thousand_o beside_o woman_n and_o child_n yet_o he_o sustain_v they_o and_o provide_v for_o they_o till_o he_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n he_o be_v not_o as_o a_o poor_a father_n that_o have_v more_o child_n than_o he_o be_v able_a to_o sustain_v or_o as_o a_o state_n that_o be_v constrain_v to_o disburden_v itself_o of_o their_o superfluity_n and_o overflow_a multitude_n and_o so_o to_o send_v out_o many_o colony_n to_o plant_v themselves_o in_o other_o place_n he_o have_v all_o the_o earth_n in_o his_o own_o power_n &_o be_v able_a to_o provide_v for_o all_o his_o child_n that_o wait_v upon_o he_o and_o put_v their_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o this_o must_v be_v our_o comfort_n in_o time_n of_o trial_n and_o tentation_n that_o he_o have_v promise_v never_o to_o fail_v we_o nor_o forsake_v we_o and_o albeit_o man_n promise_n may_v deceive_v we_o and_o his_o deed_n come_v short_a of_o his_o word_n yet_o no_o jot_n or_o portion_n of_o god_n promise_n shall_v remain_v unfulfil_v and_o therefore_o in_o all_o our_o necessity_n let_v we_o possess_v our_o soul_n with_o patience_n and_o wait_v constant_o for_o the_o accomplishment_n thereof_o which_o in_o due_a time_n shall_v take_v good_a effect_n the_o fault_n be_v in_o ourselves_o who_o will_v not_o lay_v hold_n upon_o the_o same_o he_o have_v say_v he_o will_v be_v our_o tower_n of_o defence_n and_o city_n of_o refuge_n to_o shield_v we_o from_o danger_n &_o all_o distress_n but_o we_o will_v not_o trust_v he_o of_o his_o word_n but_o use_v unlawful_a mean_n for_o our_o deliverance_n that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v of_o transitory_a and_o temporal_a blessing_n may_v also_o be_v speak_v of_o eternal_a god_n have_v promise_v the_o renew_v of_o our_o heart_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o jer._n 31_o 32_o 33._o heb._n 8_o 10_o 11_o 12._o esay_n 40_o 1_o 2._o i_o will_v put_v my_o law_n in_o their_o mind_n and_o in_o their_o heart_n i_o will_v write_v they_o i_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n i_o will_v be_v merciful_a to_o their_o unrighteousness_n and_o i_o will_v remember_v their_o sin_n and_o their_o iniquity_n no_o more_o these_o be_v great_a and_o precious_a promise_n here_o be_v sweet_a comfort_n of_o life_n and_o salvation_n offer_v unto_o we_o on_o god_n part_n let_v these_o be_v to_o we_o as_o the_o anchor_n of_o our_o soul_n both_o sure_a and_o steadfast_a these_o be_v immutable_a thing_n 18._o hebrew_n 6_o 18._o wherein_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o god_n shall_v lie_v and_o therefore_o let_v we_o be_v establish_v in_o they_o and_o lie_v hold_v upon_o that_o hope_n which_o be_v set_v before_o us._n
for_o the_o great_a among_o which_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a the_o prophet_n pray_v for_o the_o prosperous_a estate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o solomon_n say_v give_v thy_o judgement_n to_o the_o king_n o_o god_n 2._o psal_n 72_o 1_o 2._o and_o thy_o righteousness_n unto_o the_o king_n son_n then_o shall_v he_o judge_v thy_o people_n in_o righteousness_n and_o thy_o poor_a with_o equity_n this_o duty_n belong_v to_o we_o and_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v our_o prayer_n and_o petition_n and_o as_o god_n have_v bless_v we_o with_o a_o gracious_a prince_n &_o his_o hopeful_a issue_n contrary_a to_o the_o expectation_n of_o many_o malcontent_n and_o hollow-hearted_a enemy_n of_o we_o and_o our_o religion_n so_o we_o be_v often_o to_o call_v to_o remembrance_n the_o joyful_a and_o happy_a time_n when_o god_n in_o his_o great_a goodness_n bring_v he_o to_o this_o kingdom_n and_o to_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n lineal_o descend_v unto_o he_o so_o that_o we_o may_v say_v with_o the_o psalmist_n 24._o psal_n 118_o 23_o 24._o this_o be_v the_o lord_n do_v &_o it_o be_v marvelous_a in_o our_o eye_n this_o be_v the_o day_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v let_v we_o rejoice_v &_o be_v glad_a in_o it_o hereby_o do_v god_n allay_v the_o bitterness_n of_o sorrow_n worthy_o conceive_v for_o the_o decease_n of_o our_o late_a sovereign_n so_o that_o the_o set_n as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o moon_n be_v recompense_v with_o the_o bright_a shine_a of_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o close_n of_o the_o eye_n as_o it_o be_v shut_v the_o window_n of_o decline_a age_n with_o a_o great_a perfection_n of_o age_n of_o sex_n of_o gift_n and_o many_o other_o prerogative_n thus_o do_v one_o and_o the_o same_o day_n minister_v matter_n and_o occasion_n both_o of_o sorrow_n and_o of_o gladness_n 1603._o the_o 24._o day_n of_o march_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1603._o of_o discomfort_n yet_o of_o comfort_n of_o weep_v yet_o of_o rejoice_v as_o a_o medicine_n compose_v of_o contrary_a ingredient_n so_o that_o we_o may_v say_v &_o sing_v with_o the_o poet_n jamque_fw-la dies_fw-la nisi_fw-la fallor_fw-la adest_fw-la quem_fw-la semper_fw-la acerbun_fw-la semper_fw-la honorandum_fw-la sic_fw-la dij_fw-la voluistis_fw-la habebo_fw-la 3._o virgil._n eneid_n lib._n 3._o hunc_fw-la ego_fw-la getulis_fw-la agerem_fw-la si_fw-la syrtibus_fw-la exul_fw-la argolicove_n mari_fw-fr deprensus_fw-la &_o urbe_fw-la mycenae_n annua_fw-la vota_fw-la tamen_fw-la solennesque_fw-la ordine_fw-la pompas_fw-la exequerer_fw-la strueremqque_fw-la suis_fw-la altaria_fw-la donis_fw-la that_o be_v this_o this_o day_n ever-dolefull_a shall_v and_o ever_o joyful_a be_v yea_o merry-sad_a and_o bitter_a sweet_a thus_o god_n do_v it_o decree_n if_o i_o be_v cast_v among_o the_o moor_n and_o live_v a_o captive_a slave_n yet_o yearly_a vow_n and_o duty_n due_a the_o altar_n high_a shall_v have_v thus_o may_v we_o and_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o just_o say_v of_o the_o day_n above_o name_v which_o be_v heavy_a and_o yet_o happy_a threaten_v a_o storm_n and_o yet_o shine_v clear_o who_o do_v not_o great_o fear_v and_o who_o heart_n be_v not_o full_a of_o perplex_a thought_n to_o consider_v what_o danger_n be_v likely_a to_o fall_v upon_o our_o head_n when_o god_n shall_v call_v unto_o himself_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o gather_v she_o unto_o her_o father_n but_o behold_v god_n great_a providence_n deal_v in_o mercy_n towards_o we_o who_o shut_v up_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lion_n and_o put_v up_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o enemy_n and_o quench_v the_o violence_n of_o the_o fire_n so_o that_o no_o noise_n no_o tumult_n no_o cry_n be_v hear_v in_o our_o street_n no_o sack_n of_o city_n no_o tumbling_n of_o garment_n in_o blood_n be_v see_v no_o alarm_n of_o battle_n be_v discern_v of_o any_o not_o a_o dog_n lift_v up_o his_o tongue_n 5._o esay_n 9_o 5._o but_o all_o thing_n be_v submiss_a and_o quiet_a thus_o god_n bring_v king_n james_n unto_o the_o kingdom_n with_o a_o train_n of_o all_o estate_n degree_n calling_n company_n and_o condition_n with_o olive_n branch_n of_o peace_n in_o their_o hand_n sinesudore_fw-la &_o sanguine_fw-la that_o be_v without_o sweat_v and_o bloodshedding_n no_o man_n lose_v his_o good_n no_o man_n lose_v his_o life_n no_o babilonish_a confusion_n follow_v but_o every_o one_o hold_v his_o own_o with_o great_a certainty_n and_o security_n then_o before_o whereat_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o peace_n and_o religion_n fret_v and_o rage_n and_o gnash_v their_o tooth_n for_o anger_n and_o be_v like_a to_o burst_v for_o envy_n see_v their_o expectation_n be_v frustate_v &_o all_o their_o hope_n be_v defeat_v yea_o lord_n disappoint_v they_o more_o and_o more_o cast_v they_o into_o the_o pit_n which_o they_o have_v dig_v and_o roll_v the_o stone_n upon_o themselves_o which_o they_o have_v stir_v let_v they_o be_v consume_v and_o confound_v in_o their_o own_o device_n and_o taste_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o their_o own_o malice_n let_v their_o eye_n look_v for_o a_o day_n of_o comfort_n and_o refresh_n until_o they_o fall_v out_o of_o their_o head_n according_a to_o that_o say_n rusticus_n expectat_fw-la dum_fw-la defluat_fw-la amnis_fw-la 2._o horat._n lib._n 1._o epist_n 2._o at_o ille_fw-la labitur_fw-la &_o labetur_fw-la in_o omne_fw-la volubilis_fw-la aewm_fw-la that_o be_v they_o wait_v until_o the_o river_n wax_v dry_a but_o he_o do_v run_v and_o shall_v eternal_o so_o then_o to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n esay_n ch_n 5_o 24._o as_o the_o flame_n of_o fire_n devour_v the_o stubble_n &_o as_o the_o chaff_n be_v consume_v of_o the_o flame_n so_o their_o root_n shall_v be_v as_o rottenness_n and_o their_o bud_n shall_v rise_v up_o like_o dust_n because_o they_o have_v cast_v off_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o contemn_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n on_o the_o other_o side_n let_v we_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o render_v humble_a and_o hearty_a thanks_n to_o god_n for_o his_o goodness_n towards_o we_o in_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o danger_n that_o do_v hang_v over_o we_o in_o frustrate_v the_o policy_n of_o the_o ungodly_a in_o continue_v among_o we_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n in_o maintain_v concord_n and_o unity_n among_o we_o &_o all_o these_o by_o place_v our_o dread_a sovereign_n over_o we_o and_o thereby_o remove_v a_o thousand_o calamity_n that_o threaten_a shipwreck_n and_o final_a desolation_n let_v we_o not_o now_o grow_v secure_a but_o oftentimes_o remember_v the_o benefit_n that_o we_o have_v receive_v it_o be_v note_v that_o when_o solomon_n be_v set_v upon_o the_o seat_n of_o david_n his_o father_n 48._o 1_o kin._n 1_o 48._o the_o people_n come_v up_o after_o he_o yea_o they_o pipe_v with_o pipe_n and_o rejoice_v with_o great_a joy_n so_o that_o the_o earth_n ring_v with_o the_o sound_n of_o they_o so_o when_o hiram_n king_n of_o tyrus_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o solomon_n he_o rejoice_v great_o and_o say_v 7._o 1_o kin._n 5_o 7._o bless_a be_v the_o lord_n this_o day_n which_o have_v give_v unto_o david_n a_o wise_a son_n over_o this_o mighty_a people_n likewise_o when_o the_o queen_n of_o sheba_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o solomon_n and_o know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o chief_a sign_n of_o god_n favour_n to_o have_v godly_a and_o wise_a ruler_n sit_v in_o the_o throne_n of_o justice_n and_o judgement_n she_o break_v forth_o not_o only_o into_o a_o admiration_n of_o his_o wisdom_n and_o his_o servant_n happiness_n but_o also_o into_o a_o open_a thanksgiving_n bless_a be_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n which_o love_v thou_o to_o set_v thou_o on_o the_o throne_n of_o israel_n 9_o 1_o kin._n 10_o 9_o because_o the_o lord_n love_v israel_n for_o ever_o and_o make_v thou_o king_n to_o do_v equity_n and_o righteousness_n these_o be_v good_a example_n for_o we_o to_o follow_v and_o teach_v we_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v when_o god_n bless_v we_o with_o a_o upright_o david_n with_o a_o wise_a solomon_n with_o a_o zealous_a hezekiah_n with_o a_o religious_a josiah_n with_o a_o reforming_a jehosaphat_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o return_v praise_n and_o glory_n to_o god_n and_o withal_o to_o pray_v hearty_o for_o the_o prosperous_a and_o happy_a continuance_n of_o such_o among_o we_o that_o they_o may_v live_v long_o upon_o earth_n to_o promote_v his_o glory_n to_o advance_v the_o gospel_n &_o to_o establish_v peace_n plenty_n and_o prosperity_n among_o their_o people_n 10._o on_o the_o southside_n shall_v be_v the_o standard_n of_o the_o host_n of_o reuben_n according_a to_o their_o army_n and_o the_o captain_n over_o the_o son_n of_o reuben_n shall_v be_v elizur_n the_o son_n of_o shedeur_n 11._o and_o his_o host_n and_o the_o number_n thereof_o be_v six_o and_o forty_o thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o 12._o and_o by_o he_o shall_v the_o
will_v chasten_v he_o with_o the_o rod_n of_o man_n and_o with_o the_o plague_n of_o the_o child_n of_o man_n but_o my_o mercy_n shall_v not_o depart_v away_o from_o he_o as_o i_o take_v it_o from_o saul_n who_o i_o have_v put_v away_o before_o thou_o so_o then_o he_o deal_v not_o extreme_o with_o his_o people_n but_o spare_v they_o 17._o malac._n 3_o 17._o as_o a_o man_n spare_v his_o own_o son_n that_o serve_v he_o reason_n 3_o three_o as_o his_o nature_n be_v to_o show_v mercy_n so_o know_v he_o the_o matter_n whereof_o we_o be_v make_v and_o he_o consider_v that_o we_o be_v but_o dust_n if_o he_o shall_v deal_v with_o we_o according_a to_o our_o desert_n and_o pay_v we_o home_o as_o we_o have_v provoke_v he_o by_o sin_v against_o he_o he_o shall_v bring_v man_n to_o nothing_o and_o consume_v he_o for_o ever_o wherefore_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o will_v not_o contend_v for_o ever_o neither_o will_v i_o be_v always_o wroth_a 16._o esay_n 57_o 16._o for_o the_o spirit_n shall_v fail_v before_o i_o &_o i_o have_v make_v the_o breath_n we_o be_v as_o a_o wind_n that_o soon_o pass_v as_o a_o breath_n that_o be_v easy_o stop_v and_o as_o the_o dust_n that_o be_v quick_o blow_v away_o the_o prophet_n call_v this_o to_o our_o remembrance_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o learn_v without_o the_o word_n by_o daily_a experience_n psal_n 103_o 13_o 14_o 15_o and_o 78_o 38_o 39_o and_o 30_o 5._o as_o a_o father_n have_v compassion_n on_o his_o child_n so_o have_v the_o lord_n compassion_n on_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o for_o he_o know_v whereof_o we_o be_v make_v he_o remember_v that_o we_o be_v but_o dust_n the_o day_n of_o man_n be_v as_o grass_n as_o a_o flower_n of_o the_o field_n so_o flourish_v he_o and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o be_v merciful_a forgive_v their_o iniquity_n and_o destroy_v they_o not_o but_o ofttimes_o call_v back_o his_o anger_n and_o do_v not_o stir_v up_o all_o his_o anger_n for_o he_o remember_v that_o they_o be_v flesh_n yea_o a_o wind_n that_o pass_v and_o come_v not_o again_o if_o then_o we_o consider_v that_o god_n punish_v unwilling_o that_o he_o show_v mercy_n and_o remember_v our_o frailty_n we_o must_v needs_o conclude_v with_o the_o same_o prophet_n that_o he_o endure_v but_o a_o while_n in_o his_o anger_n but_o in_o his_o favour_n be_v life_n weep_v may_v abide_v at_o evening_n but_o joy_n come_v in_o the_o morning_n let_v we_o now_o observe_v the_o use_n that_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o this_o doctrine_n first_o mark_v the_o use_n 1_o difference_n between_o god_n and_o man_n who_o way_n be_v not_o as_o our_o way_n nor_o his_o work_n like_v unto_o our_o work_n it_o be_v not_o with_o god_n as_o it_o be_v with_o man_n 4._o esay_n 27_o 4._o albeit_o he_o be_v daily_o provoke_v and_o offend_v yet_o he_o be_v not_o easy_o move_v and_o upon_o our_o submission_n and_o repentance_n he_o be_v quick_o appease_v and_o his_o wrath_n by_o and_o by_o be_v turn_v back_o 11._o psal_n 103_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11._o the_o lord_n be_v full_a of_o compassion_n and_o mercy_n slow_a to_o anger_n and_o of_o great_a kindness_n he_o will_v not_o always_o chide_v neither_o keep_v his_o anger_n for_o ever_o he_o have_v not_o deal_v with_o we_o after_o our_o sin_n nor_o reward_v we_o according_a to_o our_o iniquity_n for_o as_o high_a as_o the_o heaven_n be_v above_o the_o earth_n so_o great_a be_v his_o mercy_n towards_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o but_o when_o man_n be_v once_o move_v he_o seldom_o keep_v any_o mean_a or_o moderation_n &_o he_o can_v hardly_o or_o never_o will_v be_v appease_v again_o albeit_o he_o that_o have_v offend_v and_o provoke_v he_o do_v submit_v himself_o unto_o he_o and_o crave_v pardon_n for_o his_o offence_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o god_n be_v constrain_v to_o restrain_v the_o outrage_n and_o cruelty_n of_o man_n in_o his_o law_n that_o as_o a_o violent_a stream_n break_v out_o &_o can_v be_v keep_v within_o no_o bound_n of_o reason_n where_o he_o give_v in_o charge_n that_o if_o the_o wicked_a be_v worthy_a to_o be_v beat_v 3_o deut._n 25_o 2_o 3_o the_o judge_n shall_v cause_v he_o to_o lie_v down_o and_o to_o be_v beat_v before_o his_o face_n according_a to_o his_o trespass_n unto_o a_o certain_a number_n forty_o stripe_n shall_v because_o he_o to_o have_v and_o not_o past_a lest_o if_o he_o shall_v exceed_v and_o beat_v he_o above_o that_o with_o many_o stripe_n thy_o brother_n shall_v appear_v despise_v in_o thy_o sight_n this_o law_n declare_v that_o so_o soon_o as_o we_o be_v injury_v a_o fire_n be_v kindle_v within_o we_o we_o conceive_v rancour_n and_o choler_n we_o fret_v and_o fume_n with_o indignation_n and_o can_v be_v reconcile_v we_o be_v fill_v with_o our_o passion_n we_o lay_v on_o load_n and_o know_v no_o moderation_n if_o the_o lord_n shall_v deal_v with_o we_o as_o we_o measure_v to_o our_o brethren_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v it_o and_o abide_v it_o if_o he_o shall_v be_v so_o fierce_a and_o full_a of_o rage_n against_o we_o we_o shall_v utter_o be_v destroy_v and_o consume_v but_o there_o be_v always_o mercy_n with_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v fear_v second_o this_o serve_v great_o to_o comfort_n use_v 2_o all_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n to_o consider_v the_o moderation_n of_o his_o chasticement_n and_o the_o gentleness_n of_o his_o hand_n in_o all_o his_o correction_n we_o see_v by_o daily_a experience_n how_o he_o forbear_v we_o and_o pour_v not_o out_o all_o his_o wrath_n upon_o us._n if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o it_o will_v oftentimes_o go_v hard_a with_o us._n albeit_o his_o hand_n be_v sharp_a upon_o we_o yet_o we_o must_v needs_o confess_v our_o sin_n have_v just_o deserve_v great_a plague_n long_a plague_n sharp_a plague_n and_o when_o his_o judgment_n be_v cease_v and_o withdraw_v our_o sin_n be_v find_v to_o be_v as_o great_a and_o sometime_o great_a than_o before_o so_o that_o we_o deserve_v other_o plague_n and_o punishment_n to_o come_v in_o place_n &_o immediate_o to_o follow_v the_o former_a our_o deliverance_n therefore_o be_v for_o his_o mercy_n sake_n hereupon_o the_o prophet_n say_v 5._o psal_n 30_o 5._o he_o endure_v but_o a_o while_n in_o his_o anger_n but_o in_o his_o favour_n be_v life_n weep_v may_v abide_v in_o the_o evening_n but_o joy_n come_v in_o the_o morning_n in_o like_a manner_n sorrow_n may_v happen_v in_o the_o morning_n but_o joy_n and_o comfort_n shall_v abide_v within_o the_o evening_n that_o we_o may_v acknowledge_v the_o greatness_n of_o his_o mercy_n and_o the_o shortness_n of_o his_o wrath_n we_o hear_v how_o sorrowful_a a_o message_n and_o what_o heavy_a tiding_n david_n have_v bring_v unto_o he_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v up_o but_o this_o sorrow_n be_v soon_o turn_v into_o joy_n and_o this_o heaviness_n into_o gladness_n when_o the_o angel_n of_o vengeance_n be_v command_v to_o stay_v his_o hand_n and_o to_o put_v up_o the_o sword_n of_o justice_n into_o his_o sheath_n to_o this_o purpose_n the_o apostle_n teach_v the_o hebrew_n chap._n 12._o 12._o heb._n 12_o 9_o 10_o 12._o we_o have_v have_v the_o father_n of_o our_o body_n which_o correct_v we_o and_o we_o give_v they_o reverence_n shall_v we_o not_o much_o rather_o be_v in_o subjection_n unto_o the_o father_n of_o spirit_n that_o we_o may_v live_v for_o they_o very_o for_o a_o few_o day_n chastened_a we_o after_o their_o own_o pleasure_n but_o he_o chasten_v we_o for_o our_o profit_n that_o we_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o his_o holiness_n we_o must_v evermore_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v his_o mercy_n that_o move_v he_o to_o stay_v his_o hand_n and_o to_o call_v in_o his_o judgement_n and_o to_o make_v our_o plague_n to_o cease_v we_o can_v stand_v to_o plead_v with_o god_n we_o must_v not_o justify_v ourselves_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o hold_v ourselves_o innocent_a but_o rather_o persuade_v ourselves_o that_o god_n have_v a_o just_a quarrel_n and_o controversy_n against_o us._n have_v he_o visit_v our_o brethren_n that_o dwell_v near_o we_o as_o good_a and_o peradventure_o better_a than_o ourselves_o and_o yet_o have_v not_o touch_v we_o have_v he_o free_v we_o when_o other_o have_v feel_v the_o stroke_n of_o his_o rod_n have_v we_o stand_v upright_o when_o other_o have_v fall_v down_o when_o his_o arrow_n fly_v abroad_o and_o stick_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o bone_n have_v he_o pass_v over_o we_o and_o hide_v we_o under_o the_o shadow_n of_o his_o wing_n as_o in_o a_o place_n of_o safety_n oh_o consider_v this_o and_o let_v we_o not_o forget_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o o_o let_v we_o remember_v his_o love_a kindness_n and_o engrave_v it_o in_o
our_o heart_n to_o work_v in_o we_o the_o fruit_n of_o obedience_n let_v we_o enter_v into_o our_o own_o self_n and_o examine_v our_o conscience_n aright_o and_o reason_n with_o ourselves_o after_o this_o manner_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o we_o have_v sin_v and_o yet_o be_v spare_v that_o we_o have_v be_v in_o danger_n and_o yet_o be_v deliver_v and_o be_v not_o destroy_v see_v so_o many_o of_o our_o neighbour_n die_v round_o about_o we_o daily_o how_o be_v it_o that_o we_o be_v spare_v have_v not_o our_o sin_n deserve_v to_o be_v sweep_v away_o or_o can_v we_o say_v we_o be_v not_o guilty_a if_o we_o search_v our_o heart_n and_o way_n thorough_o and_o deal_v true_o with_o god_n and_o ourselves_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o ourselves_o but_o matter_n to_o kindle_v his_o wrath_n and_o to_o cut_v we_o off_o and_o to_o punish_v we_o with_o great_a plague_n than_o he_o have_v hitherto_o inflict_v upon_o us._n it_o be_v his_o mercy_n that_o we_o live_v and_o have_v a_o long_a time_n of_o repentance_n give_v unto_o we_o he_o may_v have_v cut_v we_o off_o as_o rot_a branch_n fit_a for_o no_o other_o use_n then_o to_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o fire_n we_o must_v be_v thankful_a unto_o he_o for_o this_o goodness_n and_o not_o abuse_v his_o patience_n and_o long_a suffering_n lest_o we_o kindle_v his_o wrath_n again_o and_o he_o reserve_v we_o for_o a_o great_a plague_n and_o so_o we_o bring_v a_o more_o heavy_a condemnation_n upon_o ourselves_o bless_a be_v we_o if_o we_o can_v make_v this_o holy_a and_o sanctify_a use_n of_o affliction_n the_o which_o albeit_o for_o the_o present_a time_n it_o seem_v grievous_a and_o not_o joyous_a 11._o heb._n 12_o 11._o yet_o afterward_o it_o bring_v the_o quiet_a fruit_n of_o righteousness_n unto_o they_o which_o be_v thereby_o exercise_v thus_o we_o see_v how_o this_o doctrine_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o much_o comfort_n and_o consolation_n if_o we_o behave_v ourselves_o as_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v under_o the_o cross_n we_o have_v not_o to_o do_v with_o a_o hard_a and_o cruel_a father_n that_o will_v not_o regard_v we_o nor_o with_o a_o weak_a and_o impotent_a father_n that_o can_v relieve_v we_o for_o our_o god_n be_v in_o heaven_n he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_n little_a child_n do_v oftentimes_o receive_v great_a hurt_n be_v far_o from_o their_o father_n sight_n and_o leave_v unto_o themselves_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o we_o we_o be_v always_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n our_o father_n he_o be_v our_o eye_n to_o see_v for_o we_o our_o ear_n to_o hear_v for_o we_o our_o hand_n stretch_v out_o to_o help_v we_o and_o deliver_v us._n for_o how_o shall_v not_o he_o that_o make_v the_o eye_n see_v and_o that_o make_v the_o ear_n hear_v 9_o psal_n 94_o 9_o it_o be_v say_v when_o israel_n be_v in_o egypt_n and_o there_o oppress_v with_o cruel_a bondage_n that_o god_n look_v upon_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n 25._o exod._n 2_o 25._o and_o god_n have_v respect_n unto_o they_o so_o that_o he_o do_v not_o look_v upon_o their_o misery_n as_o a_o idle_a beholder_n of_o they_o or_o as_o one_o that_o take_v pleasure_n to_o see_v their_o calamity_n but_o as_o one_o that_o be_v move_v with_o compassion_n towards_o they_o and_o pity_v their_o poor_a estate_n and_o condition_n for_o as_o he_o see_v their_o trouble_n and_o know_v their_o sorrow_n 7._o exod._n 3_o 7._o so_o he_o come_v down_o to_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o egyptian_n hec_fw-la it_o be_v that_o give_v diligent_a care_n to_o all_o our_o groan_n and_o sigh_n he_o know_v in_o what_o case_n we_o stand_v and_o what_o pain_n we_o feel_v he_o take_v so_o great_a care_n and_o keep_v of_o we_o that_o he_o suffer_v not_o any_o of_o our_o tear_n to_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n but_o put_v they_o into_o his_o bottle_n and_o lay_v they_o up_o in_o his_o register_n thus_o do_v god_n remember_v we_o in_o trouble_n hear_v and_o help_v we_o at_o all_o time_n have_v a_o continual_a care_n of_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v discourage_v nor_o drink_v a_o full_a cup_n and_o draughte_n of_o affliction_n to_o be_v leave_v without_o comfort_n under_o the_o wave_n thereof_o that_o may_v drown_v our_o soul_n this_o be_v the_o staff_n of_o comfort_n which_o christ_n give_v unto_o his_o disciple_n and_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n even_o to_o so_o many_o as_o shall_v see_v the_o ruin_n and_o horrible_a destruction_n that_o shall_v come_v upon_o the_o city_n and_o the_o temple_n math._n 24_o verse_n 22._o 22_o math._n 24_o 22_o then_o shall_v be_v great_a tribulation_n such_o as_o be_v not_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o this_o time_n nor_o yet_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o and_o except_o those_o day_n shall_v be_v shorten_v there_o shall_v no_o flesh_n be_v save_v but_o for_o the_o elect_v sake_n those_o day_n shall_v be_v shorten_v in_o these_o word_n the_o faithful_a be_v comfort_v by_o consideration_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o the_o mitigation_n of_o those_o judgement_n which_o he_o will_v bring_v upon_o jerusalem_n true_a it_o be_v some_o do_v understand_v they_o of_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n with_o power_n and_o great_a glory_n according_a to_o a_o rot_a prophecy_n of_o one_o of_o the_o rabbin_n set_v down_o the_o stand_n and_o continue_v of_o the_o world_n namely_o two_o thousand_o year_n before_o the_o law_n elias_n a_o worm-eaten_a and_o moth-eaten_a pprophecy_n of_o one_o elias_n two_o thousand_o under_o the_o law_n and_o two_o thousand_o under_o christ_n but_o for_o the_o elect_v sake_n those_o day_n shall_v be_v shorten_v the_o examination_n of_o this_o counterfeit_a and_o worm-eaten_a prophecy_n belong_v not_o to_o this_o place_n nor_o time_n the_o two_o first_o part_n be_v untrue_a &_o the_o three_o both_o untrue_a uncertain_a and_o unsettle_a have_v no_o sure_a ground_n or_o foundation_n to_o stand_v upon_o for_o touch_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o place_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n but_o of_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o when_o christ_n speak_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n foretell_v of_o the_o take_n and_o ruinate_v of_o the_o temple_n so_o that_o one_o stone_n shall_v not_o be_v leave_v up_o on_o a_o stone_n that_o shall_v not_o be_v cast_v down_o the_o disciple_n upon_o occasion_n hereof_o ask_v the_o question_n when_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v and_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o come_n to_o judgement_n to_o these_o two_o question_n he_o answer_v distinct_o not_o confuse_o and_o first_o of_o all_o to_o the_o first_o wherein_o he_o give_v they_o sundry_a sign_n go_v before_o the_o sack_v of_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n as_o for_o example_n 20_o math._n 24_o 15._o luc._n 21.20_o and_o 19_o 43._o math._n 24.19_o 20_o when_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n that_o be_v the_o roman_a army_n as_o luke_n expound_v it_o sit_v in_o the_o holy_a place_n know_v that_o the_o end_n be_v near_o then_o be_v touch_v with_o a_o commiseration_n of_o their_o sorrow_n he_o say_v woe_n to_o they_o that_o be_v with_o child_n and_o give_v suck_v in_o these_o day_n pray_v that_o your_o flight_n be_v not_o in_o the_o winter_n etc._n etc._n such_o be_v no_o fit_a person_n to_o fly_v such_o be_v no_o fit_a time_n to_o fly_v from_o their_o cruel_a and_o bloody_a enemy_n nor_o to_o escape_v the_o rage_n of_o barbarous_a and_o merciless_a soldier_n then_o shall_v be_v such_o trouble_n and_o tribulation_n as_o no_o tongue_n can_v express_v no_o pen_n can_v write_v no_o language_n have_v word_n to_o utter_v the_o sword_n devour_v without_o and_o both_o sword_n and_o famine_n rage_v &_o consume_v within_o 8._o joseph_n de_fw-la bello_fw-la judai_n li._n 7._o c._n 8._o so_o that_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o eat_v their_o own_o child_n during_o the_o straightness_n of_o the_o siege_n these_o be_v the_o day_n of_o vengeance_n to_o fulfil_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v immediate_o upon_o the_o mention_n of_o these_o woe_n and_o tribulation_n follow_v these_o word_n except_o those_o day_n shall_v be_v shorten_v 22._o luc_n 21_o 22._o &c_n &c_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o god_n have_v suffer_v those_o sharp_a affliction_n to_o continue_v and_o the_o enemy_n to_o rage_n against_o they_o as_o they_o desire_v and_o their_o sin_n deserve_v none_o of_o that_o nation_n have_v escape_v all_o the_o jew_n have_v be_v root_v out_o as_o one_o man_n no_o flesh_n that_o be_v not_o a_o man_n among_o the_o jew_n have_v be_v leave_v alive_a 3_o rom._n 9_o 1_o 2_o 3_o but_o for_o the_o elect_v sake_n that_o be_v because_o
god_n have_v a_o remnant_n among_o they_o according_a to_o grace_n even_o his_o elect_a and_o choose_a people_n which_o he_o will_v not_o cast_v away_o for_o their_o sake_n the_o day_n of_o their_o great_a distress_n in_o the_o land_n 23._o luc._n 21_o 23._o and_o of_o wrath_n over_o this_o people_n shall_v be_v end_v and_o finish_v which_o declare_v how_o precious_a and_o dear_a the_o faithful_a that_o fear_n god_n be_v in_o his_o sight_n that_o because_o of_o their_o company_n he_o will_v cease_v to_o scourge_v &_o afflict_v the_o nation_n any_o long_o even_o as_o at_o the_o intercession_n of_o abraham_n he_o will_v have_v spare_v sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n if_o ten_o righteous_a person_n have_v be_v find_v there_o gen._n 18._o so_o god_n show_v mercy_n to_o the_o host_n of_o israel_n because_o jehosaphat_n be_v present_a with_o they_o and_o therefore_o when_o jehoram_n the_o son_n of_o ahab_n complain_v for_o want_v of_o water_n the_o prophet_n elisha_n answer_v what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v with_o thou_o get_v thou_o to_o the_o prophet_n of_o thy_o father_n 14_o 2_o kin._n 3_o 13_o 14_o and_o to_o the_o prophet_n of_o thy_o mother_n as_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n live_v in_o who_o sight_n i_o stand_v if_o it_o be_v not_o that_o i_o regard_v the_o presence_n of_o jehosaphat_n the_o king_n of_o judah_n i_o will_v not_o have_v look_v towards_o thou_o nor_o see_v thou_o so_o then_o we_o see_v to_o return_v to_o the_o former_a point_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o end_v the_o trouble_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o siege_n of_o the_o city_n not_o of_o cut_v short_a the_o day_n of_o judgement_n thus_o god_n know_v how_o to_o mitigate_v the_o sorrow_n and_o shorten_v the_o calamity_n that_o threaten_v the_o ruin_n and_o subversion_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o who_o be_v it_o but_o desire_v comfort_n in_o time_n of_o trouble_n if_o then_o we_o will_v be_v assure_v that_o these_o thing_n belong_v unto_o we_o trouble_n how_o we_o may_v comfort_v ourselves_o in_o trouble_n &_o take_v comfort_n in_o the_o meditation_n of_o they_o let_v we_o observe_v these_o point_n as_o special_a rule_n for_o our_o edification_n first_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o acknowledge_v god_n mercy_n to_o be_v great_a who_o may_v lay_v a_o great_a load_n and_o a_o heavy_a burden_n upon_o us._n when_o the_o angel_n stretch_v out_o his_o hand_n to_o destroy_v jerusalem_n the_o lord_n stay_v his_o hand_n &_o cause_v the_o plague_n to_o cease_v so_o that_o when_o thousand_o fall_v down_o on_o the_o right_a side_n and_o ten_o thousand_o on_o the_o left_a side_n they_o be_v spare_v and_o not_o touch_v whence_o do_v this_o difference_n arise_v and_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o the_o city_n be_v pass_v over_o &_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o land_n punish_v be_v it_o because_o these_o be_v worse_a liver_n or_o great_a sinner_n or_o be_v it_o because_o there_o be_v better_a people_n in_o jerusalem_n then_o in_o other_o corner_n of_o the_o country_n be_v it_o because_o of_o the_o goodly_a building_n in_o the_o city_n or_o because_o of_o the_o multitude_n of_o rich_a and_o wealthy_a citizen_n or_o because_o of_o the_o sumptuous_a stone_n of_o the_o temple_n or_o because_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o service_n of_o god_n solemnize_v in_o the_o temple_n or_o because_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o throne_n set_v for_o justice_n be_v there_o if_o we_o think_v it_o be_v for_o all_o these_o or_o for_o any_o of_o these_o or_o for_o any_o such_o like_a outward_a respect_n we_o be_v deceive_v indeed_o the_o temple_n be_v a_o occasion_n of_o vain_a confidence_n to_o carnal_a man_n who_o cry_v out_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n 7.4_o ●er_n 7.4_o this_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n whereas_o they_o remain_v impenitent_a and_o unreformed_a but_o as_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o build_v for_o solomon_n build_v he_o a_o house_n as_o for_o the_o city_n and_o the_o citizen_n 7.47_o act_n 7.47_o we_o must_v look_v for_o no_o great_a good_a there_o there_o be_v want_v of_o true_a piety_n store_n of_o pride_n cruelty_n and_o oppression_n which_o have_v enclose_v nay_o infect_v the_o wall_n with_o the_o contagion_n thereof_o in_o what_o state_n it_o stand_v david_n declare_v who_o call_v to_o god_n for_o help_v and_o say_v there_o be_v not_o a_o godly_a man_n leave_v the_o faithful_a be_v fail_v from_o among_o the_o child_n of_o man_n 2._o psal_n 12_o 1_o 2._o so_o that_o every_o one_o deal_v deceitful_o with_o his_o neighbour_n and_o speak_v flattr_o with_o double_a heart_n to_o this_o purpose_n speak_v jeremy_n chap._n 5_o 1._o run_v too_o and_o fro_o by_o the_o street_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o behold_v now_o and_o know_v and_o inquire_v in_o the_o open_a place_n thereof_o if_o you_o can_v find_v a_o man_n or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o that_o execute_v judgement_n and_o seek_v the_o truth_n and_o i_o will_v spare_v it_o thus_o do_v the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n 12._o ezek._n 22_o 7_o ●_o 9_o 12._o complain_v &_o paint_v out_o as_o in_o a_o table_n the_o wickedness_n of_o jerusalem_n chap._n 22._o there_o do_v abound_v shed_v of_o blood_n contempt_n of_o superior_n oppression_n of_o stranger_n wrong_v of_o the_o fatherless_a iniury_v of_o the_o widow_n profane_v of_o the_o sabbath_n carry_v about_o of_o tale_n commit_v of_o idolatry_n take_v of_o bribe_n pervert_v of_o judgement_n bite_v by_o usury_n defraud_v of_o their_o neighbour_n by_o extortion_n and_o forget_v of_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v the_o estate_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o therefore_o the_o cause_n why_o the_o pestilence_n do_v not_o walk_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o city_n and_o the_o angel_n be_v command_v to_o stay_v his_o hand_n from_o destroy_v that_o place_n which_o be_v such_o a_o sink_n of_o all_o filthy_a sin_n be_v the_o lord_n mercy_n only_o who_o be_v willing_a to_o spare_v it_o &_o to_o give_v they_o long_o time_n of_o repentance_n this_o must_v we_o confess_v when_o we_o be_v spare_v or_o we_o be_v most_o unthankful_a unto_o god_n for_o we_o have_v experience_n of_o his_o goodness_n towards_o us._n second_o we_o must_v in_o time_n of_o our_o affliction_n pray_v unto_o he_o and_o call_v upon_o his_o name_n and_o come_v with_o boldness_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o his_o mercy_n thus_o do_v the_o prophet_n behave_v himself_o when_o he_o hear_v of_o the_o havoc_n and_o waste_n that_o shall_v be_v make_v among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n he_o pray_v hearty_o for_o the_o faithful_a say_v o_o lord_n i_o have_v hear_v thy_o voice_n and_o be_v not_o afraid_a 2._o hab._n 3_o 2._o o_o lord_n revive_v thy_o work_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o year_n make_v it_o know_v in_o wrath_n remember_v mercy_n what_o great_a motive_n can_v there_o be_v to_o make_v we_o repair_v to_o god_n then_o to_o consider_v how_o mild_o and_o gentle_o he_o deal_v with_o his_o people_n when_o he_o do_v afflict_v they_o this_o be_v it_o that_o move_v david_n to_o make_v choice_n of_o the_o pestilence_n have_v the_o choice_n of_o two_o other_o judgement_n propound_v and_o lay_v before_o he_o because_o he_o be_v most_o gracious_a and_o full_a of_o compassion_n let_v i_o now_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n 13_o 1_o chr._n 21_o 13_o for_o his_o mercy_n be_v exceed_o great_a and_o let_v i_o not_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n he_o have_v experience_n both_o of_o god_n mercy_n and_o of_o man_n cruelty_n we_o never_o profit_v aright_o by_o our_o affliction_n unless_o they_o drive_v we_o near_o to_o god_n and_o cause_v we_o to_o call_v upon_o his_o name_n it_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o we_o shall_v call_v upon_o he_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n three_o if_o we_o will_v have_v comfort_n in_o the_o feel_n of_o god_n hand_n we_o must_v thereby_o be_v draw_v unto_o repentance_n acknowledge_v our_o sin_n to_o deserve_v far_o great_a judgement_n than_o yet_o we_o suffer_v and_o consequent_o turn_v unto_o he_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n if_o we_o remain_v stubborn_a and_o rebellious_a under_o the_o cross_n god_n will_v not_o leave_v we_o so_o but_o double_a his_o strength_n and_o stroke_n upon_o we_o until_o we_o be_v either_o reclaim_v or_o convince_v in_o our_o own_o conscience_n and_o make_v without_o excuse_n the_o lord_n command_v his_o prophet_n to_o go_v and_o cry_v these_o word_n thou_o disobedient_a israel_n return_n 12._o jerem._n 3_o 12._o say_v the_o lord_n and_o i_o will_v not_o let_v my_o wrath_n fall_v upon_o you_o for_o i_o be_o merciful_a and_o will_v not_o always_o keep_v my_o anger_n the_o end_n that_o god_n aim_v at_o in_o afflict_v his_o people_n
of_o god_n for_o john_n describe_v the_o state_n of_o glory_n after_o this_o life_n say_v i_o see_v no_o temple_n therein_o for_o the_o lord_n god_n almighty_a 2d_o re._n 21_o 22_o 23_o 24_o 25_o 26_o 2d_o and_o the_o lamb_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o it_o and_o this_o city_n have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o sun_n neither_o of_o the_o moon_n to_o shine_v in_o it_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n do_v light_v it_o and_o the_o lamb_n be_v the_o light_n of_o it_o happy_a be_v they_o that_o enter_v into_o this_o city_n where_o god_n be_v the_o temple_n where_o god_n be_v the_o sun_n where_o god_n be_v the_o moon_n where_o god_n be_v all_o the_o light_v thereof_o and_o all_o the_o glory_n and_o defence_n thereof_o it_o be_v a_o glorious_a thing_n in_o this_o life_n to_o be_v king_n and_o prince_n and_o to_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o majesty_n but_o when_o they_o shall_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n they_o shall_v lay_v down_o all_o earthly_a pomp_n and_o magnificence_n receive_v so_o great_a glory_n in_o that_o glorious_a city_n that_o the_o glory_n which_o they_o have_v as_o king_n and_o prince_n shall_v vanish_v away_o as_o the_o light_n of_o a_o candle_n at_o the_o shine_a of_o the_o sun_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o least_o of_o god_n saint_n be_v so_o excellent_a that_o solomon_n in_o all_o his_o glory_n be_v never_o array_v nor_o advance_v like_o one_o of_o these_o the_o end_n of_o all_o this_o be_v to_o teach_v we_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v even_o ravish_v with_o a_o earnest_n and_o long_a desire_n to_o dwell_v in_o this_o heavenly_a tabernacle_n and_o to_o labour_v to_o have_v our_o heart_n purge_v from_o a_o evil_a conscience_n know_v that_o no_o unclean_a thing_n shall_v enter_v into_o it_o 21.27_o ●●uel_a 21.27_o neither_o whatsoever_o work_v abomination_n and_o lie_n every_o one_o will_v seem_v desirous_a to_o dwell_v in_o the_o lord_n tabernacle_n and_o to_o come_v to_o heaven_n but_o they_o be_v loath_a to_o leave_v their_o sin_n but_o let_v we_o not_o deceive_v ourselves_o neither_o let_v we_o sooth_n and_o flatter_v ourselves_o in_o our_o evil_n if_o we_o follow_v our_o ungodly_a way_n with_o greediness_n and_o will_v not_o forsake_v our_o wickedness_n we_o shall_v have_v the_o door_n of_o god_n kingdom_n shut_v against_o us._n 18_o the_o standard_n of_o the_o camp_n of_o ephraim_n shall_v be_v towards_o the_o west_n according_a to_o their_o army_n and_o the_o captain_n over_o the_o son_n of_o ephraim_n shall_v be_v elishama_n the_o son_n of_o ammihud_o 19_o and_o the_o host_n and_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v forty_o thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o 20_o and_o by_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o tribe_n of_o manasseh_n and_o the_o captain_n over_o the_o son_n of_o manasseh_n shall_v be_v gamliel_n the_o son_n of_o pedahzur_n 21_o and_o his_o host_n and_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v two_o and_o thirty_o thousand_o and_o two_o hundred_o 22_o and_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n and_o the_o captain_n over_o the_o son_n of_o benjamin_n shall_v be_v abidan_n the_o son_n of_o gideoni_n 23_o and_o his_o host_n and_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v five_o and_o thirty_o thousand_o and_o four_o hundred_o 24_o all_o the_o number_n of_o the_o camp_n of_o ephraim_n be_v a_o hundred_o and_o eight_o thousand_o and_o one_o hundred_o according_a to_o their_o army_n and_o they_o shall_v go_v in_o the_o three_o place_n we_o have_v hear_v before_o how_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n be_v place_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o host_n and_o compass_v about_o both_o in_o front_n and_o flank_n stand_v strong_a in_o battle_v in_o their_o array_n ready_a to_o receive_v a_o shock_n if_o any_o enemy_n shall_v offer_v to_o enter_v upon_o they_o in_o these_o word_n be_v lay_v before_o we_o the_o three_o company_n of_o this_o mighty_a army_n the_o principal_a whereof_o be_v ephraim_n and_o his_o partisan_n be_v manasseh_n and_o benjamin_n appoint_v to_o march_v under_o his_o ensign_n and_o to_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n range_v under_o his_o colour_n it_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o any_o that_o be_v mean_o conversant_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o joseph_n and_o benjamin_n be_v the_o only_a child_n of_o rahel_n the_o true_a and_o belove_a wife_n of_o jacob_n and_o that_o both_o manasseh_n and_o ephraim_n be_v the_o child_n of_o joseph_n and_o that_o the_o elder_a be_v manasseh_n the_o young_a ephraim_n who_o notwithstanding_o have_v the_o first_o place_n of_o honour_n and_o pre-eminence_n assign_v unto_o he_o and_o manasseh_n the_o first_o bear_v be_v compel_v to_o be_v his_o underling_n what_o can_v ephraim_n claim_v above_o his_o brother_n or_o what_o have_v manasseh_n do_v to_o be_v put_v behind_o it_o please_v god_n oftentimes_o to_o make_v the_o first_o last_o and_o the_o last_o first_o to_o thrust_v down_o the_o elder_a into_o the_o place_n of_o the_o young_a and_o to_o advance_v the_o young_a into_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o elder_a this_o appear_v in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n and_o be_v so_o ordinary_a and_o common_a as_o it_o need_v not_o to_o be_v set_v down_o to_o insist_v only_o upon_o the_o present_a example_n we_o read_v that_o when_o joseph_n bring_v his_o two_o child_n before_o his_o sick_a father_n 48.14.18.20_o gene._n 48.14.18.20_o jacob_n stretch_v out_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o lay_v it_o on_o ephraim_n head_n and_o his_o left_a hand_n upon_o manasseh_n head_n direct_v his_o hand_n of_o purpose_n neither_o can_v be_v draw_v to_o remove_v they_o but_o bless_v they_o that_o day_n and_o say_v in_o thou_o israel_n shall_v bless_v and_o say_v god_n make_v thou_o as_o ephraim_n and_o as_o manasseh_n and_o he_o set_v ephraim_n before_o manasseh_n thus_o god_n judgement_n be_v oftentimes_o contrary_a to_o man_n and_o he_o prefer_v that_o which_o man_n despise_v a_o notable_a example_n whereof_o we_o have_v in_o samuel_n when_o he_o be_v send_v to_o anoint_v david_n king_n and_o have_v the_o elder_a son_n of_o ishai_n before_o he_o he_o say_v 16.6_o 1_o sam._n 16.6_o sure_o the_o lord_n anoint_a be_v before_o he_o but_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o samuel_n look_v not_o on_o his_o countenance_n nor_o on_o the_o height_n of_o his_o stature_n because_o i_o have_v refuse_v he_o for_o god_n see_v not_o as_o man_n see_v for_o man_n look_v on_o the_o outward_a appearance_n but_o the_o lord_n behold_v the_o heart_n samuel_n be_v a_o holy_a prophet_n of_o god_n yet_o he_o fail_v in_o bind_v god_n grace_n to_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o nature_n doctrine_n 5_o we_o learn_v from_o hence_o please_v god_n bestow_v his_o gift_n and_o grace_n free_o to_o who_o he_o please_v that_o god_n bestow_v his_o gift_n free_o both_o when_o he_o will_v and_o where_o he_o will_v and_o to_o who_o he_o will_n he_o give_v as_o a_o bountiful_a and_o gracious_a father_n the_o grace_n of_o election_n adoption_n justification_n sanctification_n and_o all_o other_o his_o benefit_n of_o his_o free_a love_n and_o favour_n he_o lift_v up_o who_o he_o will_v he_o pass_v by_o he_o forsake_v he_o put_v and_o pull_v down_o who_o he_o please_v some_o gift_n be_v temporal_a and_o some_o eternal_a some_o earthly_a and_o other_o heavenly_a and_o of_o both_o sort_n it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v who_o separate_v thou_o 4.7_o 1_o cor._n 4.7_o and_o what_o have_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v if_o thou_o have_v receive_v it_o why_o reioyc_a thou_o as_o though_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v it_o this_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o song_n of_o hannah_n the_o lord_n make_v poor_a 2.7.8_o 1_o sam._n 2.7.8_o and_o make_v rich_a he_o bring_v low_a and_o exalt_v he_o raise_v up_o the_o poor_a out_o of_o the_o dust_n &_o lift_v up_o the_o beggar_n from_o the_o dunghill_n to_o set_v they_o among_o prince_n and_o to_o make_v they_o inherit_v the_o seat_n of_o glory_n this_o appear_v most_o plain_o and_o evident_o in_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n grace_n our_o whole_a salvation_n be_v of_o god_n free_a grace_n belong_v to_o a_o better_a life_n and_o accompany_v salvation_n the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v the_o fountain_n from_o whence_o salvation_n flow_v yea_o it_o be_v the_o beginning_n continuance_n &_o end_v of_o our_o salvation_n the_o truth_n hereof_o may_v be_v make_v plain_a by_o the_o particular_a rehearsal_n of_o the_o several_a part_n thereof_o if_o we_o consider_v our_o election_n redemption_n call_v faith_n justification_n regeneration_n love_n good_a work_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o perseverance_n in_o good_a thing_n unto_o the_o end_n no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v and_o obtain_v eternal_a life_n except_o he_o be_v predestinate_v and_o elect_v thereunto_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o
work_v in_o we_o by_o the_o instinct_n of_o nature_n to_o see_v a_o man_n blind_a or_o dumb_a or_o deaf_a or_o in_o any_o misery_n and_o necessity_n but_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o all_o unregenerate_a person_n they_o be_v blind_a and_o see_v nothing_o 2_o pet._n 1._o they_o be_v dumb_a and_o deaf_a and_o dead_a man_n eph._n 2_o 1._o they_o have_v not_o the_o life_n of_o god_n in_o they_o they_o can_v stir_v neither_o hand_n nor_o foot_n towards_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n second_o if_o any_o of_o our_o brethren_n be_v fall_v let_v we_o put_v under_o out_o hand_n to_o stay_v they_o or_o raise_v they_o up_o know_v that_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o exhort_v one_o another_o lest_o we_o be_v harden_v through_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n 25._o 〈◊〉_d 3_o 13_o and_z ●_o 25._o and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o let_v we_o be_v careful_a herein_o because_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n draw_v near_o if_o the_o ox_n or_o ass_n of_o our_o enemy_n be_v ready_a to_o lie_v down_o under_o his_o burden_n we_o be_v command_v to_o help_v he_o up_o and_o therefore_o much_o more_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v it_o unto_o our_o brother_n three_o we_o must_v condemn_v no_o man_n rash_o nor_o sit_v down_o in_o the_o seat_n of_o god_n to_o judge_v another_o man_n servant_n which_o stand_v or_o fall_v to_o his_o own_o master_n let_v we_o set_v before_o we_o the_o example_n of_o god_n who_o be_v very_o pitiful_a and_o merciful_a he_o call_v at_o all_o hour_n who_o have_v the_o time_n and_o season_n in_o his_o own_o power_n math._n 20_o 6._o act_n 1_o 7._o as_o the_o householder_n that_o hire_v labourer_n into_o his_o vineyard_n all_o the_o day_n long_o even_o unto_o the_o last_o hour_n beside_o we_o be_v warn_v not_o to_o judge_v lest_o we_o be_v judge_v math._n 7_o 1._o so_o that_o with_o what_o measure_n we_o meet_v to_o other_o with_o the_o same_o it_o shall_v be_v measure_v to_o we_o again_o let_v we_o beware_v of_o rash_a judgement_n &_o headstrong_a and_o headlong_a affection_n let_v we_o judge_v nothing_o before_o the_o time_n until_o the_o lord_n come_v who_o will_v bring_v to_o light_v the_o hide_a thing_n of_o darkness_n and_o will_v make_v manifest_a the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heart_n 1_o cor._n 4_o 5._o many_o thing_n be_v hide_v for_o a_o while_n which_o time_n shall_v discover_v for_o though_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o night_n may_v cover_v they_o or_o the_o ignorance_n and_o wilfulness_n of_o man_n hide_v they_o yet_o they_o shall_v be_v reveal_v and_o shall_v not_o be_v unpunished_a last_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o pray_v for_o their_o conversion_n that_o be_v not_o convert_v and_o to_o offer_v they_o the_o mean_n that_o they_o may_v be_v convert_v we_o must_v be_v gentle_a unto_o all_o man_n and_o patient_a towards_o they_o instruct_v they_o with_o meekness_n that_o be_v contrary_a mind_v prove_v whether_o god_n will_v give_v they_o repentance_n that_o they_o may_v be_v recover_v out_o of_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n 2_o tim._n 2_o 25._o we_o see_v how_o christ_n pray_v for_o his_o enemy_n that_o they_o may_v have_v their_o ignorance_n pardon_v luc._n 23_o 34._o stephen_n desire_v that_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o persecutor_n may_v not_o be_v charge_v upon_o they_o act_v 7_o 60._o paul_n earnest_o wish_v &_o crave_v that_o agrippa_n may_v be_v convert_v and_o altogether_o be_v make_v a_o christian_n act._n 26_o 29._o hence_o it_o be_v that_o many_o which_o persecute_v christ_n and_o crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n though_o they_o be_v most_o horrible_a transgressor_n yet_o hear_v the_o word_n be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o do_v lay_v hold_n on_o eternal_a life_n act_v 2_o 41_o 37._o let_v we_o commit_v the_o success_n evermore_o unto_o god_n that_o have_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n if_o notwithstanding_o the_o word_n of_o salvation_n offer_v unto_o they_o they_o shut_v their_o eye_n and_o stop_v their_o ear_n &_o harden_v their_o heart_n &_o will_v not_o turn_v lest_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v let_v we_o not_o be_v curious_a to_o search_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v or_o expostulate_v the_o matter_n with_o they_o through_o impatience_n but_o rather_o leave_v they_o to_o the_o mercy_n or_o justice_n of_o god_n who_o judgement_n be_v unsearchable_a and_o as_o a_o pit_n who_o bottom_n can_v be_v sound_v and_o give_v unto_o he_o humble_a thanks_n that_o have_v open_v our_o ear_n that_o we_o may_v hear_v &_o our_o eye_n that_o we_o may_v see_v clear_o into_o the_o secret_n of_o his_o law_n let_v we_o praise_v he_o for_o reveal_v his_o truth_n to_o we_o rather_o than_o inquire_v why_o he_o deal_v not_o so_o with_o all_o other_o last_o see_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v free_o use_v 5_o bestow_v let_v we_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n that_o be_v let_v we_o give_v free_o and_o liberal_o and_o be_v content_a to_o lend_v to_o the_o poor_a look_v for_o nothing_o again_o according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n god_n look_v for_o no_o good_a turn_n at_o our_o hand_n our_o well-doing_n can_v extend_v unto_o he_o psal_n 16._o he_o stand_v not_o in_o need_n of_o our_o help_n he_o want_v nothing_o this_o use_n be_v conclude_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o s._n mathewes_n gospel_n where_o christ_n exhort_v to_o love_v our_o enemy_n &_o to_o do_v good_a to_o they_o that_o hate_v we_o &c_n &c_n that_o we_o may_v be_v the_o child_n of_o our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n 45._o math._n 5_o 45._o for_o he_o make_v his_o sun_n to_o rise_v on_o the_o evil_a and_o on_o the_o good_a and_o send_v rain_n on_o the_o just_a and_o on_o the_o unjust_a etc._n etc._n we_o be_v command_v to_o abound_v in_o this_o grace_n of_o liberality_n towards_o the_o poor_a member_n of_o christ_n as_o god_n have_v abound_v in_o the_o fruit_n of_o love_n towards_o us._n we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o christ_n deal_n towards_o we_o that_o though_o he_o be_v rich_a yet_o for_o our_o sake_n he_o become_v poor_a that_o we_o through_o his_o poverty_n may_v be_v rich_a 2_o cor._n 8_o 9_o our_o abundance_n must_v supply_v the_o want_n of_o other_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o holy_a kind_n of_o equality_n as_o it_o be_v among_o they_o that_o gather_v manna_n he_o that_o have_v gather_v much_o have_v nothing_o over_o 16._o exod._n 16._o and_o he_o that_o have_v gather_v little_a have_v no_o lack_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n james_n say_v he_o shall_v have_v judgement_n without_o mercy_n that_o have_v show_v no_o mercy_n and_o mercy_n rejoice_v against_o judgement_n whosoever_o therefore_o have_v this_o world_n good_a and_o see_v his_o brother_n in_o need_n how_o dwell_v the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o that_o man_n if_o he_o shut_v up_o his_o bowel_n of_o compassion_n from_o he_o 1_o john_n 3_o 17._o we_o see_v this_o in_o the_o example_n of_o the_o rich_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n he_o have_v occasion_n of_o show_v mercy_n offer_v unto_o he_o poor_a lazarus_n lie_v at_o his_o gate_n but_o he_o close_v his_o eye_n and_o will_v not_o see_v he_o he_o shut_v up_o his_o heart_n and_o will_v not_o relieve_v he_o and_o therefore_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o as_o he_o deny_v the_o crumb_n that_o fall_v from_o his_o table_n a_o small_a alm_n so_o he_o can_v not_o obtain_v a_o drop_n of_o water_n a_o small_a refresh_n as_o he_o stop_v his_o ear_n and_o will_v not_o hear_v so_o he_o ask_v only_o to_o have_v the_o tip_n of_o the_o finger_n dip_v in_o water_n to_o cool_v his_o tongue_n and_o yet_o can_v not_o be_v hear_v when_o the_o sodomite_n have_v once_o fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o sin_n by_o pride_n in_o themselves_o &_o contempt_n of_o the_o poor_a god_n rain_v down_o storm_n and_o tempest_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n so_o that_o they_o be_v utter_o consume_v ezek._n 16_o 49._o gen._n 19_o 24._o hence_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n say_v make_v to_o yourselves_o friend_n of_o unrighteous_a mammon_n that_o when_o you_o fail_v they_o may_v receive_v you_o into_o everlasting_a habitation_n lu._n 16_o 9_o he_o mean_v not_o by_o the_o mammon_n of_o unrighteousness_n such_o riches_n as_o be_v wrongful_o and_o unjust_o get_v for_o god_n accept_v not_o such_o alm_n or_o gift_n at_o our_o hand_n neither_o be_v he_o well_o please_v with_o such_o sacrifice_n though_o we_o give_v they_o to_o the_o poor_a and_o shall_v relieve_v thereby_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o he_o call_v they_o so_o and_o give_v they_o that_o title_n because_o they_o may_v fraudulent_o wicked_o and_o wrongful_o be_v take_v from_o
deform_v both_o way_n they_o have_v too_o little_o one_o way_n and_o too_o much_o another_o way_n and_o yet_o alas_o they_o see_v it_o not_o they_o know_v it_o not_o they_o feel_v it_o not_o or_o if_o they_o do_v know_v it_o they_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v it_o or_o if_o they_o feel_v it_o they_o will_v not_o reform_v it_o and_o if_o they_o see_v it_o they_o glory_v at_o it_o and_o rejoice_v in_o it_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a thing_n to_o see_v any_o body_n to_o be_v merry_a and_o make_v a_o triumph_n of_o it_o because_o it_o want_v a_o eye_n or_o a_o hand_n or_o a_o foot_n but_o thus_o the_o case_n stand_v with_o many_o church_n they_o consist_v of_o confuse_a body_n one_o member_n encroach_a upon_o the_o office_n of_o another_o they_o want_v their_o eye_n to_o see_v withal_o and_o yet_o they_o dream_v of_o perfection_n and_o despise_v other_o that_o be_v more_o fair_a and_o forward_o in_o good_a thing_n than_o themselves_o nothing_o continue_v long_o at_o one_o stay_v in_o this_o life_n nothing_o be_v so_o well_o order_v but_o satan_n and_o his_o instrument_n seek_v to_o put_v it_o out_o of_o joint_n we_o must_v pray_v to_o god_n to_o open_v our_o eye_n to_o see_v our_o want_n and_o wrinkle_n and_o to_o labour_v earnest_o as_o well_o to_o restore_v that_o which_o be_v want_v as_o to_o cut_v off_o that_o which_o be_v abound_v christ_n be_v the_o king_n of_o this_o church_n shall_v any_o presume_v in_o his_o kingdom_n to_o set_v up_o or_o pull_v down_o to_o place_n or_o to_o displace_v to_o plant_v or_o to_o destroy_v this_o be_v god_n office_n it_o belong_v unto_o he_o only_o to_o do_v they_o such_o therefore_o be_v no_o better_a than_o usurper_n use_v 2_o second_o this_o serve_v to_o reproove_v the_o state_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o it_o stand_v in_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v time_n for_o he_o to_o come_v to_o reform_v and_o restore_v all_o thing_n they_o have_v many_o strange_a plant_n grow_v in_o the_o garden_n of_o god_n which_o his_o right_a hand_n have_v never_o plant_v that_o be_v as_o naughty_a and_o noisome_a root_n to_o be_v pull_v up_o and_o as_o bile_n and_o blister_n in_o the_o body_n we_o hear_v before_o that_o in_o the_o church_n under_o the_o law_n there_o be_v find_v no_o other_o ecclesiastical_a ministery_n which_o be_v ordinary_a than_o those_o order_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n the_o inferior_a priest_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o levite_n all_o which_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o if_o any_o be_v raise_v up_o extraordinary_o the_o same_o have_v their_o calling_n confirm_v from_o heaven_n either_o by_o inward_a motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o by_o work_v of_o miracle_n or_o by_o evident_a testimony_n of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n but_o this_o government_n of_o the_o church_n stand_v not_o long_o without_o change_n and_o alteration_n for_o though_o the_o field_n be_v sow_v with_o good_a seed_n yet_o the_o envious_a man_n sow_v tare_n in_o it_o so_o that_o in_o latter_a time_n there_o arise_v many_o sect_n and_o sort_n of_o teacher_n among_o they_o who_o by_o schism_n be_v ready_a to_o rend_v that_o body_n in_o sunder_o depart_v from_o the_o simplicity_n &_o sincerity_n that_o be_v establish_v by_o god_n instistution_n 1._o epiph._n count_n haer_fw-mi lib._n 1._o some_o of_o the_o ancient_a that_o have_v take_v pain_n to_o discover_v to_o the_o world_n the_o heresy_n that_o spring_v up_o and_o grow_v apace_o where_o once_o they_o take_v root_a and_o foot_n and_o so_o to_o give_v notice_n of_o they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v avoid_v do_v testify_v that_o seven_o several_a and_o principal_a sect_n arise_v among_o the_o jew_n jew_n seven_o sect_n among_o the_o jew_n whereof_o some_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o be_v not_o the_o first_o be_v that_o of_o the_o scribe_n scribe_n scribe_n who_o be_v interpreter_n of_o the_o law_n but_o withal_o as_o if_o the_o law_n be_v too_o base_a a_o thing_n to_o stick_v only_o unto_o it_o they_o deliver_v many_o tradition_n as_o from_o their_o elder_n not_o contain_v in_o the_o law_n and_o seek_v take_v counsel_n of_o humane_a wisdom_n to_o bring_v in_o a_o more_o exact_a kind_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n than_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n ever_o teach_v consist_v in_o many_o voluntary_a observation_n and_o custom_n devise_v by_o man_n which_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o magnify_v &_o prefer_v before_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n mat._n 15._o colossian_n 2._o thus_o will_v man_n become_v wise_a them_z god_n 2._o deut._n 4_o 2._o who_o forbid_v all_o add_v or_o take_v from_o his_o word_n the_o second_o sect_n be_v the_o sadducee_n sadducee_n sadducee_n which_o be_v of_o the_o race_n of_o the_o samaritan_n and_o have_v their_o name_n of_o one_o sadoc_n a_o priest_n these_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n and_o believe_v not_o that_o there_o be_v any_o angel_n or_o spirit_n act_n 23_o and_o consequent_o overthrow_v all_o religion_n as_o 1._o corinth_n 15._o for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n or_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n then_o be_v we_o of_o all_o man_n the_o most_o miserable_a that_o profess_v christ_n in_o vain_a we_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n and_o in_o vain_a we_o fight_v with_o beast_n at_o ephesus_n in_o vain_a we_o suffer_v cross_n and_o affliction_n for_o the_o gospel_n sake_n it_o be_v better_o for_o we_o to_o do_v as_o the_o most_o do_v and_o to_o be_v wicked_a and_o ungodly_a if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o life_n or_o reward_n in_o another_o world_n if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o 17._o 1_o cor._n 15_o 16_o 17._o then_o be_v not_o christ_n raise_v and_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o raise_v our_o faith_n be_v vain_a we_o be_v yet_o in_o our_o sin_n the_o three_o sect_n be_v pharisy_n pharisy_n pharisy_n these_o be_v the_o strict_a of_o all_o other_o and_o most_o reverence_a and_o best_a esteem_v these_o believe_v the_o rise_n again_o of_o the_o dead_a at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o that_o there_o be_v both_o angel_n and_o spirit_n as_o the_o scribe_n also_o do_v and_o that_o all_o shall_v come_v unto_o judgement_n to_o receive_v according_a to_o the_o thing_n they_o do_v in_o this_o flesh_n whether_o they_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n act_v 23._o 7._o act_n 23_o 6_o 7._o when_o paul_n be_v accuse_v by_o his_o enemy_n perceive_v that_o they_o be_v partly_o pharisy_n and_o partly_o sadducee_n he_o cry_v out_o in_o the_o council_n man_n and_o brethren_n i_o be_o a_o pharisee_n the_o son_n of_o a_o pharisee_n of_o the_o hope_n and_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a i_o be_o call_v in_o question_n they_o much_o honour_a virginity_n and_o single_a life_n they_o pay_v tithe_n of_o the_o small_a thing_n they_o possess_v luke_n 18_o verse_n 12._o they_o wash_v cup_n platter_n bed_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o vessel_n that_o they_o use_v they_o fast_v twice_o every_o week_n and_o differ_v in_o their_o habit_n from_o other_o man_n against_o these_o be_v many_o woe_n denounce_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n math._n 23_o verse_n 23_o for_o their_o hypocrisy_n that_o delight_v more_o in_o outward_a show_n then_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o heart_n the_o four_o sect_n be_v the_o hemerobaptist_n hemerobaptist_n hemerobaptist_n or_o quotidian_n washer_n who_o think_v that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v if_o he_o be_v not_o wash_v every_o day_n that_o so_o he_o may_v be_v cleanse_v from_o the_o impurity_n and_o filthiness_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v not_o the_o water_n in_o the_o whole_a sea_n nor_o any_o fountain_n can_v wash_v away_o the_o sin_n and_o corruption_n of_o our_o life_n or_o of_o our_o heart_n it_o have_v no_o force_n in_o it_o either_o by_o any_o natural_a power_n or_o by_o any_o voluntary_a use_n christ_n be_v our_o purgatory_n and_o purification_n it_o be_v he_o that_o must_v wash_v we_o or_o else_o we_o remain_v unpure_a and_o unclean_a he_o be_v the_o water_n of_o life_n whereby_o our_o conscience_n must_v be_v sprinkle_v 22._o heb._n 10_o 22._o he_o be_v the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n by_o who_o we_o be_v bear_v again_o and_o wash_v as_o with_o pure_a water_n if_o he_o make_v we_o clean_o than_o we_o be_v clean_o indeed_o his_o passion_n and_o the_o shed_n of_o his_o blood_n must_v be_v communicate_v to_o we_o and_o the_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v necessary_a unto_o salvation_n not_o any_o outward_a wash_n of_o the_o body_n which_o may_v cleanse_v the_o flesh_n but_o can_v touch_v the_o soul_n this_o be_v make_v available_a three_o way_n first_o by_o faith_n which_o serve_v to_o apply_v christ_n unto_o we_o and_o all_o his_o benefit_n second_o by_o repentance_n from_o dead_a work_n whereby_o
of_o god_n such_o be_v ready_a to_o say_v with_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 10.15_o how_o beautiful_a be_v the_o foot_n of_o they_o that_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n and_o bring_v glad_a tiding_n of_o good_a thing_n 4._o dan._n 1.3_o 4._o nabuchadnezzar_n choose_v man_n to_o wait_v on_o he_o among_o the_o jew_n such_o as_o be_v of_o the_o king_n stock_n comely_a witty_a and_o every_o way_n well_o qualify_v both_o for_o lineament_n of_o body_n and_o ornament_n of_o mind_n he_o require_v that_o the_o chief_a shall_v attend_v upon_o he_o he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o refuse_n to_o stand_v in_o the_o king_n court_n shall_v they_o then_o that_o be_v to_o stand_v up_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v of_o the_o base_a and_o of_o the_o offscouring_a of_o the_o people_n if_o a_o man_n have_v many_o son_n such_o be_v the_o contempt_n of_o the_o ministry_n the_o elder_a he_o must_v be_v the_o heir_n if_o any_o be_v more_o beautiful_a or_o personable_a than_o the_o rest_n he_o must_v be_v a_o courtier_n if_o any_o be_v disfigure_v or_o uncomely_a he_o be_v set_v apart_o if_o he_o listen_v to_o the_o ministry_n this_o be_v not_o to_o honour_n god_n with_o our_o first_o fruit_n this_o be_v to_o serve_v he_o with_o the_o blind_a and_o the_o lame_a and_o to_o give_v unto_o he_o such_o as_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o of_o this_o we_o shall_v have_v better_a occasion_n to_o speak_v far_o afterward_o second_o reproof_n the_o second_o reproof_n this_o sanctify_a unto_o god_n the_o best_a thing_n that_o we_o have_v serve_v to_o reproove_v such_o as_o never_o offer_v unto_o god_n the_o first_o and_o flourish_a part_n of_o their_o age_n neither_o sanctify_v unto_o he_o their_o young_a year_n but_o as_o if_o they_o be_v too_o good_a for_o he_o they_o will_v serve_v sin_n and_o satan_n first_o and_o afterward_o when_o they_o can_v follow_v they_o no_o long_o than_o they_o will_v think_v of_o sad_a matter_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o young_a man_n for_o the_o most_o part_n do_v think_v themselves_o exempt_v and_o privilege_v by_o their_o age_n to_o commit_v sin_n with_o greediness_n and_o without_o controlment_n and_o that_o they_o be_v free_a to_o do_v what_o they_o listen_v to_o fetch_v their_o vagary_n and_o to_o run_v into_o all_o excess_n at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v so_o far_o from_o give_v liberty_n unto_o they_o that_o he_o provoke_v they_o in_o good_a time_n to_o dispose_v of_o their_o life_n and_o even_o then_o especial_o when_o their_o affection_n begin_v to_o boil_v in_o they_o and_o endeavour_v to_o pull_v they_o in_o as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o cord_n of_o discipline_n and_o the_o law_n of_o god_n solomon_n be_v so_o far_o from_o allow_v this_o reason_n to_o warrant_v the_o looseness_n of_o young_a man_n that_o be_v to_o say_v we_o be_v yet_o as_o youth_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v be_v let_v alone_o a_o while_n we_o will_v be_v wise_a hereafter_o that_o rather_o with_o a_o sharp_a but_o yet_o just_a taunt_a &_o laugh_v it_o to_o scorn_v he_o speak_v to_o this_o age_n rejoice_v o_o young_a man_n 11.9_o eccle._n 11.9_o in_o thy_o youth_n and_o let_v thy_o heart_n cheer_v thou_o in_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o youth_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o thy_o heart_n and_o in_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o eye_n but_o know_v thou_o that_o for_o all_o these_o thing_n god_n will_v bring_v thou_o into_o judgement_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v if_o thou_o will_v needs_o go_v forward_o and_o will_v not_o be_v reclaim_v be_v it_o so_o take_v thy_o pleasure_n pass_v on_o thy_o day_n in_o thy_o delight_n follow_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o lust_n of_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o pride_n of_o life_n glut_v thyself_o with_o chamber_a and_o wantonness_n and_o take_v thy_o fill_n of_o dalliance_n yet_o know_v that_o at_o the_o last_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v unto_o judgement_n &_o give_v account_n for_o those_o thing_n which_o thou_o have_v commit_v the_o child_n that_o mock_v the_o prophet_n and_o reproach_v he_o for_o his_o infirmity_n be_v tear_v in_o piece_n with_o bear_n that_o come_v out_o of_o the_o wood_n 2_o king_n 2.24_o therefore_o do_v solomon_n exhort_v they_o in_o another_o place_n 12.1_o eccle._n 12.1_o to_o remember_v their_o creator_n in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o youth_n while_o the_o evil_a day_n come_v not_o nor_o the_o year_n draw_v nigh_o when_o thou_o shall_v say_v i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o they_o god_n have_v honour_v they_o as_o his_o first_o bear_v and_o give_v many_o gift_n unto_o they_o as_o learning_n wit_n knowledge_n beauty_n strength_n health_n quickenesse_n and_o readiness_n to_o do_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o so_o common_a to_o every_o age_n let_v they_o not_o abuse_v they_o but_o honour_v he_o with_o they_o that_o give_v they_o if_o you_o spend_v your_o first_o day_n loose_o and_o licentious_o and_o offer_v your_o old_a age_n to_o the_o lord_n when_o you_o can_v follow_v the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n no_o long_o that_o endure_v for_o a_o season_n he_o will_v not_o accept_v such_o a_o service_n and_o sacrifice_n at_o your_o hand_n if_o you_o will_v have_v god_n to_o be_v your_o god_n in_o your_o old_a age_n serve_v he_o in_o your_o youth_n lest_o as_o you_o regard_v not_o to_o know_v he_o in_o your_o youth_n so_o he_o give_v you_o over_o and_o know_v you_o not_o in_o your_o elder_a year_n for_o if_o a_o earthly_a man_n have_v the_o wisdom_n and_o discretion_n not_o to_o admit_v and_o receive_v into_o his_o service_n a_o dote_a and_o decrepit_a man_n such_o a_o one_o as_o can_v stand_v he_o in_o no_o stead_n but_o will_v ready_o answer_v he_o go_v thy_o way_n thou_o be_v no_o servant_n for_o i_o let_v he_o that_o have_v the_o use_n of_o thy_o young_a day_n take_v that_o fruit_n of_o thy_o old_a age_n that_o thou_o can_v yield_v unto_o he_o shall_v not_o the_o lord_n the_o most_o wise_a god_n reject_v and_o cast_v we_o off_o in_o age_n if_o we_o pass_v the_o flower_n of_o our_o youth_n in_o serve_v sin_n satan_n and_o the_o world_n what_o assurance_n can_v we_o have_v to_o be_v accept_v when_o and_o at_o what_o time_n we_o listen_v may_v he_o not_o just_o say_v unto_o we_o thou_o have_v all_o thy_o life_n time_n serve_v my_o enemy_n of_o who_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o serve_v they_o not_o and_o now_o at_o last_o when_o thou_o can_v serve_v they_o no_o long_o come_v thou_o unto_o i_o how_o often_o have_v i_o call_v thou_o and_o offer_v ro_o be_v a_o master_n unto_o thou_o but_o thou_o refuse_v to_o become_v my_o servant_n now_o it_o be_v just_a with_o i_o to_o stopppe_v my_o ear_n at_o thy_o cry_n go_v thy_o way_n let_v he_o that_o have_v thy_o youth_n take_v thy_o age_n also_o let_v he_o that_o have_v the_o beginning_n take_v also_o the_o end_n if_o we_o spend_v our_o strength_n in_o vanity_n and_o our_o day_n in_o folly_n thus_o will_v the_o lord_n answer_v we_o god_n be_v the_o creator_n of_o the_o young_a man_n it_o be_v he_o that_o have_v make_v he_o and_o not_o he_o himself_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o death_n in_o his_o youth_n as_o well_o as_o the_o old_a man_n in_o his_o age_n the_o glass_n that_o be_v new_o make_v be_v as_o brittle_a as_o the_o old_a the_o lamb_n go_v to_o the_o shambles_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o sheep_n and_o the_o young_a man_n shall_v be_v bring_v to_o judgement_n for_o his_o trick_n of_o youth_n for_o god_n shall_v bring_v every_o work_n to_o judgement_n with_o every_o secret_a thing_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o whether_o it_o be_v evil_a eccle._n 12.14_o wherefore_o to_o conclude_v let_v young_a and_o old_a honour_n the_o lord_n with_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o their_o increase_n &_o give_v the_o best_a thing_n that_o they_o possess_v yea_o the_o more_o we_o have_v the_o more_o he_o require_v of_o us._n such_o as_o be_v rich_a and_o have_v this_o world_n good_a must_v not_o be_v as_o barren_a tree_n and_o unfruitful_a in_o good_a work_n whatsoever_o we_o enjoy_v we_o have_v receive_v it_o of_o his_o goodness_n it_o be_v as_o a_o stream_n issue_v from_o his_o fountain_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v return_v the_o glory_n to_o he_o and_o communicate_v the_o benefit_n thereof_o unto_o our_o brethren_n use_v 2_o second_o another_o spiritual_a application_n of_o this_o type_n and_o figure_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v be_v that_o it_o call_v to_o our_o remembrance_n what_o we_o be_v both_o by_o nature_n and_o by_o grace_n nature_n what_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n by_o nature_n that_o we_o be_v all_o the_o child_n of_o wrath_n and_o destruction_n without_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n free_v &_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o
in_o heaven_n that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o little_a one_o shall_v perish_v mat._n 18_o 14._o he_o command_v that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o little_a one_o shall_v perish_v mat._n 18_o 10._o he_o make_v we_o to_o lie_v down_o in_o green_a pasture_n he_o lead_v we_o beside_o the_o still_a water_n he_o restore_v our_o soul_n and_o lead_v we_o in_o the_o path_n of_o righteousness_n for_o his_o name_n sake_n psal_n 23_o 2_o 3._o jacob_n that_o feed_v the_o sheep_n of_o his_o father_n in_o law_n testify_v touch_v his_o care_n that_o the_o drought_n consume_v he_o in_o the_o day_n 31.40_o gen._n 31.40_o and_o the_o frost_n pinch_v he_o in_o the_o night_n and_o sleep_v depart_v from_o his_o eye_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v tear_v of_o beast_n or_o steal_v of_o thief_n be_v require_v at_o his_o hand_n he_o bear_v the_o loss_n of_o it_o much_o more_o than_o will_v the_o lord_n care_n for_o the_o sheep_n of_o his_o pasture_n his_o rod_n and_o his_o staff_n shall_v comfort_v they_o and_o although_o they_o walk_v through_o the_o valley_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n they_o shall_v fear_v no_o evil_n will_v a_o king_n regard_v only_o the_o chief_a city_n and_o most_o populous_a place_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o suffer_v the_o rest_n to_o live_v as_o they_o listen_v without_o law_n &_o good_a order_n or_o will_v the_o master_n of_o a_o house_n look_v to_o some_o in_o his_o family_n and_o not_o to_o all_o if_o then_o god_n be_v our_o king_n if_o he_o be_v our_o master_n he_o will_v look_v to_o all_o his_o subject_n and_o servant_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v their_o meat_n in_o due_a season_n second_o such_o be_v the_o grace_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v have_v all_o his_o people_n reason_n 2_o come_v to_o knowledge_n such_o as_o know_v not_o his_o will_n be_v none_o of_o his_o servant_n if_o then_o he_o require_v the_o understanding_n &_o knowledge_n of_o his_o way_n not_o only_o of_o rich_a man_n of_o great_a man_n of_o learned_a man_n and_o of_o the_o minister_n but_o of_o all_o the_o people_n of_o what_o calling_n and_o condition_n soever_o they_o be_v how_o mean_a and_o simple_a soever_o they_o be_v we_o must_v hereof_o conclude_v that_o he_o have_v ordain_v that_o all_o of_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n and_o salvation_n offer_v unto_o they_o and_o publish_v among_o they_o to_o this_o purpose_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o will_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o come_v unto_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o truth_n 1_o tim._n 2_o 4._o and_o peter_n in_o his_o second_o epistle_n chap._n 3._o teach_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o slack_a concern_v his_o promise_n as_o some_o man_n count_v slackness_n but_o be_v long_o suffer_v to_o we_o ward_n 9_o 2_o pet._n 3_o 9_o not_o willing_a that_o any_o shall_v perish_v but_o that_o all_o shall_v come_v to_o repentance_n this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n set_v down_o chap._n 18_o 11_o 23_o 32_o and_o 33._o have_v i_o any_o pleasure_n at_o all_o that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v die_v say_v the_o lord_n and_o not_o that_o he_o shall_v return_v from_o his_o way_n and_o live_v three_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v pen_v for_o all_o estate_n degree_n and_o condition_n of_o man_n it_o reason_v 3_o serve_v as_o eye-salue_n to_o clear_v the_o eye_n of_o all_o person_n and_o to_o make_v the_o simple_a wise_a psal_n 19_o 7._o and_o 119_o 99_o 100_o it_o cleanse_v the_o way_n of_o the_o young_a man_n if_o he_o take_v heed_n thereunto_o with_o all_o diligence_n psal_n 119_o 9_o the_o book_n of_o the_o proverbe_n of_o solomon_n the_o son_n of_o david_n king_n of_o israel_n be_v write_v to_o give_v subtlety_n to_o the_o simple_a and_o to_o the_o young_a man_n knowledge_n and_o discretion_n prou._n 1_o 4._o the_o apostle_n john_n 13._o 1_o john_n 2_o 13._o write_v to_o the_o father_n because_o they_o have_v know_v he_o that_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n he_o write_v unto_o young_a man_n because_o they_o have_v overcome_v the_o wicked_a one_o he_o write_v to_o little_a child_n because_o they_o have_v know_v the_o father_n if_o then_o the_o word_n do_v serve_v for_o all_o sort_n and_o sex_n and_o age_n whatsoever_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o must_v be_v teach_v from_o the_o great_a to_o the_o least_o from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a four_o all_o person_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v have_v soul_n to_o save_v simple_a person_n small_a congregation_n reason_n 4_o little_a assembly_n as_o well_o as_o other_o that_o be_v many_o in_o number_n we_o consist_v not_o only_o of_o body_n we_o must_v not_o only_o provide_v for_o this_o present_a life_n but_o we_o have_v also_o soul_n to_o save_v and_o must_v prepare_v for_o the_o life_n to_o come_v we_o shall_v all_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o have_v do_v in_o this_o life_n whether_o they_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o lord_n will_v reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n rom._n 2.6_o the_o day_n of_o our_o particular_a death_n and_o the_o day_n of_o the_o general_a judgement_n be_v both_o of_o they_o day_n of_o reckon_n and_o account_n and_o as_o the_o soul_n be_v most_o precious_a so_o the_o account_n to_o be_v give_v for_o it_o be_v very_o great_a and_o therefore_o from_o these_o premise_n we_o may_v necessary_o deduct_v this_o conclusion_n that_o it_o be_v the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n that_o every_o place_n and_o person_n shall_v be_v careful_o instruct_v use_v 1_o it_o remain_v therefore_o that_o we_o come_v to_o the_o use_n and_o as_o from_o a_o good_a tree_n gather_v such_o fruit_n as_o grow_v from_o thence_o first_o we_o learn_v that_o it_o be_v god_n ordinance_n and_o appointment_n that_o every_o congregation_n shall_v have_v a_o learned_a minister_n to_o teach_v they_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o there_o be_v a_o settle_a &_o stand_a ministry_n in_o one_o place_n or_o corner_n of_o the_o land_n or_o in_o every_o great_a city_n but_o he_o will_v have_v his_o people_n in_o all_o place_n whether_o great_a or_o small_a to_o be_v care_v and_o provide_v for_o &_o every_o church_n have_v a_o sufficient_a minister_n to_o instruct_v every_o member_n of_o it_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o evangelist_n declare_v act_v 14.23_o that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n ordain_v elder_n by_o election_n in_o every_o church_n and_o then_o they_o commend_v they_o to_o the_o lord_n in_o who_o they_o believe_v and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n paul_n say_v unto_o he_o chap._n 1._o verse_n 5._o for_o this_o cause_n leave_v i_o thou_o in_o creta_n that_o thou_o shall_v continue_v to_o redress_v thing_n that_o remain_v and_o shall_v ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n as_o i_o appoint_v thou_o by_o every_o church_n and_o every_o city_n in_o those_o place_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o wheresoever_o there_o be_v a_o body_n of_o people_n gather_v together_o fit_a for_o a_o congregation_n there_o ought_v a_o minister_n to_o be_v choose_v appoint_a and_o set_v over_o the_o same_o for_o whersoever_o a_o church_n be_v plant_v and_o a_o distinct_a congregation_n establish_v there_o be_v a_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o a_o settle_a ministry_n as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n so_o that_o it_o be_v altogether_o unpossible_a that_o without_o it_o religion_n shall_v prosper_v or_o continue_v the_o lord_n have_v no_o soon_o give_v his_o law_n concern_v the_o erect_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n but_o aaron_n &_o his_o son_n be_v anoint_v and_o the_o whole_a tribe_n sanctify_v to_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n to_o attend_v on_o holy_a thing_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n &_o to_o perform_v such_o duty_n as_o be_v require_v of_o they_o he_o know_v that_o every_o man_n stand_v in_o as_o great_a need_n of_o food_n for_o the_o soul_n aa_o he_o do_v of_o nourishment_n for_o the_o body_n and_o that_o as_o the_o body_n decay_v without_o sustenance_n so_o the_o soul_n famish_v and_o pine_v away_o without_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n wheresoever_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v want_v there_o want_v one_o of_o god_n ordinance_n one_o of_o his_o special_a blessing_n we_o see_v by_o common_a and_o continual_a experience_n when_o the_o corn_n be_v blast_v and_o the_o harvest_n of_o the_o field_n be_v perish_v and_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o husbandman_n be_v destroy_v what_o cry_v &_o lamentation_n be_v make_v how_o much_o more_o ought_v we_o to_o be_v greeve_v to_o see_v the_o famine_n of_o the_o word_n bring_v upon_o we_o and_o thousand_o perish_v through_o want_n of_o this_o ordinance_n of_o god_n
stand_v that_o he_o do_v ever_o so_o much_o as_o savour_n of_o any_o goodness_n that_o can_v not_o abide_v a_o faithful_a minister_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o he_o may_v deceive_v himself_o but_o god_n be_v not_o mock_v he_o may_v pretend_v piety_n but_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o curse_a and_o canker_a hypocrisy_n the_o word_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o regeneration_n it_o can_v therefore_o be_v that_o such_o as_o have_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n by_o this_o precious_a seed_n of_o the_o word_n shall_v abase_v &_o abuse_v those_o by_o who_o they_o have_v be_v beget_v will_v a_o son_n except_o he_o do_v degenerate_a and_o become_v a_o monster_n revile_v he_o that_o bring_v he_o into_o this_o world_n and_o give_v he_o life_n and_o breath_n so_o be_v it_o as_o unnatural_a and_o much_o more_o to_o contemn_v the_o spiritual_a father_n of_o our_o soul_n forasmuch_o as_o of_o the_o father_n of_o our_o body_n we_o receive_v only_o temporal_a life_n but_o of_o these_o eternal_a it_o be_v well_o say_v by_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_n 〈◊〉_d ignat._n ad_fw-la 〈◊〉_d that_o whosoever_o despise_v the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o atheist_n and_o profane_a person_n and_o a_o despiser_n of_o christ_n himself_o these_o do_v not_o only_a sin_n against_o god_n and_o against_o the_o gospel_n but_o against_o their_o own_o soul_n they_o hinder_v their_o own_o salvation_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o many_o other_o and_o so_o make_v their_o mean_n unavailable_a and_o commit_v a_o sin_n more_o heinous_a and_o horrible_a then_o that_o of_o onan_n who_o spill_v his_o seed_n on_o the_o ground_n lest_o he_o shall_v give_v seed_n unto_o his_o brother_n gen._n 38.9_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o word_n be_v immortal_a and_o remain_v for_o ever_o and_o therefore_o be_v of_o great_a price_n so_o that_o they_o be_v spiritual_a murderer_n of_o thousand_o soul_n that_o seek_v to_o spill_v it_o and_o spoil_v it_o as_o water_n on_o the_o earth_n lest_o it_o shall_v fructify_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n if_o we_o shall_v see_v a_o man_n pull_v out_o his_o own_o eye_n that_o he_o may_v not_o see_v or_o cut_v off_o his_o ear_n that_o he_o may_v not_o hear_v we_o will_v all_o pity_v his_o case_n and_o say_v he_o be_v run_v mad_a but_o thus_o it_o fare_v with_o these_o irreligious_a person_n they_o make_v themselves_o blind_a that_o they_o may_v be_v without_o see_v they_o make_v themselves_o deaf_a that_o they_o may_v be_v without_o hear_v and_o they_o harden_v their_o heart_n that_o they_o may_v be_v without_o feeling_n 5._o ●s_n de_fw-mi sacer._n ●3_n cap._n 5._o this_o be_v spiritual_a and_o desperate_a madness_n to_o despise_v so_o great_a a_o blessing_n without_o which_o we_o can_v be_v save_v nor_o obtain_v any_o good_a thing_n promise_v unto_o us._n and_o howsoever_o these_o man_n to_o excuse_v their_o own_o impiety_n and_o to_o blind_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o simple_a will_v pretend_v love_n and_o like_n to_o the_o word_n itself_o yet_o they_o utter_o deceive_v themselves_o for_o this_o be_v one_o rule_v to_o be_v observe_v and_o learn_v of_o we_o that_o whosoever_o abuse_v the_o minister_n despise_v also_o the_o ministry_n as_o he_o that_o like_v the_o physic_n by_o which_o he_o be_v to_o be_v recover_v will_v also_o make_v much_o of_o the_o physician_n who_o counsel_n he_o have_v use_v whosoever_o account_v not_o the_o foot_n of_o those_o beautiful_a that_o bring_v glad_a tiding_n of_o peace_n will_v not_o much_o esteem_n the_o gospel_n itself_o and_o whosoever_o despise_v the_o messenger_n will_v not_o regard_v the_o message_n that_o be_v deliver_v unto_o he_o for_o the_o ministry_n be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n whereby_o it_o please_v god_n to_o save_v those_o that_o believe_v rom._n 1.16_o 1_o cor._n 1.21_o let_v this_o be_v also_o another_o rule_n that_o whosoever_o account_n the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o vile_a in_o their_o eye_n it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o they_o of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrah_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o for_o they_o mat._n 10.15_o and_o 11.24_o yea_o christ_n our_o saviour_n will_v his_o apostle_n to_o shake_v off_o the_o dust_n of_o their_o foot_n 13.51_o ●ct_n 13.51_o as_o witness_v against_o they_o that_o hear_v not_o their_o word_n neither_o receive_v their_o person_n wherefore_o this_o also_o shall_v be_v another_o rule_n that_o to_o abuse_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o esteem_v they_o as_o the_o ofscouring_n of_o the_o world_n who_o foot_n as_o we_o hear_v be_v beautiful_a to_o all_o the_o elect_a because_o they_o bring_v glad_a tiding_n of_o peace_n and_o of_o all_o good_a thing_n be_v a_o horrible_a sin_n high_o displease_v to_o god_n greevous_o provoke_v he_o to_o anger_n and_o swift_o call_v down_o judgement_n upon_o their_o head_n wherefore_o he_o say_v in_o the_o prophet_n touch_v not_o my_o anoint_v and_o do_v my_o prophet_n no_o harm_n and_o moses_n pray_v to_o god_n on_o the_o behalf_n of_o levi_n 33.11_o ●eut_fw-fr 33.11_o to_o smite_v through_o the_o loin_n of_o they_o that_o rise_v against_o he_o and_o of_o they_o that_o hate_v he_o that_o they_o rise_v not_o again_o the_o person_n of_o ambassador_n be_v by_o law_n of_o all_o nation_n sacred_a and_o inviolable_a manilia_n cicer._n in_o verr._n act_n 1._o orat_fw-la de_fw-la harus_n resp_v &_o pro_fw-la leg_n manilia_n the_o heathen_a see_v it_o and_o set_v it_o down_o and_o never_o cease_v to_o revenge_v the_o wrong_n do_v unto_o they_o both_o upon_o particular_a person_n and_o upon_o whole_a city_n the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n sacred_a and_o profane_a account_v the_o injury_n do_v unto_o a_o messenger_n as_o do_v against_o he_o who_o send_v he_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v safe_o guard_v and_o protect_v not_o only_o in_o time_n of_o peace_n but_o amidde_v the_o weapon_n and_o naked_a sword_n of_o the_o enemy_n david_n revenge_v most_o sharp_o the_o injury_n and_o indignity_n offer_v to_o his_o ambassador_n with_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o ammonite_n 2_o sam._n 10._o and_o never_o do_v he_o show_v the_o like_a exemplary_a punishment_n in_o that_o extreme_a manner_n do_v earthly_a prince_n and_o state_n revenge_v the_o wrong_n offer_v to_o their_o servant_n send_v out_o by_o commandment_n and_o commission_n from_o they_o and_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o king_n of_o king_n who_o be_v the_o god_n of_o vengeance_n will_v suffer_v the_o opprobry_n contumely_n and_o contempt_n offer_v to_o his_o messenger_n to_o go_v unpunished_a the_o minister_n be_v the_o high_a ambassador_n of_o god_n so_o that_o they_o send_v not_o themselves_o but_o be_v send_v out_o of_o he_o and_o they_o execute_v not_o their_o own_o will_n but_o his_o will_n and_o therefore_o the_o infinite_a majesty_n of_o almighty_a god_n be_v violate_v and_o abuse_v in_o the_o indignity_n that_o be_v offer_v unto_o they_o and_o doubtless_o he_o will_v avenge_v his_o servant_n which_o cry_v day_n and_o night_n unto_o he_o 8._o luk._n 18.7_o 8._o though_o he_o bear_v long_o with_o his_o enemy_n i_o tell_v you_o he_o will_v avenge_v they_o speedy_o no_o man_n offend_v in_o this_o kind_n of_o unkind_a abuse_n towards_o they_o ever_o escape_v the_o punishment_n of_o god_n how_o often_o do_v god_n plague_v his_o people_n in_o the_o wilderness_n when_o they_o rise_v up_o against_o moses_n and_o aaron_n the_o minister_n of_o god_n for_o their_o good_a who_o teach_v jacob_n his_o judgment_n and_o israel_n his_o law_n when_o jeroboam_fw-la stretch_v out_o his_o hand_n against_o the_o prophet_n to_o lay_v hold_n on_o he_o 4._o 1_o kin._n 13_o 4._o his_o hand_n waste_v and_o wither_a so_o that_o albeit_o he_o put_v it_o out_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o pull_v it_o in_o again_o the_o two_o captain_n with_o their_o fifty_n 1.10.12_o 2_o kin._n 1.10.12_o send_v out_o by_o ahaziah_n to_o apprehend_v the_o prophet_n be_v destroy_v with_o fire_n from_o heaven_n and_o never_o return_v to_o bring_v their_o master_n word_n how_o they_o speed_v the_o lewd_a and_o ungracious_a child_n that_o mock_v elisha_n 24_o 2_o kin._n 2.23_o 24_o and_o upbraid_v he_o with_o his_o baldenesse_n be_v tear_v in_o piece_n by_o two_o bear_n that_o come_v out_o of_o the_o wood_n upon_o they_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n that_o misuse_v the_o messenger_n of_o god_n and_o contemn_v the_o prophet_n 36.16_o 2_o chro._n 36.16_o that_o speak_v unto_o they_o early_o and_o late_o be_v reject_v and_o carry_v into_o captivity_n into_o the_o land_n of_o their_o enemy_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v marvel_v at_o 5.39_o act._n 5.39_o that_o god_n have_v send_v such_o strange_a example_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o indignation_n upon_o the_o contemner_n of_o his_o minister_n forasmuch_o as_o they_o be_v as_o
immediate_o go_v before_o where_o he_o will_v they_o to_o heal_v the_o sick_a to_o cleanse_v the_o leper_n to_o raise_v up_o the_o dead_a and_o to_o cast_v out_o devil_n if_o they_o be_v extend_v far_o because_o he_o will_v they_o to_o go_v and_o preach_v 7._o ●ath_n 10_o 7._o say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v at_o hand_n he_o forbid_v they_o to_o set_v the_o gospel_n to_o sale_n as_o that_o which_o stand_v at_o offer_n and_o proffer_v so_o that_o the_o minister_n must_v not_o be_v give_v to_o filthy_a lucre_n 1_o tim._n 3_o 3._o tit._n 1_o 7._o so_o then_o they_o do_v give_v free_o who_o do_v not_o intend_v gain_n as_o the_o reward_n of_o their_o labour_n nor_o set_v it_o before_o their_o eye_n as_o the_o mark_n they_o aim_v at_o but_o desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o refer_v thereunto_o all_o their_o study_n and_o endevourss_n they_o that_o only_o or_o chief_o seek_v their_o own_o wealth_n be_v true_o call_v hireling_n whereas_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n have_v he_o before_o their_o eye_n of_o who_o they_o be_v send_v that_o so_o they_o may_v feed_v the_o flock_n with_o knowledge_n and_o doctrine_n ●biection_n ●biection_n again_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o paul_n witness_v he_o take_v nothing_o of_o the_o corinthian_n and_o that_o he_o labour_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n act_n 20_o 34._o 1_o cor._n 4_o 12._o i_o answer_v answer_n answer_n the_o apostle_n in_o take_v nothing_o of_o that_o church_n consider_v what_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o edification_n of_o that_o church_n nevertheless_o the_o brethren_n that_o come_v from_o macedonia_n supply_v his_o want_n and_o help_v he_o in_o his_o necessity_n but_o of_o this_o we_o speak_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o former_a doctrine_n use_v 3_o three_o let_v no_o man_n presume_v to_o refuse_v and_o reject_v the_o ministry_n as_o think_v themselves_o or_o their_o child_n too_o high_a or_o this_o call_n too_o low_o for_o they_o think_v themselves_o too_o honourable_a and_o this_o office_n too_o contemptible_a for_o their_o person_n no_o man_n be_v too_o good_a to_o serve_v god_n at_o the_o altar_n and_o to_o minister_v in_o his_o sanctuary_n if_o any_o refuse_v the_o ministry_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o birth_n and_o his_o wealth_n or_o worth_n or_o gift_n he_o deceive_v himself_o and_o overvalu_v his_o own_o condition_n for_o who_o be_v sufficient_a for_o these_o thing_n 16._o cor._n 2_o 16._o we_o be_v a_o thousand_o fold_n more_o unworthy_a to_o be_v minister_n than_o the_o ministry_n can_v be_v think_v unworthy_a of_o us._n noah_n be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o a_o preacher_n of_o righteousness_n 2_o pet._n 2_o 5._o melchizedech_n be_v both_o king_n of_o salem_n and_o a_o priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n heb._n 7_o 1._o gen._n 14_o 18._o samuel_n be_v both_o a_o judge_n of_o the_o people_n and_o a_o prophet_n of_o god_n 1_o sam_n 3_o 20._o and_o 7_o 15._o david_n be_v both_o a_o king_n &_o a_o prophet_n and_o albeit_o certain_a king_n have_v be_v prophet_n yet_o it_o be_v no_o great_a credit_n to_o the_o ministry_n that_o king_n be_v prophet_n than_o commendation_n to_o king_n themselves_o that_o they_o be_v prophet_n as_o it_o be_v a_o great_a glory_n to_o king_n that_o they_o have_v be_v philosopher_n than_o credit_n to_o philosophy_n that_o king_n have_v study_v profess_a and_o embrace_v it_o the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n before_o his_o incarnation_n be_v the_o teacher_n of_o his_o people_n for_o by_o his_o spirit_n he_o speak_v in_o the_o patriarch_n &_o prophet_n and_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o call_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o after_o that_o he_o take_v our_o flesh_n and_o nature_n upon_o he_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n he_o profess_v that_o he_o be_v send_v to_o preach_v deliverance_n to_o the_o captive_n &_o the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n luke_n 4_o 18_o 19_o 43._o he_o be_v equal_a in_o glory_n with_o the_o father_n yet_o this_o be_v his_o call_n and_o work_n while_o he_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n god_n the_o father_n think_v it_o a_o meet_a office_n to_o be_v commit_v to_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n and_o shall_v it_o seem_v a_o reproachful_a office_n to_o his_o servant_n if_o he_o be_v anoint_v to_o be_v both_o our_o king_n prophet_n and_o priest_n let_v not_o we_o despise_v pprophecy_n nay_o not_o only_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o he_o be_v man_n disdain_v not_o this_o function_n but_o god_n himself_o in_o paradise_n be_v a_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n gen._n 3_o 15._o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v bruise_v the_o serpent_n head_n 5._o math_n 17_o 5._o and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o fellow-worker_n with_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o minister_n beside_o the_o angel_n themselves_o most_o glorious_a creature_n that_o always_o behold_v the_o face_n of_o the_o father_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n have_v not_o refuse_v to_o be_v the_o publisher_n of_o this_o message_n luke_n 2_o 9_o 10._o wherefore_o all_o such_o as_o god_n have_v bless_v with_o forward_a and_o towards_o child_n as_o a_o special_a mercy_n towards_o they_o and_o withal_o bestow_v the_o good_n of_o this_o world_n upon_o they_o enable_v they_o to_o maintain_v they_o in_o school_n of_o learning_n aught_o to_o further_o the_o build_n of_o god_n church_n and_o to_o think_v it_o no_o disgrace_n or_o disparagement_n unto_o they_o to_o apply_v their_o son_n to_o be_v workman_n in_o this_o spiritual_a building_n and_o so_o to_o dedicate_v they_o unto_o god_n as_o godly_a hannah_n give_v samuel_n unto_o the_o lord_n that_o so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v he_o may_v be_v give_v unto_o the_o lord_n 1_o sam._n 1_o 28._o it_o be_v a_o thing_n great_o to_o be_v lament_v that_o this_o high_a office_n of_o preach_v the_o word_n be_v so_o contemn_v by_o all_o of_o high_a call_n that_o the_o nobility_n utter_o shun_v it_o &_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o gentry_n of_o the_o land_n general_o refuse_v it_o either_o as_o base_a in_o itself_o or_o at_o least_o as_o base_a to_o they_o or_o in_o they_o great_a man_n child_n be_v set_v to_o study_v man_n law_n but_o it_o beseem_v not_o their_o greatness_n to_o study_v god_n law_n to_o be_v send_v on_o embassage_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o a_o prince_n be_v a_o great_a honour_n but_o to_o be_v send_v with_o god_n message_n in_o his_o mouth_n be_v esteem_v a_o disgrace_n you_o fool_n and_o blind_a whether_o be_v great_a god_n or_o man_n who_o message_n be_v most_o honourable_a god_n or_o else_o man_v we_o see_v in_o the_o popedom_n how_o man_n of_o countenance_n and_o estimation_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o give_v their_o child_n to_o the_o pope_n service_n and_o bear_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o refuse_v not_o to_o have_v they_o near_o and_o ill-favoured_o shave_v until_o they_o have_v scarce_o one_o hair_n of_o a_o honest_a man_n leave_v unto_o they_o pool_n cardinal_n pool_n nay_o some_o of_o the_o blood_n royal_a have_v take_v upon_o they_o the_o order_n or_o rather_o the_o disorder_n of_o that_o hierarchy_n as_o we_o have_v example_n in_o our_o own_o chronicle_n prince_n themselves_o have_v renounce_v their_o crown_n and_o kingdom_n and_o enter_v into_o monastery_n &_o have_v put_v their_o son_n and_o daughter_n into_o cloister_n it_o be_v very_o apparent_a that_o prince_n among_o the_o heathen_a be_v also_o priest_n shall_v not_o these_o be_v poor_a blind_a idolater_n that_o know_v not_o god_n aright_o stand_v up_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n against_o we_o to_o condemn_v we_o that_o have_v so_o little_a care_n or_o love_n to_o the_o lord_n temple_n that_o the_o serve_v of_o he_o there_o be_v become_v so_o vile_a a_o thing_n as_o it_o be_v not_o beseem_v a_o man_n son_n of_o any_o countenance_n and_o reputation_n in_o the_o world_n so_o that_o they_o will_v not_o set_v their_o hand_n to_o the_o lord_n plough_v but_o scorn_v it_o almost_o as_o much_o as_o to_o go_v to_o plough_v and_o cart_n the_o prophet_n esaias_n as_o it_o be_v probable_o collect_v be_v of_o a_o very_a noble_a lineage_n esay_n see_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o geneva_n translation_n prolego_n ursini_n in_o esay_n son_n to_o amos_n who_o be_v brother_n unto_o amaziah_n king_n of_o juda_n and_o therefore_o think_v to_o be_v of_o the_o blood_n royal_a as_o the_o hebrew_n writer_n agree_v who_o have_v the_o book_n of_o genealogy_n extant_a among_o they_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n with_o hananiah_n mishael_n &_o azariah_n be_v of_o the_o king_n seed_n dan._n 1_o 3._o we_o hear_v before_o that_o christ_n himself_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o the_o most_o honourable_a person_n
themselves_o for_o he_o say_v in_o the_o place_n before_o name_v and_o mention_v thou_o shall_v not_o take_v the_o sum_n of_o they_o among_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n that_o be_v while_o thou_o be_v reckon_v the_o number_n and_o take_v the_o muster_n of_o the_o other_o tribe_n thou_o shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o this_o tribe_n who_o be_v exempt_v from_o the_o war_n and_o the_o reason_n thereof_o be_v render_v num._n 1.50_o thou_o shall_v appoint_v the_o levite_n over_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o testimony_n and_o over_o all_o the_o vessel_n thereof_o and_o over_o all_o thing_n that_o belong_v unto_o it_o he_o call_v it_o sometime_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n because_o the_o people_n assemble_v at_o it_o for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o sometime_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o testimony_n 1._o ●●mb_n 17_o 8.●●abl_v ●●abl_z annot_v nun_n 1._o because_o in_o the_o tabernacle_n be_v place_v the_o ark_n and_o in_o the_o ark_n the_o two_o table_n of_o the_o testimony_n in_o which_o the_o ten_o commandment_n be_v write_v whereby_o god_n testify_v his_o will_n to_o the_o israelite_n both_o what_o he_o will_v have_v they_o do_v and_o what_o he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o to_o do_v verse_n 34._o 35._o and_o moses_n and_o aaron_n and_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o congregation_n in_o these_o word_n begin_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n moses_n number_v the_o levite_n according_a to_o their_o family_n and_o assign_v to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o their_o several_a office_n and_o charge_n this_o obedience_n of_o he_o be_v worthy_a of_o great_a praise_n inasmuch_o as_o in_o this_o description_n of_o the_o number_n of_o these_o family_n he_o remove_v far_o from_o himself_o all_o suspicion_n of_o give_v scope_n to_o his_o own_o affection_n and_o therefore_o he_o signify_v that_o he_o do_v nothing_o of_o pride_n or_o partiality_n advance_v the_o levite_n before_o the_o other_o tribe_n or_o prefer_v the_o family_n of_o the_o kohathite_n before_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o levite_n but_o have_v deal_v in_o all_o thing_n as_o become_v the_o true_a minister_n of_o god_n even_o according_a to_o the_o commandment_n and_o commission_n that_o he_o have_v receive_v of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v afterward_o chap._n 12._o my_o servant_n moses_n be_v faithful_a in_o all_o my_o house_n 3.5_o ●umb_a 12.7_o ●eb_fw-mi 3.5_o even_o as_o in_o the_o build_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n he_o add_v nothing_o of_o his_o own_o but_o do_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o pattern_n that_o be_v show_v he_o in_o the_o mount_n we_o learn_v from_o hence_o that_o whensoever_o we_o have_v hear_v the_o word_n and_o have_v the_o will_n of_o god_n reveal_v unto_o we_o we_o must_v yield_v doctrine_n 1_o obedience_n to_o the_o same_o obey_v the_o word_n hear_v must_v be_v obey_v it_o be_v a_o duty_n require_v of_o we_o to_o practice_v so_o much_o of_o god_n truth_n as_o be_v in_o mercy_n make_v know_v unto_o us._n so_o do_v noah_n gen._n 6.22_o when_o he_o be_v command_v to_o make_v a_o ark_n he_o do_v it_o as_o god_n command_v so_o do_v abraham_n when_o he_o be_v command_v to_o circumcise_v himself_o and_o the_o male_n in_o his_o family_n gen._n 17._o this_o be_v it_o that_o moses_n teach_v the_o people_n after_o all_o his_o teach_n and_o exhort_v of_o they_o deut._n 10.12.13_o now_o israel_n what_o do_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n require_v of_o thou_o but_o to_o fear_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n to_o walk_v in_o all_o his_o way_n and_o to_o love_v he_o and_o to_o serve_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n that_o thou_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n &_o his_o ordinance_n which_o i_o command_v thou_o this_o day_n for_o thy_o wealth_n and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o next_o chapter_n 11.1_o deut._n 11.1_o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o keep_v his_o charge_n and_o his_o statute_n and_o his_o judgement_n and_o his_o commandment_n always_o the_o apostle_n james_n urge_v this_o duty_n upon_o those_o that_o be_v swift_a to_o hear_v and_o have_v receive_v the_o word_n with_o meekness_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v their_o soul_n chap._n 1.22_o be_v you_o doer_n of_o the_o word_n and_o not_o hearer_n only_o deceive_v your_o own_o soul_n christ_n our_o saviour_n describe_v the_o good_a hearer_n by_o the_o good_a ground_n say_v they_o bring_v forthwith_o patience_n some_o sixty_o fold_n some_o thirty_o fold_n 13.23_o luke_n 8.15_o matth._n 13.23_o and_o some_o a_o hundred_o fold_n every_o one_o some_o fruit_n no_o man_n be_v barren_a altogether_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n it_o be_v the_o exhortation_n of_o moses_n and_o of_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n 10_o deut._n 27.9_o 10_o which_o they_o speak_v unto_o all_o israel_n take_v heed_n and_o hearken_v o_o israel_n this_o day_n thou_o be_v become_v the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n thou_o shall_v therefore_o obey_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o do_v his_o commandment_n and_o his_o statute_n which_o i_o command_v thou_o this_o day_n so_o they_o we_o must_v all_o know_v what_o be_v require_v of_o we_o to_o wit_n to_o be_v doer_n and_o not_o bare_a hearer_n to_o be_v practiser_n and_o not_o talker_n to_o be_v obeyer_n and_o follower_n not_o idle_a professor_n marvel_v not_o at_o all_o at_o this_o for_o first_o to_o incline_v reason_n 1_o our_o heart_n to_o walk_v in_o his_o way_n that_o we_o have_v learn_v be_v a_o infallible_a sign_n that_o we_o true_o fear_v god_n this_o we_o see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o abraham_n god_n tempt_v he_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o take_v thy_o son_n thy_o only_a son_n isaac_n who_o thou_o love_v and_o offer_v he_o for_o a_o burn_a offering_n he_o prefer_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n before_o the_o love_n to_o his_o own_o son_n god_n accept_v his_o willing_a mind_n and_o therefore_o he_o hear_v this_o comfort_n lay_v not_o thy_o hand_n upon_o the_o lad_n neither_o do_v thou_o any_o thing_n unto_o he_o 22.12_o gen._n 22.12_o for_o now_o i_o know_v thou_o fear_v god_n see_v thou_o have_v not_o withhold_v thy_o son_n thy_o only_a son_n from_o i_o not_o that_o he_o be_v ignorant_a before_o but_o because_o he_o make_v that_o know_v to_o himself_o and_o to_o other_o which_o before_o be_v know_v to_o he_o alone_o and_o not_o thorough_o to_o abraham_n himself_o for_o what_o be_v in_o we_o we_o know_v not_o certain_o ourselves_o until_o we_o be_v prove_v thus_o than_o we_o see_v that_o abraham_n notable_a obedience_n in_o so_o great_a a_o trial_n be_v a_o evident_a testimony_n that_o he_o true_o love_v god_n reason_n 2_o second_o obeience_n be_v always_o join_v with_o recompense_n god-rewarding_a it_o to_o the_o full_a who_o be_v a_o most_o rich_a paymaster_n no_o man_n shall_v serve_v he_o for_o nought_o if_o laban_n can_v say_v thus_o to_o jacob_n 29.15_o gen._n 29.15_o because_o thou_o be_v my_o brother_n shall_v thou_o therefore_o serve_v i_o for_o nought_o will_v not_o the_o lord_n much_o rather_o say_v to_o we_o because_o you_o be_v my_o child_n shall_v you_o therefore_o serve_v i_o for_o nothing_o the_o prophet_n david_n set_v down_o the_o singular_a fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n say_v by_o it_o be_v thy_o servant_n make_v circumspect_a 19.11_o psal_n 19.11_o &_o in_o keep_v of_o it_o there_o be_v great_a reward_n consider_v bref_o how_o it_o be_v with_o abraham_n of_o who_o we_o speak_v before_o he_o receive_v a_o hard_a commandment_n himself_o to_o offer_v up_o in_o sacrifice_v his_o only_a son_n yet_o because_o he_o delay_v not_o to_o put_v it_o in_o present_a execution_n he_o receive_v a_o threefold_a reward_n first_o god_n deliver_v his_o son_n from_o death_n second_o he_o commend_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o father_n and_o three_o he_o repeat_v the_o promise_n to_o he_o and_o confirm_v his_o faith_n in_o it_o gen._n 22._o reason_n 3_o three_o if_o we_o harken_v unto_o he_o he_o will_v hearken_v unto_o we_o if_o we_o serve_v he_o he_o will_v not_o be_v backward_o or_o behind_o hand_n with_o we_o to_o serve_v us._n this_o do_v the_o prophet_n esay_n point_n out_o unto_o we_o chap._n 58.9_o thou_o shall_v call_v and_o the_o lord_n shall_v answer_v thou_o shall_v cry_v and_o he_o shall_v say_v here_o i_o be_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o we_o will_v not_o hearken_v to_o obey_v he_o he_o will_v never_o hearken_v unto_o we_o neither_o regard_n when_o we_o call_v upon_o he_o the_o wise_a man_n bring_v in_o wisdom_n cry_v without_o and_o utter_v her_o voice_n in_o the_o street_n 25.26_o pro._n 1.24_o 25.26_o because_o i_o have_v call_v and_o you_o refuse_v i_o have_v stretch_v out_o my_o hand_n and_o no_o man_n regard_v but_o you_o
judgement_n upon_o the_o unbeliever_n and_o impenitent_a person_n great_a be_v the_o authority_n of_o prince_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o earth_n they_o may_v banish_v from_o their_o kingdom_n such_o as_o be_v offender_n but_o they_o can_v banish_v and_o exclude_v any_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n they_o may_v bind_v the_o hand_n and_o foot_n of_o the_o body_n but_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o bind_v the_o soul_n and_o conscience_n the_o magistrate_n may_v say_v take_v his_o body_n but_o the_o minister_n may_v say_v let_v he_o be_v deliver_v to_o satan_n last_o we_o see_v from_o hence_o that_o those_o church_n be_v deceive_v that_o cast_v from_o they_o this_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o christ_n jesus_n they_o be_v as_o a_o body_n subject_a to_o many_o disease_n yet_o want_v a_o sovereign_a medicine_n to_o cure_v they_o for_o albeit_o they_o have_v the_o christian_a magistrate_n to_o assist_v they_o and_o to_o resist_v evil_n yet_o his_o judgement_n be_v external_a not_o internal_a he_o may_v punish_v he_o can_v amend_v and_o reform_v every_o church_n therefore_o aught_o to_o have_v this_o remedy_n to_o take_v away_o evil_a out_o of_o israel_n the_o second_o point_n in_o the_o description_n of_o excommunication_n be_v demption_n ●e_n second_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o demption_n that_o it_o must_v be_v execute_v upon_o he_o that_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o it_o be_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n so_o it_o extend_v only_o to_o such_o person_n as_o be_v professor_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o have_v give_v their_o name_n to_o christ_n and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n thereof_o this_o be_v express_o ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 5_o 11_o 12._o if_o any_o that_o be_v call_v a_o brother_n be_v a_o fornicator_n or_o covetous_a or_o a_o idolater_n or_o a_o drunkard_n &c_n &c_n with_o such_o a_o one_o eat_v not_o 6._o 2_o cor._n 2_o 6._o for_o what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v to_o judge_v they_o also_o that_o be_v without_o do_v not_o you_o judge_v they_o that_o be_v within_o in_o like_a manner_n christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n prescribe_v this_o spiritual_a physic_n to_o recover_v dangerous_a sinner_n say_v if_o thy_o brother_n trespass_n against_o thou_o from_o hence_o we_o learn_v what_o person_n be_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v to_o wit_n such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v call_v our_o brother_n and_o register_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n for_o how_o can_v he_o be_v excommunicate_v that_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n who_o never_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n wherefore_o it_o belong_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o those_o that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n as_o turk_n persian_n jew_n pagan_n and_o other_o infidel_n that_o be_v never_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n neither_o have_v entrance_n into_o the_o church_n this_o censure_n concern_v such_o as_o be_v reckon_v among_o brethren_n and_o not_o account_v stranger_n from_o the_o faith_n and_o aliens_n from_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o when_o paul_n have_v write_v in_o a_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o keep_v company_n with_o fornicator_n lest_o they_o shall_v think_v he_o write_v this_o of_o all_o the_o fornicator_n of_o this_o world_n he_o expound_v himself_o that_o he_o understand_v it_o not_o of_o all_o wicked_a person_n in_o general_a for_o than_o they_o must_v needs_o go_v out_o of_o the_o world_n 10._o verse_n 10._o but_o of_o such_o as_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o will_v needs_o be_v call_v brethren_n these_o be_v they_o that_o give_v scandal_n to_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o gospel_n through_o they_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v blaspheme_v the_o church_n be_v contemn_v &_o slander_v the_o word_n be_v revile_v the_o weak_a be_v offend_v and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o part_n infect_v and_o therefore_o deserve_v worthy_o ro_o bee_n excommunicate_v the_o church_n take_v care_n of_o all_o her_o child_n she_o be_v as_o a_o careful_a mother_n and_o tender_a nurse_n that_o have_v promise_v to_o bring_v they_o up_o &_o to_o see_v they_o right_o order_v and_o govern_v and_o therefore_o aught_o to_o use_v all_o good_a mean_n for_o their_o recovery_n that_o their_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n again_o we_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n hereby_o of_o the_o folly_n and_o corrupt_a deal_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o direct_o cross_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o set_v themselves_o in_o the_o place_n and_o seat_n of_o god_n for_o as_o they_o have_v defile_v the_o most_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o god_n the_o word_n prayer_n sacrament_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n so_o they_o have_v horrible_o abuse_v the_o institution_n of_o excommunication_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v far_o afterward_o the_o truth_n be_v they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o excommunication_n they_o be_v fall_v from_o grace_n they_o have_v deny_v the_o faith_n they_o have_v defile_v themselves_o with_o idol_n they_o will_v not_o have_v christ_n righteousness_n impute_v unto_o they_o they_o set_v up_o their_o own_o work_n &_o seek_v justification_n by_o they_o they_o will_v not_o receive_v christ_n to_o be_v their_o only_a king_n and_o priest_n they_o will_v merit_v salvation_n for_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o a_o true_a but_o a_o false_a church_n but_o excommunication_n be_v the_o church_n right_a it_o be_v none_o of_o they_o that_o be_v not_o the_o church_n so_o that_o albeit_o they_o curse_v we_o and_o ban_v we_o every_o year_n yet_o it_o hurt_v we_o not_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o curse_n that_o be_v causeless_a shall_v not_o come_v but_o suppose_v they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o we_o out_o of_o the_o church_n who_o hold_v all_o that_o refuse_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n to_o be_v no_o church_n at_o all_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o they_o dare_v excommunicate_v we_o who_o never_o be_v of_o their_o communion_n and_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o their_o jurisdiction_n they_o teach_v we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n and_o paul_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o judge_v they_o that_o be_v without_o they_o be_v therefore_o abuser_n and_o prophaner_n of_o this_o ordinance_n even_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n let_v they_o either_o admit_v we_o to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n or_o else_o remit_v we_o to_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o god_n who_o judge_v they_o that_o be_v without_o 13._o 1_o cor._n 5_o 13._o for_o as_o a_o prince_n draw_v out_o the_o sword_n against_o none_o but_o his_o own_o subject_n so_o be_v this_o censure_n to_o be_v draw_v out_o against_o none_o but_o such_o as_o be_v subject_a unto_o it_o that_o be_v the_o church_n if_o the_o church_n proceed_v any_o far_a it_o may_v be_v say_v unto_o it_o who_o make_v thou_o a_o judge_n and_o ruler_n over_o they_o last_o let_v not_o ungodly_a person_n &_o atheist_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n be_v encourage_v hereby_o to_o continue_v in_o sin_n neither_o let_v any_o envy_v their_o freedom_n and_o liberty_n because_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v touch_v with_o church-censure_n but_o rather_o let_v they_o consider_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v scotfree_a they_o have_v god_n the_o father_n high_a possessor_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n a_o sharp_a and_o severe_a judge_n against_o they_o and_o all_o their_o evil_a deed_n for_o they_o that_o be_v without_o god_n judge_v who_o will_v give_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o desert_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o second_o point_n description_n the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o description_n let_v we_o go_v forward_o in_o the_o description_n the_o three_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v observe_v in_o excommunication_n be_v that_o the_o person_n offend_v be_v convict_v of_o some_o grievous_a &_o heinous_a crime_n either_o against_o the_o first_o or_o second_o table_n of_o the_o law_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n name_v not_o only_o whoremonger_n covetous_a drunkard_n railer_n 11._o 1_o cor._n 5_o 11._o and_o extortioner_n but_o also_o idolater_n so_o that_o as_o well_o heretic_n and_o worshipper_n of_o image_n sorcerer_n and_o enchanter_n and_o such_o like_a brethren_n as_o drunkard_n and_o adulterer_n be_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v in_o like_a manner_n christ_n himself_o express_v not_o the_o several_a kind_n of_o sin_n for_o which_o the_o brother_n that_o offend_v be_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v but_o content_v himself_o to_o say_v only_o in_o general_n if_o thy_o brother_n trespass_n against_o thou_o so_o the_o apostle_n paul_n teach_v tit._n 3.10_o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o heretic_n after_o the_o first_o and_o second_o admonition_n
reject_v hereby_o than_o we_o see_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o put_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o every_o trifle_n or_o for_o every_o sin_n but_o for_o scandal_n and_o offence_n that_o be_v notorious_a a_o master_n will_v not_o discharge_v out_o of_o his_o house_n a_o servant_n that_o have_v serve_v he_o for_o every_o trespass_n neither_o do_v the_o magistrate_n draw_v the_o sword_n for_o every_o breach_n of_o the_o law_n so_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v with_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n again_o excommunication_n must_v not_o be_v use_v at_o the_o first_o but_o as_o the_o last_o remedy_n a_o chirurgeon_n account_v lance_v sear_a &_o cut_v a_o desperate_a cure_n when_o he_o come_v to_o his_o patient_n and_o find_v swell_a and_o sore_n in_o the_o body_n he_o do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o proceed_v to_o cut_v off_o a_o arm_n or_o leg_n he_o use_v first_o purge_v and_o other_o gentle_a mean_n to_o try_v whether_o he_o can_v do_v any_o good_a that_o way_n or_o not_o so_o shall_v it_o be_v with_o we_o according_a to_o the_o counsel_n and_o commandment_n of_o christ_n he_o require_v private_a admonition_n &_o exhortation_n private_a reproof_n and_o rebuke_n and_o then_o two_o or_o three_o with_o we_o 1●_n mat._n 18_o 1●_n that_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n every_o word_n may_v be_v establish_v there_o be_v require_v of_o we_o patience_n and_o much_o lenity_n wait_v whether_o he_o will_v by_o this_o mean_n be_v amend_v last_o we_o may_v gather_v from_o hence_o that_o while_o sin_n be_v secret_a and_o unknown_a no_o man_n can_v be_v excommunicate_v but_o then_o only_o when_o it_o be_v make_v public_a and_o manifest_a unto_o all_o now_o than_o it_o be_v make_v public_a when_o the_o church_n be_v acquaint_v with_o it_o the_o four_o point_n in_o excommunication_n description_n the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o description_n be_v this_o that_o it_o stretch_v to_o he_o only_o that_o can_v otherwise_o be_v bring_v to_o repentance_n the_o cause_n then_o why_o the_o church_n be_v compel_v to_o proceed_v so_o far_o against_o some_o of_o her_o child_n be_v obstinacy_n &_o impenitency_n for_o when_o there_o be_v in_o such_o offender_n both_o open_a wickedness_n whereby_o the_o church_n be_v offend_v &_o notable_a stubbornenes_n whereby_o the_o church_n be_v contemn_v so_o that_o they_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n of_o the_o word_n public_o &_o of_o the_o admonition_n private_o be_v reform_v excommunication_n must_v follow_v of_o necessity_n that_o hereby_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a some_o good_a may_v be_v wrought_v in_o they_o hereupon_o christ_n himself_o say_v if_o he_o neglect_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a or_o a_o publican_n mat._n 18_o 17._o such_o therefore_o as_o have_v offend_v and_o true_o repent_v of_o their_o sin_n give_v evident_a testimony_n of_o their_o unfeigned_a conversion_n aught_o to_o be_v spare_v &_o not_o censure_v to_o be_v comfort_v not_o terrify_v to_o be_v retain_v in_o the_o church_n not_o reject_v &_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n second_o this_o show_v that_o impenitency_n be_v a_o most_o grievous_a sin_n and_o next_o to_o infidelity_n the_o great_a for_o as_o faith_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o repentance_n so_o be_v a_o unbelieve_a heart_n the_o cause_n of_o impenitency_n of_o all_o judgement_n that_o god_n bring_v upon_o the_o son_n of_o man_n none_o be_v great_a than_o the_o want_n of_o repentance_n to_o have_v a_o heart_n that_o can_v repent_v to_o fall_v into_o whoredom_n &_o drunkenness_n be_v grievous_a sin_n and_o wound_v the_o conscience_n &_o weaken_v our_o comfort_n and_o assurance_n howbeit_o to_o continue_v in_o they_o without_o feel_n of_o they_o and_o turn_v from_o they_o be_v worse_a than_o the_o commit_n of_o the_o sin_n themselves_o this_o make_v the_o apostle_n say_v 4●_n rom._n 2_o 4●_n despise_v thou_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o forbear_v and_o long_o suffer_v not_o know_v that_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n lead_v thou_o to_o repentance_n but_o after_o thy_o hardness_n and_o impenitent_a heart_n thou_o treasure_v up_o unto_o thyself_o wrath_n against_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n and_o revelation_n of_o the_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o god_n among_o all_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n give_v unto_o we_o we_o must_v make_v great_a account_n of_o a_o soft_a and_o tender_a heart_n which_o the_o prophet_n call_v a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n oppose_v and_o set_v against_o the_o stony_a heart_n such_o be_v soon_o check_v and_o control_v last_o we_o learn_v from_o hence_o to_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o sin_n and_o sin_n and_o between_o sinner_n and_o sinner_n all_o man_n fall_v into_o sin_n and_o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o make_v god_n a_o liar_n nevertheless_o some_o be_v penitent_a sinner_n they_o hate_v their_o sin_n and_o do_v with_o might_n and_o main_a strive_v against_o they_o they_o fight_v against_o they_o as_o against_o their_o enemy_n other_o cherish_v sin_n in_o themselves_o and_o be_v resolve_v to_o continue_v in_o they_o they_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o they_o and_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o repent_v for_o they_o such_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o be_v hold_v member_n of_o christ_n and_o citizen_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n &_o therefore_o just_o deserve_v to_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n de●on_n ●fth_o ●f_a the_o de●on_n the_o five_o point_n contain_v and_o include_v in_o it_o the_o substance_n of_o excommunication_n namely_o that_o it_o drive_v impenitent_a offender_n from_o the_o visible_a and_o outward_a communion_n of_o the_o saint_n from_o whence_o also_o it_o have_v his_o name_n open_v sinner_n and_o scandalous_a liver_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o live_v among_o the_o faithful_a nor_o to_o come_v to_o public_a prayer_n nor_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o church_n forasmuch_o as_o they_o will_v profane_v all_o they_o touch_v as_o adam_n the_o tree_n of_o life_n and_o therefore_o be_v drive_v out_o of_o the_o garden_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n will_v have_v we_o account_v they_o as_o heathen_a and_o publican_n the_o gentile_n for_o religion_n sake_n be_v enemy_n to_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o in_o religion_n the_o jew_n be_v to_o abstain_v from_o their_o society_n &_o fellowship_n whereas_o in_o common_a affair_n of_o this_o life_n they_o be_v not_o so_o restrain_v 〈◊〉_d ●t_z the_o ●icanes_n 〈◊〉_d the_o publican_n be_v such_o as_o have_v receive_v a_o office_n from_o the_o roman_n to_o who_o the_o jew_n be_v subject_a to_o gathet_n tribute_n be_v as_o it_o be_v collector_n of_o subsidy_n task_n and_o tallage_n impole_v upon_o the_o jew_n who_o think_v it_o unfit_a and_o unjust_a that_o they_o be_v the_o lord_n people_n shall_v pay_v tribute_n and_o custom_n to_o the_o gentile_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o history_n of_o hezekiah_n and_o of_o joachim_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o king_n and_o by_o the_o question_n propound_v unto_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n 17._o ●h_a 22_o 17._o be_v it_o lawful_a to_o give_v tribute_n unto_o cesar_n or_o not_o wherefore_o they_o be_v account_v the_o enemy_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o betrayer_n of_o their_o own_o nation_n they_o couple_v they_o with_o sinner_n and_o hate_v they_o unto_o the_o death_n albeit_o they_o profess_v the_o same_o religion_n and_o oftentimes_o meet_v together_o in_o the_o place_n of_o god_n worship_n they_o abhor_v these_o and_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n brook_v &_o abide_v these_o man_n who_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v extreme_a covetous_a and_o catchpolles_a 8._o ●e_n 19_o 8._o exact_v more_o than_o be_v due_a for_o they_o to_o receive_v or_o the_o people_n to_o pay_v howbeit_o they_o hate_v they_o not_o as_o the_o enemy_n of_o their_o religion_n but_o as_o man_n of_o a_o wicked_a &_o offensive_a life_n the_o apostle_n likewise_o decree_a and_o determine_v what_o shall_v be_v do_v with_o the_o incestuous_a person_n will_v the_o church_n to_o deliver_v he_o to_o satan_n 13_o 〈◊〉_d 5_o 5_o 7_o 13_o to_o purge_v out_o the_o old_a leaven_n and_o to_o put_v away_o from_o among_o themselves_o that_o wicked_a person_n hereby_o than_o we_o see_v that_o these_o obstinate_a offender_n be_v to_o be_v separate_v from_o those_o good_a thing_n which_o the_o lord_n command_v &_o communicate_v in_o his_o church_n as_o the_o word_n sacrament_n &_o prayer_n these_o be_v holy_a thing_n for_o holy_a and_o sanctify_a person_n but_o they_o be_v as_o filthy_a swine_n to_o who_o holy_a thing_n may_v not_o be_v cast_v and_o as_o dog_n to_o who_o the_o child_n bread_n do_v not_o belong_v now_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a end_n of_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n be_v
as_o a_o sergeant_n and_o judge_v he_o as_o guilty_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n beside_o as_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a trespass_n 4._o vrs●n_v 〈◊〉_d part_n 4._o so_o there_o be_v a_o threefold_a kind_n of_o remit_v or_o forgive_n to_o wit_n remission_n of_o revenge_n remission_n of_o punishment_n and_o remission_n of_o judgement_n remission_n of_o revenge_n belong_v to_o all_o person_n both_o public_a and_o private_a and_o restrain_v the_o hand_n of_o magistrate_n and_o subject_n for_o neither_o superior_n nor_o inferior_n aught_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n in_o malice_n and_o grudge_n or_o to_o satisfy_v their_o own_o lust_n if_o a_o judge_n in_o proceed_v against_o malefactor_n pursue_v his_o own_o quarrel_n rather_o than_o execute_v justice_n he_o sin_v and_o offend_v albeit_o the_o party_n be_v guilty_a and_o deserve_v death_n for_o vengeance_n belong_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o we_o be_v not_o to_o requite_v like_a for_o like_a remission_n of_o punishment_n belong_v to_o private_a person_n that_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n but_o as_o all_o can_v inflict_v so_o all_o can_v remit_v punishment_n for_o the_o magistrate_n though_o not_o sometime_o and_o in_o some_o case_n and_o in_o some_o person_n he_o may_v remit_v which_o be_v not_o needful_a here_o to_o remember_v yet_o not_o always_o nor_o all_o offender_n 13.4_o rom._n 13.4_o nor_o in_o all_o offence_n because_o god_n will_v have_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o law_n proceed_v and_o the_o execution_n of_o justice_n have_v his_o course_n this_o extend_v not_o to_o magistrate_n for_o then_o evil_a doer_n shall_v not_o be_v punish_v nor_o evil_a deed_n root_v out_o of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n remission_n of_o judgement_n be_v when_o we_o conceive_v a_o good_a and_o charitable_a opinion_n of_o those_o that_o have_v offend_v us._n but_o thus_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v always_o to_o forgive_v neither_o to_o remit_v the_o censure_n which_o evil_a man_n just_o deserve_v for_o their_o evil_a deed_n for_o the_o prophet_n esay_n pronounce_v a_o woe_n against_o all_o such_o as_o call_v evil_a good_a 5.12_o esay_n 5.12_o and_o good_a evil_n sweet_a sour_a and_o sour_a sweet_a it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o to_o retain_v our_o judgement_n and_o opinion_n of_o wicked_a man_n so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v impenitent_a of_o this_o christ_n speak_v luk._n 17.3_o if_o he_o repent_v forgive_v he_o that_o be_v that_o hard_a censure_n of_o he_o and_o count_v he_o as_o a_o brother_n but_o of_o this_o we_o have_v speak_v at_o large_a elsewhere_o 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o and_o therefore_o this_o shall_v suffice_v for_o the_o answer_n to_o this_o objection_n the_o use_n that_o arise_v from_o hence_o be_v many_o and_o use_v 1_o of_o special_a note_n first_o of_o all_o be_v all_o sin_n even_o the_o trespass_n against_o man_n commit_v against_o god_n do_v it_o offend_v he_o and_o violate_v his_o law_n yes_o doubtless_o not_o only_a man_n be_v injury_v but_o god_n himself_o be_v offend_v as_o have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v and_o therefore_o it_o shall_v teach_v we_o what_o a_o grievous_a and_o fearful_a thing_n sin_n be_v in_o what_o account_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v with_o we_o and_o how_o every_o one_o shall_v learn_v to_o aggravate_v and_o augment_v with_o god_n his_o own_o sin_n for_o his_o far_a humiliation_n this_o be_v it_o that_o greeved_a and_o vex_v david_n and_o as_o it_o be_v pierce_v his_o very_a bowel_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o vriah_n namely_o that_o his_o sin_n be_v against_o god_n who_o know_v sin_n perfect_o and_o behold_v it_o in_o his_o natural_a colour_n so_o that_o neither_o it_o nor_o we_o can_v deceive_v he_o wherefore_o this_o lesson_n must_v due_o be_v consider_v of_o we_o and_o enter_v deep_o into_o our_o heart_n who_o it_o be_v that_o we_o offend_v this_o be_v it_o that_o move_v david_n to_o know_v sin_n and_o to_o mourn_v for_o it_o psal_n 51.4_o against_o thou_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v and_o do_v this_o evil_n in_o thy_o sight_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v justify_v when_o thou_o speak_v and_o be_v clear_a when_o thou_o iudge_v where_o note_n that_o he_o be_v not_o content_a to_o say_v once_o against_o thou_o but_o he_o double_v it_o against_o thou_o against_o thou_o and_o add_v with_o great_a force_n and_o vehemency_n against_o thou_o only_o ●ion_n ●ion_n but_o do_v he_o not_o sin_n against_o man_n or_o be_v not_o murder_v a_o breach_n of_o the_o six_o commandment_n and_o adultery_n of_o the_o seven_o i_o answer_v 1._o 〈◊〉_d 1._o yes_o these_o sin_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o second_o table_n he_o have_v slay_v vriah_n with_o a_o sword_n it_o 〈◊〉_d sin_n ●eat_n it_o he_o have_v commit_v adultery_n with_o his_o wife_n he_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a cause_n and_o principal_a mean_n of_o the_o slaughter_n and_o destruction_n of_o other_o and_o so_o bring_v blood-guiltines_n upon_o himself_o he_o harden_v the_o ammonite_n in_o their_o sin_n who_o open_v their_o mouth_n to_o slander_v the_o word_n and_o to_o blaspheme_v the_o holy_a name_n of_o god_n he_o sin_v against_o the_o child_n that_o be_v misbeget_v which_o also_o die_v through_o that_o unfaithful_a act_n he_o sin_v against_o his_o own_o house_n in_o that_o he_o kindle_v a_o fire_n throughout_o his_o family_n &_o bring_v stick_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n to_o raise_v up_o the_o flame_n that_o be_v not_o easy_o to_o be_v quench_v 16.22_o 〈◊〉_d 13.14_o 〈◊〉_d 16.22_o for_o one_o of_o his_o son_n take_v up_o the_o sword_n and_o kill_v another_o the_o brother_n commit_v abominable_a incest_n with_o his_o own_o sister_n of_o the_o half_a blood_n and_o another_o of_o his_o own_o son_n take_v his_o wife_n and_o lie_v with_o they_o not_o in_o the_o dark_a of_o the_o night_n or_o in_o a_o secret_a corner_n of_o the_o house_n but_o he_o spread_v a_o tent_n open_o and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o sun_n last_o he_o sin_v against_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n who_o by_o mean_n of_o his_o sin_n be_v offend_v and_o trouble_v with_o tumult_n and_o sedition_n so_o that_o the_o whole_a land_n be_v in_o a_o uproar_n and_o insurrection_n from_o one_o end_n to_o the_o other_o all_o which_o point_v show_v that_o his_o sin_n go_v far_o against_o man_n it_o touch_v vriah_n it_o touch_v bathshebah_n it_o touch_v the_o child_n it_o touch_v the_o ammonite_n it_o touch_v his_o family_n it_o touch_v the_o whole_a church_n yet_o these_o bloody_a and_o cry_v and_o heinous_a sin_n so_o far_o as_o they_o concern_v man_n like_o himself_o he_o see_v to_o be_v as_o nothing_o albeit_o they_o be_v notorious_a in_o comparison_n of_o god_n against_o who_o they_o be_v especial_o commit_v he_o have_v rather_o have_v all_o man_n set_v against_o he_o then_o to_o have_v god_n his_o enemy_n and_o to_o come_v out_o in_o battle_n array_n against_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o cry_v out_o in_o great_a anguish_n and_o bitterness_n of_o spirit_n o_o against_o thou_o against_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v and_o do_v evil_a in_o thy_o sight_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v although_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v absolve_v i_o and_o no_o man_n can_v accuse_v i_o of_o sin_n yet_o this_o trouble_v my_o conscience_n this_o sting_v and_o strike_v i_o to_o the_o heart_n that_o i_o must_v have_v thou_o to_o be_v my_o judge_n i_o be_o free_a from_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o man_n as_o be_v myself_o supreme_a and_o under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o no_o other_o but_o glass_n what_o can_v this_o comfort_v i_o so_o long_o as_o i_o have_v thou_o to_o give_v sentence_n upon_o i_o he_o that_o be_v thus_o overburden_v and_o overwhelm_v with_o a_o feel_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o god_n judgement_n as_o david_n be_v need_v no_o other_o accuser_n forasmuch_o as_o god_n stand_v and_o serve_v in_o stead_n of_o a_o thousand_o if_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v accuse_v a_o man_n and_o conspire_v together_o to_o charge_v he_o with_o any_o crime_n yet_o if_o god_n acquit_v he_o his_o own_o conscience_n will_v minister_v peace_n unto_o he_o and_o comfort_n against_o all_o slander_n and_o imputation_n lay_v against_o he_o for_o if_o god_n be_v on_o his_o side_n 8.31_o rom._n 8.31_o who_o shall_v be_v against_o he_o but_o if_o god_n be_v against_o he_o and_o lay_v grievous_a thing_n unto_o he_o woe_n wo_n unto_o he_o who_o shall_v speak_v for_o he_o though_o he_o have_v the_o praise_n and_o applause_n though_o he_o have_v the_o gain_n and_o glory_n of_o all_o the_o world_n if_o he_o condemn_v who_o shall_v justify_v if_o he_o say_v guilty_a who_o dare_v plead_v not_o guilty_a he_o find_v out_o adam_n 9_o gen._n 3_o 9_o when_o none_o accuse_v he_o when_o there_o be_v no_o man_n upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o accuse_v he_o and_o say_v adam_n where_o be_v thou_o he_o
enemy_n to_o their_o brethren_n they_o draw_v a_o heavy_a enemy_n upon_o themselves_o to_o wit_n god_n himself_o before_o we_o pass_v from_o this_o so_o necessary_a a_o duty_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o for_o we_o both_o to_o observe_v such_o motive_n as_o may_v stir_v we_o up_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o and_o to_o answer_v such_o objection_n as_o may_v hinder_v we_o from_o yield_a obedience_n unto_o it_o first_o of_o all_o let_v we_o lay_v before_o we_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o salvation_n who_o have_v great_a wrong_v offer_v unto_o he_o than_o he_o have_v who_o be_v more_o innocent_a than_o he_o that_o be_v as_o a_o sheep_n dumb_a before_o his_o shearer_n and_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n peter_n say_v chap._n 2.22_o christ_n suffer_v for_o we_o leave_v we_o a_o example_n that_o you_o shall_v follow_v his_o step_n who_o do_v no_o sin_n neither_o be_v guile_n find_v in_o his_o mouth_n who_o when_o he_o be_v revile_v revile_v not_o again_o when_o he_o suffer_v he_o threaten_v not_o but_o commit_v himself_o to_o he_o that_o judge_v righteous_o this_o far_a appear_v unto_o we_o in_o that_o he_o pray_v for_o his_o enemy_n that_o persecute_v he_o he_o have_v power_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n to_o have_v resist_v their_o force_n 34_o 〈◊〉_d 34_o &_o revenge_v his_o cause_n he_o can_v have_v pray_v to_o his_o father_n &_o he_o will_v have_v give_v he_o more_o than_o twelve_o legion_n of_o angel_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o suffer_v patient_o 53_o 〈◊〉_d ●6_n 53_o the_o just_a for_o the_o unjust_a 18._o 〈◊〉_d 18._o that_o he_o may_v bring_v we_o to_o god_n if_o any_o think_v or_o allege_v that_o this_o example_n be_v too_o high_a for_o we_o above_o our_o reach_n and_o too_o eminent_a in_o regard_n of_o his_o person_n who_o be_v god_n above_o to_o be_v worship_v let_v we_o set_v before_o we_o the_o example_n of_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n that_o have_v live_v in_o all_o age_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o gospel_n mo●_n ●ed_a mo●_n that_o this_o may_v be_v another_o motive_n unto_o us._n how_o often_o do_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n murmur_n against_o moses_n and_o aaron_n and_o sometime_o go_v about_o to_o stone_n he_o yet_o he_o never_o seek_v revenge_n against_o they_o albeit_o he_o have_v be_v able_a to_o right_v his_o own_o cause_n by_o force_n when_o miriam_n &_o aaron_n speak_v against_o he_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o woman_n of_o ethiopia_n 3_o 〈◊〉_d 12.2_o 3_o and_o say_v what_o have_v the_o lord_n speak_v only_o by_o moses_n have_v he_o not_o also_o speak_v by_o we_o moses_n hold_v his_o peace_n and_o give_v not_o taunt_v for_o taunt_v &_o rebuke_v for_o rebuke_n he_o be_v a_o very_a meek_a man_n above_o all_o the_o man_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n thus_o be_v it_o with_o david_n a_o man_n indeed_o after_o god_n own_o heart_n though_o he_o be_v a_o king_n and_o want_v not_o servant_n to_o execute_v his_o will_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o himself_o revenge_v neither_o suffer_v any_o other_o to_o take_v revenge_n on_o shimei_n albeit_o he_o curse_v the_o king_n with_o a_o horrible_a curse_n saul_n seek_v his_o life_n 16.9_o 〈◊〉_d 16.9_o and_o prefer_v he_o to_o be_v his_o son_n in_o law_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n but_o to_o lay_v a_o snare_n before_o he_o &_o when_o david_n have_v his_o life_n oftentimes_o in_o his_o hand_n to_o save_v it_o or_o to_o destroy_v it_o you_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o seek_v revenge_n 24.5_o 〈◊〉_d 26.9_o 〈◊〉_d 24.5_o that_o his_o heart_n smite_v he_o for_o cut_v off_o the_o lap_n of_o his_o garment_n when_o stephen_n have_v make_v a_o worthy_a defence_n for_o himself_o and_o his_o own_o innocency_n that_o the_o enemy_n can_v take_v no_o just_a exception_n against_o he_o their_o heart_n brace_v asunder_o and_o they_o gnash_v at_o he_o with_o their_o tooth_n &_o run_v upon_o he_o violent_o all_o at_o once_o 60._o 〈◊〉_d 60._o but_o he_o kneel_v down_o and_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n lord_n lay_v not_o this_o sin_n to_o their_o charge_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o teach_v thereby_o to_o strengthen_v the_o hand_n of_o traitor_n &_o rebel_n that_o rise_v up_o against_o prince_n that_o christian_n of_o old_a depose_a not_o nero_n and_o dioclesian_n and_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la and_o valens_n the_o arrian_n and_o such_o like_a persecutous_a and_o heretic_n 7._o 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr rom._n ●●b_n 5._o c._n 7._o because_o they_o want_v temporal_a power_n and_o if_o they_o have_v have_v power_n they_o will_v have_v do_v it_o if_o this_o be_v true_a all_o their_o patience_n be_v perforce_o and_o be_v not_o thankworthy_a but_o they_o testify_v in_o many_o place_n that_o they_o have_v power_n sufficient_a but_o hold_v it_o unlawful_a to_o resist_v and_o rebel_n they_o have_v fill_v all_o place_n city_n land_n castle_n boroughe_n tent_n tribe_n band_n palace_n apolog._n ●_o apolog._n the_o senate_n and_o court_n not_o except_v so_o that_o they_o want_v neither_o number_n nor_o strength_n to_o make_v their_o party_n good_a they_o profess_v that_o albeit_o they_o be_v equal_a in_o power_n yet_o with_o they_o it_o be_v more_o tolerable_a to_o be_v kill_v then_o to_o kill_v they_o affirm_v free_o god_n forbid_v that_o his_o religion_n shall_v be_v maintain_v with_o fire_n and_o sword_n they_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o weapon_n to_o be_v put_v into_o their_o hand_n but_o prayer_n &_o tear_n tert._n arma_fw-la nostra_fw-la sunt_fw-la pre●es_fw-la &_o lacrymae_fw-la tert._n they_o never_o practise_v any_o revenge_n against_o their_o persecutor_n and_o those_o that_o hate_v they_o one_o night_n with_o a_o little_a fire_n will_v have_v serve_v and_o suffice_v they_o large_o to_o be_v revenge_v of_o their_o enemy_n but_o they_o account_v it_o unlawful_a to_o requite_v evil_a with_o evil_n but_o to_o leave_v this_o consideration_n to_o another_o occasion_n let_v we_o come_v to_o a_o three_o motive_n motive_n a_o three_o motive_n &_o that_o be_v the_o office_n which_o be_v proper_a unto_o god_n to_o who_o it_o belong_v peculiarly_a to_o take_v vengeance_n and_o be_v therefore_o in_o holy_a scripture_n call_v the_o god_n of_o vengeance_n 94.1_o psal_n 94.1_o o_o lord_n god_n the_o avenger_n o_o god_n the_o avenger_n show_v thyself_o clear_o it_o be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n to_o sit_v down_o in_o god_n seat_n and_o to_o rob_v he_o of_o his_o right_n and_o royalty_n let_v the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o people_n know_v that_o he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o revenge_n as_o well_o as_o the_o god_n of_o salvation_n and_o that_o he_o will_v as_o well_o right_a their_o cause_n as_o save_v their_o soul_n he_o be_v a_o just_a god_n &_o will_v recompense_v tribulation_n to_o all_o that_o trouble_v those_o that_o be_v he_o and_o therefore_o have_v say_v 3●_n deut._n 32_o 3●_n vengeance_n and_o recompense_n be_v i_o but_o he_o never_o say_v to_o private_a person_n vengeance_n be_v thou_o neither_o do_v he_o ever_o put_v the_o sword_n into_o their_o hand_n a_o four_o motive_n motive_n a_o four_o motive_n to_o persuade_v we_o to_o lay_v aside_o private_a revenge_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o gracious_a promise_n that_o god_n have_v make_v unto_o we_o namely_o that_o he_o will_v take_v our_o cause_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o pay_v they_o home_o that_o do_v oppress_v us._n for_o god_n do_v not_o restrain_v we_o &_o as_o it_o be_v tie_v up_o our_o hand_n to_o expose_v we_o to_o all_o injury_n and_o to_o leave_v we_o as_o a_o prey_n in_o the_o jaw_n of_o the_o lion_n but_o because_o he_o have_v pass_v his_o word_n unto_o we_o i_o will_v repay_v 12.29_o rom._n 12.29_o say_v the_o lord_n so_o then_o we_o must_v know_v that_o god_n be_v call_v the_o author_n and_o executer_n of_o vengeance_n not_o only_o because_o the_o power_n and_o right_n belong_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o take_v vengeance_n of_o all_o our_o enemy_n how_o many_o and_o mighty_a soever_o they_o be_v but_o because_o he_o have_v use_v this_o power_n &_o execute_v this_o office_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o yet_o use_v it_o and_o will_v use_v it_o to_o the_o full_a in_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o general_a judgement_n he_o know_v best_a of_o all_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o injury_n that_o be_v do_v unto_o we_o because_o he_o search_v into_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o understand_v not_o only_o what_o be_v do_v but_o the_o manner_n how_o it_o be_v do_v see_v then_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o pay_v they_o home_o into_o their_o bosom_n that_o wrong_v we_o it_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o infidelity_n in_o we_o not_o to_o believe_v he_o at_o his_o word_n
if_o they_o be_v demand_v what_o they_o think_v of_o the_o word_n and_o of_o god_n the_o author_n of_o the_o word_n they_o will_v acknowledge_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v most_o true_a both_o the_o promise_n that_o be_v make_v and_o the_o threaten_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o they_o will_v confess_v that_o god_n be_v a_o most_o just_a god_n even_o visit_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n unto_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n yet_o it_o skill_v not_o what_o they_o speak_v with_o their_o tongue_n so_o long_o as_o we_o may_v even_o open_o read_v the_o secret_n of_o their_o thought_n and_o the_o imagination_n of_o their_o heart_n in_o their_o outward_a practice_n for_o touch_v the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v most_o true_a and_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v we_o read_v oftentimes_o that_o god_n be_v also_o merciful_a 2._o rom_n 2.4_o ephe._n 2._o we_o read_v of_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o bountifulness_n of_o his_o abound_v in_o compassion_n and_o reserve_v mercy_n for_o thousand_o what_o then_o or_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o they_o shall_v we_o continue_v therefore_o in_o sin_n that_o grace_n may_v abound_v aught_o not_o rather_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o bountifulness_n and_o patience_n and_o long_a suffering_n lead_v we_o unto_o repentance_n shall_v we_o after_o our_o hardness_n and_o heart_n that_o can_v repent_v heap_v up_o unto_o ourselves_o as_o a_o treasure_n wrath_n against_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n and_o the_o just_a declaration_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n who_o shall_v give_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n it_o be_v a_o good_a lesson_n which_o the_o prophet_n teach_v we_o that_o there_o be_v mercy_n with_o god_n not_o that_o we_o shall_v presume_v of_o his_o mercy_n and_o run_v into_o all_o excess_n of_o riot_n but_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v be_v fear_v psal_n 130.4_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o moses_n deut._n 29.20_o strip_v all_o such_o as_o flatter_v themselves_o with_o hope_n of_o pardon_n and_o conceit_n of_o mercy_n and_o opinion_n of_o escape_v from_o that_o foolish_a imagination_n he_o that_o bless_v himself_o in_o his_o heart_n say_v i_o shall_v have_v peace_n though_o i_o walk_v in_o the_o imagination_n of_o my_o heart_n to_o add_v drunkenness_n to_o thirst_n the_o lord_n will_v not_o spare_v he_o but_o then_o the_o anger_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o jealousy_n shall_v smoke_v against_o that_o man_n and_o all_o the_o curse_n that_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n shall_v lie_v upon_o ●im_n &_o the_o lord_n shall_v blot_v out_o his_o name_n from_o under_o heaven_n these_o person_n may_v call_v for_o mercy_n but_o he_o will_v not_o answer_v they_o in_o mercy_n they_o may_v seek_v he_o early_o but_o they_o shall_v not_o find_v he_o because_o they_o hate_v to_o be_v reform_v and_o do_v not_o choose_v the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n prou._n 1.28_o 29._o he_o be_v very_o gracious_a and_o merciful_a slow_a to_o anger_n and_o of_o great_a kindness_n psal_n 103.17_o 18._o howbeit_o it_o be_v to_o the_o penitent_a only_o not_o to_o the_o obstinate_a the_o prophet_n say_v the_o mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v from_o everlasting_a to_o everlasting_a and_o his_o righteousness_n unto_o child_n child_n to_o such_o as_o keep_v his_o covenant_n and_o to_o those_o that_o remember_v his_o commandment_n to_o do_v they_o where_o we_o see_v the_o scripture_n make_v a_o difference_n and_o division_n between_o man_n and_o man_n and_o give_v to_o every_o one_o his_o portion_n so_o that_o albeit_o he_o be_v merciful_a yet_o it_o be_v to_o those_o only_a that_o keep_v his_o commandment_n for_o although_o all_o be_v sinner_n and_o thereby_o seek_v to_o creep_v away_o close_o that_o way_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o dark_a that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v espy_v yet_o we_o must_v know_v this_o that_o some_o be_v repentant_a sinner_n for_o who_o there_o be_v mercy_n in_o store_n some_o be_v obstinate_a sinner_n the_o scripture_n have_v no_o mercy_n for_o they_o but_o terror_n &_o threaten_n and_o judgement_n and_o punishment_n because_o upon_o such_o wicked_a he_o will_v rain_v snare_n fire_n and_o brimstone_n and_o a_o horrible_a tempest_n this_o shall_v be_v the_o portion_n of_o their_o cup_n for_o the_o righteous_a lord_n love_v righteousness_n his_o countenance_n do_v behold_v the_o upright_o psal_n 11.6_o 7._o now_o such_o as_o continue_v in_o the_o course_n of_o their_o sin_n be_v ready_a to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v merciful_a but_o they_o believe_v not_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o be_v merciful_a only_o unto_o such_o as_o repent_v they_o persuade_v themselves_o false_o that_o they_o may_v run_v on_o in_o evil_a way_n and_o yet_o find_v mercy_n at_o the_o latter_a end_n which_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o these_o man_n ask_v shall_v we_o not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v true_a whereas_o they_o believe_v one_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o they_o call_v into_o question_n another_o part_n they_o lay_v hold_v on_o his_o promise_n but_o they_o stop_v their_o ear_n against_o his_o judgement_n nay_o they_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o believe_v the_o promise_n aright_o neither_o will_v learn_v to_o who_o they_o be_v deliver_v &_o in_o who_o they_o shall_v be_v verify_v which_o savour_v altogether_o of_o infidelity_n and_o unbelief_n beside_o as_o they_o derogate_v from_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o they_o deny_v god_n after_o a_o sort_n and_o turn_v he_o into_o a_o lie_n &_o make_v he_o a_o idol_n to_o stand_v still_o and_o do_v nothing_o for_o to_o imagine_v in_o our_o heart_n a_o god_n whole_o compact_v of_o mercy_n that_o see_v sin_n but_o will_v not_o punish_v it_o that_o know_v who_o sin_v but_o will_v let_v he_o alone_o be_v to_o deny_v the_o true_a god_n who_o as_o he_o be_v merciful_a so_o he_o be_v also_o just_a this_o the_o prophet_n nahum_n testify_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o prophecy_n the_o lord_n be_v jealous_a 3_o ●●m_fw-la 1_o 2_o 3_o and_o the_o lord_n revenge_v the_o lord_n revenge_v and_o be_v furious_a the_o lord_n will_v take_v vengeance_n on_o his_o adversary_n and_o reserve_v wrath_n for_o his_o enemy_n the_o lord_n be_v slow_a to_o anger_n &_o great_a in_o power_n and_o will_v not_o at_o all_o acquit_v the_o wicked_a etc._n etc._n and_o hereunto_o accord_v the_o description_n of_o he_o exod._n 34_o 6_o 7._o the_o lord_n god_n merciful_a and_o gracious_a long_o suffer_v &_o abundant_a in_o goodness_n and_o truth_n keep_v mercy_n for_o thousand_o forgive_a sin_n and_o that_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n clear_v the_o guilty_a visit_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n and_o upon_o the_o child_n child_n unto_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n such_o then_o as_o think_v they_o may_v proceed_v and_o go_v forward_o in_o their_o transgression_n without_o controlment_n or_o punishment_n because_o god_n be_v a_o merciful_a god_n do_v utter_o deceive_v themselves_o &_o make_v a_o snare_n to_o entrap_v their_o own_o soul_n the_o wise_a man_n say_v that_o to_o justify_v the_o wicked_a and_o to_o condemn_v the_o innocent_a be_v both_o of_o they_o a_o abomination_n unto_o the_o lord_n prou._n 17_o 15._o if_o then_o he_o hate_v it_o in_o all_o the_o son_n of_o man_n how_o shall_v we_o imagine_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v do_v or_o can_v do_v either_o of_o they_o let_v we_o therefore_o so_o conceive_v of_o god_n as_o he_o have_v teach_v we_o in_o his_o holy_a word_n let_v we_o not_o make_v a_o counterfeit_a god_n nor_o set_v up_o a_o idol_n in_o our_o heart_n for_o he_o will_v be_v serve_v no_o therwise_o then_o he_o have_v appoint_v to_o conclude_v we_o must_v know_v that_o whosoever_o deni_v 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o threaten_n denounce_v in_o the_o word_n deny_v a_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o he_o make_v god_n a_o liar_n who_o will_v as_o well_o execute_v his_o judgement_n as_o perform_v his_o promise_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v faithful_a in_o both_o and_o whosoever_o imagine_v that_o god_n be_v only_o merciful_a &_o consequent_o deni_v his_o justice_n have_v not_o the_o true_a god_n for_o his_o god_n but_o commit_v horrible_a idolatry_n in_o conceive_v wrongful_o of_o his_o majesty_n use_v 4_o four_o see_v such_o damage_n and_o injury_n as_o be_v offer_v to_o our_o brethren_n do_v reach_n to_o god_n &_o be_v condemn_v as_o sin_n against_o he_o it_o shall_v teach_v we_o to_o look_v to_o our_o own_o way_n to_o practice_v justice_n and_o equity_n towards_o they_o &_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o all_o fraud_n forgery_n falsehood_n &_o oppression_n whatsoever_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o will_v take_v a_o account_n of_o we_o and_o bring_v we_o unto_o a_o
break_v their_o bone_n and_o chap_v they_o in_o piece_n as_o for_o the_o pot_n and_o as_o flesh_n within_o the_o caldron_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n when_o a_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n shall_v come_v such_o shall_v be_v cast_v into_o hell_n as_o be_v covetous_a and_o have_v not_o give_v of_o their_o own_o who_o have_v see_v the_o naked_a and_o not_o clothe_v they_o the_o hungry_a and_o have_v not_o feed_v they_o the_o thirsty_a and_o have_v not_o give_v they_o drink_v the_o sick_a and_o have_v not_o visit_v they_o how_o much_o more_o shall_v they_o be_v condemn_v that_o behold_v their_o brethren_n clothe_v and_o take_v away_o their_o garment_n that_o see_v they_o to_o have_v meat_n and_o drink_n and_o spoil_v they_o of_o it_o the_o example_n of_o the_o rich_a man_n teach_v this_o luke_n 16.23_o he_o take_v nothing_o from_o lazarus_n he_o rob_v he_o not_o of_o his_o rag_n he_o take_v not_o from_o he_o a_o crumb_n of_o bread_n or_o a_o drop_n of_o water_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v account_v cruel_a and_o unmerciful_a and_o be_v cast_v into_o torment_n this_o man_n shall_v rise_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n &_o condemn_v many_o among_o we_o who_o not_o only_o do_v no_o good_a but_o much_o harm_n and_o exercise_v cruelty_n and_o oppression_n over_o the_o poor_a that_o dare_v not_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n against_o us._n every_o tree_n that_o bring_v not_o forth_o good_a fruit_n shall_v be_v hew_v down_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n matth._n 3.10_o and_o not_o that_o tree_n only_o that_o bring_v forth_o evil_a fruit_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o it_o be_v say_v by_o elihu_n in_o the_o book_n of_o job_n cha_n 34.28_o they_o have_v cause_v the_o cry_n of_o the_o poor_a to_o come_v before_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o have_v hear_v the_o cry_n of_o the_o afflict_a reproof_n the_o three_o reproof_n three_o it_o reprove_v the_o poor_a that_o steal_n from_o the_o rich_a and_o think_v they_o may_v do_v it_o lawful_o and_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o restore_v what_o they_o have_v take_v poverty_n how_o great_a soever_o it_o be_v be_v no_o privilege_n or_o protection_n to_o take_v one_o sheep_n or_o lamb_n out_o of_o the_o flock_n of_o job_n that_o be_v so_o rich_a and_o have_v so_o many_o or_o one_o lock_n &_o handful_n of_o wool_n from_o the_o wealthy_a cloathier_n or_o one_o pound_n or_o penny_n out_o of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o best_a moneyed_a merchant_n or_o one_o remnant_n of_o cloth_n or_o parcel_n of_o ware_n out_o of_o the_o shop_n of_o the_o store_a tradesman_n in_o time_n of_o dearth_n and_o famine_n when_o it_o go_v hard_o with_o the_o mean_a sort_n they_o think_v they_o have_v a_o warrant_n to_o shift_v for_o themselves_o howsoever_o they_o can_v &_o to_o get_v for_o themselves_o whatsoever_o they_o be_v able_a but_o the_o law_n of_o god_n serve_v as_o a_o bridle_n to_o restrain_v all_o person_n both_o rich_a and_o poor_a both_o high_a and_o low_a in_o time_n of_o plenty_n and_o scarcity_n 20.15_o exod._n 20.15_o thou_o shall_v not_o steal_v when_o the_o lord_n forbid_v theft_n general_o will_v thou_o mince_v it_o and_o distinguish_v where_o he_o do_v not_o distinguish_v 6.11_o matth._n 6.11_o &_o say_v i_o will_v steal_v in_o time_n of_o need_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o give_v we_o our_o daily_a bread_n and_o not_o to_o take_v from_o other_o their_o bread_n what_o need_v the_o wise_a agar_n mention_v in_o the_o proverbe_n ●●_o prou_z 3_o ●●_o to_o pray_v unto_o god_n not_o to_o give_v he_o poverty_n if_o he_o may_v lawful_o relieve_v himself_o so_o easy_o by_o the_o store_n and_o substance_n of_o other_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n byr_o some_o will_v object_v the_o word_n of_o solomon_n object_n prou._n 6.30_o 30._o prou._n 6_o 30._o man_n do_v not_o despise_v a_o thief_n if_o he_o steal_v to_o satisfy_v his_o soul_n when_o he_o be_v hungry_a to_o this_o i_o answer_v answer_v that_o the_o wise_a man_n speak_v not_o simple_o but_o comparative_o for_o he_o compare_v two_o sin_n together_o adultery_n and_o theft_n the_o great_a with_o the_o lesser_a it_o be_v a_o great_a shame_n to_o take_v away_o other_o man_n good_n from_o they_o howbeit_o theft_n be_v not_o so_o foul_a a_o fact_n and_o fault_n as_o to_o defile_v another_o man_n wife_n for_o the_o thief_n may_v make_v restitution_n and_o thereby_o after_o a_o sort_n put_v away_o his_o discredit_n whereas_o the_o adulterer_n can_v make_v amends_n nor_o blot_v out_o the_o reproach_n neither_o will_v the_o husband_n of_o the_o whorish_a woman_n be_v reconcile_v or_o forget_v the_o wrong_n offer_v unto_o he_o true_a it_o be_v he_o that_o do_v steal_v to_o preserve_v life_n be_v to_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n exod._n 22.1_o for_o he_o be_v to_o make_v restitution_n or_o to_o be_v sell_v as_o a_o bondman_n but_o the_o adulterer_n and_o the_o adulteress_n be_v to_o die_v the_o death_n the_o purpose_n of_o solomon_n therefore_o be_v not_o to_o defend_v the_o thief_n or_o to_o excuse_v the_o theft_n or_o to_o abrogate_v the_o law_n or_o to_o plead_v for_o malefactor_n or_o to_o open_v a_o gap_n to_o the_o commit_n of_o evil_n 24_o prou._n 23_o 24_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o say_v afterward_o whosoever_o be_v partner_n with_o a_o thief_n hate_v his_o own_o soul_n and_o paul_n teach_v that_o thief_n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 6._o and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o exhort_v that_o he_o which_o have_v steal_v shall_v steal_v no_o more_o ephe._n 4._o nevertheless_o albeit_o theft_n be_v a_o foul_a sin_n in_o itself_o and_o exclude_v from_o everlasting_a life_n yet_o in_o comparison_n of_o a_o great_a and_o foul_a sin_n it_o do_v not_o appear_v and_o show_v itself_o so_o filthy_a so_o the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n chap._n 16._o say_v that_o the_o sodomite_n be_v better_a than_o the_o people_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o by_o their_o great_a ungodliness_n justify_v they_o not_o that_o he_o exempt_v they_o from_o blame_n but_o because_o the_o other_o be_v worse_a and_o worthy_a of_o great_a blame_n the_o objection_n be_v thus_o answer_v and_o the_o place_n clear_v we_o return_v to_o the_o former_a point_n and_o conclude_v that_o no_o pretence_n of_o poverty_n or_o allegation_n of_o necessity_n can_v excuse_v theft_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o law_n of_o god_n stand_v evermore_o in_o his_o full_a force_n the_o scripture_n charge_v we_o to_o get_v our_o live_n with_o the_o labour_n of_o our_o hand_n and_o to_o eat_v our_o own_o bread_n in_o the_o sweat_n of_o our_o brow_n to_o ask_v our_o food_n of_o god_n and_o to_o depend_v upon_o his_o providence_n and_o rather_o to_o perish_v for_o hunger_n then_o to_o rob_v our_o brother_n and_o offend_v against_o god_n moreover_o our_o saviour_n set_v it_o down_o as_o a_o certain_a rule_n to_o guide_v we_o in_o our_o deal_n one_o with_o another_o matth._n 7.12_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o you_o will_v that_o man_n shall_v do_v to_o you_o do_v you_o even_o so_o to_o they_o for_o this_o be_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n if_o then_o be_v rich_a we_o will_v not_o have_v the_o poor_a steal_n from_o we_o we_o ourselves_o be_v poor_a ought_v not_o to_o deceive_v and_o defraud_v the_o rich_a ●●p●oofe_n ●●e_z four_o ●●p●oofe_n four_o it_o convince_v many_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o slander_v we_o and_o bring_v up_o a_o false_a report_n of_o our_o doctrine_n and_o profession_n who_o teach_v and_o publish_v to_o the_o view_n of_o the_o world_n that_o we_o require_v not_o of_o any_o person_n to_o make_v real_a restitution_n of_o good_n wrongful_o get_v this_o be_v a_o notorious_a and_o notable_a slander_n and_o testify_v how_o much_o destitute_a they_o be_v of_o true_a accusation_n when_o they_o be_v compel_v to_o make_v such_o open_a and_o odious_a lie_n against_o us._n we_o require_v restitution_n to_o be_v actual_o make_v as_o well_o as_o they_o we_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v no_o repentance_n nor_o forgiveness_n without_o it_o indeed_o we_o can_v make_v amends_n for_o our_o sin_n to_o god_n that_o be_v do_v only_o by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n ●9_n joh._n 2.2_o and_o ●9_n so_o then_o our_o doctrine_n be_v plain_a and_o evident_a their_o mouth_n be_v stop_v and_o they_o be_v convince_v to_o be_v liar_n as_o in_o this_o so_o in_o many_o other_o point_n of_o great_a importance_n and_o therefore_o they_o do_v we_o wrong_v which_o affirm_v that_o we_o hold_v that_o doer_n of_o wrong_n shall_v not_o restore_v ●●proofe_n ●he_n five_o ●●proofe_n last_o such_o be_v reproove_v also_o as_o get_v and_o gather_v into_o their_o hand_n other_o man_n good_n by_o flattery_n &_o fair_a promise_n to_o make_v restitution_n and_o then_o
and_o body_n if_o this_o be_v always_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o restrain_v our_o heart_n from_o covet_v our_o eye_n from_o desire_v our_o hand_n from_o handle_v and_o our_o house_n from_o hold_v other_o man_n substance_n lest_o while_o we_o catch_v after_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o our_o neighbour_n we_o lose_v for_o ever_o that_o which_o be_v our_o own_o use_v 3_o three_o it_o serve_v to_o admonish_v all_o that_o possess_v any_o thing_n wrongful_o to_o restore_v it_o again_o according_o there_o can_v be_v no_o excuse_n to_o such_o as_o hold_v fast_o what_o they_o have_v once_o get_v they_o be_v much_o worse_a than_o judas_n and_o come_v far_o behind_o he_o he_o come_v near_a to_o repentance_n than_o they_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o go_v not_o beyond_o the_o reprobate_n nay_o they_o come_v far_o short_a of_o they_o for_o when_o he_o feel_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o the_o horror_n of_o his_o conscience_n he_o bring_v back_o again_o the_o thirty_o penny_n which_o he_o have_v take_v of_o the_o pharisy_n to_o betray_v his_o master_n and_o cast_v they_o down_o in_o the_o temple_n this_o example_n will_v be_v a_o witness_n against_o these_o man_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o be_v sufficient_a to_o condemn_v they_o true_a it_o be_v satan_n will_v move_v we_o and_o our_o own_o nature_n will_v persuade_v we_o that_o there_o be_v profit_n in_o keep_v and_o no_o such_o danger_n in_o retain_v other_o man_n good_n but_o rather_o that_o it_o may_v bring_v hurt_v to_o our_o substance_n shame_n to_o our_o person_n and_o reproach_n to_o our_o name_n to_o restore_v the_o riches_n of_o iniquity_n and_o so_o to_o make_v our_o fault_n public_o know_v but_o we_o must_v not_o hearken_v to_o such_o evil_a persuasion_n of_o a_o corrupt_a counsellor_n that_o never_o give_v good_a and_o wholesome_a counsel_n wherefore_o the_o question_n may_v be_v ask_v whether_o restitution_n objection_n 1_o be_v necessary_a to_o true_a repentance_n so_o as_o without_o it_o we_o can_v repent_v at_o all_o i_o answer_v answer_v it_o be_v necessary_a as_o we_o show_v before_o in_o the_o example_n of_o zacheus_n luke_n 19_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o common_a but_o a_o corrupt_a custom_n and_o practice_n of_o such_o as_o in_o death_n seem_v devout_o to_o bequeath_v their_o soul_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n &_o their_o evil_n get_v good_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o heir_n child_n and_o friend_n without_o restitution_n it_o be_v usual_a with_o most_o man_n when_o they_o be_v to_o go_v the_o way_n of_o all_o flesh_n to_o make_v show_n of_o repentance_n of_o forsake_v their_o evil_a way_n and_o turn_n unto_o god_n but_o this_o repentance_n be_v no_o repentance_n so_o long_o as_o the_o thing_n of_o our_o neighbour_n remain_v in_o our_o house_n no_o man_n can_v give_v any_o legacy_n or_o show_v any_o liberality_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o his_o own_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o have_v no_o right_a unto_o it_o if_o he_o shall_v give_v it_o unto_o the_o poor_a it_o be_v no_o sacrifice_n that_o god_n accept_v it_o may_v do_v some_o good_a to_o the_o receiver_n but_o it_o can_v bring_v none_o at_o all_o to_o the_o giver_n indeed_o 13.16_o heb._n 13.16_o we_o be_v bid_v to_o give_v alm_n to_o the_o poor_a that_o they_o may_v receive_v we_o into_o the_o heavenly_a habitation_n luke_n 16.9_o but_o we_o must_v not_o be_v liberal_a of_o other_o man_n good_n but_o of_o our_o own_o neither_o open_v other_o man_n hand_n and_o shut_v our_o own_o neither_o bestow_v other_o man_n but_o restore_v they_o just_o and_o true_o beside_o this_o bring_v a_o curse_n upon_o the_o residue_n of_o our_o good_n &_o cause_v god_n to_o blow_v upon_o they_o so_o that_o albeit_o we_o leave_v they_o to_o our_o heir_n yet_o they_o seldom_o enrich_v our_o posterity_n but_o it_o may_v far_o be_v say_v what_o if_o a_o man_n objection_n 2_o be_v not_o able_a to_o restore_v he_o may_v peradventure_o have_v good_a will_n but_o no_o ability_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o poverty_n i_o answer_v answer_v where_o the_o deed_n can_v be_v if_o there_o be_v a_o willing_a mind_n god_n accept_v it_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 8.12_o in_o this_o case_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o acknowledge_v our_o fault_n to_o god_n &_o withal_o to_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o he_o who_o we_o have_v offend_v and_o make_v a_o covenant_n with_o god_n with_o our_o own_o heart_n and_o with_o our_o brother_n to_o make_v actual_a restitution_n whensoever_o god_n in_o mercy_n shall_v give_v we_o sufficient_a to_o do_v it_o let_v our_o promise_n be_v join_v with_o a_o full_a purpose_n to_o do_v it_o for_o god_n be_v not_o mock_v or_o deceive_v we_o may_v deceive_v our_o neighbour_n and_o our_o own_o heart_n but_o we_o can_v never_o deceive_v the_o almighty_a who_o search_v the_o heart_n &_o the_o imagination_n of_o all_o thought_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n poverty_n may_v be_v some_o dispensation_n because_o where_o there_o be_v nothing_o the_o king_n lose_v his_o right_n and_o necessity_n have_v no_o law_n as_o common_o we_o say_v in_o our_o common_a proverb_n but_o although_o there_o can_v be_v a_o real_a restore_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o hearty_a desire_n which_o we_o may_v assure_v ourselves_o god_n in_o mercy_n will_v accept_v re●●●●●tion_n twofold_a re●●●●●tion_n for_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a restore_n and_o both_o well_o please_v to_o god_n the_o one_o actual_a the_o other_o mental_a the_o actual_a require_v of_o such_o as_o be_v able_a when_o we_o return_v back_o willing_o whatsoever_o we_o have_v take_v away_o unjust_o the_o mental_a be_v only_o in_o purpose_n and_o desire_v of_o the_o mind_n when_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v no_o more_o and_o to_o go_v no_o further_o which_o be_v accept_v of_o they_o that_o be_v poor_a and_o be_v sorry_a that_o they_o have_v it_o not_o in_o their_o hand_n to_o give_v to_o the_o owner_n which_o they_o have_v take_v away_o again_o it_o will_v objection_n 3_o be_v say_v and_o pretend_a if_o i_o must_v of_o necessity_n restore_v it_o will_v undo_v i_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o i_o be_o worth_a all_o that_o i_o have_v will_v do_v no_o more_o than_o pay_v it_o i_o answer_v answer_n answer_n the_o contrary_a will_n rather_o undo_v thou_o to_o restore_v steal_v good_n will_v undo_v no_o man_n it_o rather_o bring_v a_o blessing_n with_o it_o for_o take_v this_o for_o a_o certain_a truth_n &_o set_v it_o down_o as_o a_o undoubted_a rule_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v undo_v by_o yield_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o to_o restore_v be_v god_n ordinance_n &_o appointment_n &_o therefore_o none_o shall_v undo_v himself_o by_o follow_v of_o it_o this_o then_o proper_o be_v no_o loss_n but_o gain_n and_o albeit_o we_o depart_v with_o somewhat_o yet_o in_o the_o end_n it_o shall_v bring_v more_o with_o it_o forasmuch_o as_o god_n be_v able_a to_o bless_v our_o store_n and_o to_o give_v we_o more_o than_o that_o when_o amaziah_n shall_v send_v back_o his_o hire_a soldier_n at_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n who_o will_v not_o give_v a_o blessing_n by_o they_o because_o god_n be_v not_o with_o they_o he_o will_v not_o give_v victory_n by_o they_o and_o he_o seem_v unwilling_a to_o do_v it_o in_o regard_n he_o have_v pay_v a_o hundred_o talent_n before_o hand_n to_o have_v their_o help_n the_o man_n of_o god_n answer_v the_o lord_n be_v able_a to_o give_v thou_o more_o than_o this_o show_v thereby_o 25.9_o chron._n 25.9_o that_o if_o we_o depend_v upon_o he_o we_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o be_v trouble_v in_o worldly_a thing_n if_o we_o leave_v ourselves_o never_o a_o penny_n let_v we_o not_o despair_n but_o trust_v in_o god_n providence_n who_o will_v supply_v our_o necessity_n and_o not_o suffer_v we_o to_o want_v any_o good_a last_o it_o will_v be_v object_v what_o objection_n 4_o if_o the_o party_n be_v dead_a how_o can_v we_o possible_o restore_v any_o thing_n to_o they_o may_v we_o not_o in_o this_o case_n keep_v it_o to_o ourselves_o i_o answer_v if_o the_o owner_n be_v dead_a answer_n answer_n restore_v it_o to_o his_o heir_n even_o to_o such_o first_o as_o be_v near_o of_o kin_n and_o if_o he_o have_v none_o such_o to_o such_o as_o be_v far_o off_o if_o there_o be_v none_o either_o near_o or_o far_o off_o we_o must_v restore_v it_o to_o god_n that_o be_v to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o service_n of_o god_n or_o to_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o poor_a bestow_v it_o upon_o godly_a use_n but_o to_o ourselves_o we_o may_v not_o keep_v it_o god_n will_v not_o have_v the_o priest_n that_o serve_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n &_o minister_v at_o the_o
evident_a first_o reason_n 1_o they_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o god_n send_v out_o of_o he_o to_o do_v his_o message_n and_o to_o execute_v his_o will_n and_o to_o speak_v in_o his_o name_n and_o to_o deliver_v that_o which_o he_o shall_v put_v into_o their_o mouth_n and_o to_o discharge_v the_o commission_n that_o he_o have_v give_v unto_o they_o after_o that_o god_n have_v make_v a_o covenant_n with_o levi_n so_o that_o the_o law_n of_o truth_n be_v in_o his_o mouth_n and_o he_o turn_v away_o many_o from_o iniquity_n he_o set_v down_o this_o as_o a_o rule_n mal._n 2_o verse_n 7._o the_o priest_n lip_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n and_o they_o shall_v seek_v the_o law_n at_o his_o mouth_n for_o he_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n to_o this_o purpose_n paul_n speak_v both_o touch_v himself_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o minister_n 2_o cor._n 5_o 20._o now_o than_o we_o be_v ambassador_n for_o christ_n as_o though_o god_n do_v beseech_v you_o by_o we_o we_o pray_v you_o in_o christ_n stead_n to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n if_o then_o the_o messenger_n be_v to_o be_v respect_v as_o he_o that_o send_v he_o the_o minister_n be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o represent_v the_o person_n of_o god_n in_o who_o name_n he_o speak_v second_o it_o please_v god_n to_o work_v salvation_n reason_n 2_o in_o his_o people_n by_o they_o and_o their_o ministry_n for_o as_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n so_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v worker_n together_o with_o god_n indeed_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o he_o be_v able_a and_o sufficient_a of_o himself_o to_o save_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n without_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n as_o he_o create_v they_o without_o the_o help_n of_o man_n nevertheless_o he_o will_v use_v their_o ministry_n at_o his_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n and_o he_o will_v convey_v his_o treasure_n in_o earthen_a vessel_n that_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o power_n may_v be_v of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o us._n not_o that_o he_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o any_o help_n or_o can_v not_o attain_v to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o purpose_n without_o our_o labour_n for_o who_o be_v we_o that_o can_v add_v any_o thing_n to_o his_o perfection_n but_o he_o do_v it_o for_o our_o own_o good_a and_o to_o manifest_v his_o great_a love_n and_o mercy_n towards_o us._n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2_o cor._n 6.1_o we_o then_o as_o worker_n together_o with_o he_o beseech_v you_o also_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a and_o in_o the_o former_a epistle_n say_v 9_o ●_o cor._n 3_o 9_o we_o be_v labourer_n together_o with_o god_n you_o be_v god_n husbandry_n you_o be_v god_n building_n see_v then_o the_o minister_n be_v worker_n together_o and_o labourer_n together_o with_o god_n so_o that_o they_o be_v the_o mean_n by_o who_o we_o believe_v god_n account_v that_o as_o do_v to_o himself_o which_o be_v do_v to_o they_o as_o we_o be_v to_o account_v that_o god_n do_v that_o unto_o we_o which_o they_o do_v be_v direct_v by_o his_o word_n reason_n 3_o three_o he_o account_v that_o which_o be_v do_v to_o any_o of_o his_o servant_n and_o child_n as_o do_v to_o himself_o whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o evil_a whether_o it_o be_v right_a or_o wrong_n forasmuch_o as_o christ_n and_o the_o faithful_a make_v one_o mystical_a body_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o they_o be_v the_o member_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n christ_n will_v acknowledge_v that_o to_o be_v do_v unto_o himself_o which_o be_v do_v to_o the_o least_o of_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o belong_v unto_o he_o matth._n 25.40_o in_o like_a manner_n when_o paul_n be_v go_v to_o damascus_n to_o bring_v they_o bind_v to_o jerusalem_n that_o call_v upon_o his_o name_n he_o call_v unto_o he_o from_o heaven_n 4._o act_n 9_o 4._o saul_n saul_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o christ_n jesus_n be_v touch_v in_o his_o member_n when_o any_o of_o they_o be_v trouble_v so_o that_o their_o persecution_n be_v his_o persecution_n &_o their_o affliction_n be_v his_o affliction_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n col._n 1.24_o i_o paul_n be_o make_v a_o minister_n who_o now_o rejoice_v in_o my_o suffering_n for_o you_o and_o fill_v up_o that_o which_o be_v behind_o of_o the_o affliction_n of_o christ_n in_o my_o flesh_n for_o his_o body_n sake_n which_o be_v the_o church_n the_o faithful_a be_v as_o part_n &_o member_n of_o christ_n body_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n ephes_n 5.30_o and_o he_o be_v the_o head_n over_o all_o thing_n ephe._n 1.22_o so_o that_o as_o the_o head_n have_v a_o feel_n of_o these_o thing_n that_o befall_v the_o body_n so_o be_v it_o with_o christ_n he_o do_v after_o a_o sort_n suffer_v with_o we_o and_o rejoice_v with_o us._n use_v 1_o the_o use_n therefore_o be_v to_o bestood_v upon_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o may_v be_v apply_v to_o our_o instruction_n without_o which_o the_o doctrine_n be_v as_o bread_n cast_v upon_o the_o water_n or_o as_o seed_v that_o rot_v in_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v come_v to_o nothing_o first_o we_o be_v direct_v hereby_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v our_o behaviour_n towards_o their_o person_n we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o do_v neither_o wrong_v they_o nor_o hurt_v they_o neither_o rise_v up_o against_o they_o consider_v that_o god_n will_v take_v their_o wrong_n and_o injury_n as_o do_v unto_o himself_o if_o a_o prince_n shall_v give_v we_o in_o charge_n to_o beware_v that_o we_o do_v not_o hurt_v some_o special_a servant_n of_o his_o house_n and_o shall_v add_v withal_o that_o he_o will_v account_v their_o wrong_n if_o any_o be_v offer_v as_o do_v in_o disgrace_n and_o despite_n to_o his_o person_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o every_o one_o will_v take_v diligent_a heed_n that_o he_o do_v not_o hurt_v they_o thus_o the_o case_n stand_v with_o every_o one_o of_o us._n the_o minister_n be_v god_n servant_n appoint_v to_o do_v his_o will_n and_o separate_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n and_o god_n have_v lay_v a_o charge_n upon_o man_n that_o they_o offer_v no_o injury_n nor_o indignity_n unto_o they_o if_o they_o do_v they_o touch_v the_o apple_n of_o his_o eye_n which_o be_v most_o tender_a zach._n 2.8_o and_o therefore_o they_o incur_v his_o wrath_n and_o heavy_a displeasure_n this_o be_v it_o the_o prophet_n teach_v psal_n 105.15_o he_o reproove_v king_n for_o their_o sake_n say_v touch_v not_o my_o anoint_v and_o do_v my_o prophet_n no_o harm_n they_o then_o shall_v not_o escape_v the_o revenge_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o set_v themselves_n against_o the_o servant_n of_o his_o house_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n that_o they_o deliver_v their_o word_n be_v mighty_a and_o shall_v prevail_v it_o be_v god_n word_n that_o they_o bring_v unto_o we_o and_o he_o will_v take_v their_o cause_n into_o his_o hand_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o they_o be_v above_o all_o other_o person_n and_o calling_n in_o the_o world_n subject_a to_o many_o and_o great_a abuse_n they_o be_v make_v a_o reproach_n to_o man_n and_o angel_n they_o endure_v the_o nip_v and_o quip_n of_o wicked_a man_n with_o silence_n and_o patience_n so_o that_o we_o may_v cry_v out_o with_o jeremie_n in_o the_o bitterness_n of_o our_o soul_n woe_n unto_o we_o 15.10_o jerr._n 15.10_o we_o be_v bear_v to_o be_v man_n of_o strife_n and_o man_n of_o contention_n to_o the_o whole_a earth_n but_o see_v god_n have_v a_o sight_n and_o sense_n of_o these_o unjust_a and_o injurious_a deal_n towards_o they_o and_o account_v they_o and_o accept_v they_o as_o do_v against_o himself_o we_o see_v it_o be_v no_o small_a sin_n to_o wound_v they_o with_o the_o tongue_n of_o malice_n to_o smite_v they_o with_o the_o fist_n of_o iniquity_n or_o to_o spurn_v and_o kick_v they_o with_o the_o heel_n of_o contempt_n and_o reproach_n it_o stir_v up_o david_n to_o show_v exemplary_a punishment_n upon_o the_o wretched_a and_o wicked_a ammonite_n that_o abuse_v gross_o and_o grievous_o his_o servant_n who_o he_o send_v among_o they_o for_o he_o put_v they_o under_o harrow_n and_o iron_n saw_n and_o so_o revenge_v thereby_o with_o rigour_n the_o disgrace_n bring_v upon_o they_o as_o if_o they_o have_v do_v it_o to_o his_o own_o person_n they_o can_v not_o more_o have_v offend_v he_o and_o provoke_v he_o to_o wrath_n if_o they_o have_v cut_v off_o his_o garment_n in_o the_o mid_n and_o shave_v off_o the_o one_o half_a of_o his_o beard_n 2_o sam._n 10.4_o and_o so_o do_v he_o all_o the_o villainy_n that_o may_v be_v this_o therefore_o give_v we_o a_o notable_a warning_n to_o beware_v that_o
upon_o the_o jew_n and_o think_v hardly_o of_o they_o because_o they_o crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n but_o if_o we_o will_v enter_v into_o ourselves_o and_o consider_v what_o we_o be_v we_o shall_v find_v our_o nature_n as_o bad_a as_o they_o our_o sin_n be_v they_o that_o crucify_v he_o they_o be_v the_o nail_n that_o do_v pierce_v his_o hand_n and_o foot_n and_o the_o spear_n that_o enter_v into_o his_o side_n and_o shed_v his_o blood_n zach._n 12_o 10._o use_v 2_o second_o this_o confirm_v we_o in_o a_o principle_n of_o our_o christian_a religion_n that_o remission_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n because_o the_o lord_n have_v lay_v upon_o he_o the_o iniquity_n of_o we_o all_o esay_n 53_o 6._o and_o to_o he_o give_v all_o the_o prophet_n witness_n that_o through_o his_o name_n all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v have_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n act_n 10_o 43._o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o in_o he_o we_o have_v redemption_n through_o his_o blood_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n eph._n 1_o 7._o be_v what_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v now_o then_o if_o we_o will_v know_v what_o this_o freedom_n and_o forgiveness_n be_v we_o must_v understand_v that_o it_o be_v a_o blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o his_o people_n procure_v by_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n whereby_o god_n esteem_v of_o sin_n as_o no_o sin_n or_o as_o not_o commit_v this_o be_v figure_v out_o by_o many_o borrow_a speech_n in_o the_o scripture_n as_o esay_n 44_o 22._o i_o will_v put_v away_o thy_o transgression_n as_o a_o cloud_n and_o chap._n 38_o 17._o he_o have_v cast_v they_o behind_o his_o back_n allude_v to_o the_o common_a practice_n of_o man_n who_o when_o they_o will_v not_o remember_v or_o not_o regard_v a_o thing_n do_v turn_v their_o back_n upon_o it_o and_o put_v it_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n likewise_o the_o prophet_n micah_n chap._n 7_o ver_fw-la 19_o he_o will_v cast_v all_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o people_n into_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o sea_n allude_v to_o pharaoh_n and_o his_o host_n that_o perish_a and_o be_v drown_v in_o the_o red_a sea_n the_o benefit_n of_o this_o be_v endless_a and_o uncountable_a the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n the_o redemption_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o reconciliation_n of_o our_o person_n into_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n be_v the_o most_o wonderful_a blessing_n that_o ever_o can_v come_v to_o mankind_n for_o every_o man_n that_o have_v his_o sin_n detain_v be_v more_o miserable_a and_o wretched_a than_o the_o most_o vile_a creature_n that_o ever_o be_v the_o dog_n the_o serpent_n the_o toad_n be_v not_o so_o base_a for_o when_o they_o die_v there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o all_o their_o woe_n and_o sorrow_n but_o when_o man_n die_v and_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n without_o this_o blessing_n then_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o his_o anguish_n first_o in_o soul_n until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n for_o evermore_o after_o the_o general_a resurrection_n this_o consideration_n cause_v the_o prophet_n to_o cry_v out_o psalm_n 32_o 1_o 2._o bless_a be_v he_o who_o transgression_n be_v forgive_v who_o sin_n be_v cover_v blessed_n be_v the_o man_n to_o who_o the_o lord_n impute_v not_o iniquity_n this_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o david_n this_o be_v the_o feeling_n that_o he_o have_v though_o otherwise_o he_o have_v the_o pleasure_n and_o royalty_n of_o a_o kingdom_n ask_v carnal_a and_o corrupt_a man_n who_o be_v bless_v and_o happy_a in_o this_o world_n some_o will_v say_v the_o rich_a man_n some_o the_o wise_a some_o the_o fortunate_a some_o the_o healthy_a some_o the_o honourable_a and_o some_o those_o that_o be_v in_o favour_n with_o prince_n or_o if_o they_o will_v not_o say_v so_o yet_o they_o show_v evident_o that_o they_o think_v so_o but_o this_o point_n be_v never_o think_v upon_o it_o be_v account_v but_o a_o common_a matter_n and_o therefore_o it_o never_o come_v into_o their_o mind_n or_o enter_v into_o their_o heart_n alas_o alas_o how_o many_o be_v there_o that_o do_v never_o right_o know_v what_o sin_n be_v what_o it_o work_v how_o it_o corrupt_v who_o it_o defile_v and_o whereunto_o it_o bring_v these_o be_v drowsy_a protestant_n of_o dead_a heart_n and_o almost_o desperate_a if_o we_o have_v the_o right_a knowledge_n of_o ourselves_o and_o the_o least_o feeling_n of_o sin_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o tip_n of_o our_o finger_n we_o will_v find_v our_o heart_n so_o foul_a and_o our_o estate_n so_o fearful_a and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n so_o bitter_a that_o if_o the_o gain_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v set_v before_o we_o on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o will_v choose_v the_o free_a forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n before_o ten_o thousand_o world_n and_o all_o the_o pomp_n of_o they_o so_o then_o we_o must_v hold_v that_o the_o redemption_n of_o our_o soul_n be_v a_o most_o dear_a and_o costly_a thing_n the_o dear_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n and_o of_o great_a value_n it_o cost_v the_o precious_a blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o least_o drop_n whereof_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o god_n be_v more_o worthy_a and_o of_o great_a merit_n than_o all_o the_o world_n the_o servant_n of_o david_n say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v worth_a ten_o thousand_o of_o we_o 3._o 2_o sam._n 18_o 3._o so_o we_o may_v say_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o he_o be_v more_o of_o worth_n they_o ten_o thousand_o of_o we_o and_o yet_o he_o account_v not_o his_o own_o life_n to_o be_v dear_a and_o precious_a unto_o he_o but_o he_o be_v content_a to_o lay_v it_o down_o for_o our_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o paul_n say_v to_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n act_v 20_o ver_fw-la 28._o that_o god_n redeem_v to_o himself_o a_o church_n by_o his_o own_o blood_n his_o sacrifice_n be_v propitiatory_a and_o sufficient_a to_o purge_v our_o sin_n and_o to_o make_v we_o clean_o again_o three_o if_o we_o will_v have_v any_o comfort_n that_o use_v 3_o our_o sin_n be_v wash_v away_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n whereby_o the_o atonement_n be_v make_v and_o we_o reconcile_v to_o god_n the_o father_n we_o must_v leave_v they_o and_o forsake_v they_o and_o lead_v a_o holy_a and_o godly_a life_n the_o apostle_n peter_n teach_v this_o point_n and_o enforce_v this_o duty_n upon_o we_o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n 1_o pet._n 4_o ver_fw-la 1_o 2._o forasmuch_o as_o christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o we_o in_o the_o flesh_n arm_n yourselves_o likewise_o with_o the_o same_o mind_n for_o he_o that_o have_v suffer_v in_o the_o flesh_n have_v cease_v from_o sin_n that_o he_o no_o long_o shall_v live_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o time_n in_o the_o flesh_n to_o the_o lust_n of_o man_n but_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o the_o apostle_n john_n say_v if_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n 7._o ●n_n 1_o 7._o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o light_n we_o have_v fellowship_n one_o with_o another_o &_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n they_o than_o can_v assure_v themselves_o that_o christ_n die_v for_o they_o that_o make_v no_o account_n of_o commit_v sin_n that_o drink_n in_o iniquity_n as_o water_n and_o wallow_v in_o it_o as_o swine_n in_o the_o mire_n and_o cast_v out_o sin_n from_o their_o profane_a heart_n as_o the_o dog_n do_v his_o vomit_n let_v we_o mark_v this_o as_o a_o good_a note_n and_o set_v it_o down_o as_o it_o a_o rule_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o dead_a for_o we_o except_o we_o be_v dead_a to_o sin_n and_o he_o be_v not_o rise_v again_o for_o we_o except_o we_o be_v rise_v to_o newness_n of_o life_n indeed_o he_o die_v it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o what_o benefit_n have_v we_o by_o it_o if_o we_o feel_v not_o the_o power_n of_o it_o work_v effectual_o in_o we_o beside_o this_o be_v another_o principle_n which_o be_v sure_a than_o the_o heaven_n that_o we_o be_v not_o redeem_v except_o we_o be_v sanctify_v for_o be_v we_o so_o foolish_a to_o imagine_v that_o he_o will_v redeem_v we_o from_o sin_n that_o we_o shall_v commit_v sin_n afresh_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v serve_v sin_n again_o will_v any_o man_n ransom_n a_o prisoner_n and_o pay_v a_o great_a price_n for_o he_o that_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v free_v he_o shall_v by_o and_o by_o serve_v his_o enemy_n so_o do_v we_o deceive_v ourselves_o if_o we_o imagine_v that_o christ_n will_v pull_v we_o out_o of_o the_o snare_n and_o
weak_a man_n full_a of_o infirmity_n though_o otherwise_o godly_a and_o diligent_a in_o his_o office_n for_o when_o he_o see_v how_o only_o her_o lip_n move_v 14._o 1_o sam._n 1.13_o 14._o but_o her_o voice_n be_v not_o hear_v because_o she_o speak_v in_o her_o heart_n to_o god_n by_o prayer_n he_o think_v she_o have_v be_v drunken_a and_o he_o say_v unto_o she_o how_o long_o will_v thou_o be_v drunken_a put_v away_o thy_o wine_n from_o thou_o see_v how_o ready_a he_o be_v to_o judge_v amiss_o of_o her_o action_n and_o to_o call_v good_a evil_n this_o be_v also_o the_o sin_n of_o job_n wife_n and_o of_o his_o friend_n they_o think_v he_o to_o be_v a_o hollow_a hypocrite_n and_o a_o deep_a dissembler_n because_o they_o see_v he_o strange_o visit_v by_o so_o strange_a a_o visitation_n job_n 4.7_o thus_o do_v the_o wicked_a jew_n usurp_v authority_n over_o the_o gentile_n and_o censure_v they_o at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n they_o say_v unto_o they_o esay_n 65.5_o stand_v apart_o come_v not_o near_o i_o for_o i_o be_o holy_a than_o thou_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v grievous_a sinner_n themselves_o as_o a_o smoke_n in_o god_n eye_n and_o as_o fire_v that_o burn_v continual_o so_o when_o the_o apostle_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o begin_v to_o speak_v with_o other_o tongue_n as_o the_o spirit_n give_v they_o utterance_n other_o mock_v they_o and_o say_v they_o be_v full_a of_o new_a wine_n act_v 2.13_o this_o judgement_n be_v just_o condemn_v be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o love_n which_o do_v interpret_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o best_a part_n and_o be_v in_o nothing_o suspicious_a and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o judge_v wrongful_o corrupt_o and_o malicious_o of_o those_o godly_a action_n which_o we_o see_v the_o child_n of_o god_n to_o do_v and_o if_o it_o shall_v fall_v out_o at_o any_o time_n as_o it_o may_v fall_v out_o many_o time_n that_o we_o be_v lade_v with_o the_o burden_n of_o such_o surmise_n and_o sinister_a suspicion_n of_o hypocrisy_n and_o a_o double_a heart_n yet_o we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v daunt_v and_o dismay_v by_o they_o or_o to_o give_v over_o our_o hold_n in_o the_o faith_n but_o know_v assure_o that_o this_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n and_o therefore_o no_o strange_a matter_n be_v befall_v unto_o us._n the_o dear_a saint_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n have_v feel_v this_o evil_a and_o have_v have_v experience_n of_o this_o mischief_n of_o the_o tongue_n we_o must_v not_o look_v for_o a_o high_a estate_n or_o better_a condition_n than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v when_o he_o seek_v to_o destroy_v the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n and_o cast_v out_o devil_n by_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n they_o charge_v he_o to_o do_v it_o by_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n matth._n 12.24_o it_o be_v intolerable_a pride_n and_o presumption_n for_o the_o servant_n to_o climb_v high_a than_o his_o lord_n or_o the_o disciple_n to_o strive_v to_o be_v above_o his_o master_n the_o second_o kind_n of_o judge_v judgement_n ●●e_z second_o use_v of_o judgement_n be_v when_o man_n have_v commit_v evil_a thing_n which_o of_o themselves_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v condemn_v and_o we_o judge_v they_o that_o have_v so_o offend_v to_o be_v without_o all_o hope_n of_o repentance_n or_o recovery_n and_o to_o be_v cast_v off_o for_o ever_o to_o be_v out_o of_o god_n favour_n and_o to_o be_v reprobate_n this_o be_v not_o only_o to_o arrogate_v a_o mastership_n over_o they_o but_o to_o step_v up_o into_o the_o seat_n and_o secret_n of_o god_n for_o who_o have_v reveal_v that_o unto_o we_o or_o who_o have_v be_v of_o his_o counsel_n the_o thing_n reveal_v in_o the_o word_n belong_v unto_o we_o and_o to_o our_o child_n but_o secret_a thing_n to_o the_o lord_n deut._n 29.29_o that_o this_o judgement_n be_v altogether_o forbid_a may_v appear_v both_o by_o precept_n that_o restrain_v it_o &_o by_o example_n that_o condemn_v it_o evil_a man_n must_v be_v instruct_v with_o meekness_n not_o condemn_v with_o rigour_n and_o rashness_n prove_v if_o god_n peradventure_o will_v give_v they_o repentance_n to_o the_o acknowledge_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o that_o they_o may_v recover_v themselves_o out_o of_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v take_v captive_a by_o he_o to_o do_v his_o will_n 2_o tim._n 2.25_o 26._o likewise_o the_o apostle_n set_v down_o the_o like_a commandment_n 1_o cor._n 4.5_o judge_n nothing_o before_o the_o time_n until_o the_o lord_n come_v who_o both_o will_v bring_v to_o light_v the_o hide_a thing_n of_o darkness_n and_o will_v make_v manifest_a the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o then_o shall_v every_o man_n have_v praise_n of_o god_n let_v we_o to_o these_o precept_n add_v such_o example_n as_o we_o find_v in_o scripture_n and_o out_o of_o many_o select_a and_o sort_v out_o some_o few_o manasseh_n king_n of_o israel_n be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o memorable_a object_n of_o god_n mercy_n he_o be_v a_o sorcerer_n and_o conjurer_n a_o idolater_n and_o murderer_n he_o make_v his_o son_n pass_v through_o the_o fire_n he_o deal_v with_o a_o familiar_a spirit_n and_o use_v witchcraft_n he_o make_v judah_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n to_o err_v and_o to_o do_v worse_o than_o the_o heathen_a who_o the_o lord_n have_v destroy_v before_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n 2_o chro._n 33.6.9_o yet_o when_o he_o humble_v himself_o and_o pray_v unto_o god_n he_o be_v pardon_v marry_o magdalene_n be_v a_o woman_n defame_v and_o defile_v with_o much_o sin_n out_o of_o who_o be_v cast_v seven_o devil_n yet_o she_o be_v convert_v and_o accept_v paul_n acknowledge_v himself_o not_o worthy_a to_o be_v call_v a_o apostle_n or_o disciple_n of_o christ_n he_o have_v be_v a_o oppressor_n a_o blasphemer_n and_o a_o persecuter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yet_o he_o be_v receive_v to_o mercy_n because_o he_o do_v it_o ignorant_o through_o unbelief_n 1_o tim._n 1.13_o the_o jailer_n mention_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n deal_v very_o rough_o with_o paul_n and_o silas_n and_o cast_v they_o into_o the_o inner_a prison_n and_o make_v their_o foot_n fast_o in_o the_o stock_n but_o when_o god_n once_o touch_v his_o heart_n sudden_o he_o call_v for_o a_o light_n and_o come_v leap_v in_o and_o tremble_v say_v sir_n 16.30_o act_n 16.30_o what_o must_v i_o do_v to_o be_v save_v i_o will_v conclude_v this_o point_n with_o the_o example_n of_o the_o thief_n that_o be_v condemn_v for_o theft_n and_o crucify_v with_o christ_n he_o have_v spend_v all_o his_o day_n in_o his_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a course_n he_o be_v no_o better_a than_o his_o fellow_n they_o have_v one_o purse_n and_o determine_v to_o fill_v their_o house_n with_o spoil_n and_o privy_o lay_v wait_v for_o the_o innocent_a without_o cause_n and_o continue_v thus_o until_o the_o end_n of_o their_o life_n yet_o god_n in_o mercy_n look_v upon_o one_o of_o they_o and_o call_v he_o to_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n as_o it_o be_v at_o the_o last_o gasp_n and_o pull_v he_o as_o a_o brand_n out_o of_o the_o fire_n say_v unto_o he_o this_o day_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n luke_n 23.43_o a_o man_n will_v have_v think_v that_o these_o at_o least_o some_o of_o they_o have_v be_v desperate_a person_n forlorn_a man_n without_o hope_n of_o repentance_n or_o likelihood_n of_o salvation_n and_o yet_o behold_v how_o god_n that_o have_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n turn_v who_o he_o please_v into_o the_o right_a way_n and_o when_o it_o please_v he_o like_o the_o householder_n in_o the_o gospel_n in_o who_o call_v labourer_n into_o his_o vineyard_n at_o all_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n mat._n 20._o the_o meditation_n of_o these_o thing_n ought_v to_o stay_v we_o from_o corrupt_a judgement_n which_o argue_v that_o we_o be_v destitute_a of_o true_a love_n towards_o our_o brethren_n to_o guide_v we_o in_o all_o our_o deal_n with_o they_o the_o three_o kind_n of_o judgement_n judgement_n the_o three_o kind_n of_o judgement_n be_v occupy_v about_o thing_n indifferent_a the_o first_o be_v touch_v good_a thing_n the_o second_o touch_v evil_a thing_n the_o first_o be_v when_o good_a man_n be_v make_v hypocrite_n the_o second_o be_v when_o evil_a man_n be_v make_v reprobate_n the_o first_o be_v when_o good_a action_n be_v make_v bad_a the_o second_o when_o bad_a action_n be_v make_v worse_a than_o they_o be_v as_o if_o they_o separate_v and_o seclude_v from_o heaven_n the_o three_o be_v concern_v indifferent_a thing_n that_o in_o themselves_o and_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v neither_o good_a nor_o evil_a in_o this_o we_o offend_v when_o man_n do_v thing_n indifferent_a which_o be_v thing_n lawful_a may_v be_v do_v either_o in_o faith_n
to_o wit_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o as_o he_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n so_o he_o be_v the_o end_n to_o which_o all_o thing_n tend_v and_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v inasmuch_o as_o he_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n for_o himself_o so_o that_o we_o must_v conclude_v with_o the_o apostle_n of_o he_o and_o through_o he_o and_o for_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n to_o he_o be_v glory_n for_o ever_o amen_o rom._n 11_o 36._o let_v we_o know_v that_o as_o we_o be_v not_o to_o live_v unto_o ourselves_o so_o we_o shall_v not_o die_v unto_o ourselves_o we_o be_v not_o our_o own_o to_o do_v what_o we_o listen_v for_o that_o be_v to_o live_v to_o the_o flesh_n if_o we_o live_v we_o must_v live_v to_o the_o lord_n that_o when_o we_o die_v we_o may_v die_v to_o the_o lord_n let_v we_o consider_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o christ_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o work_n &_o conscience_n of_o other_o we_o shall_v stand_v to_o be_v judge_v at_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o this_o common_a judge_n &_o therefore_o ought_v not_o to_o judge_v one_o another_o let_v we_o not_o lay_v snare_n to_o entrap_v and_o stumble_a block_n to_o offend_v our_o brethren_n and_o bait_n to_o entangle_v they_o and_o hook_n to_o catch_v they_o that_o we_o may_v prey_v upon_o they_o for_o woe_n to_o that_o man_n by_o who_o the_o offence_n come_v 7._o ●th_n 18_o 7._o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o lay_v a_o stone_n in_o the_o way_n whereat_o the_o unwary_a passenger_n may_v stumble_v let_v we_o walk_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o love_n and_o take_v heed_n we_o hurt_v not_o our_o brethren_n for_o who_o christ_n die_v and_o as_o in_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n we_o favour_v and_o tender_o touch_v that_o part_n which_o be_v weak_a and_o if_o need_v require_v bind_v it_o up_o and_o heal_v it_o so_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n jesus_n that_o be_v the_o church_n we_o must_v love_v cherish_v and_o strengthen_v one_o another_o and_o do_v service_n one_o to_o another_o such_o then_o as_o grieve_v vex_v hurt_n and_o damnify_v one_o another_o be_v destitute_a of_o charity_n which_o be_v a_o band_n to_o knit_v we_o together_o let_v we_o not_o strive_v about_o thing_n indifferent_a that_o be_v neither_o good_a nor_o evil_a the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n do_v not_o stand_v in_o they_o neither_o do_v the_o do_v or_o not_o do_v of_o they_o simple_o please_v god_n neither_o do_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o they_o according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 8_o 8_o 9_o meat_n make_v we_o not_o acceptable_a to_o god_n for_o neither_o if_o we_o eat_v have_v we_o the_o more_o neither_o if_o we_o eat_v not_o have_v we_o the_o less_o but_o take_v heed_n lest_o by_o any_o mean_v this_o power_n of_o you_o be_v a_o occasion_n of_o fall_v to_o they_o that_o be_v weak_a and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n he_o say_v chap._n 14_o 17._o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o meat_n nor_o drink_v but_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o 1_o tim._n 4_o 8._o bodily_a exercise_n profit_v little_a but_o godliness_n be_v profitable_a to_o all_o thing_n etc._n etc._n to_o conclude_v let_v we_o do_v those_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o peace_n and_o beware_v of_o strife_n &_o contention_n if_o any_o man_n listen_v to_o contend_v about_o these_o thing_n we_o have_v no_o such_o custom_n neither_o the_o church_n of_o god_n let_v we_o join_v heart_n &_o hand_n together_o to_o edify_v the_o church_n as_o they_o that_o build_v a_o house_n do_v communicate_v their_o labour_n until_o they_o have_v finish_v and_o make_v a_o end_n of_o their_o work_n but_o some_o man_n may_v say_v objection_n be_v all_o manner_n of_o judgement_n unlawful_a or_o be_v a_o man_n in_o all_o case_n forbid_v to_o judge_v i_o answer_v answer_v no_o there_o be_v some_o judgement_n lawful_a and_o these_o both_o be_v public_a and_o private_a the_o first_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o magistrate_n who_o office_n be_v to_o try_v the_o life_n and_o action_n of_o man_n that_o they_o may_v punish_v offender_n and_o reward_v they_o that_o do_v well_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o sing_v both_o mercy_n and_o judgement_n 1._o psal_n 101_o 1._o they_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n in_o vain_a 3._o rom._n 13_o 3._o but_o be_v appoint_v as_o well_o for_o terror_n of_o evil_a doer_n as_o for_o the_o praise_n of_o they_o that_o do_v well_o the_o second_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o minister_n who_o in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o word_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n judge_v the_o action_n of_o his_o hearer_n reprove_v and_o condemn_v they_o for_o their_o sin_n thus_o the_o unbeliever_n be_v say_v to_o be_v judge_v 1_o cor._n 14_o 24._o if_o all_o pprophecy_n and_o there_o come_v in_o one_o that_o believe_v not_o or_o one_o unlearned_a he_o be_v convince_v of_o all_o he_o be_v judge_v of_o all_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o noah_n a_o preacher_n of_o righteousness_n be_v say_v to_o have_v condemn_v the_o old_a world_n hebr._n 11_o 7._o when_o the_o unbelieve_a jew_n hear_v peter_n preach_v unto_o they_o touch_v salvation_n through_o christ_n who_o they_o have_v crucify_v they_o be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o say_v to_o he_o &_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n 26._o act_n 2_o 37_o and_o 14_o 26._o man_n and_o brethren_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v fellix_fw-la the_o governor_n hear_v paul_n prophesy_v that_o be_v to_o reason_n of_o righteousness_n temperance_n and_o judgement_n to_o come_v tremble_v and_o be_v afraid_a to_o hear_v he_o any_o long_o be_v convince_v by_o the_o word_n and_o his_o own_o conscience_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v lively_a and_o mighty_a it_o pierce_v deep_a and_o enter_v into_o the_o thought_n discover_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v most_o secret_a the_o three_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o faithful_a brother_n exhort_v and_o admonish_v we_o for_o our_o good_a this_o be_v command_v in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n moses_n warn_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o hate_v our_o brother_n in_o our_o heart_n but_o plain_o reprove_v he_o and_o not_o suffer_v sin_n to_o dwell_v in_o he_o or_o to_o rest_v upon_o he_o or_o to_o prevail_v against_o he_o levit._n 19_o 17._o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o stir_v up_o one_o another_o to_o good_a thing_n when_o a_o house_n be_v to_o be_v rear_v &_o set_v up_o all_o the_o neighbour_n gather_v together_o and_o set_v to_o their_o hand_n to_o help_v it_o forward_o no_o man_n be_v idle_a but_o every_o one_o be_v busy_a some_o by_o lift_v some_o by_o carry_v other_o by_o order_v the_o whole_a business_n to_o finish_v the_o frame_n so_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v among_o we_o that_o have_v a_o better_a building_n in_o hand_n we_o be_v god_n building_n 1_o cor._n 3_o 9_o and_o god_n house_n heb._n 3_o 6._o if_o we_o hold_v fast_o that_o confidence_n and_o rejoice_v of_o hope_n unto_o the_o end_n and_o therefore_o as_o we_o have_v a_o great_a work_n in_o hand_n so_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v more_o faithful_a in_o it_o and_o more_o busy_a about_o it_o exhort_v one_o another_o while_n it_o be_v call_v to_o day_n lest_o any_o of_o we_o be_v harden_v through_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n heb._n 3_o 13._o and_o consider_v one_o another_o to_o provoke_v unto_o love_n &_o to_o good_a work_n not_o forsake_v the_o fellowship_n that_o we_o have_v among_o ourselves_o as_o the_o manner_n of_o some_o be_v and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o careful_a aught_o we_o to_o be_v hereof_o 25._o heb._n 10_o 25._o because_o we_o know_v the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o our_o account_n draw_v near_o and_o as_o we_o sit_v in_o judgement_n upon_o other_o by_o exhort_v of_o they_o so_o we_o do_v by_o threaten_v and_o reprove_v much_o more_o as_o occasion_n serve_v and_o need_n require_v thus_o do_v john_n the_o baptist_n call_v the_o pharisee_n &_o sadducee_n that_o come_v to_o his_o baptism_n a_o generation_n of_o viper_n 25._o math._n 3_o 7._o and_o 23_o 14_o 23_o 25._o so_o christ_n call_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n oftentimes_o hypocrite_n desire_v to_o do_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v see_v of_o man_n math._n 6_o devour_v widow_n house_n under_o a_o colour_n of_o long_a prayer_n tithing_n mint_n &_o cummin_n make_v clean_o the_o utter_a side_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o platter_n but_o within_o be_v full_a of_o bribery_n and_o excess_n mat._n 23_o 14_o 23_o 25._o thus_o he_o paint_v they_o out_o in_o their_o colour_n that_o other_o may_v beware_v of_o they_o and_o none_o be_v deceive_v by_o they_o so_o he_o call_v herod_n
of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o law_n mat._n 5.34_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o swear_v not_o at_o all_o neither_o by_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n if_o it_o be_v forbid_v to_o swear_v at_o all_o than_o it_o be_v make_v utter_o unlawful_a i_o answer_v ●wer_n ●wer_n the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o reproove_v the_o false_a interpretation_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n who_o wrest_v the_o law_n and_o restrain_v it_o contrary_n to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o lawgiver_n they_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o beware_v of_o perjury_n and_o swear_v false_o and_o that_o if_o so_o be_v man_n swear_v true_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o swear_v common_o as_o if_o god_n take_v no_o regard_n of_o our_o ordinary_a communication_n and_o of_o our_o common_a talk_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n elsewhere_o that_o of_o every_o idle_a word_n much_o more_o than_o of_o idle_a oath_n man_n shall_v give_v a_o account_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n matth._n 12.36_o his_o purpose_n be_v not_o to_o condemn_v the_o right_a use_n of_o a_o oath_n 13_o ●6_n 13_o which_o be_v express_o command_v of_o god_n in_o many_o place_n and_o practise_v by_o the_o patriarch_n gen._n 14._o by_o the_o prophet_n 1_o king_n 17.1_o by_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 15._o by_o the_o angel_n revel_v 10.6_o by_o the_o judge_n judg._n 15.12_o by_o the_o king_n 1._o sam._n 24._o and_o by_o the_o lord_n himself_o psal_n 110.4_o heb._n 6.17_o and_o therefore_o simple_o it_o be_v not_o a_o sin_n to_o swear_v if_o any_o reply_n in_o their_o name_n and_o behalf_n that_o once_o it_o be_v lawful_a but_o now_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o not_o in_o the_o new_a we_o must_v know_v that_o the_o prophet_n prophesy_v of_o these_o time_n of_o grace_n under_o the_o gospel_n declare_v that_o the_o church_n or_o christ_n shall_v swear_v by_o the_o lord_n esay_n 1●_n 1●_n jere._n 4.2_o and_o therefore_o he_o never_o whole_o for_o bad_a it_o who_o come_v not_o to_o destroy_v the_o law_n and_o abolish_v the_o prophet_n but_o to_o fulfil_v and_o perform_v the_o law_n matth._n 5.17_o moreover_o the_o pharisee_n that_o be_v the_o teacher_n of_o israel_n teach_v that_o it_o skill_v not_o though_o man_n swear_v vain_o by_o heaven_n by_o earth_n by_o the_o creature_n so_o long_o as_o they_o suppress_v the_o name_n of_o god_n wherefore_o christ_n the_o true_a interpreter_n of_o the_o law_n teach_v the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n against_o the_o three_o commandment_n not_o only_o to_o forswear_v but_o to_o swear_v vain_o and_o common_o by_o what_o name_n and_o in_o what_o manner_n soever_o it_o be_v yea_o albeit_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v not_o mention_v consider_v that_o he_o which_o swear_v by_o the_o altar_n swear_v by_o it_o 22._o matth._n 23.20_o 21_o 22._o and_o by_o all_o thing_n thereon_o he_o that_o swear_v by_o the_o temple_n swear_v by_o it_o and_o by_o he_o that_o dwell_v therein_o and_o he_o that_o swear_v by_o heaven_n swear_v by_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o by_o he_o that_o sit_v thereon_o this_o error_n of_o these_o pharisee_n be_v maintain_v or_o at_o the_o least_o practise_v common_o by_o the_o common_a sort_n they_o think_v they_o may_v swear_v as_o they_o listen_v so_o that_o they_o swear_v true_o and_o if_o they_o have_v truth_n on_o their_o side_n they_o take_v liberty_n to_o swear_v and_o swear_v again_o without_o controlment_n second_o they_o allege_v also_o the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n james_n chap._n 5.12_o object_n 2_o above_o all_o thing_n my_o brethren_n swear_v not_o neither_o by_o heaven_n neither_o by_o the_o earth_n neither_o by_o any_o other_o oath_n but_o let_v your_o yea_o be_v yea_o and_o your_o nay_o nay_o lest_o you_o fall_v into_o condemnation_n i_o answer_v answer_v we_o must_v not_o always_o take_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n general_o as_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v carry_v but_o limit_v they_o according_a to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n and_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o word_n the_o apostle_n say_v all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a for_o he_o 1_o cor._n 6.12_o but_o it_o must_v be_v restrain_v to_o thing_n indifferent_a not_o forbid_v in_o the_o law_n for_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v forbid_v be_v not_o lawful_a if_o then_o we_o will_v understand_v scripture_n aright_o and_o not_o wander_v from_o the_o sound_a interpretation_n of_o it_o we_o must_v seek_v and_o search_v out_o the_o sense_n according_a to_o the_o intent_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n otherwise_o not_o only_o infinite_a inconvenience_n but_o diverse_a absurdity_n impossibility_n heresy_n contradiction_n and_o impiety_n will_v follow_v as_o when_o christ_n say_v joh._n 10.8_o all_o that_o ever_o come_v before_o i_o be_v thief_n and_o robber_n etc._n etc._n shall_v we_o conclude_v from_o hence_o that_o moses_n esay_n jeremy_n john_n baptist_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n be_v no_o better_a than_o thief_n and_o robber_n because_o they_o go_v before_o christ_n in_o time_n no_o he_o point_v out_o such_o as_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o door_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o receive_v or_o show_v any_o other_o than_o himself_o so_o paul_n say_v he_o take_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o what_o then_o may_v he_o do_v what_o he_o listen_v may_v he_o be_v a_o idolater_n a_o adulterer_n a_o blasphemer_n and_o such_o like_a no_o but_o herein_o he_o prevent_v a_o objection_n and_o answer_v by_o supposition_n that_o albeit_o all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a yet_o he_o will_v not_o be_v bring_v under_o the_o power_n of_o any_o thing_n so_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v i_o be_o make_v all_o thing_n to_o all_o man_n 1_o cor._n 9.22_o do_v he_o hereby_o make_v himself_o a_o libertine_n or_o establish_v libertinism_n or_o purchase_v a_o protection_n for_o every_o man_n to_o do_v what_o seem_v good_a in_o his_o own_o eye_n not_o so_o but_o in_o matter_n that_o be_v indifferent_a which_o may_v be_v do_v or_o not_o do_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n he_o change_v himself_o into_o all_o fashion_n and_o apply_v himself_o to_o the_o condition_n of_o all_o that_o by_o all_o mean_v he_o may_v save_v some_o so_o in_o this_o place_n when_o the_o apostle_n say_v swear_v not_o at_o all_o we_o must_v not_o cleave_v servile_o to_o the_o letter_n nor_o stick_v to_o the_o bare_a word_n but_o know_v that_o the_o scripture_n stand_v in_o the_o right_a meaning_n so_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o servant_n be_v not_o different_a from_o the_o lord_n and_o master_n that_o send_v he_o to_o wit_n to_o condemn_v lightness_n in_o swear_v whereby_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v defile_v direct_o or_o indirect_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v account_v of_o all_o man_n most_o holy_a and_o use_v with_o the_o great_a respect_n and_o reverence_n that_o can_v be_v but_o in_o case_n of_o importance_n and_o necessity_n we_o have_v example_n beyond_o all_o exception_n of_o god_n himself_o of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n that_o have_v use_v a_o oath_n as_o we_o note_v before_o which_o can_v not_o have_v be_v if_o the_o use_n of_o a_o oath_n have_v general_o and_o utter_o be_v unlawful_a reproof_n the_o second_o reproof_n second_o to_o omit_v this_o sect_n and_o to_o proceed_v it_o reprove_v such_o as_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o person_n that_o be_v unfit_a and_o unmeet_a to_o take_v any_o oath_n for_o see_v a_o oath_n must_v be_v take_v up_o sober_o discreet_o and_o advise_o and_o only_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n when_o the_o truth_n can_v otherwise_o be_v decide_v it_o convince_v such_o of_o temerity_n and_o want_n of_o discretion_n that_o make_v no_o difference_n of_o who_o they_o take_v a_o oath_n the_o end_n of_o a_o oath_n ought_v to_o be_v to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n but_o the_o testimony_n of_o some_o be_v suspect_v and_o of_o other_o presume_v to_o be_v false_a many_o be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v as_o witness_n as_o child_n furious_a person_n drunkard_n common_a liar_n such_o who_o body_n be_v wither_v and_o consequent_o their_o memory_n decay_v such_o as_o be_v idiot_n and_o lunatike_n common_a swearer_n ruffian_n and_o such_o as_o be_v of_o evil_a report_n rogue_n and_o straggler_n that_o have_v nothing_o to_o lose_v nor_o no_o where_o to_o dwell_v infidel_n heretic_n and_o unbeliever_n all_o these_o be_v as_o it_o be_v bore_v in_o the_o ear_n or_o burn_v in_o the_o hand_n or_o brand_v in_o the_o forehead_n for_o unsufficient_a person_n because_o either_o they_o do_v not_o know_v the_o virtue_n and_o validity_n of_o a_o oath_n nor_o the_o difference_n and_o distinction_n of_o matter_n whereupon_o they_o be_v produce_v and_o which_o be_v to_o be_v decide_v or_o be_v accustom_v to_o evil_a may_v easy_o be_v
not_o clear_v the_o wicked_a although_o prince_n do_v not_o make_v statute_n against_o it_o yet_o the_o statute_n law_n of_o god_n have_v decree_v against_o it_o and_o condemn_v it_o &_o set_v a_o great_a penalty_n upon_o the_o breach_n of_o it_o we_o have_v sundry_a law_n that_o none_o abuse_v our_o name_n but_o we_o have_v none_o for_o the_o preservation_n of_o god_n name_n and_o therefore_o god_n will_v look_v to_o it_o and_o take_v order_n for_o it_o no_o commandment_n have_v have_v more_o visible_a judgment_n execute_v upon_o the_o breaker_n of_o it_o then_o this_o the_o plague_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o depart_v from_o his_o house_n that_o be_v a_o swearer_n one_o judgement_n or_o other_o shall_v overtake_v he_o and_o if_o he_o do_v escape_v the_o great_a torment_n be_v reserve_v for_o he_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v the_o prophet_n zachary_n 5.4_o zach._n 5.4_o tell_v we_o that_o god_n will_v consume_v the_o timber_n and_o stone_n of_o his_o house_n the_o son_n of_o the_o israelitish_n woman_n that_o blaspheme_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o curse_a be_v bring_v forth_o without_o the_o camp_n and_o stone_v to_o death_n levit._n 24.14_o 15._o and_o thereupon_o a_o law_n establish_v whosoever_o curse_v his_o god_n shall_v bear_v his_o sin_n it_o be_v lamentable_a to_o consider_v the_o wretchedness_n of_o profane_a man_n notwithstanding_o the_o greevousnesse_n of_o this_o sin_n many_o be_v of_o such_o a_o ruffianlike_a spirit_n that_o they_o fear_v not_o to_o tear_v in_o piece_n the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o to_o crucify_v again_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v we_o ourselves_o be_v jealous_a of_o our_o own_o name_n and_o the_o name_n of_o our_o parent_n and_o posterity_n no_o marvel_n then_o if_o god_n be_v exceed_o jealous_a over_o himself_o if_o we_o will_v not_o glorify_v he_o he_o will_v glorify_v himself_o and_o his_o name_n in_o our_o destruction_n he_o may_v wink_v at_o we_o for_o a_o time_n as_o also_o at_o our_o manifold_a and_o monstrous_a oath_n but_o he_o have_v not_o forget_v they_o he_o keep_v a_o book_n of_o account_n as_o a_o register_n against_o we_o and_o when_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v come_v he_o will_v bring_v forth_o the_o record_n and_o set_v our_o sin_n in_o order_n before_o us._n let_v we_o not_o think_v to_o escape_v 8.11_o eccles_n 8.11_o because_o sentence_n be_v not_o speedy_o execute_v the_o more_o he_o delay_v the_o more_o he_o hoard_v up_o punishment_n for_o us._n the_o long_o the_o arrow_n be_v in_o draw_v the_o deep_a it_o will_v pierce_v when_o it_o be_v shoot_v out_o against_o us._n he_o suffer_v they_o to_o live_v in_o security_n for_o a_o time_n but_o they_o shall_v taste_v of_o severity_n in_o the_o end_n job_n 24.23_o and_o 21.30_o the_o wicked_a be_v reserve_v to_o the_o day_n of_o destruction_n &_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v forth_o to_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n 23_o and_o the_o priest_n shall_v write_v these_o curse_n in_o a_o book_n and_o he_o shall_v blot_v they_o out_o with_o the_o bitter_a water_n 24_o and_o he_o shall_v cause_v the_o woman_n to_o drink_v the_o bitter_a water_n that_o cause_v the_o curse_n and_o the_o water_n that_o cause_v the_o curse_n shall_v enter_v into_o she_o and_o become_v bitter_a 25_o then_o the_o priest_n shall_v take_v the_o jealousy_n offer_v out_o of_o the_o woman_n hand_n and_o shall_v wave_n the_o offering_n before_o the_o lord_n and_o offer_v it_o upon_o the_o altar_n 26_o and_o the_o priest_n shall_v take_v a_o handful_n of_o the_o offering_n even_o the_o memorial_n thereof_o and_o burn_v it_o upon_o the_o altar_n and_o afterward_o shall_v cause_v the_o woman_n to_o drink_v the_o water_n hitherto_o we_o have_v see_v the_o thing_n that_o go_v before_o the_o trial_n now_o we_o come_v to_o such_o as_o be_v more_o near_o join_v with_o it_o which_o be_v these_o he_o must_v write_v the_o curse_n in_o a_o book_n and_o then_o blot_v they_o out_o with_o the_o water_n of_o bitterness_n before_o remember_v but_o before_o the_o woman_n drink_n of_o the_o water_n he_o must_v take_v the_o offer_v out_o of_o her_o hand_n and_o wave_n it_o before_o the_o lord_n and_o then_o offer_v it_o unto_o the_o lord_n last_o he_o be_v to_o burn_v a_o part_n of_o it_o upon_o the_o altar_n and_o afterward_o cause_v the_o woman_n to_o drink_v the_o water_n object_n here_o the_o question_n may_v be_v ask_v wherefore_o the_o curse_n must_v be_v write_v and_o afterward_o blot_v out_o if_o it_o must_v be_v blot_v out_o what_o need_v it_o to_o be_v write_v if_o it_o must_v be_v write_v why_o shall_v it_o be_v blot_v out_o i_o answer_v answer_v it_o be_v write_v to_o note_v out_o the_o stableness_n of_o god_n judgement_n and_o the_o certainty_n of_o his_o truth_n and_o therefore_o also_o it_o be_v utter_v in_o word_n express_v in_o action_n and_o establish_v by_o write_v in_o word_n of_o the_o adjuration_n in_o work_n of_o the_o drink_n up_o of_o the_o water_n in_o writing_n of_o the_o whole_a fact_n as_o it_o be_v do_v before_o the_o lord_n nevertheless_o this_o writing_n be_v so_o extant_a that_o it_o continue_v not_o long_o but_o be_v so_o clean_o deface_v that_o none_o can_v read_v it_o because_o god_n will_v not_o have_v the_o remembrance_n of_o such_o filthy_a cause_n and_o iealouse_n and_o suspicion_n to_o remain_v to_o posterity_n lest_o any_o be_v inflame_v with_o the_o like_a passion_n and_o so_o bring_v into_o imitation_n such_o like_a practice_n verse_n 23.24_o etc._n etc._n and_o the_o priest_n shall_v write_v these_o curse_n etc._n etc._n we_o see_v in_o this_o place_n the_o former_a ceremony_n and_o circumstance_n far_o urge_v and_o press_v near_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o she_o that_o be_v suspect_v and_o stand_v before_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v try_v she_o be_v cause_v and_o command_v to_o drink_v of_o these_o water_n prepare_v for_o this_o purpose_n these_o water_n that_o cause_v the_o curse_n shall_v enter_v into_o she_o and_o become_v bitter_a this_o be_v the_o mean_n that_o god_n will_v use_v to_o manifest_a thing_n that_o yet_o be_v hide_v in_o secret_a and_o such_o as_o shall_v bring_v a_o heavy_a judgement_n upon_o she_o that_o be_v guilty_a we_o learn_v from_o hence_o god_n doctrine_n adultery_n ●_o albeit_o sec●_n co●●●●_n punish_v of_o god_n that_o whoredom_n be_v always_o punish_v of_o god_n and_o never_o escape_v unpunished_a howsoever_o adultery_n be_v not_o regard_v among_o man_n and_o think_v either_o no_o sin_n or_o a_o little_a and_o venial_a sin_n yet_o god_n find_v it_o out_o and_o cease_v not_o to_o plague_n and_o punish_v it_o both_o temporal_o and_o eternal_o both_o in_o this_o life_n and_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v this_o we_o see_v set_v forth_o before_o we_o at_o large_a throughout_o the_o whole_a book_n of_o god_n 1●_n gen._n 6_o 1●_n what_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o bring_v the_o flood_n upon_o the_o old_a world_n and_o sweep_v away_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o be_v it_o not_o for_o their_o uncleanness_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o their_o eye_n and_o the_o looseness_n of_o their_o life_n the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n and_o the_o city_n about_o they_o who_o give_v themselves_o once_o to_o fornication_n 7._o jude_n 7._o and_o go_v after_o strange_a flesh_n be_v set_v forth_o for_o a_o example_n suffer_v the_o vengeance_n of_o eternal_a fire_n when_o balaam_n be_v not_o suffer_v to_o curse_v the_o people_n of_o god_n he_o give_v the_o moabite_n and_o midianite_n this_o damnable_a counsel_n to_o allure_v they_o to_o commit_v fornication_n by_o which_o mean_v many_o perish_v as_o we_o shall_v show_v afterward_o in_o the_o 25_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n whereunto_o also_o the_o apostle_n allude_v 1_o cor._n 10.8_o when_o he_o say_v neither_o let_v we_o commit_v fornication_n as_o some_o of_o they_o commit_v and_o fall_v in_o one_o day_n three_o and_o twenty_o thousand_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n that_o bring_v down_o so_o grievous_a a_o judgement_n a_o like_a fearful_a example_n we_o have_v in_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n when_o the_o levite_n wife_n be_v abuse_v unto_o death_n there_o follow_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o beniamite_n 21.3_o 〈◊〉_d 20_o 35._o 〈◊〉_d 21.3_o so_o that_o there_o fall_v of_o they_o five_o and_o twenty_o thousand_o &_o almost_o one_o whole_a tribe_n of_o israel_n be_v want_v this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o lord_n threaten_v to_o his_o people_n levit._n 18.24.25_o 20._o you_o shall_v not_o defile_v yourselves_o in_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n among_o which_o this_o be_v one_o to_o defile_v themselves_o with_o their_o neighbour_n wife_n by_o carnal_a copulation_n for_o in_o all_o these_o the_o nation_n be_v defile_v which_o i_o will_v cast_v
the_o natural_a man_n know_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v so_o we_o may_v say_v the_o natural_a man_n can_v tell_v how_o or_o what_o to_o pray_v but_o the_o spiritual_a man_n that_o judge_v all_o thing_n know_v both_o how_o &_o what_o to_o pray_v flesh_n &_o blood_n reveal_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n to_o peter_n ●_o math._n ●●_o ●_o but_o the_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n so_o flesh_n and_o blood_n can_v reveal_v to_o we_o what_o we_o shall_v ask_v in_o prayer_n but_o the_o spirit_n help_v our_o infirmity_n where_o we_o see_v he_o oppose_v the_o spirit_n unto_o ourselves_o in_o that_o which_o we_o can_v do_v we_o shall_v have_v the_o spirit_n to_o be_v our_o teacher_n and_o to_o instruct_v we_o how_o to_o perform_v it_o second_o it_o be_v false_o suppose_v that_o when_o we_o have_v a_o prayer_n compose_v to_o our_o hand_n and_o we_o read_v that_o prayer_n that_o then_o we_o need_v not_o the_o help_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o need_v we_o not_o the_o help_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o make_v we_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n to_o god_n to_o give_v we_o a_o feel_n of_o our_o want_n to_o keep_v we_o from_o earthly_a cogitation_n &_o wander_a thought_n to_o stir_v up_o faith_n in_o we_o with_o assurance_n to_o receive_v whatsoever_o we_o desire_v and_o many_o thing_n of_o like_a sort_n the_o which_o if_o they_o be_v want_v whether_o our_o prayer_n be_v conceive_v or_o prescribe_v read_v in_o the_o book_n or_o make_v without_o the_o book_n it_o be_v of_o no_o virtue_n or_o value_n neither_o do_v god_n accept_v thereof_o second_o this_o be_v a_o great_a comfort_n to_o such_o as_o use_v 2_o as_o be_v weak_a and_o yet_o withal_o willing_a to_o come_v to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n to_o such_o i_o say_v as_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n to_o conceive_v and_o invent_v prayer_n themselves_o let_v they_o from_o this_o ground_n hear_v a_o word_n of_o consolation_n let_v no_o man_n discourage_v such_o from_o prayer_n neither_o let_v such_o discourage_v themselves_o for_o shall_v they_o never_o pray_v or_o shall_v they_o never_o fall_v down_o before_o the_o almighty_a o_o yes_o let_v they_o come_v they_o ought_v to_o come_v if_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n can_v allure_v they_o let_v their_o own_o infirmity_n constrain_v they_o if_o they_o can_v conceive_v a_o prayer_n themselves_o shall_v this_o excuse_v they_o for_o the_o intermit_a of_o this_o duty_n let_v they_o come_v to_o god_n and_o use_v the_o prayer_n of_o other_o man_n as_o he_o that_o can_v not_o come_v unto_o christ_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o impotency_n do_v not_o reason_n thus_o within_o himself_o alas_o i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o go_v to_o he_o of_o myself_o i_o will_v therefore_o never_o seek_v help_n or_o labour_n to_o be_v cure_v nay_o he_o rather_o reason_v thus_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o mean_v he_o use_v i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o go_v to_o christ_n of_o myself_o 19_o ●_o 19_o i_o will_v therefore_o be_v bear_v of_o other_o rather_o than_o not_o seek_v help_n at_o all_o so_o shall_v we_o reason_v i_o can_v pray_v of_o myself_o i_o will_v therefore_o help_v my_o infirmity_n by_o use_v the_o benefit_n of_o other_o man_n prayer_n which_o be_v no_o more_o then_o to_o use_v the_o foot_n of_o other_o when_o we_o have_v not_o the_o use_n of_o our_o own_o and_o as_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o he_o that_o be_v take_v with_o a_o palsy_n and_o bring_v in_o a_o bed_n to_o christ_n by_o the_o hand_n and_o help_n of_o other_o to_o be_v bear_v to_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v able_a of_o himself_o to_o come_v to_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v cure_v and_o make_v able_a to_o walk_v luke_n 5_o 24.25_o so_o shall_v it_o be_v to_o we_o if_o we_o come_v unto_o christ_n whether_o we_o come_v and_o beg_v the_o grace_n which_o we_o want_v in_o our_o own_o word_n or_o whether_o we_o beg_v they_o in_o the_o word_n of_o other_o it_o skill_v not_o great_o neither_o be_v it_o much_o material_a so_o that_o we_o do_v obtain_v it_o be_v not_o the_o excellency_n or_o eloquence_n of_o word_n or_o variety_n of_o matter_n that_o god_n respect_v 14._o ●_o 13_o 14._o we_o must_v come_v evermore_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o for_o his_o sake_n we_o shall_v be_v hear_v if_o the_o man_n sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n have_v be_v able_a to_o walk_v to_o christ_n and_o not_o stand_v in_o need_n to_o be_v bring_v unto_o he_o what_o other_o gracious_a answer_n can_v he_o have_v look_v for_o then_z that_o which_o he_o receive_v ●5_n ●5_n arise_v and_o walk_v so_o if_o all_o person_n that_o live_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n be_v well_o able_a to_o put_v up_o their_o own_o supplication_n in_o their_o own_o word_n and_o have_v the_o great_a grace_n of_o knowledge_n and_o invention_n what_o fruit_n can_v we_o reap_v and_o receive_v of_o such_o our_o prayer_n but_o to_o be_v regard_v and_o to_o have_v that_o comfortable_a answer_n which_o cornelius_n have_v and_o hear_v act_v 10_o 4_o 31._o thy_o prayer_n be_v hear_v and_o have_v in_o remembrance_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n as_o than_o david_n do_v admit_v mephibosheth_n to_o his_o table_n though_o he_o be_v lame_a of_o his_o foot_n so_o do_v god_n receive_v we_o though_o our_o service_n we_o perform_v unto_o he_o be_v weak_a and_o many_o way_n defective_a as_o he_o do_v those_o that_o come_v to_o the_o passeover_n 2_o chron._n 30._o last_o we_o must_v learn_v that_o albeit_o god_n allow_v use_v 3_o we_o to_o pray_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o help_n of_o other_o yet_o we_o must_v strive_v to_o go_v further_o and_o labour_n in_o all_o thing_n to_o grow_v to_o perfection_n 1._o hebr._n 6_o 1._o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o have_v any_o infirmity_n but_o do_v glad_o seek_v the_o mean_n to_o remedy_n &_o redress_v the_o same_o the_o leper_n to_o be_v cleanse_v the_o blind_a to_o recover_v their_o sight_n the_o lame_a to_o walk_v the_o deaf_a to_o hear_v not_o to_o be_v able_a to_o pray_v to_o god_n and_o to_o lay_v open_a our_o want_n to_o he_o be_v a_o great_a want_n and_o a_o great_a blemish_n and_o defect_n in_o the_o soul_n then_o to_o be_v blind_a or_o deaf_a or_o lame_a be_v to_o the_o body_n o_o that_o all_o have_v eye_n to_o see_v this_o &_o heart_n to_o bewail_v it_o it_o be_v allow_v to_o weak_a christian_n to_o use_v set_v form_n as_o to_o he_o that_o have_v weak_a eye_n to_o use_v spectacle_n but_o we_o must_v not_o evermore_o stand_v at_o one_o stay_v nor_o be_v always_o as_o child_n that_o must_v be_v teach_v to_o go_v and_o be_v stay_v up_o with_o the_o hand_n of_o another_o it_o be_v a_o great_a weakness_n to_o be_v always_o weak_a and_o to_o continue_v in_o our_o weakness_n all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o grow_v in_o knowledge_n in_o judgement_n in_o understanding_n in_o faith_n and_o such_o like_a gift_n if_o any_o ask_v object_n how_o shall_v we_o be_v able_a to_o attain_v to_o this_o gift_n and_o how_o shall_v we_o be_v furnish_v to_o pray_v according_a to_o the_o present_a occasion_n &_o our_o own_o present_a necessity_n i_o answer_v answer_v we_o must_v observe_v these_o few_o particular_n first_o we_o must_v take_v notice_n of_o our_o particular_a sin_n that_o they_o may_v be_v acknowledge_v second_o we_o must_v labour_v to_o feel_v our_o particular_a want_n tha●_n we_o may_v have_v they_o supply_v three_o we_o must_v call_v to_o remembrance_n the_o special_a benefit_n that_o god_n bestow_v upon_o we_o that_o hi●_n name_n may_v be_v praise_v again_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o please_v ourselves_o too_o much_o in_o our_o own_o ignorance_n sundry_a caution_n &_o condition_n be_v to_o be_v mark_v in_o use_v set_v form_n of_o prayer_n prayer_n caution_n to_o be_v mark_v in_o use_v set_v ●ormes_n of_o prayer_n as_o first_o of_o all_o we_o mus●_n labour_n for_o the_o grace_n and_o affection_n show_v in_o the_o say_a prayer_n by_o the_o maker_n composer_n and_o penman_n of_o they_o that_o we_o may_v pray_v with_o the_o same_o spirit_n by_o which_o they_o do_v indite_v they_o for_o to_o pray_v aright_o and_o to_o make_v it_o available_a it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o be_v present_a at_o prayer_n or_o to_o hear_v a_o prayer_n read_v but_o we_o must_v join_v attention_n with_o our_o presence_n and_o with_o our_o attention_n humility_n and_o with_o humility_n faith_n and_o with_o faith_n lift_v up_o of_o our_o heart_n to_o he_o that_o sit_v in_o heaven_n to_o who_o we_o pray_v for_o many_o a_o one_o that_o come_v to_o the_o place_n of_o prayer_n and_o into_o the_o company_n of_o they_o that_o pray_v
to_o perform_v it_o five_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o the_o end_n the_o people_n may_v be_v encourage_v and_o not_o faint_a in_o their_o suffering_n for_o they_o be_v oftentimes_o set_v upon_o and_o their_o faith_n shake_v and_o they_o ready_a to_o give_v over_o if_o they_o be_v not_o confirm_v by_o the_o word_n and_o by_o prayer_n and_o therefore_o we_o read_v eph._n 3_o 13_o 14._o i_o desire_v that_o yet_o faint_v not_o at_o my_o tribulation_n for_o you_o which_o be_v your_o glory_n for_o this_o cause_n i_o bow_v my_o knee_n unto_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n etc._n etc._n that_o he_o will_v grant_v you_o according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n to_o be_v strengthen_v with_o the_o might_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o inner_a man_n our_o prayer_n shall_v be_v a_o effectual_a mean_n to_o hold_v they_o up_o use_v 1_o consider_v from_o this_o ground_n why_o the_o word_n oftentimes_o prosper_v not_o under_o our_o hand_n and_o we_o labour_v in_o vain_a and_o strive_v against_o a_o stubborn_a and_o disobedient_a people_n even_o because_o we_o forget_v our_o own_o duty_n to_o commend_v our_o people_n to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o word_n of_o his_o grace_n 26.18_o 26.18_o that_o so_o their_o eye_n may_v be_v open_v and_o they_o turn_v from_o darkness_n to_o light_n &_o from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n unto_o god_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n &_o a_o inheritance_n among_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v by_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n let_v we_o all_o therefore_o say_v with_o samuel_n the_o lord_n prophet_n god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v sin_v in_o cease_v to_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o the_o word_n may_v take_v good_a effect_n in_o their_o heart_n consider_v it_o be_v in_o his_o hand_n only_o to_o give_v the_o blessing_n upon_o our_o labour_n for_o paul_n may_v plant_v and_o apollo_n water_n but_o it_o be_v god_n that_o give_v the_o increase_n 1_o cor._n 3_o 6._o and_o doubtless_o god_n do_v often_o withhold_v the_o dew_n of_o his_o grace_n from_o our_o labour_n because_o we_o do_v not_o desire_v &_o crave_v his_o blessing_n it_o may_v be_v say_v what_o shall_v the_o minister_n ask_v for_o they_o or_o for_o what_o shall_v he_o pray_v on_o their_o behalf_n i_o answer_v for_o their_o conversion_n confirmation_n consolation_n preservation_n multiplication_n and_o remove_v of_o tribulation_n .._o many_o in_o all_o congregation_n remain_v yet_o in_o ignorance_n &_o be_v not_o turn_v unto_o god_n we_o must_v pray_v that_o they_o may_v be_v gain_v and_o convert_v act_v 3_o 19_o many_o be_v weak_a and_o feeble_a mind_v as_o the_o bruise_a reed_n and_o as_o the_o smoke_a flax_n we_o must_v pray_v that_o they_o may_v be_v support_v and_o strengthen_v eph._n 3_o 16._o many_o be_v as_o it_o be_v quite_o out_o of_o heart_n be_v tire_v with_o the_o tentation_n of_o satan_n and_o tribulation_n of_o the_o world_n these_o must_v be_v cheer_v up_o and_o comfort_v math._n 26_o 41._o act_n 14_o 22._o many_o have_v indeed_o receive_v to_o believe_v but_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o stand_v at_o a_o stay_n and_o some_o at_o the_o point_n to_o go_v backward_o we_o must_v pray_v that_o these_o may_v be_v keep_v and_o preserve_v john_n 17_o 11._o holy_a father_n say_v christ_n keep_v through_o thy_o own_o name_n those_o who_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o as_o we_o be_v many_o congregation_n have_v the_o few_o number_n that_o have_v give_v their_o name_n in_o sincerity_n and_o uprightness_n of_o heart_n to_o god_n and_o resolve_v to_o offer_v up_o their_o body_n a_o holy_a and_o live_a sacrifice_n unto_o he_o so_o that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v a_o little_a flock_n we_o must_v pray_v therefore_o that_o the_o number_n may_v be_v augment_v and_o increase_v and_o that_o he_o will_v every_o day_n add_v unto_o the_o church_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v act_v 2_o 47_o and_o 13_o 48._o and_o 16.5_o so_o be_v the_o church_n establish_v in_o the_o faith_n &_o increase_v in_o number_n daily_o last_o the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v often_o lie_v under_o many_o judgement_n and_o be_v press_v even_o above_o measure_n with_o sundry_a calamity_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n therefore_o to_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o have_v they_o remove_v that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o breathe_a time_n &_o quiet_o serve_v the_o lord_n in_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n as_o paul_n wish_v agrippa_n be_v altogether_o like_o he_o except_o his_o band_n act_n 26_o 29._o second_o this_o serve_v to_o reprove_v such_o as_o use_v 2_o never_n practice_v this_o neither_o think_v it_o to_o be_v any_o ministerial_a duty_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o people_n and_o for_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o their_o own_o speak_n &_o the_o people_n hear_v and_o thus_o be_v the_o whole_a office_n of_o the_o ministry_n disannul_v some_o that_o love_v their_o own_o ease_n more_o than_o the_o people_n good_a maintain_v that_o read_n be_v preach_v because_o they_o be_v loath_a to_o take_v pain_n themselves_o or_o to_o maintain_v any_o that_o shall_v take_v pain_n other_o that_o pray_v seldom_o think_v it_o needless_a either_o to_o begin_v their_o sermon_n or_o to_o end_v they_o with_o invocation_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o neither_o give_v themselves_o continual_o to_o prayer_n neither_o to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o if_o we_o mark_v the_o people_n that_o live_v under_o their_o ministry_n &_o depend_v upon_o they_o we_o shall_v see_v they_o for_o the_o most_o part_n most_o ignorant_a and_o such_o as_o have_v no_o desire_n of_o knowledge_n except_o peradventure_o some_o few_o who_o have_v be_v feed_v with_o the_o crumb_n that_o fall_v from_o other_o man_n table_n i_o mean_v that_o have_v get_v their_o knowledge_n in_o other_o place_n three_o it_o be_v the_o minister_n duty_n to_o labour_n after_o the_o grace_n of_o prayer_n for_o how_o shall_v they_o use_v 3_o be_v able_a to_o commend_v the_o people_n to_o god_n in_o prayer_n if_o they_o be_v not_o able_a at_o all_o occasion_n and_o time_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o be_v destitute_a of_o this_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a gift_n which_o be_v a_o most_o necessary_a a_o most_o worthy_a a_o most_o effectual_a gift_n it_o be_v a_o principal_a part_n of_o god_n worship_n &_o oftentimes_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a worship_n of_o god_n gen._n 4_o 26._o act_n 9_o 14._o 2_o tim._n 2_o 19_o it_o be_v the_o mean_n which_o god_n have_v sanctify_v to_o unlock_v the_o closet_n of_o his_o grace_n they_o be_v hide_v in_o god_n and_o as_o it_o be_v keep_v in_o his_o secret_a chamber_n under_o lock_n and_o key_n prayer_n be_v the_o mean_n to_o open_v the_o door_n that_o lead_v we_o the_o way_n unto_o they_o god_n be_v indeed_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o blessing_n but_o the_o spring_n be_v far_o the_o water_n of_o life_n be_v with_o he_o but_o if_o we_o use_v not_o prayer_n it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v to_o we_o as_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n speak_v john_n 4_o 11._o thou_o have_v nothing_o to_o draw_v with_o and_o the_o well_o be_v deep_a from_o whence_o therefore_o can_v thou_o have_v that_o live_a water_n if_o then_o we_o account_v the_o save_a grace_n of_o god_n necessary_a we_o must_v also_o account_v that_o mean_v necessary_a by_o which_o we_o do_v obtain_v they_o as_o for_o those_o that_o despise_v the_o mean_n they_o do_v also_o despise_v the_o precious_a grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v obtain_v by_o mean_n the_o like_a we_o may_v speak_v of_o the_o excellency_n and_o efficacy_n of_o prayer_n but_o what_o shall_v all_o this_o avail_v we_o if_o we_o be_v as_o dumb_a man_n and_o not_o able_a to_o open_v our_o mouth_n to_o make_v petition_n to_o god_n for_o they_o the_o apostle_n will_v timothy_n that_o prayer_n supplication_n intercession_n and_o thankesgiving_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o god_n by_o he_o and_o other_o minister_n 1_o tim._n 2_o 1._o we_o must_v all_o labour_n to_o know_v the_o state_n of_o our_o flock_n if_o we_o see_v any_o want_n among_o they_o we_o must_v pray_v to_o have_v they_o supply_v if_o any_o judgment_n break_v in_o upon_o they_o we_o must_v pray_v to_o have_v they_o remove_v and_o if_o god_n at_o any_o time_n have_v gracious_o hear_v we_o we_o must_v be_v able_a to_o give_v he_o the_o glory_n last_o let_v the_o people_n answer_v duty_n for_o duty_n use_v 4_o and_o prayer_n with_o prayer_n that_o so_o there_o may_v be_v a_o mutual_a performance_n of_o the_o same_o by_o the_o pastor_n for_o the_o people_n and_o by_o the_o people_n for_o the_o pastor_n for_o see_v the_o minister_n be_v command_v to_o pray_v for_o they_o why_o shall_v they_o be_v backward_o to_o remember_v their_o minister_n
strong_a meat_n heb._n 5.12_o be_v altogether_o babe_n and_o unskilful_a in_o the_o word_n of_o righteousness_n not_o have_v our_o sense_n exercise_v to_o be_v able_a to_o discern_v between_o good_a and_o evil_a they_o therefore_o be_v in_o a_o woeful_a and_o wretched_a estate_n that_o have_v long_o live_v under_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n the_o mean_n of_o regeneration_n in_o this_o life_n and_o of_o salvation_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o yet_o be_v more_o ignorant_a faithless_a fruitless_a disobedient_a and_o profane_a than_o such_o as_o have_v have_v no_o such_o mean_n nor_o live_v where_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v so_o plentiful_o hear_v hence_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n denounce_v fearful_a woe_n against_o bethsaida_n corazin_n and_o capernaum_n where_o he_o have_v preach_v many_o sermon_n and_o wrought_v many_o miracle_n he_o threaten_v to_o cast_v they_o down_o to_o destruction_n and_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o for_o they_o matth._n 11.24_o the_o sodomite_n have_v a_o heavy_a punishment_n in_o this_o life_n to_o be_v destroy_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n from_o heaven_n and_o to_o taste_v of_o a_o more_o heavy_a judgement_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n that_o burn_v in_o hell_n and_o yet_o those_o unthankful_a city_n that_o bring_v not_o forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v have_v sore_a judgement_n for_o their_o disobedience_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n when_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v appear_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a if_o a_o man_n after_o he_o have_v receive_v some_o benefit_n from_o another_o shall_v present_o fly_v in_o his_o face_n and_o offer_v he_o open_a wrong_n and_o injury_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o injury_n &_o indignity_n be_v much_o more_o grievous_a than_o if_o he_o have_v receive_v no_o benefit_n of_o he_o at_o all_o so_o when_o a_o sinner_n have_v receive_v great_a and_o singular_a benefit_n from_o god_n his_o sin_n be_v make_v the_o great_a by_o offend_v he_o what_o blessing_n be_v great_a than_o the_o word_n when_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v offer_v and_o open_v unto_o we_o and_o what_o sin_n can_v be_v so_o great_a as_o to_o reject_v it_o and_o to_o account_v ourselves_o unworthy_a of_o eternal_a life_n let_v we_o therefore_o take_v heed_n how_o we_o use_v his_o gift_n and_o endeavour_n to_o profit_v by_o the_o mean_n that_o he_o afford_v we_o for_o our_o salvation_n lest_o it_o go_v worse_o with_o we_o then_o with_o the_o turk_n and_o infidel_n for_o except_v our_o righteousness_n exceed_v other_o certain_o our_o punishment_n shall_v be_v great_a than_o they_o and_o then_o it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o we_o that_o we_o have_v never_o hear_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n then_o have_v hear_v it_o proud_o and_o presumptuous_o to_o reject_v it_o 18_o on_o the_o second_o day_n nethaniel_n the_o son_n of_o zuar_n prince_n of_o issachar_n do_v offe●_n 19_o he_o offer_v for_o his_o offering_n one_o silver_n etc._n etc._n in_o these_o word_n as_o also_o before_o and_o in_o the_o word_n follow_v we_o see_v what_o be_v offer_v to_o wit_n silver_n and_o gold_n they_o spare_v nothing_o they_o be_v no_o niggard_n they_o bring_v the_o best_a thing_n that_o they_o have_v neither_o do_v they_o bring_v the_o best_a in_o a_o spare_a manner_n but_o they_o deal_v bountiful_o and_o liberal_o the_o doctrine_n doctrine_n offer_v &_o the_o duty_n require_v from_o hence_o be_v this_o we_o must_v serve_v god_n with_o the_o chief_a and_o choice_a thing_n we_o have_v have_v we_o must_v seru_a the_o lord_n with_o the_o best_a thing_n we_o have_v and_o employ_v the_o best_a thing_n that_o be_v fit_a for_o his_o service_n and_o that_o in_o a_o large_a and_o liberal_a manner_n according_a to_o our_o several_a place_n person_n calling_n condition_n and_o ability_n we_o read_v that_o to_o further_a the_o build_n and_o furnish_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n man_n and_o woman_n as_o many_o as_o be_v willing-hearted_n bring_v bracelet_n earing_n ring_n 35.22_o exod._n 35.22_o and_o tablet_n precious_a stone_n and_o jewel_n of_o gold_n every_o man_n that_o offer_v do_v offer_v a_o offering_n of_o gold_n unto_o the_o lord_n no_o man_n come_v empty_a 27._o verse_n 27._o so_o do_v the_o ruler_n &_o prince_n yea_o they_o be_v so_o forward_o that_o the_o workman_n complain_v that_o the_o people_n bring_v too_o much_o for_o the_o service_n of_o the_o work_n which_o the_o lord_n command_v they_o to_o make_v 36.5.25.1.2_o exod._n 36.5.25.1.2_o how_o far_o be_v we_o from_o this_o in_o our_o day_n may_v we_o say_v of_o our_o time_n the_o people_n bring_v much_o more_o then_o enough_o for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n oh_o that_o we_o may_v come_v but_o one_o degree_n behind_o they_o that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v our_o people_n bring_v enough_o but_o we_o can_v true_o testify_v so_o much_o the_o israelite_n think_v they_o never_o bring_v enough_o we_o think_v we_o never_o bring_v too_o little_a they_o offer_v more_v they_o they_o be_v command_v we_o bring_v no_o more_o than_o we_o be_v compel_v &_o constrain_v to_o bring_v they_o bring_v willing_o we_o give_v grudge_o they_o offer_v with_o a_o glad_a and_o cheerful_a heart_n we_o will_v do_v no_o more_o than_o law_n urge_v or_o not_o so_o much_o they_o bring_v of_o the_o best_a we_o think_v the_o worst_a good_a enough_o for_o god_n and_o his_o worship_n and_o his_o minister_n the_o prophet_n malachi_n cry_v out_o against_o this_o sin_n chap._n 1.14_o curse_a be_v the_o deceiver_n which_o have_v in_o his_o flock_n a_o male_a and_o vow_v and_o sacrifice_v unto_o the_o lord_n a_o corrupt_a thing_n for_o i_o be_o a_o great_a king_n say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o my_o name_n be_v dreadful_a among_o the_o heathen_a the_o spirit_n of_o god_n commend_v araunah_n for_o his_o forwardness_n &_o bountifulness_n in_o god_n service_n 24.22_o 2_o sam._n 24.22_o let_v the_o king_n take_v and_o offer_v what_o seem_v he_o good_a to_o the_o lord_n behold_v here_o be_v ox_n for_o burn_a sacrifice_n and_o thresh_a instrument_n of_o the_o ox_n for_o wood_n all_o these_o as_o a_o king_n he_o give_v unto_o the_o king_n this_o also_o appear_v notable_o in_o solomon_n touch_v the_o build_n of_o the_o temple_n 30.24_o 1_o king_n 5.17_o and_o 8.63_o and_o 6.21_o 22._o 2_o chro._n 30.24_o the_o king_n &_o all_o israel_n offer_v sacrifice_n with_o he_o 22000._o ox_n &_o 122000._o sheep_n at_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o like_a we_o see_v in_o ezekiah_n and_o if_o we_o go_v no_o far_o they_o to_o abel_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n he_o show_v forth_o the_o practice_n of_o this_o duty_n for_o he_o bring_v of_o the_o firstling_n of_o his_o flock_n 4.4_o gen._n 4.4_o and_o of_o the_o fat_a thereof_o unto_o the_o lord_n and_o if_o he_o have_v have_v a_o better_a thing_n to_o bring_v no_o doubt_n he_o will_v have_v bring_v it_o so_o that_o this_o have_v be_v the_o practice_n always_o of_o the_o best_a sort_n to_o offer_v in_o the_o best_a manner_n the_o best_a they_o have_v unto_o the_o best_a that_o be_v to_o the_o lord_n himself_o reason_n 1_o this_o they_o do_v that_o god_n may_v evermore_o dwell_v among_o they_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n exod_n 25.3_o 4_o 6_o 8._o a_o great_a judgement_n it_o be_v to_o have_v he_o leave_v we_o and_o depart_v from_o us._n nothing_o drive_v he_o away_o soon_o and_o cause_v he_o to_o deny_v his_o presence_n than_o our_o deal_n deceitful_o with_o he_o second_o if_o we_o give_v not_o to_o god_n of_o the_o best_a the_o worst_a sort_n shall_v rise_v up_o in_o judgement_n and_o condemn_v we_o the_o very_a idolater_n that_o worship_v the_o work_n of_o their_o own_o hand_n 1.25_o rom._n 1.25_o and_o turn_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n into_o a_o lie_n shall_v go_v before_o we_o into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n they_o think_v nothing_o too_o much_o they_o be_v content_a to_o spoil_v themselves_o that_o they_o may_v adorn_v their_o idol_n exod._n 32.2_o 3._o 32.2.3_o exod._n 32.2.3_o the_o israelite_n desire_v to_o have_v a_o image_n of_o god_n to_o go_v before_o they_o be_v content_a to_o break_v off_o the_o golden_a earring_n which_o be_v in_o the_o ear_n of_o their_o wife_n and_o of_o their_o son_n and_o of_o their_o daughter_n so_o be_v it_o with_o the_o papist_n they_o account_v nothing_o too_o dear_a and_o precious_a which_o they_o be_v not_o ready_a to_o bestow_v upon_o their_o image_n and_o such_o like_a will-worship_n three_o no_o man_n shall_v repine_v to_o give_v unto_o god_n his_o own_o the_o best_a thing_n we_o have_v who_o be_v they_o by_o right_a but_o he_o
as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n the_o union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n to_o make_v one_o person_n and_o such_o like_a which_o albeit_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o dark_a &_o hard_a to_o be_v conceive_v yet_o they_o be_v plain_o set_v down_o again_o he_o do_v not_o say_v all_o thing_n be_v hard_a or_o the_o most_o thing_n or_o many_o thing_n but_o some_o thing_n be_v hard_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o to_o who_o be_v they_o hard_a to_o those_o that_o wrest_v they_o to_o their_o own_o destruction_n to_o the_o unstable_a and_o unlearned_a now_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v dark_a to_o the_o unbeliever_n be_v lightsome_a to_o the_o faithful_a as_o christ_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n to_o you_o it_o be_v give_v to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v without_o 1●_n mark_n 4_o 1●_n all_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o parable_n to_o they_o that_o be_v humble_a and_o desire_v to_o learn_v be_v plain_a instruction_n but_o to_o other_o that_o be_v proud_a &_o high-minded_a the_o plain_a point_n be_v dark_a riddle_n if_o any_o ask_v whether_o there_o be_v not_o diverse_a thing_n hard_o in_o scripture_n i_o answer_v there_o be_v and_o it_o be_v the_o great_a wisdom_n of_o god_n it_o shall_v be_v so_o temper_v the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o to_o make_v we_o devout_a in_o pray_v diligent_a in_o search_v wise_a in_o prize_v &_o value_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n humble_a in_o know_v our_o own_o want_n and_o to_o teach_v we_o that_o god_n will_v have_v some_o teacher_n in_o his_o church_n and_o some_o to_o learn_v at_o their_o mouth_n some_o to_o instruct_v and_o some_o to_o be_v instruct_v three_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o see_v the_o use_v 3_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o church_n they_o that_o now_o perish_v do_v perish_v just_o and_o worthy_o they_o have_v a_o light_n set_v up_o to_o direct_v they_o and_o the_o sun_n shine_v most_o bright_o in_o their_o face_n if_o then_o they_o shut_v their_o eye_n and_o so_o stumble_v and_o fall_v down_o who_o will_v take_v any_o pity_n upon_o they_o who_o can_v say_v but_o they_o be_v worthy_a to_o perish_v hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n say_v if_o our_o gospel_n be_v hide_v it_o be_v hide_v to_o they_o that_o be_v lose_v in_o who_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v blind_v the_o mind_n of_o they_o which_o believe_v not_o lest_o the_o light_n of_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n shall_v shine_v unto_o they_o 2_o cor._n 4_o 3_o 4._o if_o we_o have_v not_o a_o light_n before_o we_o we_o may_v pretend_v ignorance_n and_o allege_v the_o darkness_n of_o the_o way_n as_o a_o defence_n of_o our_o wander_a but_o now_o the_o vizard_n be_v pull_v from_o our_o face_n we_o have_v nothing_o to_o answer_v for_o ourselves_o wherefore_o christ_n say_v if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o speak_v unto_o they_o they_o have_v not_o have_v sin_n but_o now_o they_o have_v no_o cloak_n for_o their_o sin_n john_n 15_o 22._o no_o man_n can_v allege_v any_o just_a colour_n or_o excuse_v or_o find_v what_o plea_n to_o put_v in_o for_o himself_o the_o light_n be_v among_o we_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v that_o we_o walk_v not_o in_o the_o light_n he_o that_o walk_v in_o darkness_n know_v not_o what_o he_o do_v or_o whither_o he_o go_v or_o how_o near_o he_o be_v to_o danger_n o_o that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v of_o we_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v of_o the_o thessalonian_o 5._o ●●ess_n 5_o 5._o you_o be_v all_o the_o child_n of_o light_n and_o the_o child_n of_o the_o day_n you_o be_v not_o of_o the_o night_n nor_o of_o darkness_n it_o may_v rather_o be_v say_v of_o we_o you_o be_v child_n of_o the_o night_n and_o of_o darkness_n you_o be_v not_o of_o the_o light_n nor_o of_o the_o day_n christ_n jesus_n be_v come_v as_o a_o light_n into_o the_o world_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o abide_v in_o darkness_n john_n 12_o 46_o 48_o whosoever_o reject_v he_o and_o receive_v not_o his_o word_n have_v one_o that_o judge_v he_o the_o word_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v shall_v judge_v he_o in_o the_o last_o day_n verse_n 48._o such_o than_o shall_v be_v take_v speechless_a and_o stand_v dumb_a have_v nothing_o to_o say_v be_v convict_v and_o condemn_v in_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o therefore_o he_o that_o be_v ignorant_a let_v he_o be_v ignorant_a 1_o cor._n 14_o 38._o the_o light_n be_v powerful_o and_o plentiful_o offer_v unto_o he_o but_o he_o close_v his_o eye_n that_o he_o may_v not_o see_v and_o stop_v his_o ear_n that_o he_o may_v not_o hear_v and_o harden_v his_o heart_n that_o he_o may_v not_o understand_v it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o the_o turk_n and_o infidel_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o for_o many_o of_o us._n for_o if_o the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n have_v shine_v so_o full_o upon_o they_o as_o it_o have_v do_v upon_o we_o they_o have_v long_o ago_o repent_v in_o sackcloth_n and_o ash_n let_v we_o consider_v this_o betimes_o and_o open_v our_o eye_n while_o the_o light_n be_v among_o we_o before_o it_o be_v take_v from_o we_o and_o darkness_n come_v upon_o us._n now_o be_v the_o acceptable_a time_n let_v it_o not_o slip_v from_o us._n use_v 4_o four_o they_o shall_v be_v welcome_a unto_o we_o that_o bring_v this_o light_n that_o we_o may_v say_v with_o the_o apostle_n how_o beautiful_a be_v the_o foot_n of_o they_o that_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n and_o bring_v glad_a tiding_n of_o good_a thing_n rom._n 10_o ver_fw-la 15._o in_o winter_n night_n that_o be_v dark_a and_o consequent_o dangerous_a for_o passenger_n man_n think_v they_o do_v other_o a_o great_a pleasure_n if_o they_o hold_v they_o out_o a_o light_n to_o show_v they_o the_o way_n and_o to_o free_v they_o from_o fear_n of_o danger_n and_o it_o be_v so_o what_o a_o happy_a thing_n than_o be_v it_o to_o have_v a_o light_n hold_v forth_o to_o guide_v we_o to_o heaven_n and_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o everlasting_a life_n we_o see_v therefore_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o minister_n thereof_o to_o take_v away_o these_o be_v to_o take_v away_o the_o light_n in_o a_o dark_a night_n nay_o to_o pull_v the_o sun_n out_o of_o the_o firmament_n &_o to_o leave_v man_n to_o go_v and_o to_o grope_v in_o darkness_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o we_o to_o direct_v our_o way_n aright_o without_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o it_o be_v the_o great_a mercy_n of_o god_n that_o have_v give_v unto_o we_o the_o sun_n to_o rule_v the_o day_n the_o moon_n and_o the_o star_n to_o rule_v the_o night_n psal_n 136_o 8_o 9_o which_o be_v so_o necessary_a as_o that_o without_o they_o the_o life_n of_o man_n can_v be_v continue_v and_o preserve_v and_o as_o in_o a_o dark_a house_n nothing_o can_v be_v see_v without_o a_o lamp_n or_o a_o candle_n so_o the_o right_a way_n can_v be_v discern_v from_o the_o wrong_n truth_n from_o error_n and_o virtue_n from_o vice_n in_o the_o darkness_n of_o our_o life_n without_o the_o light_n and_o lustre_n of_o the_o word_n there_o be_v dangerous_a pit_n in_o this_o misty_a world_n 119._o ambros_n in_o psal_n 119._o and_o many_o threaten_a rock_n in_o this_o troublesome_a sea_n which_o be_v not_o see_v we_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o one_o and_o rush_v upon_o the_o other_o and_o ruin_v ourselves_o by_o they_o both_o except_o we_o carry_v before_o we_o this_o light_n and_o lantern_n let_v we_o believe_v no_o man_n that_o will_v offer_v to_o teach_v we_o the_o way_n except_o he_o show_v we_o this_o light_n the_o israelite_n in_o the_o wilderness_n be_v govern_v by_o a_o cloud_n in_o the_o day_n and_o by_o a_o pillar_n of_o fire_n in_o the_o night_n till_o they_o come_v into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n afterward_o they_o have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o one_o or_o of_o the_o other_o so_o shall_v we_o order_v our_o rest_a and_o remove_v our_o go_v out_o and_o our_o come_n in_o by_o this_o light_n of_o the_o word_n which_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o heavenly_a canaan_n our_o duty_n therefore_o must_v be_v to_o take_v heed_n to_o the_o word_n see_v it_o be_v a_o light_n give_v unto_o we_o of_o god_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o hear_v it_o to_o believe_v it_o to_o obey_v it_o we_o must_v hear_v it_o attentive_o we_o must_v believe_v it_o steadfast_o we_o must_v obey_v it_o ready_o we_o must_v hear_v it_o without_o loathe_v we_o must_v believe_v it_o without_o waver_v we_o must_v obey_v it_o without_o resist_v hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n peter_n
then_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n that_o mourn_v because_o they_o can_v meet_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o brethren_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o at_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n certain_o they_o must_v be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o mourn_n and_o lament_v because_o they_o be_v at_o they_o and_o such_o as_o do_v willing_o and_o wilful_o contemptuous_o and_o presumptuous_o absent_v themselves_o from_o they_o it_o be_v note_v of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n that_o he_o earnest_o desire_v or_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o original_a by_o double_v the_o word_n with_o a_o desire_n 22.15_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d luk._n 22.15_o i_o have_v desire_v to_o eat_v this_o passeover_n with_o you_o before_o i_o suffer_v whereby_o he_o show_v his_o fervent_a affection_n to_o join_v with_o they_o in_o this_o duty_n so_o shall_v it_o be_v with_o we_o when_o one_o sabbath_n be_v end_v we_o shall_v long_o for_o the_o next_o when_o one_o communion_n be_v do_v we_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o inquire_v after_o another_o when_o one_o sermon_n be_v end_v we_o shall_v prepare_v for_o another_o and_o account_v no_o day_n in_o the_o week_n so_o gracious_a so_o welcome_a so_o comfortable_a unto_o we_o as_o the_o lord_n day_n then_o let_v we_o cheer_v up_o our_o spirit_n and_o refresh_v our_o soul_n with_o such_o provision_n as_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o us._n second_o it_o be_v a_o great_a judgement_n of_o god_n use_v 2_o upon_o man_n howsoever_o they_o account_v of_o it_o and_o whatsoever_o they_o esteem_v of_o it_o when_o they_o be_v give_v over_o to_o their_o own_o way_n and_o regard_v not_o at_o all_o the_o way_n of_o god_n nay_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a token_n of_o god_n heavy_a judgement_n to_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o meeting_n of_o the_o godly_a as_o psal_n 74_o 1._o the_o church_n cry_v out_o o_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o cast_v we_o off_o for_o ever_o 74.1_o psal_n 74.1_o why_o do_v thy_o anger_n smoke_n against_o the_o sheep_n of_o thy_o pasture_n we_o all_o confess_v that_o dearth_n and_o famine_n be_v a_o grievous_a plague_n howbeit_o common_o we_o know_v no_o other_o than_o the_o famine_n of_o the_o body_n when_o the_o tongue_n cleave_v to_o the_o roof_n of_o the_o mouth_n for_o thirst_n and_o when_o the_o child_n say_v to_o their_o mother_n where_o be_v corn_n &_o wine_n but_o god_n threaten_v a_o great_a judgement_n than_o the_o famishment_n of_o the_o body_n to_o wit_n 2.12_o lament_v 2.12_o the_o pine_v and_o consume_v away_o of_o the_o soul_n 8.11_o amos_n 8.11_o through_o the_o famine_n of_o the_o word_n it_o be_v account_v a_o great_a reproach_n for_o a_o subject_a to_o be_v deny_v the_o presence_n and_o protection_n of_o his_o prince_n and_o the_o freedom_n of_o his_o country_n but_o these_o banish_v themselves_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v be_v all_o voluntary_a communicant_n but_o many_o be_v voluntary_a excommunicant_n they_o exclude_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n and_o execute_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o themselves_o the_o church_n complain_v as_o we_o hear_v before_o that_o the_o lord_n cast_v they_o off_o but_o these_o cast_v off_o themselves_o from_o the_o church_n from_o god_n from_o his_o ordinance_n it_o be_v a_o evident_a sign_n of_o most_o strange_a profaneness_n and_o deadness_n of_o heart_n when_o man_n have_v no_o delight_n no_o feel_n no_o comfort_n no_o sweetness_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n when_o they_o can_v feed_v hearty_o of_o the_o fatling_n and_o drink_v greedy_o of_o the_o wine_n that_o be_v prepare_v by_o god_n fo●_n his_o family_n the_o most_o delicate_a &_o delightful_a soul_n food_n that_o can_v be_v in_o the_o world_n to_o wit_n the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o which_o more_o afterward_o 1●_n chap._n 11._o gen._n 25._o ●4_n heb_fw-mi 12_o 1●_n esau_n be_v a_o pattern_n of_o this_o profaneness_n who_o esteem_v of_o these_o precious_a thing_n more_o vile_o then_o of_o a_o mess_n of_o meat_n of_o the_o good_a of_o his_o soul_n then_o of_o the_o fill_n of_o his_o belly_n of_o future_a happiness_n then_o of_o a_o present_a and_o momentany_a pleasure_n many_o such_o esau_n we_o have_v in_o our_o day_n as_o wretched_a and_o profane_a as_o he_o last_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a use_v 3_o thing_n in_o all_o our_o wish_n and_o desire_n &_o we_o shall_v careful_o express_v it_o in_o our_o love_n and_o zeal_n to_o have_v the_o pleasure_n and_o profit_n of_o god_n house_n in_o great_a account_n for_o our_o good_a for_o ever_o this_o make_v the_o prophet_n say_v 84.10_o psal_n 26.8_o and_o 27.4_o and_o 84.10_o o_o lord_n i_o have_v love_v the_o habitation_n of_o thy_o house_n and_o the_o place_n where_o thy_o honour_n dwell_v i_o have_v desire_v this_o one_o thing_n above_o all_o other_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n one_o day_n in_o thy_o court_n be_v better_a than_o a_o thousand_o elsewhere_o o_o what_o will_v be_v their_o portion_n in_o this_o life_n and_o what_o will_v be_v their_o punishment_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v who_o have_v banish_v these_o desire_n out_o of_o their_o heart_n and_o renounce_v they_o in_o their_o practice_n account_v the_o time_n tedious_a and_o the_o day_n lose_v that_o be_v spend_v this_o way_n o_o that_o such_o can_v consider_v betimes_o the_o fearful_a end_n and_o fall_v that_o wait_v for_o they_o so_o long_o as_o they_o grow_v more_o and_o more_o weary_a of_o the_o heavenly_a manna_n that_o will_v fall_v upon_o their_o soul_n as_o a_o gracious_a rain_n upon_o the_o tender_a herb_n and_o as_o for_o we_o that_o through_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n live_v under_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o have_v the_o sacrament_n right_o minister_v unto_o we_o let_v we_o know_v &_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o render_v all_o praise_n &_o thanksgiving_n unto_o god_n to_o labour_v to_o walk_v worthy_a of_o our_o call_n to_o express_v the_o power_n of_o they_o in_o our_o conversation_n &_o to_o pray_v unto_o he_o earnest_o for_o the_o continuance_n of_o they_o among_o we_o and_o our_o posterity_n lest_o through_o our_o great_a unthankfulness_n and_o the_o abuse_n of_o they_o they_o be_v take_v from_o we_o &_o give_v unto_o another_o people_n that_o will_v bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o verse_n 8._o and_o moses_n say_v unto_o they_o stand_v still_o etc._n etc._n in_o these_o word_n we_o have_v moses_n his_o consultation_n with_o god_n for_o here_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o contrary_n or_o antinomy_n that_o be_v one_o law_n against_o another_o the_o unclean_a may_v not_o come_v to_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o beside_o it_o be_v a_o heinous_a offence_n to_o omit_v this_o exercise_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o profession_n of_o their_o religion_n no_o less_o than_o excommunication_n as_o for_o the_o touch_v of_o a_o dead_a body_n or_o bury_v of_o the_o dead_a it_o be_v a_o duty_n of_o charity_n of_o humanity_n and_o of_o necessity_n shall_v a_o work_n of_o such_o due_a respect_n and_o importance_n that_o may_v not_o be_v avoid_v debar_v they_o from_o the_o passeover_n these_o therefore_o seem_v to_o be_v in_o a_o distress_n on_o both_o side_n and_o know_v not_o which_o way_n to_o turn_v themselves_o in_o this_o maze_n they_o may_v not_o come_v and_o yet_o they_o may_v not_o well_o abstain_v they_o must_v bury_v the_o dead_a and_o yet_o the_o burial_n of_o the_o dead_a do_v exclude_v they_o what_o shall_v they_o do_v between_o these_o two_o rock_n that_o threaten_v shipwreck_n if_o they_o do_v not_o bury_v the_o dead_a they_o show_v want_v of_o charity_n if_o they_o do_v they_o bar_v themselves_o from_o a_o duty_n of_o piety_n and_o can_v not_o partake_v of_o the_o passeover_n until_o the_o next_o year_n moses_n confess_v himself_o in_o this_o case_n after_o a_o sort_n entangle_v &_o know_v not_o what_o to_o resolve_v therefore_o for_o his_o and_o their_o satisfaction_n he_o resolve_v to_o refer_v the_o matter_n whole_o to_o god_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o institute_v for_o they_o a_o new_a passeover_n doctrine_n this_o teach_v we_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o doubt_n to_o ask_v counsel_n at_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n god_n in_o al●_n do●●●_n we_o must_v as●●_n counsel_v of_o god_n but_o how_o may_v this_o be_v for_o we_o can_v ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n to_o speak_v unto_o he_o i_o answer_v he_o speak_v unto_o we_o at_o this_o day_n and_o that_o two_o way_n 15.34.35_o 2_o king_n 1_o 1●_n and_o 19.1_o 2._o and_o 22.11_o ma●th_o 2.4_o act._n 15.2_o 2_o chron._n 3_o
barbarous_a enemy_n use_v a_o barbarous_a tongue_n which_o shall_v bring_v we_o into_o slavery_n and_o subjection_n for_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n if_o we_o refuse_v to_o hear_v he_o speak_v to_o we_o in_o a_o know_a tongue_n 21._o ●●scal_n obs●ru_fw-la in_o 〈◊〉_d or_o 14_o 21._o to_o compel_v we_o even_o against_o our_o will_n to_o hear_v another_o speak_v to_o we_o in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n to_o the_o increase_n of_o our_o misery_n and_o to_o the_o danger_n of_o our_o soul_n as_o he_o deal_v with_o his_o own_o people_n for_o their_o unthankfulnes_n who_o he_o upbraid_v that_o they_o understand_v not_o his_o speech_n 43._o ●●hn_n 8_o 43._o and_o therefore_o arm_v the_o merciless_a roman_n against_o they_o that_o speak_v to_o they_o in_o a_o tongue_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o and_o scourge_v they_o by_o that_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n the_o which_o chastisement_n continue_v upon_o they_o to_o this_o day_n use_v 5_o last_o these_o silver_n trumpet_n serve_v to_o sound_v the_o alarm_n in_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o people_n put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o last_o day_n when_o all_o people_n shall_v be_v gather_v together_o and_o arise_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n at_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o last_o trumpet_n of_o god_n for_o god_n will_v also_o have_v his_o trumpet_n these_o be_v blow_v by_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n the_o last_o trumpet_n shall_v be_v blow_v by_o the_o archangel_n of_o this_o we_o read_v in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o which_o christ_n himself_o speak_v ●1_n ●●th_n 24_o ●1_n and_o the_o apostle_n in_o his_o epistle_n the_o evangelist_n show_v that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v send_v his_o angel_n with_o a_o great_a sound_n of_o a_o trumpet_n and_o they_o shall_v gather_v together_o his_o elect_a from_o the_o four_o wind_n even_o from_o one_o end_n of_o heaven_n to_o another_o and_o paul_n speak_v of_o the_o general_a resurrection_n at_o the_o last_o day_n say_v behold_v i_o show_v you_o a_o mystery_n we_o shall_v not_o at_o all_o sleep_n but_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v in_o a_o moment_n in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n at_o the_o last_o trumpet_n for_o the_o trumpet_n shall_v sound_v and_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v raise_v up_o incorruptible_a and_o we_o shall_v be_v change_v 1_o corinth_n 15_o 51_o 52._o likewise_o the_o same_o apostle_n teach_v that_o the_o lord_n himself_o shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n with_o a_o shout_n with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o with_o the_o trumpet_n of_o god_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n shall_v rise_v first_o 1_o thess_n 4_o verse_n 16._o in_o the_o give_n of_o the_o law_n many_o fearful_a sign_n and_o token_n of_o god_n glorious_a presence_n appear_v that_o make_v the_o people_n fly_v away_o &_o cry_v out_o among_o the_o rest_n they_o hear_v the_o noise_n of_o the_o trumpet_n exod._n 20_o 18._o which_o sound_v long_o and_o wax_v loud_a &_o loud_o chap._n 19_o 1●_n this_o be_v so_o terrible_a that_o moses_n say_v 21_o heb._n 12_o 19_o 21_o i_o exceed_o fear_v and_o quake_v but_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n when_o god_n will_v requi●e_v a_o account_n of_o the_o law_n and_o how_o we_o have_v walk_v in_o the_o obedience_n of_o it_o when_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o his_o work_n the_o trumpet_n shall_v be_v much_o loud_o and_o the_o sound_n of_o it_o far_o shrill_a for_o the_o dead_a sh●ll_v hear_v it_o &_o arise_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n this_o shall_v cause_v a_o great_a fear_n in_o all_o then_o be_v at_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n fearful_a christ_n come_v to_o judgement_n shall_v be_v fearful_a because_o his_o come_n to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v sudden_a unlooked_v for_o powerful_a and_o glorious_a when_o man_n shall_v promise_v to_o themselves_o peace_n and_o safety_n then_o sudden_a destruction_n shall_v come_v upon_o they_o as_o travail_v upon_o a_o woman_n with_o child_n and_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v 1_o thess_n 5_o 3._o and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n and_o lot_n when_o they_o give_v themselves_o to_o a_o general_a security_n and_o never_o know_v any_o thing_n till_o they_o be_v destroy_v one_o sort_n with_o water_n and_o another_o with_o fire_n so_o shall_v the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v mat._n 24_o 37._o it_o shall_v be_v also_o powerful_a his_o first_o come_n be_v in_o much_o weakness_n but_o this_o with_o great_a might_n able_a to_o sweep_v away_o all_o his_o enemy_n to_o hell_n last_o it_o shall_v be_v glorious_a for_o he_o shall_v be_v accompany_v with_o thousand_o of_o his_o angel_n that_o shall_v attend_v upon_o he_o as_o servant_n upon_o their_o master_n ready_a to_o execute_v his_o will_n jude_n 14._o and_o this_o his_o come_n shall_v have_v a_o threefold_a effect_n come_n a_o threefold_a effect_n of_o christ_n come_n for_o there_o will_v follow_v immediate_o a_o gather_v together_o a_o separation_n and_o then_o a_o judge_a first_o all_o must_v be_v gather_v together_o at_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n both_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o live_n they_o shall_v rise_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n some_o to_o everlasting_a life_n &_o some_o to_o shame_n &_o everlasting_a contempt_n dan._n 12_o 2._o after_o this_o gather_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o separation_n christ_n sit_v in_o his_o throne_n of_o glory_n 31._o math._n 24_o 31._o the_o elect_a shall_v be_v set_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n the_o reprobate_a at_o his_o left_a then_o shall_v follow_v the_o judgement_n itself_o 33._o math_n 25_o 33._o the_o judge_n of_o all_o judge_n give_v a_o most_o just_a sentence_n calling_z the_o elect_v to_o inherit_v ●he_v kingdom_n prepare_v for_o they_o from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n 41._o math._n 25_o 32._o math._n 25_o 41._o &_o cast_v the_o reprobate_a into_o everlasting_a torment_n prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n &_o his_o angel_n ver._n 11_o 12._o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v on_o the_o twenty_o day_n of_o the_o second_o month_n in_o the_o second_o year_n that_o the_o cloud_n be_v take_v up_o etc._n etc._n here_o we_o have_v the_o remove_n of_o the_o israelite_n from_o the_o desert_n of_o arabia_n the_o stony_a which_o border_v upon_o mount_n sinai_n where_o they_o abide_v for_o the_o space_n almost_o of_o a_o whole_a year_n during_o which_o time_n the_o law_n be_v give_v the_o tabernacle_n be_v build_v the_o priest_n be_v consecrate_v &_o the_o whole_a worship_n of_o god_n establish_v in_o this_o remove_n we_o must_v observe_v three_o thing_n the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o it_o the_o care_n of_o moses_n in_o prepare_v &_o provide_v a_o guide_n to_o lead_v they_o and_o the_o prayer_n that_o he_o usual_o and_o ordinary_o make_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o march_n and_o likewise_o when_o the_o ark_n rest_v touch_v the_o first_o all_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n remove_v from_o their_o encamp_a at_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o mountain_n sinai_n towards_o paran_n the_o army_n or_o great_a squadron_n of_o juda_n lead_v by_o naashon_n take_v the_o vanguard_n follow_v by_o nethaneel_n and_o eliab_n leadcr_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o issachar_n and_o zebulun_n after_o who_o all_o the_o rest_n march_v as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o book_n from_o hence_o we_o learn_v that_o god_n will_v have_v order_n observe_v among_o his_o people_n doctrine_n in_o all_o his_o ordinance_n god_n order_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n set_v it_o down_o as_o a_o precept_n 1_o cor._n 14_o 40._o let_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o order_n he_o be_v glad_a of_o the_o comely_a order_n observe_v among_o the_o colossian_n ch_n 2_o 5._o we_o see_v before_o how_o the_o lord_n appoint_v the_o tabernacle_n to_o be_v place_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o the_o camp_n and_o the_o levite_n to_o attend_v round_o about_o and_o all_o these_o to_o be_v compass_v on_o every_o side_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o tribe_n and_o if_o we_o will_v cast_v back_o our_o eye_n to_o the_o first_o time_n &_o mark_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n from_o the_o foundation_n of_o it_o together_o with_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o the_o earth_n the_o water_n the_o air_n the_o firmament_n and_o the_o heaven_n of_o the_o bless_a who_o can_v express_v the_o goodly_a order_n which_o they_o possess_v &_o keep_v for_o as_o they_o be_v place_v one_o above_o the_o other_o so_o they_o be_v pure_a subtle_a simple_a and_o notable_a and_o as_o this_o exquisite_a order_n show_v and_o shine_v forth_o in_o the_o element_n and_o the_o heaven_n so_o do_v it_o in_o the_o angel_n for_o as_o one_o star_n differ_v from_o another_o in_o glory_n so_o do_v one_o angel_n
he_o will_v make_v good_a his_o own_o promise_n and_o all_o the_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n shall_v be_v find_v true_a notwithstanding_o the_o want_v of_o mean_n and_o the_o abundance_n of_o mouth_n that_o be_v to_o be_v fill_v with_o flesh_n the_o people_n be_v six_o hundred_o thousand_o footman_n etc._n etc._n shall_v the_o flock_n and_o the_o herd_n &_o c_o or_o shall_v all_o the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n be_v gather_v together_o &_o c_o here_o be_v the_o distrust_n of_o moses_n though_o some_o labour_n to_o discharge_v he_o of_o it_o and_o to_o free_v he_o from_o it_o distrust_n moses_n d●_n distrust_n as_o if_o he_o have_v desire_v only_o to_o know_v the_o mean_n that_o god_n will_v use_v according_a as_o the_o virgin_n mary_n desire_v to_o be_v far_o inform_v of_o the_o angel_n luke_n 1_o 34_o but_o this_o be_v disprove_v by_o the_o answer_n of_o god_n who_o set_v down_o his_o own_o power_n not_o the_o mean_n how_o he_o will_v effect_v it_o wherefore_o i_o think_v the_o learned_a junius_n in_o this_o place_n be_v deceive_v num._n annot._n i●_n 〈◊〉_d locum_fw-la et_fw-la ●lys_n in_o num._n and_o we_o need_v not_o to_o labour_v too_o curious_o to_o clear_v the_o faithful_a of_o the_o remnant_n of_o sin_n &_o other_o infirmity_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o and_o other_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n have_v their_o fail_n in_o faith_n and_o obedience_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o abraham_n lot_n noah_n isaac_n jacob_n david_n peter_n thomas_n zacharie_n serui●●_n doctrine_n many_o be_v 〈◊〉_d fail_n of_o 〈◊〉_d god_n serui●●_n and_o which_o of_o they_o not_o 2_o chron._n 15_o 17_o &_o 16_o 12_o rom._n 7_o 17_o 18_o 19_o because_o we_o know_v in_o part_n and_o we_o prophesy_v in_o part_n we_o be_v yet_o in_o our_o journey_n and_o walk_v in_o our_o way_n and_o run_v in_o a_o race_n we_o be_v not_o yet_o attain_v to_o our_o journeys_n end_n we_o have_v not_o yet_o obtain_v the_o crown_n again_o we_o proceed_v all_o from_o a_o unclean_a fountain_n job_n 14_o 4._o there_o be_v a_o combat_n remain_v in_o we_o between_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 7_o 23._o gal._n 5.17_o and_o these_o be_v contrary_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o can_v never_o be_v reconcile_v the_o use_v hereof_o be_v first_o to_o show_v that_o we_o can_v keep_v the_o law_n but_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o use_v 1_o sin_n all_o rom._n 3_o 22_o 23._o and_o therefore_o be_v subject_a to_o condemnation_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v that_o a_o man_n may_v keep_v the_o law_n but_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o law_n and_o of_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o themselves_o for_o may_v they_o compare_v with_o the_o faithful_a before_o name_v 2_o second_o we_o do_v all_o need_v the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n blood_n 1_o john_n 1_o 7_o 8._o and_o be_v justify_v by_o he_o rom._n 3_o 24._o but_o if_o we_o can_v keep_v the_o law_n or_o can_v be_v without_o sin_n than_o christ_n have_v dye_v in_o vain_a gal._n 2_o 21._o 3_o three_o they_o be_v deceive_v which_o hold_v the_o virgin_n mary_n to_o have_v be_v conceive_v without_o original_a sin_n contrary_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o lay_v open_a sundry_a her_o infirmity_n contrary_a to_o her_o own_o confession_n who_o acknowledge_v herself_o to_o have_v need_v a_o saviour_n luke_n 1_o 47._o for_o see_v she_o be_v bear_v after_o the_o common_a course_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n who_o shall_v exempt_v she_o from_o the_o corruption_n and_o stain_n of_o nature_n christ_n the_o conc●●ti_fw-la n_z of_o the_o blessed_a virg●●_n make_v equ●●_n to_o christ_n and_o what_o need_n be_v there_o that_o christ_n jesus_n shall_v be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o he_o may_v have_v a_o pure_a conception_n free_a from_o original_a sin_n without_o it_o wherefore_o they_o may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v conceive_v also_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o affirm_v that_o she_o be_v conceive_v without_o sin_n and_o so_o communicate_v the_o property_n and_o prerogative_n of_o christ_n birth_n to_o she_o for_o if_o she_o be_v conceive_v without_o original_a sin_n her_o conception_n be_v miraculous_a whereas_o the_o conception_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v no_o more_o 4_o last_o let_v we_o not_o rash_o censure_v other_o for_o sin_n jam._n 3_o 24._o but_o admonish_v with_o meekness_n consider_v ourselves_o gal._n 6_o 1_o 2._o they_o be_v most_o sharp_a and_o severe_a judge_n of_o other_o that_o forget_v their_o own_o infirmity_n moreover_o mark_v here_o the_o ground_n of_o moses_n his_o unbelief_n it_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o course_n of_o natural_a reason_n ●ith_o 〈…〉_o rea●_n 〈…〉_o ene●_n 〈◊〉_d ●ith_o and_o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o want_n of_o ordinary_a mean_n observe_v from_o hence_o that_o natural_a reason_n and_o carnal_a wisdom_n be_v oftentimes_o enemy_n unto_o faith_n the_o yield_v too_o much_o to_o our_o own_o thought_n &_o the_o behold_v of_o thing_n with_o a_o eye_n of_o flesh_n do_v often_o make_v even_o the_o faithful_a doubt_n of_o god_n promise_n we_o see_v this_o in_o sarah_n gen._n 18_o 12._o in_o nicodemus_n john_n 3_o 4._o in_o zachariah_n lu._n 1_o 20._o math._n 16_o 23._o 1_o cor._n 1_o 23._o thus_o we_o be_v prone_a evermore_o to_o trust_v unto_o humane_a wisdom_n for_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n be_v oftentimes_o foolishness_n unto_o those_o that_o think_v themselves_o wise_a than_o god_n 1_o cor._n 2_o 14._o second_o the_o carnal_a reason_n that_o remain_v in_o the_o regenerate_a be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n neither_o indeed_o can_v be_v rom._n 8_o 7._o for_o no_o man_n be_v whole_o regenerate_v the_o best_a consist_v of_o two_o man_n for_o they_o be_v partly_o the_o old_a man_n and_o partly_o the_o new_a man_n they_o be_v partly_o regenerate_v and_o in_o part_n they_o remain_v unregenerate_a the_o use_v therefore_o we_o must_v not_o counsel_v with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o god_n &_o use_v 1_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n rom._n 4_o 19_o 20._o gal._n 1_o 16._o prou._n 3_o 5._o let_v we_o consult_v with_o the_o scripture_n and_o make_v the_o word_n of_o god_n our_o counsellor_n and_o learn_v to_o submit_v all_o that_o be_v in_o we_o to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n the_o eye_n be_v not_o able_a to_o look_v upon_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o sun_n so_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o reason_n be_v dazzle_v at_o the_o glorious_a thing_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n which_o thing_n the_o angel_n desire_v to_o look_v into_o 12._o 〈◊〉_d 1_o 12._o this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o make_v many_o shrink_v back_o when_o they_o see_v the_o great_a number_n to_o walk_v in_o the_o broad_a way_n that_o lead_v to_o destruction_n when_o they_o see_v the_o church_n for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o consist_v of_o the_o poor_a sort_n and_o religion_n to_o be_v chief_o embrace_v of_o they_o they_o be_v offend_v when_o they_o see_v wicked_a man_n to_o prosper_v for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o walk_v by_o reason_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o eye_n not_o by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o we_o be_v even_o the_o best_a of_o we_o fool_n and_o blind_a in_o the_o matter_n of_o god_n and_o we_o must_v know_v ourselves_o to_o be_v fool_n before_o we_o can_v learn_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o submit_v ourselves_o unto_o it_o marvel_v not_o therefore_o if_o few_o believe_v and_o obey_v use_v 2_o second_o the_o natural_a man_n can_v please_v god_n rom._n 8_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o all_o his_o knowledge_n reason_n wisdom_n and_o understanding_n can_v make_v he_o accept_v tit._n 1_o 15._o he_o be_v without_o faith_n which_o purify_v the_o heart_n and_o therefore_o all_o his_o work_n be_v unsavoury_a before_o he_o woeful_a therefore_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o a_o unbeliever_n whatsoever_o he_o do_v be_v sin_n in_o every_o thought_n word_n and_o deed_n he_o sin_v wake_v and_o sleep_v he_o sin_v even_o in_o the_o action_n of_o religion_n and_o every_o work_n increase_v his_o reckon_n and_o add_v to_o the_o account_n that_o he_o be_v to_o make_v and_o as_o the_o faithful_a man_n the_o long_o he_o live_v the_o more_o gracious_a and_o acceptable_a he_o be_v to_o god_n so_o the_o unbeliever_n the_o long_o he_o live_v the_o more_o he_o add_v to_o the_o heap_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o the_o day_n of_o his_o reckon_n will_v be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o fearful_a and_o dreadful_a gen._n 15_o 16._o for_o as_o the_o ammorites_n be_v daily_o fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o so_o haste_v unto_o judgement_n so_o be_v it_o with_o the_o unregenerate_a person_n the_o soon_o he_o die_v and_o be_v
and_o tempest_n while_o they_o be_v secure_a and_o think_v nothing_o of_o their_o end_n while_o they_o eat_v &_o drink_v and_o be_v drunken_a and_o give_v to_o unlawful_a pleasure_n the_o judgement_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v as_o a_o swift_a messenger_n or_o a_o sudden_a wind_n that_o shall_v blow_v they_o away_o as_o chaff_n for_o though_o god_n in_o patience_n bear_v with_o they_o and_o put_v off_o his_o judgement_n for_o a_o season_n yet_o when_o they_o do_v come_v they_o shall_v come_v swift_o and_o sudden_o indeed_o it_o often_o make_v the_o best_a of_o god_n child_n to_o stumble_v to_o see_v the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o grieve_v much_o to_o see_v man_n lie_v in_o their_o sin_n as_o swine_n in_o the_o mire_n or_o dog_n in_o their_o vomit_n to_o grow_v great_a and_o continue_v long_o without_o any_o cross_n or_o affliction_n but_o let_v they_o wait_v but_o awhile_o and_o sudden_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n to_o overtake_v they_o in_o their_o great_a ruff_n and_o riot_n into_o which_o they_o break_v let_v not_o man_n therefore_o envy_v they_o their_o honour_n and_o glory_n their_o riches_n and_o prosperity_n for_o they_o all_o shall_v be_v turn_v into_o curse_n and_o judgement_n who_o will_v repine_v at_o it_o to_o see_v a_o thief_n carry_v along_o through_o fair_a field_n and_o green_a meadow_n in_o a_o rich_a coach_n to_o the_o gallows_n or_o place_n of_o execution_n there_o be_v cause_n rather_o to_o be_v greeve_v at_o it_o and_o to_o pity_v he_o then_o to_o envy_v he_o so_o likewise_o why_o shall_v we_o envy_v at_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o wicked_a consider_v it_o be_v the_o highway_n that_o lead_v to_o death_n and_o the_o very_a occasion_n of_o their_o ruin_n they_o stand_v in_o danger_n every_o hour_n to_o be_v overtake_v with_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n which_o come_v sudden_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o time_n to_o make_v their_o peace_n or_o to_o reconcile_v themselves_o by_o true_a repentance_n psal_n 37.35_o 36._o we_o have_v cause_n therefore_o to_o mourn_v for_o they_o and_o not_o to_o murmur_v at_o they_o three_o from_o hence_o arise_v comfort_n to_o the_o faithful_a what_o though_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o use_v 3_o wicked_a prosper_v &_o increase_v in_o riches_n though_o their_o eye_n stand_v out_o for_o fatness_n and_o cruelty_n compass_v they_o as_o a_o garment_n and_o they_o have_v more_o than_o heart_n can_v wish_v and_o what_o though_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o godly_a be_v afflict_v and_o in_o trouble_n though_o they_o be_v in_o want_n and_o oppress_v though_o they_o be_v in_o misery_n and_o suffer_v many_o wrong_n 73.13_o psal_n 73.13_o yet_o we_o must_v not_o be_v discourage_v nor_o say_v we_o have_v cleanse_v our_o heart_n in_o vain_a and_o in_o vain_a we_o have_v wash_v our_o hand_n in_o innocency_n forasmuch_o as_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o desolation_n as_o in_o a_o moment_n they_o be_v utter_o consume_v with_o terror_n as_o a_o dream_n when_o one_o awake_v 20._o verse_n 19_o 20._o let_v we_o therefore_o be_v of_o good_a comfort_n and_o not_o shrink_v away_o they_o be_v like_o the_o grass_n or_o flower_n of_o the_o field_n which_o grow_v and_o flourish_v to_o day_n and_o to_o morrow_n wither_v and_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o oven_n or_o rathey_v they_o be_v much_o more_o brittle_a and_o subject_a to_o a_o speedy_a change_n let_v we_o commit_v our_o way_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o trust_n in_o he_o let_v we_o give_v all_o diligence_n to_o walk_v in_o his_o way_n which_o be_v sanctify_v and_o holy_a way_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v repute_v among_o the_o wicked_a and_o so_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o the_o suddenness_n of_o their_o downfall_n let_v we_o wait_v patient_o upon_o he_o for_o yet_o a_o very_a little_a while_n and_o the_o wicked_a shall_v not_o appear_v thou_o shall_v look_v after_o his_o place_n and_o yet_o shall_v not_o find_v he_o sudden_a destruction_n shall_v seize_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o sergeant_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v carry_v away_o as_o with_o a_o strong_a whirlwind_n in_o a_o tempestuous_a and_o stormy_a day_n use_v 4_o four_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o watch_v and_o attend_v with_o all_o care_n for_o the_o time_n of_o judgement_n the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o the_o time_n of_o judgement_n be_v twofold_a general_a and_o particular_a general_n when_o christ_n shall_v break_v the_o heaven_n and_o come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n when_o the_o pillar_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o whole_a frame_n of_o heaven_n shall_v be_v dissolve_v particular_a at_o the_o day_n of_o our_o death_n when_o every_o particular_a soul_n must_v appear_v before_o the_o bar_n and_o give_v a_o account_n what_o i●_n have_v do_v great_a will_v be_v our_o misery_n if_o god_n come_v &_o find_v we_o careless_a and_o secure_a if_o a_o man_n know_v at_o what_o hour_n the_o thief_n will_v come_v doubtless_o he_o will_v watch_v and_o not_o suffer_v his_o house_n to_o be_v break_v through_o mark_v 13_o 35_o 36._o and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n wherefore_o it_o please_v god_n to_o conceal_v from_o we_o as_o well_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n as_o the_o day_n of_o our_o death_n he_o will_v not_o have_v we_o know_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n when_o he_o will_v come_v or_o when_o we_o shall_v die_v to_o the_o end_n we_o shall_v always_o watch_v and_o pray_v and_o be_v in_o readiness_n have_v our_o loin_n gird_v and_o oil_n in_o our_o lamp_n nothing_o be_v more_o certain_a than_o that_o he_o will_v come_v enoch_n the_o seven_o from_o adam_n prophesy_v of_o it_o before_o the_o flood_n that_o the_o lord_n come_v with_o thousand_o of_o his_o saint_n jude_n verse_n 14._o howbeit_o nothing_o be_v more_o uncertain_a than_o when_o he_o will_v come_v for_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n and_o the_o son_n himself_o as_o he_o be_v man_n know_v it_o not_o but_o the_o father_n only_o mat._n 24_o 36._o mar._n 13_o 32._o so_o nothing_o be_v more_o certain_a than_o our_o death_n and_o dissolution_n and_o nothing_o more_o uncertain_a than_o the_o time_n thereof_o that_o we_o shall_v learn_v to_o look_v for_o he_o every_o day_n nay_o every_o hour_n nay_o every_o minute_n it_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o austin_n that_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v we_o to_o know_v the_o time_n of_o his_o first_o come_n hesych_n aug_n epist_n ad_fw-la hesych_n because_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o be_v profitable_a and_o necessary_a and_o therefore_o do_v the_o lord_n reproove_v the_o jew_n that_o they_o can_v judge_v the_o face_n of_o the_o sky_n but_o they_o know_v not_o the_o day_n of_o their_o visitation_n because_o he_o that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o first_o come_n can_v never_o prepare_v himself_o for_o his_o second_o come_v seculi_fw-la z●●ch_o de_fw-fr f●●_n seculi_fw-la but_o the_o day_n and_o time_n of_o his_o second_o come_n be_v hide_v from_o we_o because_o it_o be_v not_o expedient_a for_o we_o to_o know_v the_o same_o lest_o we_o shall_v say_v with_o the_o evil_a servant_n my_o master_n do_v defer_v his_o come_n and_o so_o fall_v to_o beat_v our_o fellow-servant_n luke_n 12_o 45._o we_o must_v be_v wise-hearted_n and_o look_v for_o he_o every_o day_n and_o not_o foolish_o promise_v to_o ourselves_o a_o long_a time_n of_o his_o tarry_n lest_o we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o begin_v to_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o to_o be_v drunken_a whereas_o the_o lord_n of_o that_o servant_n shall_v come_v in_o a_o day_n that_o he_o look_v not_o for_o he_o 5●_n mat._n 24.50_o 5●_n and_o in_o a_o hour_n that_o he_o be_v not_o aware_a of_o and_o shall_v cut_v he_o asunder_o and_o appoint_v he_o his_o portion_n with_o the_o hypocrite_n there_o shall_v be_v weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n and_o if_o we_o may_v not_o say_v our_o master_n do_v delay_v his_o come_n as_o evil_a servant_n then_o we_o may_v not_o say_v 4._o 2_o peter_n 3_o 4._o where_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n as_o profane_a scoffer_n and_o mocker_n do_v that_o walk_v after_o their_o own_o lust_n but_o be_v it_o that_o the_o general_a come_n of_o christ_n be_v far_o off_o yet_o his_o particular_a come_n to_o every_o one_o of_o we_o can_v be_v far_o off_o but_o be_v never_o at_o hand_n we_o know_v not_o who_o turn_n shall_v be_v the_o next_o woe_n unto_o we_o if_o we_o be_v take_v unprovided_a so_o then_o we_o see_v that_o god_n have_v conceal_v his_o come_n both_o general_a and_o particular_a not_o to_o our_o hurt_n but_o for_o our_o good_a last_o this_o serve_v to_o admonish_v all_o man_n use_v 5_o that_o see_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n shall_v come_v sudden_o and_o that_o sudden_a death_n and_o sudden_a
their_o conscience_n can_v find_v out_o somewhat_o we_o may_v just_o fear_v and_o suspect_v there_o be_v more_o behind_o that_o be_v unespied_a of_o we_o and_o therefore_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o humble_v ourselves_o under_o his_o most_o mighty_a hand_n we_o shall_v judge_v ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o the_o lord_n 11_o 1_o cor._n 11_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o escape_v his_o judgement_n that_o know_v all_o and_o be_v ignorant_a of_o nothing_o four_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a comfort_n to_o use_v 4_o those_o that_o be_v the_o lord_n because_o though_o they_o be_v oppress_v with_o false_a judgement_n &_o uncharitable_a calumniation_n of_o man_n yet_o when_o he_o judge_v he_o will_v judge_v righteous_o when_o he_o come_v to_o try_v all_o the_o child_n of_o man_n he_o will_v first_o make_v enquiry_n before_o ever_o he_o proceed_v against_o they_o therefore_o this_o be_v the_o comfort_n of_o every_o man_n he_o shall_v never_o be_v wrong_v before_o god_n howsoever_o he_o may_v be_v before_o man_n so_o that_o he_o may_v stand_v at_o defiance_n with_o all_o his_o adversary_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v forasmuch_o as_o god_n will_v proceed_v so_o just_o and_o righteous_o with_o he_o though_o they_o have_v heavy_a and_o horrible_a thing_n lay_v to_o their_o charge_n by_o malicious_a man_n yet_o god_n himself_o will_v do_v they_o right_o and_o albeit_o they_o be_v deny_v justice_n upon_o earth_n yet_o with_o god_n they_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o have_v righteous_a judgement_n five_o this_o serve_v to_o inform_v those_o that_o sit_v use_v in_o any_o place_n of_o justice_n to_o do_v right_a to_o other_o either_o public_a or_o private_a in_o the_o commonwealth_n or_o in_o the_o family_n namely_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o proceed_v but_o upon_o a_o sure_a and_o know_a cause_n it_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o god_n so_o to_o do_v and_o it_o ought_v also_o to_o be_v they_o and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o god_n so_o also_o it_o be_v the_o precept_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v obedient_a whosoever_o will_v judge_v true_o he_o must_v labour_v so_o to_o do_v it_o that_o he_o pervert_v not_o justice_n it_o be_v the_o course_n that_o god_n have_v usual_o take_v and_o therefore_o they_o that_o will_v be_v like_a unto_o god_n must_v proceed_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n so_o as_o they_o have_v he_o for_o a_o example_n first_o we_o must_v make_v enquiry_n and_o after_o the_o cause_n be_v try_v &_o know_v to_o sit_v in_o judgement_n otherwise_o we_o can_v never_o deal_v just_o pro._n 18_o 13._o act_n 21_o 33_o &_o 22_o 24._o some_o do_v altogether_o trust_v report_n and_o accusation_n of_o servant_n and_o have_v but_o one_o ear_n to_o hear_v but_o as_o we_o have_v one_o ear_n that_o we_o lend_v to_o the_o accuser_n so_o we_o shall_v keep_v another_o always_o for_o the_o accuse_v last_o this_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o general_n use_v 6_o judgement_n at_o the_o last_o day_n that_o all_o must_v appear_v before_o god_n judgement_n seat_n and_o be_v judge_v of_o he_o dan._n 12_o 2._o true_a it_o be_v there_o shall_v mocker_n arise_v and_o there_o be_v such_o atheist_n already_o rise_v in_o the_o world_n that_o shall_v say_v where_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n howbeit_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n require_v it_o though_o the_o patience_n of_o god_n do_v defer_v it_o we_o see_v not_o this_o always_o do_v in_o this_o world_n 5._o 〈…〉_o ●1_n 6_o ●6_n 25._o ●15_n 19_o ●_o 10._o 〈…〉_o 5._o at_o that_o day_n shall_v every_o man_n receive_v according_a to_o the_o thing_n he_o have_v do_v in_o his_o body_n whether_o good_a or_o evil_n let_v we_o therefore_o endeavour_n evermore_o to_o keep_v a_o good_a conscience_n towards_o god_n and_o man_n 6._o and_o he_o say_v hear_v now_o my_o word_n if_o there_o be_v a_o prophet_n among_o you_o i_o the_o lord_n will_v make_v myself_o know_v unto_o he_o in_o a_o vision_n and_o will_v speak_v unto_o he_o in_o a_o dream_n 7._o my_o servant_n moses_n be_v not_o so_o who_o be_v faithful_a in_o all_o my_o house_n 8._o with_o he_o will_v i_o speak_v mouth_n to_o mouth_n etc._n etc._n after_o the_o citation_n follow_v the_o convince_a of_o those_o guilty_a person_n to_o their_o face_n for_o in_o judgement_n the_o party_n accuse_v must_v be_v present_a 16._o 〈◊〉_d 51._o 〈◊〉_d 10._o 〈◊〉_d 15._o ●_o 16._o this_o conviction_n have_v a_o preface_n command_v they_o to_o hear_v for_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o to_o hear_v when_o god_n speak_v and_o the_o substance_n itself_o contain_v god_n argue_v plead_v &_o witness_v against_o they_o and_o a_o reproof_n of_o they_o in_o the_o plead_a god_n declare_v that_o he_o communicate_v himself_o in_o special_a manner_n to_o moses_n above_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophet_n he_o speak_v to_o they_o by_o vision_n and_o dream_n but_o to_o he_o mouth_n to_o mouth_n apparent_o not_o dark_o 16._o but_o do_v moses_n see_v god_n essence_n &_o behold_v he_o as_o he_o be_v who_o be_v say_v to_o behold_v the_o similitude_n of_o the_o lord_n 16._o answ_n no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n deut._n 34_o 10._o exod._n 33_o and_o 34._o he_o see_v the_o likeness_n of_o god_n not_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n he_o see_v he_o in_o a_o certain_a resemblance_n so_o far_o as_o he_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v and_o comprehend_v and_o far_o than_o any_o other_o and_o in_o a_o great_a measure_n and_o degree_n than_o the_o rest_n for_o as_o god_n call_v he_o to_o a_o great_a office_n and_o function_n so_o he_o endue_v he_o with_o great_a gift_n heb._n 3_o 4_o 5._o observe_v from_o hence_o that_o in_o former_a time_n god_n use_v many_o way_n to_o discover_v and_o manifest_v his_o truth_n and_o will_n unto_o his_o people_n heb._n 1_o 1._o see_v hereby_o the_o greatness_n and_o excellency_n of_o his_o hand_n he_o have_v diverse_a way_n to_o manifest_v his_o truth_n he_o use_v what_o seem_v best_a to_o himself_o job_n 33._o again_o we_o have_v occasion_n hereby_o to_o consider_v that_o god_n mercy_n be_v great_a to_o we_o they_o to_o our_o forefather_n christ_n have_v leave_v unto_o we_o from_o the_o bosom_n of_o his_o father_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n shine_v bright_a in_o our_o eye_n 16._o moreover_o in_o compare_v moses_n with_o the_o prophet_n and_o prefer_v he_o 9_o doctrine_n god_n reveal_v himself_o ●o_o one_o mo_z e_o then_o to_o another_o ●_o cor_fw-la 12._o ●_o 3_o luke_n 1.16.17_o mat_n 11.11_o 2._o king_n 2_o 9_o we_o see_v that_o god_n reveal_v himself_o to_o one_o more_o than_o to_o another_o and_o give_v great_a gift_n to_o some_o than_o he_o do_v to_o other_o to_o moses_n more_fw-it plenti_fw-la ully_fw-mi then_o to_o the_o prophet_n to_o the_o end_n we_o shall_v stand_v in_o need_n one_o of_o another_o and_o thereby_o bind_v we_o more_o close_o together_o and_o to_o try_v we_o how_o we_o will_v employ_v they_o to_o the_o good_a of_o other_o as_o he_o do_v in_o earthly_a blessing_n this_o point_n be_v of_o good_a use_n unto_o we_o be_v right_o apply_v let_v use_v 1_o not_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v a_o great_a portion_n and_o measure_n of_o grace_n contemn_v such_o as_o have_v less_o for_o shall_v the_o servant_n disgrace_n or_o reproach_n such_o as_o the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n do_v accept_v and_o approve_v nay_o do_v grace_n and_o honour_n mat_n 25.23_o and_o as_o for_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v less_o let_v not_o they_o envy_v those_o that_o god_n have_v make_v above_o they_o for_o though_o one_o member_n in_o the_o body_n have_v more_o honour_n than_o another_o yet_o be_v there_o no_o division_n in_o the_o body_n so_o the_o strong_a shall_v bear_v with_o the_o weak_a again_o let_v every_o use_v 2_o one_o be_v thankful_a for_o gift_n receive_v that_o they_o may_v be_v sanctify_v to_o ourselves_o and_o to_o other_o 1_o cor._n 14.18_o last_o it_o behoove_v we_o to_o use_v 3_o stir_v up_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o and_o to_o desire_v the_o best_a gift_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v do_v the_o most_o good_a it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o hide_v the_o gift_n we_o have_v receive_v as_o the_o evil_a servant_n do_v his_o talon_n and_o if_o to_o cover_v they_o under_o a_o bushel_n much_o more_o to_o turn_v they_o and_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n &_o the_o subvert_v of_o the_o faith_n as_o many_o do_v that_o be_v not_o sanctify_v let_v we_o labour_n to_o use_v they_o and_o to_o use_v they_o well_o that_o we_o may_v grow_v in_o knowledge_n zeal_n and_o sanctification_n 1.7_o 2_o tim._n 1.7_o lest_o they_o decay_v in_o we_o &_o so_o be_v take_v away_o
thou_o to_o have_v thy_o brother_n wife_n matthew_z 14._o verse_n 4._o they_o dare_v not_o say_v to_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n as_o christ_n do_v woe_n unto_o you_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n 23._o matth._n 23._o hypocrite_n but_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o offend_v all_o these_o six_o sort_n be_v unfaithful_a teacher_n &_o we_o have_v show_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o unfaithfulnesse_n they_o be_v unfaithful_a through_o their_o ignorance_n unfaithful_a through_o their_o error_n unfaithful_a through_o their_o idleness_n unfaithful_a through_o their_o unskilfulnesse_n unfaithful_a through_o their_o scandale_n unfaithful_a through_o their_o flattery_n use_v 2_o second_o this_o reprove_v the_o people_n that_o upbraid_v the_o minister_n with_o too_o much_o teach_v for_o it_o be_v require_v of_o they_o that_o they_o be_v find_v faithful_a they_o must_v teach_v &_o instruct_v in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n but_o many_o careless_a hearer_n advise_v they_o to_o spare_v their_o labour_n paul_n say_v woe_n unto_o i_o 23._o 1_o cor._n 9.20_o 21_o 22_o 23._o if_o i_o preach_v not_o the_o gospel_n he_o labour_v great_o that_o by_o all_o mean_v he_o may_v save_v some_o many_o tell_v we_o we_o a●_n too_o busy_a and_o do_v meddle_v with_o reprove_v sin_n more_o than_o we_o need_v but_o how_o then_o shall_v we_o be_v find_v faithful_a in_o the_o lord_n business_n or_o how_o shall_v we_o escape_v the_o punishment_n of_o unfaithfulnesse_n in_o the_o great_a day_n of_o account_n none_o shall_v receive_v the_o incorruptible_a crown_n of_o glory_n but_o such_o as_o have_v be_v faithful_a and_o none_o shall_v be_v exempt_v from_o eternal_a judgement_n that_o have_v be_v unfaithful_a such_o man_n care_v not_o how_o little_o they_o hear_v that_o think_v the_o minister_n preach_v too_o much_o nay_o they_o can_v be_v content_a to_o hear_v nothing_o at_o all_o who_o reward_n shall_v be_v according_a to_o their_o negligence_n use_v 3_o three_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o minister_n to_o labour_n for_o this_o virtue_n and_o to_o approve_v themselves_o to_o god_n in_o a_o faithful_a and_o careful_a discharge_n of_o their_o calling_n this_o be_v a_o duty_n which_o god_n so_o often_o and_o so_o strict_o command_v and_o by_o the_o execution_n of_o that_o commandment_n we_o be_v say_v to_o save_v man_n by_o preach_v 4.16_o minister_n be_v say_v to_o save_v job_n 33.24_o rom._n 11.14_o 1_o cor._n 9.22_o 1_o tim._n 4.16_o and_o to_o deliver_v from_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n this_o shall_v also_o bring_v unspeakable_a joy_n and_o comfort_n peace_n and_o quietness_n to_o our_o conscience_n when_o we_o be_v desirous_a to_o discharge_v our_o duty_n in_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n happy_a be_v they_o that_o have_v this_o testimony_n of_o their_o conscience_n that_o they_o have_v this_o way_n promote_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n advance_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o further_v the_o salvation_n of_o man_n oh_o how_o happy_a be_v it_o for_o we_o that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v of_o we_o as_o it_o be_v of_o moses_n in_o this_o place_n that_o we_o have_v be_v faithful_a in_o his_o house_n and_o thrice_o happy_a shall_v we_o be_v if_o at_o the_o last_o day_n our_o lord_n and_o master_n come_v from_o heaven_n as_o a_o man_n that_o begin_v to_o take_v a_o account_n of_o his_o servant_n shall_v say_v unto_o we_o well_o do_v 25.21.23_o mat._n 25.21.23_o good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n thou_o have_v be_v faithful_a over_o a_o few_o thing_n i_o will_v make_v thou_o ruler_n over_o many_o thing_n enter_v thou_o into_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o lord_n if_o i_o shall_v stand_v to_o set_v down_o particular_o the_o part_n of_o this_o faithfulness_n whereby_o we_o may_v procure_v the_o commendation_n to_o ourselves_o which_o be_v give_v to_o moses_n i_o shall_v stand_v too_o long_o the_o minister_n must_v be_v man_n of_o knowledge_n otherwise_o how_o shall_v they_o teach_v knowledge_n they_o must_v be_v man_n of_o zeal_n of_o painfulness_n and_o diligence_n of_o a_o holy_a and_o unblameable_a life_n of_o sincerity_n and_o uprightness_n they_o must_v reprove_v sin_n as_o god_n punish_v sin_n that_o be_v without_o respect_n of_o person_n in_o whosoever_o they_o find_v it_o they_o must_v keep_v back_o nothing_o but_o reveal_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n final_o they_o must_v take_v heed_n to_o themselves_o and_o to_o the_o flock_n 〈…〉_o act._n 〈…〉_o over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v they_o overseer_n verse_n 28._o last_o that_o which_o be_v here_o particular_o apply_v use_v to_o the_o minister_n aught_o to_o be_v extend_v &_o enlarge_v to_o all_o other_o which_o have_v receive_v any_o call_n from_o god_n in_o what_o place_n soever_o god_n have_v set_v we_o we_o must_v be_v faithful_a in_o it_o the_o magistrate_n must_v be_v faithful_a in_o the_o government_n of_o his_o people_n ●_o psal_n 101._o ●_o he_o must_v sing_v of_o mercy_n and_o of_o judgement_n the_o judge_n must_v be_v faithful_a in_o the_o minister_a and_o execute_v of_o justice_n ●_o exod._n 18._o ●_o have_v courage_n and_o hate_v covetousness_n know_v that_o they_o judge_v not_o for_o man_n but_o for_o the_o lord_n ●_o 2_o chro._n ●_o the_o householder_n must_v be_v faithful_a in_o order_v and_o reform_v of_o his_o family_n and_o walk_v in_o his_o house_n with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n psa_n 101.2_o to_o conclude_v all_o inferior_n must_v also_o be_v faithful_a in_o their_o place_n to_o yield_v honour_n and_o reverence_n to_o show_v trust_n and_o diligence_n towards_o their_o superior_n 8._o ephes_n 6._o ●_o 7_o 8._o consider_v that_o god_n have_v set_v they_o in_o their_o place_n remember_v that_o every_o man_n may_v gain_v glory_n to_o his_o name_n if_o he_o be_v find_v diligent_a how_o mean_a soever_o his_o calling_n be_v and_o know_v that_o whatsoever_o good_a thing_n any_o man_n do_v the_o same_o shall_v he_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n whether_o he_o be_v bond_n or_o free_a 9_o and_o the_o anger_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v kindle_v against_o they_o and_o he_o depart_v 10_o and_o the_o cloud_n depart_v from_o off_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o behold_v miriam_n become_v leprous_a white_a as_o snow_n and_o aaron_n look_v upon_o miriam_n and_o behold_v she_o be_v leprous_a now_o we_o come_v to_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o sentence_n for_o when_o evil_a doer_n stand_v dumb_a before_o the_o iugde_v and_o can_v answer_v nothing_o for_o themselves_o but_o confess_v themselves_o guilty_a what_o remain_v but_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o punishment_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o achan_n who_o confess_v he_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n and_o be_v stone_v with_o stone_n ●_o jo●●_n 7._o ●_o and_o of_o he_o that_o come_v to_o the_o feast_n without_o his_o wedding_n garment_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v take_v speechless_a have_v nothing_o to_o answer_v for_o himself_o the_o king_n say_v unto_o the_o servant_n chap●●●_n mat._n ●_o 〈…〉_o the_o o●_n the_o 〈…〉_o chap●●●_n bind_v he_o hand_n and_o foot_n and_o take_v he_o away_o and_o cast_v he_o into_o utter_a darkness_n the_o punishment_n be_v partly_o signify_v in_o that_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n by_o a_o metaphor_n draw_v from_o man_n be_v say_v to_o be_v kindle_v so_o that_o he_o will_v hear_v the_o offender_n speak_v no_o more_o unto_o he_o declare_v by_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o cloud_n and_o partly_o inflict_v she_o become_v leprous_a white_a as_o snow_n that_o be_v she_o be_v strike_v with_o the_o most_o grievous_a kind_n of_o leprosy_n because_o she_o be_v the_o author_n &_o procurer_n of_o this_o murmur_a 〈…〉_o levit._fw-la 〈…〉_o howbeit_o afterward_o it_o be_v in_o part_n repeal_v &_o reverse_a wherein_o we_o may_v see_v both_o the_o occasion_n &_o the_o mitigation_n of_o the_o punishment_n the_o occasion_n be_v two_o first_o the_o request_n of_o aaron_n make_v to_o moses_n not_o to_o god_n 〈…〉_o ●●quest_v 〈…〉_o who_o refuse_v to_o hear_v he_o lie_v in_o his_o sin_n or_o rather_o not_o sufficient_o humble_v for_o his_o sin_n as_o also_o he_o do_v job_n three_o friend_n 8._o 〈…〉_o 8._o he_o will_v not_o receive_v a_o sacrifice_n at_o their_o hand_n but_o job_n must_v pray_v for_o they_o lest_o he_o deal_v with_o they_o according_a to_o their_o folly_n this_o request_n of_o he_o be_v both_o general_a for_o himself_o and_o his_o sister_n that_o their_o sin_n may_v be_v pardon_v and_o not_o impute_v unto_o they_o and_o likewise_o special_a for_o miriam_n that_o she_o may_v not_o be_v a_o spectacle_n and_o gaze_a stock_n to_o the_o whole_a host_n and_o a_o monument_n of_o god_n justice_n for_o ever_o but_o may_v be_v heal_v of_o that_o foul_a and_o unclean_a disease_n 〈◊〉_d ●rayer_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o other_o occasion_n be_v the_o prayer_n of_o moses_n direct_v to_o god_n his_o hand_n have_v strike_v and_o make_v
reason_n 1_o be_v first_o because_o they_o refuse_v to_o hear_v god_n speak_v unto_o they_o it_o stand_v with_o the_o rule_n of_o equity_n that_o god_n shall_v deal_v with_o they_o as_o they_o deal_v with_o he_o 13._o ezek._n 8.8_o zach_n 7.12_o 13._o and_o stop_v his_o ear_n against_o those_o that_o will_v not_o hear_v he_o second_o his_o reason_n 2_o wrath_n lie_v upon_o they_o use_v 1_o conclude_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v abominable_a pro._n 28._o not_o only_o their_o sin_n provoke_v god_n but_o their_o prayer_n and_o their_o best_a work_n so_o that_o though_o they_o multiply_v they_o yet_o he_o will_v not_o regard_v they_o this_o show_v their_o wretched_a estate_n and_o condition_n they_o have_v no_o access_n to_o god_n they_o may_v come_v to_o his_o gate_n but_o they_o can_v have_v no_o entrance_n it_o be_v shut_v up_o against_o they_o they_o may_v knock_v &_o say_v lord_n lord_n 13.25_o luk._n 13.25_o open_a unto_o we_o but_o he_o will_v answer_v depart_v from_o i_o all_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n i_o know_v you_o not_o second_o let_v none_o continue_v in_o any_o know_a use_n 2_o sin_n but_o wash_v their_o heart_n and_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n for_o sin_n stop_v the_o ear_n of_o god_n that_o he_o can_v hear_v and_o cast_v such_o heavy_a clog_n upon_o our_o prayer_n that_o they_o can_v possible_o pierce_v the_o cloud_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n our_o iniquity_n wherein_o we_o delight_v be_v as_o fetter_n and_o bolt_n that_o be_v fasten_v to_o our_o prayer_n or_o as_o lead_v that_o press_v they_o down_o to_o the_o earth_n uncomfortable_a the_o life_n of_o a_o sinner_n be_v uncomfortable_a the_o life_n of_o a_o sinner_n that_o lie_v in_o his_o sin_n be_v of_o all_o other_o live_v the_o most_o uncomfortable_a for_o if_o we_o can_v pray_v to_o god_n in_o hope_n of_o mercy_n &_o forgiveness_n when_o our_o sin_n disquiet_v we_o or_o in_o hope_n of_o deliverance_n when_o our_o trouble_n oppress_v we_o what_o comfort_n have_v we_o or_o can_v we_o have_v in_o any_o thing_n under_o the_o sun_n on_o the_o other_o side_n when_o the_o faithful_a lie_n under_o infinite_a calamity_n comfortable_a the_o life_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v most_o comfortable_a sickness_n poverty_n shame_n contempt_n reproach_n slander_n infamy_n sickness_n be_v forsake_v of_o all_o and_o hate_v of_o all_o even_o lade_v with_o a_o heap_n of_o misery_n and_o adversity_n yet_o this_o be_v their_o comfort_n they_o can_v free_o go_v unto_o god_n &_o have_v access_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n they_o may_v pray_v unto_o he_o &_o as_o it_o be_v pour_v out_o their_o complaint_n in_o his_o bosom_n last_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n be_v reconcile_v unto_o use_n god_n to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o our_o brethren_n also_o for_o no_o man_n be_v true_o at_o one_o with_o god_n ●_o mat._n 6_o 1●_n and_o 3._o ●_o that_o be_v not_o make_v one_o with_o his_o brother_n and_o except_o we_o forgive_v man_n their_o trespass_n our_o heavenly_a father_n will_v never_o forgive_v we_o therefore_o whensoever_o we_o bring_v our_o gift_n to_o the_o altar_n and_o there_o remember_v that_o our_o brother_n have_v aught_o against_o we_o we_o must_v leave_v our_o gift_n before_o the_o altar_n and_o go_v our_o way_n to_o be_v reconcile_v first_o of_o all_o to_o our_o brother_n as_o than_o we_o desire_v forgiveness_n of_o god_n so_o ought_v we_o to_o forgive_v god_n forgive_v upon_o condition_n that_o we_o shall_v forgive_v those_o that_o be_v unmerciful_a shall_v never_o find_v mercy_n we_o can_v have_v a_o more_o perfect_a precedent_n to_o move_v we_o to_o mercy_n then_o to_o consider_v how_o god_n deal_v with_o we_o he_o consider_v whereof_o we_o be_v make_v he_o remember_v that_o we_o be_v but_o dust_n we_o think_v it_o much_o and_o oftentimes_o complain_v that_o god_n will_v not_o hear_v our_o prayer_n but_o we_o seldom_o or_o never_o consider_v that_o the_o fault_n be_v in_o ourselves_o because_o we_o will_v not_o hear_v our_o brethren_n and_o what_o exception_n can_v we_o take_v against_o our_o brethren_n which_o god_n may_v not_o ten_o thousand_o time_n better_a except_o against_o we_o have_v we_o deserve_v better_a at_o their_o hand_n then_o to_o be_v so_o abuse_v as_o we_o pretend_v our_o self_n to_o be_v so_o have_v god_n of_o we_o and_o we_o can_v deny_v it_o be_v we_o his_o better_n and_o superior_n so_o be_v god_n we_o we_o use_v to_o say_v we_o be_v not_o for_o he_o we_o live_v not_o by_o he_o we_o can_v live_v well_o enough_o without_o he_o neither_o do_v god_n live_v by_o we_o but_o we_o by_o he_o and_o he_o can_v live_v without_o we_o who_o live_v before_o we_o but_o not_o we_o without_o he_o have_v we_o often_o warn_v he_o to_o look_v to_o his_o way_n and_o not_o to_o abuse_v we_o any_o long_a so_o have_v god_n often_o warn_v us._n have_v we_o receive_v wrong_v after_o wrong_n and_o forgive_v seven_o time_n or_o seventy_o time_n seven_o time_n so_o have_v god_n forgive_v we_o ten_o thousand_o talent_n for_o a_o hundred_o penny_n 28._o matth._n 1●_n 28._o if_o then_o we_o retain_v any_o malice_n in_o our_o heart_n our_o prayer_n be_v not_o regard_v nay_o they_o be_v reject_v as_o vile_a and_o abominable_a alas_o my_o lord_n i_o beseech_v thou_o lay_v not_o the_o sin_n upon_o we_o wherein_o we_o have_v do_v foolish_o etc._n etc._n observe_v here_o a_o notable_a point_n in_o aaron_n he_o be_v not_o strike_v with_o the_o leprosy_n but_o be_v free_a from_o it_o altogether_o miriam_n be_v strike_v with_o the_o leprosy_n but_o it_o be_v aaron_n that_o call_v for_o mercy_n when_o he_o look_v upon_o she_o and_o see_v it_o for_o the_o priest_n be_v appoint_v to_o look_v upon_o it_o and_o to_o pronounce_v the_o person_n to_o be_v either_o clean_a or_o unclean_a so_o that_o punishment_n upon_o other_o shall_v cause_v we_o to_o amend_v and_o to_o look_v to_o ourselves_o again_o we_o ought_v to_o desire_v the_o good_a one_o of_o another_o &_o to_o have_v a_o fellow-feeling_n of_o the_o misery_n one_o of_o another_o see_v also_o that_o he_o be_v as_o much_o humble_v and_o cast_v down_o nay_o more_o than_o she_o be_v for_o this_o sin_n and_o confess_v he_o have_v do_v amiss_o we_o learn_v hereby_o that_o sin_n commit_v against_o god_n must_v touch_v we_o and_o go_v near_o unto_o we_o though_o we_o feel_v no_o punishment_n vp●_n ●●●●ine_n 〈…〉_o ●ght_v 〈…〉_o sin_n 〈◊〉_d we_o 〈◊〉_d pu●_n vp●_n it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n to_o be_v humble_v when_o the_o punishment_n be_v heavy_a upon_o we_o but_o to_o be_v bring_v low_a even_o upon_o our_o knee_n and_o to_o say_v with_o aron_n alas_o lay_v not_o the_o sin_n upon_o we_o be_v a_o notable_a and_o necessary_a duty_n require_v of_o us._n the_o most_o wicked_a man_n in_o the_o world_n that_o sin_n with_o a_o high_a hand_n will_v confess_v their_o sin_n under_o the_o cross_n while_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n lie_v upon_o they_o as_o we_o see_v in_o cain_n in_o pharaoh_n in_o saul_n in_o judas_n and_o other_o but_o this_o arise_v more_o in_o consideration_n of_o the_o punishment_n then_o of_o the_o sin_n howbeit_o aaron_n in_o this_o place_n feel_v no_o punishment_n though_o he_o be_v a_o companion_n in_o the_o offence_n which_o fall_v out_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o priesthood_n vp●_n for_o if_o any_o ask_v why_o he_o be_v not_o strike_v with_o the_o leprosy_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o same_o iniquity_n vp●_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o that_o his_o offence_n be_v slight_a but_o because_o his_o office_n be_v great_a he_o be_v a_o lively_a image_n of_o christ_n jesus_n our_o true_a mediator_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n pu●d_n 〈◊〉_d a●●on●ot_a ●ot_z pu●d_n god_n will_v not_o therefore_o bring_v his_o person_n into_o contempt_n and_o reproach_n lest_o the_o priesthood_n also_o shall_v be_v reproach_v beside_o he_o do_v not_o contrive_v it_o but_o consent_n to_o it_o and_o be_v draw_v no_o doubt_n after_o a_o sort_n even_o against_o his_o will_n by_o his_o sister_n into_o a_o fellowship_n of_o this_o murmur_a as_o he_o have_v be_v before_o by_o the_o people_n to_o make_v the_o golden_a calf_n she_o have_v the_o principal_a han●_n in_o the_o sin_n and_o consequent_o in_o the_o judgement_n we_o must_v therefore_o be_v touch_v with_o sin_n principal_o because_o it_o be_v sin_n not_o because_o the_o punishment_n lie_v upon_o we_o but_o though_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v punish_v and_o plague_v though_o there_o be_v no_o day_n of_o judgement_n no_o fear_n of_o hell_n no_o sentence_n of_o death_n no_o feel_n of_o torment_n yet_o sin_n shall_v be_v bitter_a and_o grievous_a unto_o we_o even_o because_o it_o be_v sin_n
nothing_o in_o the_o world_n shall_v trouble_v we_o more_o than_o that_o the_o law_n be_v transgress_v &_o god_n be_v offend_v david_n be_v not_o in_o person_n strike_v with_o the_o pestilence_n though_o it_o do_v destroy_v at_o noon_n day_n and_o thousand_o fall_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n &_o ten_o thousand_o at_o his_o left_a neither_o come_v it_o near_o he_o yet_o he_o be_v no_o less_o humble_v &_o grieve_v in_o his_o soul_n 32.25_o 〈…〉_o 21._o 〈…〉_o ●g_z 20.6_o 〈…〉_o ●o_o 32.25_o then_o if_o his_o body_n have_v be_v strike_v with_o many_o run_a sore_n hezekiah_n have_v a_o express_a promise_n from_o god_n of_o add_v fifteen_o year_n unto_o his_o day_n and_o when_o his_o heart_n be_v lift_v up_o glory_v in_o his_o riches_n and_o treasure_n in_o his_o silver_n and_o gold_n in_o his_o armour_n and_o ointment_n in_o his_o spice_n and_o jewel_n which_o he_o have_v show_v to_o the_o messenger_n of_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n the_o lord_n threaten_v that_o in_o his_o son_n day_n all_o those_o precious_a thing_n shall_v be_v carry_v to_o babylon_n so_o that_o he_o have_v peace_n and_o truth_n in_o his_o day_n 32.26_o 〈…〉_o 39.8_o ●o_o 32.26_o yet_o he_o humble_v himself_o for_o the_o pride_n of_o his_o heart_n both_o he_o and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o reason_n be_v plain_a for_o first_o this_o be_v a_o reason_n 1_o sign_n of_o true_a humiliation_n &_o repentance_n when_o we_o can_v mourn_v for_o sin_n be_v free_a from_o the_o least_o touch_n of_o punishment_n it_o be_v a_o plain_a token_n that_o we_o be_v touch_v with_o a_o conscience_n for_o sin_n itself_o if_o only_o we_o be_v cast_v down_o for_o sin_n when_o god_n wrath_n lie_v upon_o we_o we_o rather_o complain_v of_o the_o punishment_n then_o cry_v out_o for_o the_o sin_n second_o reason_n 2_o sin_n be_v able_a to_o separate_v between_o god_n and_o we_o whereby_o he_o be_v dishonour_v and_o what_o ought_v to_o enter_v deep_o unto_o we_o then_o to_o consider_v how_o god_n be_v dishonour_v we_o may_v from_o hence_o lawful_o and_o true_o use_v 1_o pronounce_v a_o fearful_a woe_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v no_o way_n humble_v when_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n lie_v upon_o they_o and_o write_v bitter_a thing_n against_o they_o doubtless_o we_o need_v crave_v no_o pardon_n if_o we_o affirm_v constant_o &_o confident_o that_o they_o be_v desperate_a sinner_n they_o fear_v neither_o god_n nor_o man_n nor_o hell_n nor_o death_n nor_o damnation_n itself_o 1.6_o esay_n 1.6_o they_o have_v be_v strike_v from_o the_o sole_n of_o the_o foot_n even_o unto_o the_o head_n there_o be_v no_o soundness_n in_o they_o but_o wound_n and_o bruise_n &_o putrify_a sore_n yet_o they_o will_v not_o know_v nor_o understand_v the_o hand_n that_o have_v strike_v they_o thus_o do_v the_o lord_n complain_v by_o the_o prophet_n that_o he_o have_v give_v they_o cleanness_n of_o tooth_n in_o all_o their_o city_n 11._o amos_n 4.6.7.9.10_o 11._o and_o want_v of_o bread_n in_o all_o their_o place_n yet_o they_o have_v not_o return_v unto_o he_o he_o have_v withhold_v the_o rain_n from_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o return_v not_o unto_o he_o he_o have_v smite_v they_o with_o blast_v and_o mildew_n yet_o they_o return_v not_o unto_o he_o he_o have_v send_v among_o they_o the_o pestilence_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o egypt_n and_o overthrow_v some_o of_o they_o as_o god_n overthrow_v sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n and_o yet_o they_o return_v not_o unto_o he_o thus_o do_v they_o run_v on_o from_o evil_a to_o worse_o &_o fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o sin_n that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v reclaim_v by_o any_o punishment_n though_o never_o so_o grievous_a i_o will_v propound_v one_o famous_a or_o rather_o infamous_a example_n to_o this_o purpose_n very_o remarkable_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o be_v of_o ahaz_n the_o lord_n bring_v great_a affliction_n upon_o he_o but_o he_o seek_v to_o the_o king_n of_o assyria_n who_o help_v he_o not_o but_o not_o to_o the_o lord_n who_o can_v have_v help_v 28.22_o 2_o chro._n 28.22_o &_o in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o distress_n he_o do_v trespass_n yet_o more_o against_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v king_n ahaz_n woe_n unto_o we_o if_o it_o be_v so_o with_o we_o woe_n be_v unto_o we_o if_o his_o judgement_n do_v not_o soften_v we_o but_o harden_v we_o not_o better_v we_o but_o make_v we_o worse_o the_o fire_n purify_v the_o gold_n &_o make_v it_o more_o perfect_a but_o the_o dross_n and_o refuse_v it_o make_v worse_a than_o it_o be_v before_o so_o be_v it_o with_o impenitent_a person_n and_o all_o the_o reprobate_n who_o the_o lord_n will_v in_o the_o end_n sweep_v away_o as_o dung_n from_o the_o earth_n second_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o walk_v in_o obedience_n use_v 2_o to_o god_n principal_o because_o he_o command_v it_o not_o for_o reward_v sake_n chief_o for_o so_o do_v hireling_n who_o if_o once_o the_o hire_n cease_v will_v work_v no_o long_o we_o must_v be_v obedient_a for_o love_n to_o god_n &_o his_o law_n but_o be_v it_o not_o lawful_a to_o do_v good_a in_o hope_n of_o reward_n object_n &_o to_o propound_v to_o our_o self_n that_o end_n it_o be_v lawful_a 11.26_o answer_n heb._n 11.26_o but_o that_o must_v not_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o principal_a end_n moses_n have_v respect_n to_o the_o recompense_n of_o the_o reward_n whereby_o he_o do_v shake_v off_o all_o drowsiness_n encourage_v himself_o in_o well_o do_v and_o quicken_v his_o zeal_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o his_o people_n nevertheless_o he_o have_v other_o main_a end_n that_o he_o aim_v at_o the_o love_n of_o god_n must_v constrain_v we_o &_o his_o commandment_n bear_v sway_n in_o our_o heart_n far_o above_o all_o reward_n so_o do_v paul_n encourage_v himself_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n because_o he_o shall_v have_v a_o reward_n if_o he_o do_v it_o willing_o and_o a_o fearful_a woe_n hang_v over_o his_o head_n be_v he_o do_v it_o not_o 1_o cor._n 9.16_o 17._o howbeit_o in_o another_o place_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o love_n of_o god_n constrain_v he_o 2_o cor._n 5.14_o and_o the_o apostle_n peter_n stir_v up_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n to_o feed_v the_o flock_n because_o when_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n shall_v appear_v they_o shall_v receive_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n that_o fade_v not_o away_o 1_o pet._n 5.4_o yet_o himself_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o christ_n our_o saviour_n to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n if_o he_o love_v he_o joh._n 21.15_o 16._o so_o then_o we_o must_v labour_v to_o do_v good_a though_o we_o see_v no_o reward_n even_o in_o conscience_n of_o our_o duty_n to_o god_n and_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o abstain_v from_o sin_n for_o fear_n of_o punishment_n but_o chief_o because_o the_o righteous_a god_n hate_v it_o and_o the_o just_a judge_n condemn_v it_o use_v 3_o last_o let_v we_o hereby_o examine_v ourselves_o what_o account_n we_o make_v of_o sin_n whether_o it_o be_v grievous_a unto_o we_o as_o it_o be_v sin_n or_o not_o if_o it_o be_v we_o may_v comfort_v ourselves_o that_o we_o have_v receive_v grace_n to_o humble_v ourselves_o before_o the_o cross_n come_v for_o than_o it_o be_v a_o free_a and_o voluntary_a humiliation_n if_o we_o leave_v sin_n because_o sin_n leave_v we_o because_o we_o can_v follow_v after_o it_o because_o we_o must_v leave_v the_o world_n because_o we_o grow_v weary_a of_o it_o because_o it_o bring_v shame_n and_o reproach_n because_o we_o wax_v old_a and_o our_o youthful_a year_n be_v spend_v this_o repentance_n be_v not_o thankworthy_a but_o fall_v out_o seldom_o to_o be_v true_a repentance_n this_o be_v a_o force_a and_o constrain_v repentance_n and_o consequent_o oftentimes_o unsound_a seldom_o sincere_a if_o we_o yield_v obedience_n for_o conscience_n sake_n it_o be_v a_o token_n of_o sincerity_n we_o see_v the_o example_n of_o peter_n after_o he_o have_v fearful_o deny_v his_o master_n and_o swear_v that_o he_o never_o know_v the_o man_n it_o please_v the_o lord_n of_o life_n gracious_o to_o look_v upon_o he_o with_o a_o eye_n of_o mercy_n and_o to_o restore_v he_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n he_o have_v no_o punishment_n upon_o he_o yet_o he_o go_v out_o of_o that_o place_n and_o separate_v himself_o from_o that_o ungodly_a crew_n and_o weep_v bitter_o matt._n 26_o 75._o happy_a be_v we_o if_o we_o can_v do_v the_o like_a this_o humiliation_n shall_v bring_v peace_n and_o comfort_n at_o the_o last_o it_o be_v a_o true_a note_n that_o we_o have_v learn_v to_o know_v sin_n ●f_n our_o soul_n can_v mourn_v in_o secret_a when_o we_o be_v in_o health_n peace_n at_o liberty_n and_o in_o prosperity_n it_o be_v a_o great_a mercy_n of_o god_n vouchsafe_v unto_o we_o and_o his_o name_n
i_o rom._n 12.19_o deu._n 32_o 35._o have_v he_o say_v and_o shall_v he_o not_o do_v it_o or_o have_v he_o speak_v and_o shall_v he_o not_o make_v it_o good_a second_o he_o require_v it_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o judge_n and_o magistrate_n to_o judge_v just_o &_o not_o reason_n 2_o to_o accept_v the_o person_n of_o the_o wicked_a he_o give_v commandment_n unto_o they_o who_o he_o have_v honour_v with_o his_o own_o name_n to_o defend_v the_o poor_a and_o fatherless_a and_o to_o do_v justice_n to_o the_o afflict_a and_o needy_a psal_n 92_o 2_o 3._o if_o then_o prince_n which_o be_v god_n upon_o earth_n must_v do_v right_a judgement_n then_o certain_o the_o god_n of_o god_n and_o judge_n of_o judge_n will_v judge_v the_o people_n righteous_o and_o govern_v the_o nation_n upon_o earth_n psal_n 67_o 4._o this_o teach_v we_o that_o god_n hear_v and_o see_v and_o know_v all_o thing_n though_o our_o use_n 1_o sin_n be_v never_o so_o secret_a and_o man_n convey_v they_o never_o so_o close_o and_o labour_n to_o hide_v they_o by_o all_o the_o fetch_n and_o device_n they_o can_v yet_o they_o be_v open_a to_o he_o before_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v open_a and_o naked_a heb._n 4_o 13._o cain_n the_o first_o oppressor_n take_v his_o brother_n aside_o and_o carry_v he_o into_o the_o field_n none_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o murder_n or_o privy_a to_o it_o yet_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o dead_a do_v proclaim_v and_o publish_v as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o loud_a and_o lamentable_a voice_n both_o the_o sin_n and_o the_o sinner_n in_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n as_o full_o and_o shrill_o as_o the_o voice_n of_o live_a man_n can_v discover_v any_o thing_n treason_n and_o conspiracy_n against_o prince_n be_v plot_v for_o the_o most_o part_n close_o for_o although_o they_o prepare_v many_o yet_o they_o acquaint_v few_o with_o their_o most_o secret_a design_n nevertheless_o god_n have_v many_o way_n to_o find_v out_o those_o person_n and_o practice_n eccl._n 10.20_o curse_v not_o the_o king_n no_o not_o in_o thy_o thought_n and_o curse_v not_o the_o rich_a in_o thy_o bedchamber_n for_o a_o bird_n of_o the_o air_n shall_v carry_v the_o voice_n and_o that_o which_o have_v wing_n shall_v tell_v the_o matter_n second_o we_o may_v conclude_v the_o woeful_a estate_n of_o all_o wicked_a man_n that_o be_v oppressor_n use_v 2_o which_o think_v to_o over-beate_a the_o poor_a &_o needy_a and_o sell_v they_o for_o a_o pair_n of_o shoe_n amos_n 2.6_o for_o this_o shall_v terrify_v such_o ungodly_a person_n from_o sin_v in_o this_o kind_n they_o may_v indeed_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o shall_v escape_v or_o rely_v upon_o the_o favour_n and_o countenance_n of_o man_n or_o that_o the_o poor_a pitiful_o wrong_v dare_v not_o mutter_v against_o they_o which_o be_v encouragement_n to_o the_o mighty_a to_o commit_v sin_n and_o to_o live_v in_o it_o howbeit_o this_o be_v a_o vain_a hope_n and_o will_v in_o the_o end_n make_v ashamed_a forasmuch_o as_o albeit_o they_o may_v conceal_v their_o purpose_n from_o man_n and_o avoid_v the_o place_n of_o judgement_n yet_o they_o can_v escape_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n many_o receive_v great_a wrong_n that_o dare_v not_o open_v their_o mouth_n against_o their_o oppressor_n the_o poor_a be_v tread_v under_o foot_n of_o the_o rich_a the_o weak_a of_o they_o that_o be_v strong_a those_o of_o low_a degree_n by_o they_o that_o be_v mighty_a nevertheless_o god_n will_v open_v his_o mouth_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o afflict_a and_o stretch_v out_o his_o hand_n to_o recompense_v tribulation_n to_o all_o those_o that_o trouble_v they_o this_o use_n be_v handle_v by_o the_o apostle_n james_n chap._n 5.1_o 2._o go_v to_o now_o you_o rich_a man_n weep_v and_o howl_v for_o your_o misery_n that_o shall_v come_v upon_o you_o etc._n etc._n where_o he_o threaten_v these_o hard-hearted_a man_n with_o sundry_a judgment_n for_o the_o wrong_v they_o do_v to_o just_a man_n let_v not_o such_o therefore_o flatter_v themselves_o but_o rather_o labour_v to_o break_v off_o their_o sin_n by_o righteousness_n and_o their_o iniquity_n by_o show_v mercy_n to_o the_o poor_a if_o it_o may_v be_v a_o lengthen_v of_o their_o tranquillity_n use_v 3_o three_o see_v god_n be_v the_o great_a avenger_n of_o the_o wrong_n of_o his_o child_n that_o never_o call_v unto_o he_o for_o vengeance_n then_o much_o more_o will_v he_o pity_v they_o and_o take_v their_o cause_n into_o his_o own_o hand_n when_o they_o call_v and_o cry_v unto_o he_o day_n and_o night_n to_o save_v they_o the_o lord_n gracious_a and_o merciful_a have_v promise_v that_o when_o the_o stranger_n the_o widow_n and_o the_o fatherless_a child_n be_v vex_v and_o oppress_v and_o cry_v unto_o he_o he_o will_v certain_o hear_v they_o exod._n 22.21_o 22.23_o 24._o for_o if_o god_n stay_v not_o till_o they_o cry_v because_o sometime_o they_o can_v and_o sometime_o they_o dare_v not_o &_o tarry_v not_o till_o they_o open_v their_o mouth_n to_o complain_v then_o we_o may_v be_v assure_v that_o when_o the_o oppress_v in_o their_o misery_n and_o anguish_n of_o their_o soul_n sigh_v and_o groan_v unto_o he_o his_o wrath_n shall_v wax_v hot_a and_o he_o will_v kill_v their_o oppressor_n with_o the_o sword_n of_o his_o judgement_n use_v 4_o last_o we_o have_v a_o singular_a encouragement_n from_o hence_o unto_o patience_n in_o suffering_n even_o unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o will_v take_v their_o cause_n into_o his_o own_o hand_n at_o the_o length_n though_o they_o suffer_v long_o nay_o it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o god_n for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o leave_v his_o child_n in_o many_o trouble_n until_o thing_n seem_v to_o be_v desperate_a and_o past_a all_o hope_n of_o help_n hope_n why_o god_n oftentimes_o hold_v his_o peace_n till_o thing_n fo●me_v to_o be_v desperate_a and_o past_a all_o hope_n partly_o to_o stir_v up_o his_o people_n to_o seek_v to_o he_o with_o great_a earnestness_n of_o spirit_n partly_o to_o show_v the_o greatness_n of_o his_o own_o power_n what_o he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v partly_o to_o catch_v the_o wicked_a in_o their_o own_o crafty_a counsel_n and_o devise_n and_o partly_o to_o make_v it_o manifest_a that_o all_o our_o help_n come_v only_o from_o the_o lord_n which_o have_v make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o work_n be_v his_o the_o glory_n also_o may_v be_v he_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o ascribe_v our_o deliverance_n to_o our_o own_o power_n or_o policy_n and_o to_o say_v in_o vaunt_v wise_a my_o hand_n have_v save_v i_o judg._n 7.2_o god_n be_v patient_a and_o suffer_v long_o but_o in_o the_o end_n he_o pay_v home_o so_o that_o the_o godly_a shall_v lose_v nothing_o by_o their_o patience_n and_o the_o ungodly_a shall_v gain_v nothing_o but_o god_n vengeance_n this_o may_v be_v enlarge_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o israelite_n when_o they_o be_v in_o egypt_n the_o lord_n can_v have_v deliver_v they_o before_o any_o of_o their_o misery_n be_v bring_v upon_o they_o but_o the_o time_n appoint_v be_v not_o yet_o come_v and_o when_o all_o thing_n seem_v past_a recovery_n sudden_o god_n appear_v for_o their_o delivery_n let_v we_o therefore_o be_v patient_a and_o establish_v our_o heart_n for_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n draw_v nigh_o jam._n 5.8_o 15_o and_o miriam_n be_v shut_v up_o from_o the_o camp_n seven_o day_n and_o the_o people_n iourny_v not_o till_o miriam_n be_v bring_v in_o again_o 16_o and_o afterward_o the_o people_n remove_v from_o hazeroth_n and_o pitch_v in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o paran_n in_o these_o word_n we_o see_v the_o punishment_n inflict_v upon_o miriam_n god_n never_o threaten_v in_o vain_a but_o bring_v to_o pass_v whatsoever_o judgement_n he_o have_v denounce_v he_o threaten_v miriam_n for_o her_o murmur_a with_o the_o leprosy_n behold_v here_o how_o he_o let_v nothing_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v observe_v from_o hence_o that_o such_o as_o be_v the_o principal_a doer_n in_o sin_n punishment_n doctrine_n such_o as_o 〈◊〉_d the_o chief_a hand_n in_o 〈◊〉_d be_v principal_o subject_a 〈◊〉_d to_o punishment_n be_v principal_o subject_a unto_o punishment_n aaron_z be_v accessary_a to_o this_o mutiny_n against_o moses_n but_o miriam_n be_v chief_a in_o the_o sin_n and_o therefore_o be_v also_o chief_a in_o the_o punishment_n simeon_n and_o levi_n be_v not_o the_o only_a murderer_n of_o the_o sichemite_n and_o invader_n of_o the_o city_n but_o they_o be_v the_o chief_a ringleader_n and_o therefore_o be_v only_o name_v gen._n 34.25_o and_o punish_v gen._n 49.5_o jacob_n have_v a_o great_a family_n as_o abraham_n have_v three_o hundred_o and_o eighteen_o person_n of_o his_o house_n which_o he_o arm_v and_o conduct_v
luke_n 13.6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 2_o chro._n 36.15_o we_o have_v all_o experience_n of_o this_o point_n reason_n 1_o the_o reason_n first_o he_o know_v our_o weakness_n our_o corruption_n and_o inclination_n to_o evil_a he_o know_v whereof_o we_o be_v make_v he_o remember_v that_o we_o be_v but_o dust_n esay_n 57.16_o psalm_n 103.14_o yea_o as_o a_o wind_n that_o pass_v away_o and_o come_v not_o again_o psal_n 78.38.39_o no_o better_o than_o vanity_n yea_o light_a altogether_o than_o vanity_n psal_n 62.9_o second_o his_o nature_n be_v to_o be_v merciful_a &_o full_a of_o compassion_n 2_o chron._n 36.15_o three_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v not_o yet_o full_a they_o have_v not_o yet_o fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o they_o gen._n 15.16_o last_o he_o be_v not_o willing_a that_o any_o shall_v perish_v but_o that_o all_o shall_v come_v to_o repentance_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o slack_a concern_v his_o promise_n but_o be_v long_o suffer_v to_o we_o ward_n 2._o pet._n 3.9_o objection_n before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n we_o must_v remove_v a_o few_o objection_n that_o seem_v to_o make_v against_o this_o point_n and_o first_o how_o can_v god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v very_o patient_a and_o to_o suffer_v long_o see_v his_o judgement_n be_v often_o say_v to_o come_v sudden_o &_o speedy_o as_o a_o whirlwind_n and_o a_o tempest_n and_o when_o they_o shall_v say_v peace_n and_o safety_n his_o come_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o come_n of_o a_o thief_n in_o the_o night_n or_o as_o travel_v upon_o a_o woman_n with_o child_n 1_o thess_n 5.2.3_o answer_n i_o answer_v to_o be_v long_o before_o he_o come_v and_o to_o be_v swift_a when_o once_o he_o come_v be_v not_o opposite_a or_o contrary_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o he_o wait_v a_o long_a time_n but_o when_o the_o day_n of_o his_o patience_n be_v expire_v then_o sudden_o destruction_n come_v he_o give_v warning_n after_o warning_n and_o will_v do_v nothing_o but_o he_o reveal_v the_o same_o to_o his_o servant_n the_o prophet_n amos_n 3.7_o dan._n 9.5.6_o but_o when_o his_o patience_n be_v abuse_v and_o contemn_v than_o he_o come_v swift_o and_o stay_v not_o the_o apostle_n peter_n speak_v of_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n to_o judgement_n join_v both_o these_o together_o and_z show_v how_o and_o wherefore_o he_o be_v both_o long_a in_o come_v and_o yet_o swift_a in_o come_v he_o forbear_v because_o he_o be_v patient_a and_o he_o come_v sudden_o in_o his_o glory_n because_o he_o be_v just_a 2_o pet._n 3.9_o 10._o first_o he_o say_v that_o god_n be_v long_o suffer_v not_o willing_a that_o any_o shall_v perish_v then_o he_o add_v the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n will_v come_v as_o a_o thief_n in_o the_o night_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o he_o suffer_v patient_o and_o yet_o withal_o how_o he_o come_v sudden_o second_o object_n the_o question_n may_v be_v ask_v whether_o the_o minister_n shall_v forbear_v or_o abstain_v from_o threaten_v and_o denounce_v of_o god_n judgement_n against_o the_o ungodly_a see_v god_n be_v gentle_a and_o merciful_a slow_a to_o anger_n and_o of_o great_a kindness_n whereby_o they_o shall_v terrify_v man_n without_o cause_n and_o make_v themselves_o liar_n i_o answer_v answer_v it_o be_v true_a that_o jonah_n the_o prophet_n be_v discourage_v upon_o this_o ground_n and_o consideration_n from_o threaten_a destruction_n against_o nineveh_n though_o he_o be_v send_v against_o the_o city_n with_o heavy_a tiding_n yet_o he_o consult_v with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n &_o flee_v to_o tarshish_n from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n jon._n 1.3_o because_o he_o know_v that_o god_n be_v a_o gracious_a god_n and_o merciful_a repent_v he_o of_o the_o evil_a chap._n 4.2_o but_o this_o be_v his_o infirmity_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v reproove_v ver_fw-la 10.11_o wherefore_o it_o belong_v to_o all_o faithful_a minister_n of_o god_n as_o a_o part_n of_o their_o function_n howsoever_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v differ_v and_o their_o sermon_n deride_v to_o open_v their_o mouth_n bold_o and_o to_o reproove_v sin_n earnest_o that_o they_o may_v thereby_o deliver_v their_o own_o soul_n and_o save_v the_o people_n that_o hear_v they_o 2_o tim._n 4.2_o three_o it_o may_v be_v ask_v object_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o godly_a to_o crave_v of_o god_n to_o be_v patient_a and_o long-suffering_a to_o bear_v with_o the_o ungodly_a and_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n especial_o consider_v the_o prayer_n of_o jeremy_n chap._n 15.15_o lord_n remember_v i_o and_o visit_v i_o and_o revenge_v i_o of_o my_o persecuter_n etc._n etc._n the_o prayer_n of_o moses_n and_o of_o jeremy_n seem_v to_o be_v contrary_a answer_n answer_n the_o prayer_n of_o jeremy_n be_v special_a and_o extraordinary_a and_o contain_v no_o general_a rule_n and_o direction_n for_o the_o church_n he_o speak_v this_o as_o a_o prophet_n not_o as_o a_o private_a man_n for_o he_o foretell_v to_o his_o persecuter_n the_o vengeance_n and_o wrath_n of_o god_n certain_o to_o fall_v upon_o they_o the_o general_a rule_n belong_v unto_o all_o be_v set_v down_o by_o christ_n matth._n 5_o 44._o to_o pray_v for_o our_o enemy_n and_o they_o that_o hate_v us._n last_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v object_n whether_o the_o publish_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n patience_n and_o forbear_n be_v not_o dangerous_a and_o hurtful_a as_o seem_v to_o tend_v to_o lead_v man_n into_o sin_n and_o minister_v occasion_n of_o harden_v the_o heart_n and_o delay_v of_o repentance_n i_o answer_v ●ct_n ●ct_n from_o god_n delay_v of_o his_o judgement_n we_o may_v not_o conclude_v the_o delay_n of_o our_o repentance_n true_a it_o be_v the_o ungodly_a abuse_n this_o doctrine_n to_o licentiousness_n rom._n 2.4.5_o as_o they_o do_v also_o other_o doctrine_n and_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o to_o their_o own_o perdition_n the_o providence_n of_o god_n to_o idleness_n the_o predestination_n of_o god_n to_o wickedness_n the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o profaneness_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o wantonness_n justification_n by_o faith_n to_o carelessness_n of_o good_a work_n yea_o christ_n himself_o to_o be_v a_o stumble_a block_n and_o a_o stone_n of_o offence_n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v use_v the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n patience_n to_o our_o comfort_n and_o to_o bring_v we_o thereby_o to_o repentance_n use_v 1_o now_o we_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n which_o be_v many_o serve_v for_o instruction_n reprehension_n consolation_n and_o exhortation_n first_o of_o all_o it_o serve_v for_o our_o knowledge_n and_o instruction_n and_o teach_v we_o what_o a_o good_a god_n we_o serve_v and_o worship_n such_o a_o one_o as_o will_v not_o and_o wish_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v gentle_a and_o gracious_a merciful_a and_o pitiful_a psal_n 145.8_o 9_o ezek._n 18.23_o and_o 33.11_o again_o this_o teach_v we_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o god_n spare_v so_o long_a both_o he_o and_o the_o church_n enemy_n to_o wit_n because_o he_o be_v patient_a thus_o do_v the_o prophet_n tell_v the_o israelite_n the_o cause_n why_o the_o lord_n have_v spare_v the_o assyrian_n so_o long_a nah._n 1.3_o we_o see_v how_o profane_a many_o be_v blasphemer_n of_o god_n name_n prophaner_n of_o his_o sabbath_n despiser_n of_o the_o word_n hater_n of_o good_a man_n iniquity_n abound_v every_o where_n we_o may_v wonder_v that_o such_o live_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o wherefore_o they_o be_v spare_v but_o that_o he_o be_v a_o god_n of_o patience_n and_o long_o suffer_v or_o they_o can_v not_o continue_v be_v not_o the_o earth_n fill_v with_o cruelty_n &_o oppression_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o old_a world_n that_o be_v destroy_v with_o a_o universal_a flood_n do_v not_o pride_n fullness_n of_o bread_n abundance_n of_o idleness_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o poor_a abound_v as_o in_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n which_o be_v destroy_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n from_o heaven_n ezek._n 16.49_o so_o gen._n 19.24_o how_o then_o can_v our_o city_n and_o house_n stand_v and_o continue_v if_o god_n be_v not_o very_o patient_a use_v 2_o second_o it_o serve_v for_o reprehension_n for_o it_o convince_v those_o that_o scoff_n at_o his_o threaten_n because_o god_n a_o long_a time_n describe_v his_o judgement_n against_o the_o ungodly_a hence_o it_o be_v that_o they_o judge_v they_o &_o persuade_v themselves_o of_o they_o to_o be_v no_o better_o than_o scarecrow_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v vain_a and_o not_o to_o be_v fear_v such_o person_n do_v the_o apostle_n peter_n describe_v that_o mock_v at_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n which_o shall_v come_v as_o a_o snare_n upon_o all_o they_o that_o dwell_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n luke_n 21.35_o 2_o
and_o aaron_n may_v learn_v together_o with_o all_o the_o people_n to_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o god_n promise_n make_v unto_o they_o and_o to_o wait_v on_o he_o with_o patience_n the_o end_n therefore_o be_v not_o god_n satisfaction_n but_o their_o own_o reformation_n and_o the_o people_n instruction_n and_o david_n have_v many_o punishment_n that_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o heathen_a might_n thereby_o be_v stop_v who_o be_v likely_a to_o blaspheme_v god_n because_o of_o his_o sin_n the_o truth_n be_v before_o forgiveness_n such_o judgement_n be_v punishment_n of_o sin_n but_o after_o forgiveness_n obtain_v 16._o august_n de_fw-fr pecc●t_fw-fr merit_n &_o remis_fw-la lib_n 2._o cap._n 34._o origen_n in_o gen._n hom_n 16._o they_o be_v the_o fight_n and_o exercise_n of_o the_o just_a this_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o of_o the_o unfaithful_a that_o which_o be_v to_o the_o just_a the_o exercise_n of_o virtue_n be_v to_o the_o unjust_a the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n that_o which_o be_v lay_v upon_o we_o after_o forgiveness_n in_o christ_n be_v only_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o time_n to_o come_v to_o weaken_v and_o wear_v away_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o death_n utter_o to_o destroy_v it_o if_o any_o object_n that_o death_n be_v the_o wage_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o yet_o it_o continue_v after_o forgiveness_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v so_o indeed_o originally_n and_o natural_o but_o to_o the_o faithful_a it_o have_v lose_v his_o sting_n the_o poison_n of_o it_o be_v take_v away_o and_o turn_v into_o a_o medicine_n and_o be_v make_v the_o way_n to_o life_n and_o salvation_n 26._o bern._n in_o cant._n serm._n 26._o that_o which_o be_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n be_v make_v a_o entry_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o the_o popish_a satisfaction_n be_v weak_o ground_v and_o the_o gainful_a fire_n of_o purgatory_n stand_v upon_o the_o rot_a and_o ruinous_a pillar_n of_o satisfaction_n be_v utter_o quench_v that_o though_o the_o jesuite_n and_o their_o instrument_n labour_v to_o blow_v the_o bellows_n to_o kindle_v it_o again_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o put_v any_o spark_n of_o heat_n into_o it_o remit_v when_o the_o sin_n be_v forgive_v the_o punishment_n be_v also_o remit_v for_o this_o be_v a_o certain_a doctrine_n that_o when_o god_n pardon_v sin_n he_o also_o remit_v the_o punishment_n for_o first_o the_o fault_n &_o the_o punishment_n be_v relative_n which_o stand_v together_o and_o fall_v together_o admit_v of_o the_o one_o you_o yield_v the_o other_o take_v away_o the_o one_o you_o overthrow_v the_o other_o again_o when_o god_n do_v not_o remit_v the_o fault_n he_o do_v retain_v the_o punishment_n &_o who_o can_v deny_v this_o therefore_o on_o the_o contrary_a when_o he_o forgive_v the_o fault_n he_o do_v not_o retain_v the_o punishment_n the_o fault_n be_v a_o great_a matter_n than_o the_o punishment_n if_o then_o god_n forgive_v the_o fault_n which_o be_v the_o great_a it_o may_v not_o seem_v strange_a that_o he_o shall_v forgive_v that_o which_o be_v lesser_a and_o only_o depend_v upon_o the_o fault_n beside_o when_o once_o a_o debt_n be_v discharge_v it_o be_v extreme_a wrong_n and_o injustice_n to_o require_v the_o payment_n thereof_o again_o but_o sin_n be_v debt_n matth._n 6.12_o the_o obligation_n stand_v against_o we_o be_v cancel_v and_o the_o creditor_n be_v full_o satisfy_v how_o then_o shall_v we_o fear_v any_o arrest_n or_o imprisonment_n who_o shall_v sue_v we_o or_o who_o can_v lay_v any_o thing_n to_o our_o charge_n in_o a_o civil_a court_n he_o be_v a_o very_a corrupt_a judge_n who_o have_v acquit_v &_o clear_v a_o man_n that_o stand_v as_o guilty_a from_o all_o offence_n will_v notwithstanding_o give_v sentence_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v execute_v for_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o pardon_v the_o theft_n and_o to_o hang_v the_o thief_n they_o that_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n be_v at_o peace_n with_o god_n rom._n 5.1_o and_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n rom._n 8.1_o when_o god_n forgive_v the_o sin_n and_o transgression_n of_o the_o penitent_a he_o remember_v they_o no_o more_o jer._n 31.34_o he_o blot_v they_o out_o of_o his_o sight_n he_o set_v they_o as_o far_o from_o we_o as_o the_o east_n be_v from_o the_o west_n psal_n 103_o he_o scatter_v they_o as_o a_o cloud_n and_o cast_v they_o into_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o sea_n word_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n mic._n 7.19_o but_o touch_v the_o pardon_n mention_v in_o this_o place_n the_o answer_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o prayer_n of_o moses_n &_o be_v proportion_v out_o according_a to_o his_o request_n he_o desire_v that_o god_n will_v not_o utter_o root_v out_o that_o whole_a people_n as_o one_o man_n according_a as_o he_o have_v threaten_v his_o prayer_n be_v grant_v and_o god_n declare_v that_o he_o have_v pardon_v they_o not_o absolute_o but_o according_a to_o his_o word_n he_o request_v they_o may_v not_o utter_o be_v destroy_v he_o receive_v answer_v they_o shall_v not_o utter_o be_v destroy_v and_o concern_v satisfaction_n to_o god_n for_o our_o sin_n by_o ourselves_o it_o be_v more_o than_o we_o be_v able_a to_o make_v it_o cost_v more_o to_o redeem_v a_o soul_n and_o to_o pay_v a_o price_n sufficient_a for_o it_o for_o to_o satisfy_v be_v to_o yield_v a_o sufficient_a recompense_n to_o god_n for_o the_o transgression_n that_o we_o have_v commit_v against_o he_o this_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n be_v only_o able_a to_o do_v and_o his_o satisfaction_n be_v all_o sufficient_a object_n but_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o man_n satisfaction_n be_v not_o a_o supply_n of_o any_o want_n in_o christ_n satisfaction_n answer_n but_o a_o application_n of_o it_o to_o us._n a_o most_o foolish_a and_o witless_a conceit_n for_o when_o a_o man_n have_v a_o medicine_n full_o sufficient_a and_o available_a for_o the_o cure_n and_o heal_v of_o a_o wound_n what_o need_v another_o medicine_n for_o the_o heal_a the_o same_o wound_n which_o he_o must_v apply_v and_o lay_v to_o the_o former_a medicine_n to_o make_v it_o good_a be_v not_o this_o application_n needless_a and_o if_o a_o surety_n undertake_v for_o we_o have_v discharge_v our_o debt_n it_o be_v very_o ridiculous_a to_o suppose_v that_o we_o must_v pay_v the_o debt_n again_o that_o so_o our_o surety_n payment_n may_v stand_v in_o effect_n we_o read_v of_o the_o satisfaction_n that_o christ_n have_v make_v and_o we_o believe_v it_o but_o of_o a_o satisfaction_n apply_v his_o satisfaction_n we_o read_v not_o and_o therefore_o we_o believe_v not_o which_o be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o cloak_n to_o cover_v their_o shame_n and_o sound_v harsh_a to_o the_o ear_n of_o reason_n itself_o but_o to_o pass_v over_o these_o thing_n let_v we_o consider_v the_o sentence_n pronounce_v against_o these_o man_n that_o all_o of_o they_o shall_v die_v in_o the_o wilderness_n as_o they_o have_v all_o break_a out_o into_o open_a wickedness_n the_o doctrine_n doctrine_n doctrine_n sin_n general_o entertain_v bring_v a_o general_a destruction_n 1●_n where_o 〈◊〉_d be_v general_a entertain_v it_o bringer_n a_o general_a destructi●_n gen._n 6.5_o 〈◊〉_d 7.17_o and_o 20_o and_o 15_o 24_o 25._o de●_n 9.4_o josh_n 〈◊〉_d 21._o hos_fw-la 4._o 3._o ze._n 1_o 1●_n when_o it_o be_v once_o come_v to_o the_o height_n in_o the_o manner_n and_o measure_n it_o cause_v destruction_n to_o come_v upon_o such_o person_n the_o reason_n follow_v this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o course_n of_o god_n justice_n that_o his_o judgement_n may_v be_v answerable_a to_o the_o sin_n a_o general_a sin_n deserve_v a_o general_a plague_n second_o as_o sin_n be_v resemble_v to_o sickness_n so_o punishment_n be_v to_o medicine_n which_o must_v be_v fit_v to_o the_o disease_n and_o not_o to_o a_o part_n thereof_o 1_o reas_n 1_o now_o if_o universal_a and_o spread_a sin_n shall_v not_o have_v universal_a &_o spread_a judgment_n bring_v upon_o they_o the_o plaster_n shall_v be_v less_o than_o the_o wound_n &_o the_o remedy_n much_o weak_a than_o the_o disease_n the_o use_n remain_v first_o see_v god_n give_v sentence_n to_o bring_v use_v 1_o desolation_n upon_o this_o people_n for_o their_o common_a sin_n we_o have_v great_a cause_n to_o fear_v that_o the_o day_n of_o our_o desolation_n and_o judgement_n can_v be_v far_o off_o for_o see_v it_o have_v be_v already_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v grow_v a_o cold_a and_o careless_a people_n a_o lukewarm_a church_n neither_o hot_a nor_o cold_a see_v we_o be_v grow_v to_o the_o height_n of_o wickedness_n 19_o deut._n 19_o and_o have_v add_v sin_n to_o sin_n as_o it_o be_v drunkenness_n unto_o thirst_n what_o can_v be_v expect_v in_o the_o next_o
it_o far_o pro._n 22_o 15._o so_o be_v it_o with_o all_o those_o that_o be_v stubborn_a and_o refractory_a they_o esteem_v word_n as_o wind_n they_o never_o lie_v they_o to_o their_o heart_n they_o must_v be_v bring_v low_a by_o strong_a hand_n and_o they_o must_v feel_v the_o smart_n of_o their_o sin_n before_o they_o will_v be_v humble_v we_o see_v this_o in_o pharaoh_n and_o his_o people_n they_o have_v oftentimes_o hear_v moses_n and_o aaron_n speak_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n exod._n 5_o 1_o 8_o 1_o &_o 9_o 1_o 13_o &_o 10_o 3._o but_o what_o do_v all_o this_o work_n in_o he_o but_o as_o so_o many_o hard_a stroke_n upon_o the_o anvil_n which_o make_v it_o hard_a so_o pharaoh_n harden_v his_o heart_n and_o will_v not_o let_v the_o people_n go_v exo._n 8_o 15_o so_o that_o god_n be_v constrain_v to_o enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o he_o and_o he_o that_o will_v not_o give_v ear_n to_o the_o word_n be_v constrain_v to_o give_v place_n to_o the_o water_n for_o he_o and_o his_o host_n be_v drown_v in_o the_o red_a sea_n thus_o be_v it_o also_o oftentimes_o with_o the_o israelite_n that_o refuse_v &_o misuse_v the_o prophet_n they_o ever_o bring_v upon_o their_o head_n some_o judgement_n or_o other_o 33._o and_o your_o child_n shall_v wander_v in_o the_o wilderness_n forty_o year_n and_o bear_v your_o whoredom_n until_o your_o carcase_n be_v waste_v in_o the_o wilderness_n 34._o after_o the_o number_n of_o the_o day_n in_o which_o you_o search_v the_o land_n even_o forty_o day_n each_o day_n for_o a_o year_n shall_v you_o bear_v your_o iniquity_n even_o forty_o year_n and_o you_o shall_v know_v etc._n etc._n in_o these_o word_n moses_n farther_z describe_v the_o sentence_n of_o god_n against_o these_o rebel_n the_o punishment_n rest_v not_o only_o upon_o their_o own_o person_n but_o slow_v down_o to_o their_o child_n like_o a_o violent_a tempest_n that_o first_o fall_v upon_o the_o mountain_n and_o after_o descend_v into_o the_o valley_n note_v here_o first_o of_o all_o how_o god_n deal_v with_o these_o mutineer_n and_o with_o their_o offspring_n the_o spy_n have_v be_v 40._o day_n in_o search_v the_o land_n and_o for_o their_o wickedness_n they_o shall_v wander_v 40._o year_n in_o the_o wilderness_n a_o year_n for_o a_o day_n a_o dram_n of_o sin_n have_v a_o pound_n of_o sorrow_n a_o day_n of_o pleasure_n have_v a_o year_n of_o pain_n doctrine_n observe_v from_o this_o 24._o sin_n and_o the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n be_v proportionable_a gen._n 19_o 5_o 24._o that_o in_o judge_v and_o punish_v of_o sin_n god_n oftentimes_o punish_v in_o proportion_n so_o that_o the_o judgement_n be_v answerable_a to_o the_o sin_n of_o what_o kind_n the_o sin_n be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_n be_v the_o punishment_n gen._n 42_o 21._o god_n send_v upon_o sodom_n a_o punishment_n like_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o sin_n they_o burn_v in_o unclean_a and_o unnatural_a lust_n one_o towards_o another_o and_o the_o lord_n send_v fire_n from_o heaven_n to_o burn_v they_o up_o the_o people_n in_o the_o wilderness_n with_o their_o viperous_a and_o venomous_a tongue_n speak_v against_o god_n and_o moses_n his_o servant_n and_o the_o lord_n send_v venomous_a and_o fiery_a serpent_n to_o sting_n and_o to_o bite_v they_o numb_a 21_o 5_o 6._o so_o david_n sin_v great_o in_o number_v of_o the_o people_n through_o the_o pride_n of_o his_o heart_n and_o vain_a glory_n in_o his_o own_o greatness_n god_n can_v have_v punish_v he_o many_o other_o way_n but_o he_o meet_v with_o he_o in_o the_o same_o kind_n he_o diminish_v the_o number_n of_o his_o people_n exceed_o by_o the_o pestilence_n in_o who_o strength_n he_o much_o trust_v the_o reason_n follow_v first_o god_n have_v many_o way_n to_o punish_v sin_n reason_v 1_o yet_o it_o please_v he_o to_o send_v his_o punishment_n according_a to_o our_o sin_n thereby_o to_o strike_v we_o with_o inward_a remorse_n and_o to_o work_v a_o deep_a impression_n in_o the_o conscience_n for_o when_o he_o punish_v after_o this_o manner_n rather_o than_o after_o any_o other_o the_o judgement_n itself_o do_v more_o effectual_o force_v the_o sufferer_n to_o acknowledge_v god_n justice_n in_o plague_v of_o he_o in_o that_o sort_n this_o we_o see_v in_o adonibezek_a who_o be_v serve_v himself_o as_o he_o have_v serve_v other_o he_o have_v cut_v off_o the_o thumb_n and_o great_a toe_n of_o threescore_o and_o ten_o king_n which_o gather_v their_o meat_n under_o his_o table_n the_o israelite_n serve_v he_o with_o the_o same_o sauce_n they_o also_o cut_v off_o his_o thumb_n and_o his_o great_a toe_n this_o measure_n repay_v unto_o he_o cause_v he_o to_o say_v as_o i_o have_v do_v so_o god_n have_v requite_v i_o judg._n 1_o 7._o the_o punishment_n present_v the_o sin_n as_o it_o be_v visible_o before_o his_o face_n and_o when_o god_n deal_v thus_o with_o a_o man_n it_o oftentimes_o bring_v he_o to_o think_v of_o those_o sin_n which_o otherwise_o he_o will_v never_o have_v remember_v so_o that_o thereby_o he_o may_v just_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v just_o come_v upon_o he_o second_o this_o make_v man_n not_o only_o to_o reason_n 2_o justify_v god_n who_o judgement_n be_v always_o just_a but_o make_v they_o also_o to_o judge_v themselves_o and_o thereby_o they_o oftentimes_o prevent_v the_o more_o heavy_a judgment_n of_o god_n he_o do_v it_o for_o their_o good_a &_o judge_v no_o man_n twice_o 31._o 1_o cor._n 11_o 31._o if_o he_o be_v wise_a to_o judge_v himself_o three_o god_n have_v give_v a_o law_n reason_n 3_o &_o by_o y●_z law_n he_o require_v a_o proportionable_a punishment_n for_o sin_n levit._n 24_o 19_o this_o course_n will_v the_o lord_n take_v who_o be_v the_o supreme_a magistrate_n so_o often_o as_o it_o please_v he_o albeit_o he_o do_v not_o tie_v himself_o to_o that_o law_n use_v 1_o this_o serve_v to_o warrant_v we_o that_o we_o may_v lawful_o expect_v judgement_n from_o god_n in_o proportion_n upon_o man_n for_o their_o sin_n for_o that_o which_o have_v be_v may_v be_v and_o that_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v do_v he_o will_v certain_o do_v it_o again_o so_o that_o we_o may_v promise_v and_o persuade_v ourselves_o that_o they_o shall_v in_o the_o end_n be_v pay_v home_o to_o the_o full_a with_o due_a proportion_n of_o punishment_n according_a to_o their_o sin_n in_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n we_o read_v that_o the_o enemy_n come_v upon_o they_o the_o same_o day_n that_o they_o put_v christ_n our_o saviour_n to_o death_n even_o then_o i_o say_v come_v the_o sword_n upon_o they_o and_o recompense_v they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n by_o put_v they_o to_o death_n how_o many_o be_v there_o which_o have_v sometime_o be_v servant_n though_o now_o they_o be_v master_n and_o be_v faithless_a to_o their_o master_n &_o what_o have_v follow_v have_v they_o escape_v nay_o have_v not_o god_n meet_v with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n by_o give_v to_o they_o faithless_a servant_n deceiver_n purloiner_n and_o thief_n that_o have_v waste_v and_o spoil_v their_o good_n as_o they_o in_o former_a time_n do_v their_o master_n how_o many_o in_o our_o day_n have_v be_v stubborn_a and_o disobedient_a against_o their_o parent_n in_o their_o youth_n never_o do_v they_o reverence_n nor_o yield_v to_o they_o any_o obedience_n mock_v at_o their_o age_n and_o other_o infirmity_n have_v not_o these_o monster_n be_v punish_v yes_o god_n have_v pay_v they_o home_o with_o the_o like_a and_o send_v they_o dissolute_a child_n disobedient_a such_o as_o grow_v weary_a of_o they_o and_o think_v they_o live_v too_o long_o mind_v their_o patrimony_n more_o than_o regard_v their_o parent_n how_o many_o be_v there_o that_o have_v abuse_v and_o wrong_v their_o former_a wife_n and_o have_v not_o god_n usual_o plague_v they_o in_o the_o same_o sort_n in_o give_v they_o a_o second_o into_o their_o bosom_n which_o have_v embrace_v the_o bosom_n of_o stranger_n and_o deal_v wicked_o and_o false_o with_o they_o 2_o sam._n 12_o 11._o job_n 31_o 9_o 10._o god_n can_v have_v meet_v with_o they_o by_o other_o mean_n and_o punish_v they_o a_o thousand_o other_o way_n but_o it_o please_v he_o to_o make_v his_o punishment_n answerable_a and_o carry_v a_o likeness_n with_o the_o sin_n for_o which_o it_o be_v inflict_v so_o that_o they_o be_v punish_v by_o that_o thing_n by_o which_o they_o have_v sin_v against_o god_n covetous_a person_n which_o get_v their_o good_n by_o fraud_n and_o oppression_n be_v themselves_o or_o their_o heir_n many_o time_n oppress_v and_o deceive_v and_o bring_v to_o beggary_n gluttony_n surfeit_v and_o drunkenness_n be_v oftentimes_o punish_v with_o dropsy_n and_o many_o gross_a and_o corrupt_a humour_n distemper_a their_o body_n and_o bring_v
he_o have_v be_v say_v thy_o servant_n go_v not_o whither_o 2_o ki._n 5_o 25._o or_o if_o they_o slander_v and_o belie_v their_o master_n or_o any_o way_n false_o accuse_v they_o as_o ziba_n do_v mephibosheth_n 2_o sam._n 16_o 3._o or_o if_o they_o run_v away_o from_o their_o master_n and_o will_v not_o tarry_v in_o their_o house_n like_o the_o servant_n of_o shemei_n that_o flee_v from_o he_o 1_o king_n 2_o 39_o or_o if_o they_o pick_v and_o steal_v from_o they_o as_o onesimus_n do_v from_o philemon_n or_o any_o way_n deal_v fraudulent_o &_o false_o with_o their_o master_n good_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v to_o their_o trust_n as_o the_o unjust_a steward_n do_v with_o his_o lord_n lu._n 16_o 5_o 6_o 7._o let_v these_o look_n for_o no_o better_a deal_n in_o time_n to_o come_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o own_o servant_n but_o be_v well_o assure_v that_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o send_v they_o the_o like_a false_a and_o disobedient_a servant_n as_o themselves_o have_v be_v to_o their_o master_n thus_o than_o we_o see_v how_o all_o inferior_n shall_v be_v encourage_v to_o honour_v their_o superior_n because_o god_n will_v cause_v they_o to_o be_v honour_v and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n be_v terrify_v from_o despise_v and_o dishonour_v they_o lest_o another_o day_n he_o cause_v they_o also_o to_o be_v dishonour_v your_o child_n shall_v wander_v in_o the_o wilderness_n forty_o year_n and_o bear_v your_o whoredom_n &c_n &c_n by_o whoredom_n we_o must_v understand_v the_o punishment_n of_o the_o idolatry_n and_o infidelity_n of_o their_o father_n fall_v from_o god_n and_o cease_v to_o trust_v in_o he_o for_o as_o idolatry_n so_o infidelity_n be_v spiritual_a whoredom_n they_o be_v as_o a_o wife_n that_o have_v forsake_v her_o husband_n and_o break_v the_o covenant_n of_o her_o god_n so_o then_o observe_v that_o according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o day_n in_o which_o the_o father_n have_v search_v the_o land_n even_o forty_o day_n the_o child_n must_v bear_v their_o iniquity_n and_o wander_v too_o and_o fro_o forward_o and_o backward_o forty_o year_n before_o they_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o land_n the_o doctrine_n from_o hence_o be_v this_o doctrine_n the_o judgement_n and_o punishment_n of_o god_n child_n god_n visit_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n deserve_a and_o procure_v by_o the_o father_n sin_n and_o rebellion_n do_v oftentimes_o fall_v upon_o their_o child_n and_o posterity_n they_o do_v not_o end_v and_o cease_v in_o themselves_o but_o descend_v to_o their_o stock_n &_o issue_n that_o live_v after_o they_o exod._n 20_o 5._o and_o 34_o 7_o 8._o the_o reason_n first_o because_o the_o child_n of_o reason_n 1_o man_n and_o their_o posterity_n though_o they_o be_v oftentimes_o infant_n and_o have_v not_o understand_v to_o conceive_v of_o sin_n yet_o the_o same_o judgement_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o father_n sin_n shall_v light_v upon_o they_o because_o god_n will_v thereby_o show_v his_o anger_n &_o sore_a displeasure_n against_o their_o sin_n in_o that_o when_o it_o please_v he_o he_o will_v punish_v those_o for_o their_o sin_n which_o as_o yet_o have_v commit_v no_o sin_n at_o all_o rom._n 5_o 14_o gen._n 7_o 4_o and_o 19_o 25._o second_o touch_v those_o that_o be_v of_o ripe_a reason_n 2_o year_n they_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n either_o wicked_a &_o so_o like_a to_o their_o parent_n and_o then_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o bring_v his_o judgement_n upon_o they_o because_o he_o will_v show_v himself_o displease_v with_o their_o sin_n or_o else_o they_o be_v godly_a not_o taint_v and_o defile_v with_o they_o yet_o nevertheless_o there_o be_v other_o corruption_n enough_o in_o they_o which_o may_v lusty_o &_o worthy_o call_v for_o temporal_a judgement_n object_n but_o some_o haply_o will_v object_v that_o this_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o other_o scripture_n as_o ezek._n 18_o 4_o ●0_n where_o it_o be_v say_v the_o soul_n that_o sin_v shall_v die_v the_o death_n and_o again_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n neither_o shall_v the_o father_n bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o son_n the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o righteous_a shall_v be_v upon_o he_o and_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v upon_o he_o i_o answer_v answer_v we_o must_v mark_v the_o occasion_n of_o these_o word_n the_o child_n of_o israel_n take_v up_o a_o taunt_a proverb_n against_o god_n and_o in_o their_o affliction_n say_v the_o father_n have_v eat_v sour_a grape_n &_o the_o child_n tooth_n be_v set_v on_o edge_n v_o 2._o that_o be_v the_o father_n have_v sin_v and_o the_o child_n be_v punish_v these_o be_v quick-sighted_a to_o look_v up_o but_o they_o can_v not_o look_v downward_o upon_o themselves_o they_o can_v see_v far_o off_o but_o be_v blind_v near_a home_n these_o be_v rank_n hypocrite_n who_o have_v rather_o accuse_v god_n then_o themselves_o and_o as_o adam_n cast_v the_o fault_n from_o himself_o upon_o his_o wife_n gen._n 3_o 12_o so_o do_v they_o from_o themselves_o upon_o their_o father_n they_o never_o think_v of_o their_o own_o eat_n of_o the_o sour_a grape_n they_o think_v themselves_o free_a from_o any_o sin_n that_o shall_v procure_v such_o judgement_n but_o god_n take_v the_o son_n in_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o father_n and_o then_o punish_v they_o for_o their_o own_o sin_n take_v occasion_n from_o their_o father_n sin_n every_o man_n sin_n shall_v be_v upon_o his_o own_o head_n so_o that_o though_o a_o wicked_a father_n be_v condemn_v yet_o his_o son_n not_o tread_v in_o his_o step_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o though_o god_n punish_v temporal_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o father_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o condemn_v any_o eternal_o for_o the_o same_o for_o as_o the_o godliness_n of_o the_o father_n shall_v nothing_o help_v the_o son_n to_o eternal_a life_n so_o his_o wickedness_n shall_v not_o hinder_v his_o salvation_n except_o he_o be_v wicked_a himself_o and_o walk_v in_o the_o step_n of_o his_o wicked_a father_n object_n but_o it_o will_v peradventure_o be_v say_v that_o david_n sin_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n &_o yet_o the_o people_n be_v punish_v many_o thousand_o be_v plague_v for_o his_o offence_n 17_o 2_o sa._n 24_o 15_o 17_o and_o he_o escape_v scotfree_a loe_o i_o have_v sin_v and_o i_o have_v do_v wicked_o but_o these_o sheep_n what_o have_v they_o do_v let_v thy_o hand_n i_o pray_v thou_o be_v against_o i_o and_o against_o my_o father_n house_n i_o answer_v answer_v this_o be_v a_o certain_a &_o infallible_a rule_n that_o there_o be_v no_o unrighteousness_n with_o god_n who_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n 33_o deut._n 32_o 4._o lament_n 3_o 33_o and_o touch_v the_o people_n though_o they_o be_v free_a from_o this_o sin_n of_o david_n yet_o they_o have_v many_o other_o grievous_a sin_n for_o which_o god_n may_v just_o punish_v they_o and_o god_n either_o for_o some_o secret_a or_o else_o some_o open_a sin_n have_v a_o quarrel_n against_o they_o as_o be_v plain_a by_o these_o word_n 1._o 2_o sam._n 24_o 1._o the_o anger_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v again_o kindle_v against_o israel_n and_o therefore_o he_o move_v david_n against_o they_o to_o say_v go_v number_n judah_n and_o israel_n it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o he_o move_v david_n against_o himself_o but_o against_o they_o so_o then_o their_o own_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o king_n sin_n and_o the_o king_n sin_n bring_v this_o punishment_n upon_o they_o cause_v the_o cause_n he_o cause_v the_o cause_n the_o thing_n cause_v and_o therefore_o their_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o punishment_n it_o may_v be_v they_o abuse_v the_o peace_n &_o plenty_n give_v unto_o they_o after_o the_o three_o year_n of_o famine_n &_o after_o the_o four_o great_a battle_n which_o they_o have_v fight_v against_o the_o philistines_n for_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o use_v god_n blessing_n well_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n be_v ready_a to_o turn_v good_a into_o evil_n and_o blessing_n into_o curse_n deut._n 32_o 6_o 15._o therefore_o the_o people_n be_v especial_o plague_v because_o their_o sin_n be_v the_o first_o cause_n of_o all_o which_o sin_n he_o punish_v with_o the_o sin_n of_o david_n another_o god_n punish_v one_o with_o another_o and_o both_o of_o they_o with_o that_o grievous_a pestilence_n and_o touch_v david_n we_o can_v say_v he_o altogether_o escape_v unpunished_a for_o god_n by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o plague_n and_o judgement_n strike_v many_o way_n and_o many_o person_n his_o sword_n have_v many_o edge_n and_o cut_v every_o way_n he_o use_v no_o rod_n that_o have_v not_o many_o sharp_a twig_n nor_o no_o whip_n that_o have_v not_o many_o cord_n
some_o penal_a statute_n to_o say_v alas_o i_o know_v not_o the_o law_n i_o be_v utter_o ignorant_a of_o it_o i_o never_o hear_v in_o all_o my_o life_n of_o any_o such_o matter_n for_o the_o law_n be_v pass_v print_a and_o publish_v and_o thou_o must_v take_v knowledge_n of_o it_o every_o man_n at_o his_o own_o peril_n must_v look_v to_o it_o and_o if_o he_o run_v in_o danger_n of_o it_o it_o be_v his_o own_o fault_n so_o we_o may_v say_v of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n he_o have_v set_v it_o forth_o to_o the_o view_n of_o all_o and_o all_o must_v make_v enquiry_n after_o it_o at_o their_o uttermost_a peril_n if_o then_o the_o turk_n and_o saracen_n if_o the_o infidel_n and_o barbarian_n that_o want_v the_o mean_n shall_v not_o be_v excuse_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n by_o their_o ignorance_n how_o shall_v we_o think_v to_o escape_v that_o have_v have_v the_o mean_n and_o so_o do_v the_o lord_n tell_v they_o of_o corazin_n and_o bethsaida_n and_o denounce_v a_o fearful_a woe_n against_o capernaum_n because_o they_o have_v much_o mercy_n show_v unto_o they_o &_o yet_o never_o regard_v the_o same_o and_o therefore_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o tyre_n and_o sidon_n yea_o for_o sodom_n and_o gomorrah_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n math._n 11_o 21_o 23_o 24._o second_o woe_n to_o our_o time_n woe_n to_o the_o age_n use_v 2_o wherein_o we_o live_v for_o little_a knowledge_n rest_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o great_a part_n they_o know_v nothing_o of_o god_n of_o his_o nature_n of_o his_o essential_a property_n of_o the_o trinity_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n what_o faith_n be_v what_o justification_n or_o repentance_n they_o be_v ignorant_a how_o to_o worship_v god_n though_o they_o be_v often_o teach_v they_o remain_v ever_o the_o same_o man_n ever_o ignorant_a ever_o learning_n but_o never_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n two_o chief_a cause_n there_o be_v of_o this_o the_o one_o in_o the_o mind_n the_o other_o in_o the_o will_n in_o the_o mind_n impotency_n of_o understanding_n they_o be_v dull_a to_o conceive_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v foolishness_n to_o they_o as_o man_n wisdom_n be_v foolishness_n to_o god_n 1_o cor._n 2._o the_o other_o be_v in_o the_o will_n they_o savour_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o flesh_n whole_o they_o find_v no_o sweetness_n in_o the_o word_n their_o heart_n be_v put_v out_o of_o taste_n by_o worldly_a thing_n these_o as_o they_o that_o be_v evil_a and_o blind_a by_o nature_n so_o be_v they_o become_v worse_o by_o nurture_n and_o education_n they_o be_v nuzzle_v in_o ignorance_n all_o their_o youth_n &_o for_o the_o most_o part_n a_o l_o their_o life_n parent_n be_v general_o ignorant_a themselves_o and_o no_o care_n be_v in_o they_o to_o have_v they_o instruct_v solomon_n say_v teach_v a_o child_n or_o train_v up_o a_o child_n in_o the_o way_n that_o he_o shall_v go_v and_o when_o he_o be_v old_a he_o will_v not_o depart_v from_o it_o prou._n 22_o 6._o he_o will_v both_o soon_o apprehend_v it_o and_o better_o keep_v that_o which_o be_v teach_v he_o if_o this_o time_n be_v pass_v over_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o learn_v afterward_o the_o eye_n be_v blind_v and_o fill_v with_o the_o dust_n of_o earthly_a thing_n can_v discern_v nothing_o and_o when_o such_o come_v to_o age_n they_o utter_o despise_v the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o a_o better_a life_n it_o be_v with_o we_o as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n it_o be_v overspread_v with_o darkness_n only_o a_o small_a part_n where_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n be_v be_v except_v so_o have_v ignorance_n overspread_v the_o great_a part_n of_o our_o land_n for_o look_v upon_o very_a many_o place_n they_o lie_v waste_v as_o a_o wilderness_n for_o want_n of_o builder_n the_o harvest_n be_v great_a but_o there_o be_v great_a want_n of_o labourer_n to_o gather_v together_o the_o corn_n mat._n 9_o 37._o they_o have_v blind_a guide_v set_v over_o they_o that_o can_v do_v nothing_o to_o the_o sheep_n but_o fleece_n they_o &_o they_o can_v say_v nothing_o to_o they_o but_o bring_v you_o or_o pay_v you_o if_o we_o cast_v our_o eye_n upon_o such_o place_n as_o have_v able_a teacher_n over_o they_o have_v gift_n sufficient_a to_o instruct_v they_o yet_o many_o of_o they_o be_v idle_a without_o care_n and_o conscience_n of_o their_o duty_n be_v it_o then_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o that_o the_o land_n be_v full_a of_o ignorance_n and_o empty_a of_o knowledge_n again_o in_o such_o place_n where_o be_v able_a minister_n and_o willing_a to_o take_v any_o pain_n among_o the_o people_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o grace_n afford_v unto_o they_o yet_o even_o there_o you_o shall_v find_v little_a or_o no_o knowledge_n at_o all_o and_o where_o they_o have_v bread_n enough_o they_o starve_v themselves_o and_o perish_v for_o hunger_n and_o where_o they_o may_v have_v plenty_n they_o live_v in_o penury_n and_o misery_n and_o want_v of_o all_o thing_n they_o have_v meat_n and_o drink_v offer_v unto_o they_o but_o they_o will_v not_o reach_v out_o their_o hand_n to_o take_v the_o same_o like_a to_o the_o sluggard_n that_o hide_v his_o hand_n in_o his_o bosom_n and_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o bring_v it_o to_o his_o mouth_n again_o prou._n 19_o 24._o many_o there_o be_v that_o do_v manifest_o and_o open_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o knowledge_n and_o set_v themselves_o against_o seek_v after_o it_o so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v or_o dare_v this_o plain_o show_v that_o indeed_o they_o never_o have_v any_o true_a knowledge_n at_o all_o and_o other_o albeit_o they_o do_v not_o direct_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o knowledge_n yet_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n which_o be_v all_o one_o they_o have_v no_o love_n of_o it_o neither_o any_o holy_a desire_n to_o come_v to_o knowledge_n if_o we_o consider_v far_o how_o empty_a our_o church_n and_o seat_n be_v it_o will_v appear_v that_o our_o ignorance_n must_v needs_o be_v very_o great_a for_o how_o shall_v such_o careless_a &_o reckless_a person_n have_v knowledge_n i_o be_o persuade_v if_o these_o be_v well_o and_o thorough_o examine_v they_o will_v be_v find_v beyond_o all_o measure_n blind_a and_o sottish_a old_a and_o ignorant_a worse_o than_o infant_n and_o little_a child_n knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v not_o natural_a it_o be_v not_o bear_v and_o breed_v in_o we_o and_o with_o we_o neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v get_v in_o our_o day_n by_o extraordinary_a mean_n see_v therefore_o they_o use_v not_o the_o ordinary_a it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v destitute_a of_o knowledge_n ●ance_n cause_n of_o ●ance_n another_o reason_n why_o man_n be_v so_o drown_v in_o the_o sea_n of_o ignorance_n be_v because_o though_o they_o hear_v much_o yet_o they_o digest_v little_a or_o nothing_o at_o all_o like_v to_o he_o that_o see_v meat_n before_o he_o but_o taste_v none_o of_o it_o in_o the_o body_n he_o that_o eat_v much_o and_o dige_v nothing_o can_v have_v his_o health_n nor_o prosper_v so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o soul_n it_o may_v be_v these_o will_v hear_v two_o or_o three_o time_n in_o a_o quarter_n but_o they_o never_o make_v conscience_n to_o meditate_v on_o that_o which_o they_o have_v hear_v but_o let_v that_o slip_v which_o they_o have_v learn_v and_o so_o indeed_o be_v never_o better_v by_o that_o which_o they_o hear_v another_o reason_n why_o so_o much_o ignorance_n be_v among_o man_n be_v because_o they_o want_v exercise_v of_o themselves_o in_o the_o scripture_n they_o apply_v themselves_o to_o no_o constant_a read_n of_o they_o or_o reason_v and_o confer_v about_o they_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o they_o to_o have_v any_o sound_n and_o well-grounded_n knowledge_n in_o they_o at_o all_o the_o minister_n may_v waste_v themselves_o like_o light_n in_o the_o tabernacle_n yet_o these_o people_n will_v never_o attain_v to_o any_o knowledge_n people_n vain_a allegation_n of_o ignorant_a people_n some_o allege_v that_o their_o calling_n be_v such_o as_o they_o give_v they_o no_o leisure_n to_o attend_v the_o scripture_n or_o to_o spend_v any_o time_n in_o read_v but_o it_o seem_v strange_a to_o i_o that_o man_n shall_v find_v a_o time_n for_o all_o other_o business_n under_o the_o sun_n and_o yet_o not_o find_v any_o time_n to_o further_a their_o own_o salvation_n how_o monstrous_a a_o thing_n be_v it_o that_o they_o have_v time_n enough_o and_o enough_o for_o the_o body_n but_o can_v find_v none_o at_o all_o for_o their_o soul_n they_o can_v find_v time_n and_o leisure_n to_o provide_v wealth_n for_o themselves_o and_o their_o child_n and_o yet_o carry_v poor_a starveling_n soul_n to_o the_o grave_n suffer_v they_o from_o
any_o good_a consequent_a that_o though_o every_o sin_n in_o god_n justice_n be_v adjudge_v worthy_a of_o eternal_a death_n that_o therefore_o it_o do_v equal_o deserve_v it_o see_v more_o of_o this_o chap._n 19_o use_v 2_o second_o from_o this_o doctrine_n receive_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o punishment_n of_o hell_n be_v diverse_a also_o according_a to_o the_o different_a desert_n of_o sin_n luk._n 12_o 47_o 48._o math._n 23_o 15_o and_o 11_o 22_o 24._o they_o that_o break_v the_o law_n and_o teach_v other_o to_o do_v the_o like_a be_v twofold_a more_o the_o child_n of_o hell_n than_o other_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o hell_n that_o transgress_v the_o law_n but_o they_o that_o lie_v a_o stumble_a block_n before_o other_o and_o draw_v they_o out_o of_o the_o way_n be_v guilty_a of_o a_o far_a sin_n and_o consequent_o of_o a_o great_a punishment_n sodom_n shall_v be_v cast_v into_o hell_n but_o capernaum_n shall_v descend_v deep_o and_o suffer_v more_o this_o must_v we_o lay_v to_o our_o heart_n forasmuch_o as_o we_o be_v like_a to_o capernaum_n not_o to_o sodom_n every_o man_n must_v receive_v at_o the_o last_o day_n according_a to_o his_o evil_a work_n but_o god_n judgement_n shall_v not_o be_v right_a if_o he_o do_v judge_v sin_n to_o be_v equal_a and_o punish_v sin_n equal_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o may_v conclude_v that_o there_o be_v degree_n of_o glory_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o serve_v to_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o labour_n to_o out-go_v and_o outstrip_v other_o consider_v that_o we_o shall_v receive_v a_o great_a reward_n it_o be_v a_o point_n serve_v to_o animate_v and_o encourage_v all_o man_n in_o well-doing_n to_o know_v that_o the_o magistrate_n shall_v receive_v according_a to_o his_o care_n the_o minister_n according_a to_o his_o pain_n and_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o duty_n and_o obedience_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v use_v 3_o last_o hence_o be_v a_o direction_n for_o magistrate_n see_v offence_n be_v different_a there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o difference_n in_o punishment_n of_o malefactor_n all_o law_n shall_v not_o be_v write_v with_o blood_n neither_o all_o punishment_n take_v away_o life_n but_o if_o lesser_a sin_n shall_v be_v punish_v sharp_o &_o great_a more_o remissly_a it_o be_v against_o the_o rule_n of_o reason_n and_o the_o law_n of_o equity_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n teach_v that_o among_o the_o court_n of_o the_o jew_n they_o always_o punish_v according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o offence_n and_o do_v not_o make_v a_o equality_n among_o offender_n mat._n 5_o verse_n 22._o 31._o verse_n 31._o because_o he_o have_v despise_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o have_v break_v his_o covenant_n etc._n etc._n here_o be_v the_o description_n of_o this_o sin_n whereby_o we_o see_v whereunto_o it_o tend_v be_v once_o entertain_v doctrine_n we_o learn_v from_o hence_o sin_n sin_n be_v come_v to_o the_o height_n when_o man_n be_v bold_a to_o sin_n that_o man_n be_v come_v to_o the_o height_n of_o sin_n when_o they_o commit_v sin_n bold_o and_o boast_o proud_o and_o presumptuous_o esay_n 3_o 9_o numb_a 25_o 6._o 1_o sam._n 16_o 22._o jer._n 3_o 3._o prou._n 2_o 14._o the_o reason_n reason_n 1_o for_o this_o manner_n of_o sin_v be_v without_o any_o sign_n of_o grace_n &_o be_v do_v in_o contempt_n of_o god_n and_o his_o law_n as_o we_o see_v in_o this_o place_n reason_n 2_o second_o this_o kind_n of_o sin_v do_v cry_v to_o heaven_n and_o call_v down_o judgement_n so_o that_o he_o can_v but_o punish_v it_o severe_o gen._n 18_o ver_fw-la 20_o 21._o this_o reprove_v the_o sin_n of_o our_o time_n for_o use_v 1_o as_o we_o live_v in_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n so_o we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o light_n of_o sin_n because_o some_o maintain_v sin_n and_o other_o brag_n &_o boast_v of_o those_o sin_n that_o they_o have_v commit_v and_o great_o delight_v in_o they_o psal_n 52_o 3_o 4._o esay_n 1_o 23._o 2_o pet._n 2_o 15._o the_o sin_n of_o these_o man_n be_v so_o much_o the_o great_a because_o here_o we_o have_v the_o couple_a and_o combine_v of_o two_o sin_n together_o sin_n and_o the_o love_n of_o sin_n where_o there_o be_v two_o strong_a poison_n mix_v together_o there_o the_o party_n be_v in_o great_a danger_n that_o drink_v of_o that_o potion_n so_o it_o be_v in_o this_o case_n two_o sin_n be_v join_v in_o one_o sin_n &_o impudence_n in_o sin_v that_o person_n be_v much_o more_o guilty_a this_o boldness_n and_o impudence_n be_v also_o accompany_v with_o impenitency_n for_o certain_o he_o that_o sin_v with_o a_o high_a hand_n and_o with_o a_o proud_a heart_n can_v repent_v and_o leave_v his_o sin_n he_o can_v be_v sorry_a for_o it_o and_o turn_v unto_o god_n but_o lie_v under_o a_o great_a measure_n and_o degree_n of_o evil_a second_o let_v such_o as_o be_v guilty_a of_o these_o bold_a use_v 2_o and_o presumptuous_a sin_n break_v they_o off_o by_o true_a repentance_n and_o by_o reform_v such_o as_o be_v commit_v to_o their_o charge_n for_o every_o sin_n must_v be_v repent_v off_o but_o great_a sin_n must_v have_v great_a repentance_n for_o they_o therefore_o we_o shall_v labour_v to_o repent_v of_o all_o whether_o they_o be_v more_o or_o few_o great_a or_o less_o once_o commit_v or_o often_o that_o so_o god_n may_v pass_v by_o we_o when_o his_o judgement_n run_v through_o the_o world_n take_v heed_n therefore_o of_o presumptuous_a sin_n some_o be_v sudden_o overtake_v these_o sin_n 1._o gal._n 6_o 1._o but_o not_o so_o great_o as_o they_o that_o run_v wilful_o and_o violent_o into_o evil_n it_o be_v a_o evil_a to_o take_v the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a though_o it_o be_v in_o heat_n and_o in_o haste_n howsoever_o but_o it_o be_v worse_a to_o swear_v and_o blaspheme_v in_o cold_a blood_n in_o common_a talk_n &_o that_o without_o remorse_n the_o corrupt_a affection_n in_o these_o be_v worse_a than_o the_o action_n of_o sin_n such_o as_o once_o fall_v into_o drunkenness_n can_v be_v excuse_v but_o they_o sin_v double_o and_o treble_o that_o delight_n in_o drunkenness_n &_o haunt_v drunken_a house_n and_o keep_v drunken_a company_n and_o nourish_v all_o occasion_n to_o bring_v themselves_o to_o commit_v sin_n upon_o sin_n so_o it_o may_v be_v say_v touch_v the_o breach_n of_o the_o sabbath_n he_o sin_v that_o pretend_v some_o necessity_n of_o some_o great_a business_n and_o that_o he_o be_v unwilling_a to_o absent_v himself_o from_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o do_v it_o seldom_o but_o he_o that_o make_v a_o common_a practice_n of_o profane_v the_o lord_n day_n sometime_o by_o say_v at_o home_n in_o his_o chamber_n sometime_o by_o walk_v abroad_o in_o his_o field_n sometime_o by_o lie_v in_o a_o alehouse_n sometime_o by_o sit_v at_o table_n &_o card_n do_v offend_v much_o more_o and_o come_v into_o the_o number_n of_o presumptuous_a sinner_n object_n but_o some_o peradventure_o will_v ask_v the_o question_n how_o may_v a_o man_n know_v whether_o he_o sin_n with_o a_o high_a hand_n whether_o he_o be_v come_v to_o the_o height_n of_o sin_n to_o sin_v presumptuous_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v answ_n it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o discern_v thy_o estate_n by_o these_o note_n ●ed_n ●w_o to_o know_v ●o_o sin_v 〈◊〉_d a_o high_a ●ed_n first_o whosoever_o dislike_v and_o hate_v the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v just_o fear_v and_o suspect_v himself_o for_o he_o that_o can_v patient_o endure_v to_o read_v it_o or_o to_o hear_v it_o read_v or_o preach_v because_o it_o lay_v open_v his_o sin_n and_o as_o a_o true_a glass_n make_v his_o corruption_n manifest_o to_o appear_v he_o certain_o be_v a_o bold_a and_o presumptuous_a sinner_n so_o long_o as_o a_o man_n be_v content_a to_o submit_v himself_o to_o god_n ordinance_n and_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o hear_v his_o sin_n reprove_v so_o long_o there_o be_v hope_n of_o such_o a_o sinner_n again_o they_o sin_v purposely_o and_o proud_o and_o presumptuous_o that_o be_v offend_v either_o with_o the_o minister_n or_o with_o a_o private_a friend_n that_o reprove_v he_o for_o his_o sin_n these_o be_v lover_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o be_v resolve_v to_o dwell_v in_o they_o because_o they_o hate_v those_o that_o love_v they_o and_o out_o of_o love_n admonish_v they_o of_o their_o evil_a way_n and_o if_o peradventure_o they_o have_v fail_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o reproof_n these_o by_o &_o by_o conceive_v that_o they_o have_v sin_v more_o in_o reprove_v than_o themselves_o in_o commit_v the_o act_n itself_o three_o they_o be_v pass_v apace_o to_o that_o height_n of_o sin_n that_o excuse_n and_o lessen_v their_o sin_n or_o else_o defend_v they_o such_o as_o say_v it_o be_v no_o such_o
great_a matter_n that_o they_o have_v do_v last_o they_o be_v grievous_a sinner_n sap_a in_o they_o that_o make_v no_o use_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o affliction_n that_o god_n send_v upon_o they_o that_o be_v no_o whit_n better_v or_o reform_v or_o humble_v by_o his_o judgement_n use_v 3_o last_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o pray_v unto_o god_n that_o we_o may_v be_v keep_v and_o preserve_v from_o this_o high_a measure_n of_o sin_n psal_n 19_o 13._o the_o prophet_n pray_v to_o the_o lord_n to_o keep_v he_o from_o presumptuous_a sin_n this_o show_v to_o we_o that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o fall_v into_o they_o and_o what_o do_v they_o but_o publish_v this_o as_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n that_o cry_v out_o that_o god_n be_v merciful_a and_o thereupon_o take_v occasion_n to_o go_v forward_o presume_v of_o his_o mercy_n we_o shall_v be_v careful_a to_o beg_v from_o god_n his_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v resist_v sin_n in_o the_o beginning_n lest_o our_o heart_n be_v harden_v by_o it_o heb._n 3_o 13_o and_o we_o thereby_o be_v draw_v in_o the_o end_n to_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o sin_n ●iect_n ●iect_n if_o any_o ask_v how_o we_o may_v know_v whether_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o leave_v sin_n and_o resist_v it_o in_o the_o beginning_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o answer_v we_o may_v examine_v ourselves_o by_o the_o contrary_a rule_n to_o the_o former_a if_o a_o man_n make_v the_o law_n of_o god_n his_o delight_n and_o can_v therefore_o love_v it_o &_o make_v much_o of_o it_o because_o it_o make_v his_o sin_n manifest_a unto_o himself_o he_o certain_o be_v no_o lover_n of_o his_o sin_n thus_o it_o be_v with_o hezekiah_n when_o he_o have_v receive_v a_o heavy_a threaten_n of_o a_o heavy_a judgement_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n he_o submit_v himself_o and_o say_v to_o the_o prophet_n the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v good_a 19_o ●g_z 20_o 19_o which_o thou_o have_v speak_v second_o he_o love_v not_o his_o sin_n that_o love_v he_o that_o reprove_v he_o for_o his_o sin_n he_o that_o embrace_v that_o minister_n or_o that_o brother_n that_o tell_v he_o of_o his_o corruption_n certain_o he_o be_v not_o determine_v to_o embrace_v and_o entertain_v his_o sin_n three_o he_o that_o be_v so_o far_o from_o excuse_v of_o his_o sin_n that_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o accuse_v himself_o and_o he_o that_o be_v so_o far_o from_o defend_v and_o maintain_v they_o that_o he_o labour_v to_o reconcile_v himself_o to_o god_n and_o to_o have_v a_o clear_a conscience_n towards_o god_n and_o man_n he_o doubtless_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o fear_v to_o come_v to_o the_o height_n of_o sin_n last_o he_o declare_v that_o he_o be_v not_o besot_v with_o the_o love_n of_o his_o sin_n that_o love_v god_n that_o chastise_v he_o even_o for_o his_o chastisement_n sake_n who_o so_o soon_o as_o any_o cross_n befall_v unto_o he_o present_o run_v home_o to_o his_o own_o heart_n and_o condemn_v his_o sin_n and_o judge_v himself_o and_o lay_v all_o upon_o himself_o as_o just_o befall_v he_o for_o his_o sin_n if_o these_o thing_n be_v find_v in_o we_o we_o may_v rejoice_v and_o be_v glad_a that_o albeit_o we_o can_v but_o commit_v the_o act_n of_o sin_n yet_o we_o keep_v our_o heart_n and_o soul_n from_o delight_v in_o sin_n and_o the_o affect_v thereof_o thus_o we_o may_v acquit_v ourselves_o of_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n albeit_o not_o of_o the_o outward_a act_n itself_o by_o seek_v the_o asswage_n and_o lessen_v of_o it_o 32_o and_o while_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n they_o find_v a_o man_n that_o gather_v stick_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n 33_o and_o they_o that_o find_v he_o gather_v stick_n bring_v he_o unto_o moses_n and_o aaron_n and_o unto_o all_o the_o congregation_n here_o follow_v a_o example_n of_o god_n judgement_n upon_o he_o that_o gather_v stick_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v consider_v in_o itself_o only_o but_o as_o it_o depend_v upon_o the_o word_n immediate_o go_v before_o as_o a_o reason_n or_o a_o example_n of_o that_o law_n that_o whosoever_o do_v any_o thing_n presumptuous_o or_o with_o a_o high_a hand_n shall_v die_v the_o death_n and_o albeit_o it_o be_v set_v down_o after_o it_o yet_o i_o take_v it_o to_o have_v be_v do_v before_o it_o the_o israelite_n have_v find_v out_o a_o man_n that_o have_v sin_v not_o of_o ignorance_n or_o one_o that_o gather_v stick_n upon_o necessity_n but_o they_o say_v to_o moses_n as_o the_o pharisy_n do_v to_o christ_n touch_v the_o woman_n take_v in_o adultery_n 4._o john_n 8_o 4._o we_o find_v she_o in_o the_o very_a act_n so_o do_v they_o take_v this_o breaker_n of_o the_o sabbath_n in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o gather_v stick_n who_o rush_v desperate_o against_o the_o law_n as_o a_o ship_n that_o dash_v itself_o in_o piece_n against_o a_o rock_n for_o he_o sin_v in_o contempt_n of_o god_n and_o his_o ordinance_n the_o lord_n have_v deliver_v his_o law_n to_o all_o israel_n and_o repeat_v the_o same_o again_o he_o have_v command_v it_o careful_o to_o be_v keep_v and_o none_o to_o go_v out_o of_o his_o place_n to_o gather_v manna_n upon_o that_o day_n exod._n 16_o 29._o the_o observation_n of_o this_o day_n be_v the_o establish_n of_o the_o whole_a law_n and_o the_o breach_n of_o it_o a_o destroy_n of_o the_o whole_a worship_n of_o god_n this_o do_v this_o wicked_a person_n know_v well_o enough_o but_o he_o nevertheless_o will_v go_v out_o of_o his_o place_n god_n have_v say_v they_o shall_v not_o kindle_v a_o fire_n throughout_o their_o generation_n that_o day_n 3._o exod._n 35_o 2_o 3._o neither_o can_v he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o yet_o he_o will_v kindle_v a_o fire_n to_o provoke_v god_n to_o anger_n against_o he_o in_o this_o we_o see_v his_o sin_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o he_o be_v bring_v to_o moses_n and_o be_v put_v in_o ward_n moses_n ask_v counsel_n of_o god_n what_o shall_v be_v do_v with_o he_o god_n appoint_v he_o for_o example_n sake_n to_o be_v stone_v to_o death_n which_o be_v do_v according_o object_n but_o this_o may_v seem_v a_o small_a offence_n he_o do_v not_o bear_v any_o great_a burden_n on_o the_o sabbath_n nor_o labour_n in_o the_o work_n of_o his_o call_n neither_o offend_v in_o any_o great_a matter_n he_o do_v only_o gather_v a_o bundle_n of_o stick_n and_o that_o as_o it_o shall_v seem_v but_o once_o he_o do_v not_o make_v any_o practice_n of_o it_o answer_n i_o answer_v we_o must_v consider_v not_o only_o the_o deed_n do_v but_o also_o the_o manner_n of_o do_v he_o do_v it_o to_o despise_v and_o despite_n god_n a_o sin_n in_o whosoever_o worthy_a of_o no_o less_o punishment_n than_o death_n itself_o doctrine_n we_o learn_v from_o hence_o that_o every_o sin_n be_v so_o much_o the_o great_a sin_n the_o less_o the_o thing_n be_v for_o which_o a_o man_n will_v sin_v the_o great_a be_v the_o sin_n by_o how_o much_o less_o the_o thing_n be_v for_o which_o man_n sin_n i_o say_v the_o less_o the_o thing_n be_v for_o which_o a_o man_n will_v sin_v and_o transgress_v the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o great_a always_o be_v his_o sin_n a_o man_n will_v think_v it_o nothing_o to_o pick_v up_o a_o few_o stick_n but_o the_o less_o it_o be_v the_o great_a be_v his_o contempt_n of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v run_v into_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o law_n and_o provoke_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n for_o it_o thus_o we_o may_v speak_v of_o the_o sin_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n god_n try_v their_o obedience_n in_o abstain_v from_o the_o fruit_n of_o one_o tree_n 3._o gen._n 2_o 17._o and_o 3_o 3._o &_o yet_o they_o will_v taste_v thereof_o and_o thereby_o ruin_v themselves_o and_o all_o their_o posterity_n the_o matter_n wherein_o they_o sin_v be_v small_a but_o the_o sin_n thereby_o be_v make_v the_o great_a esau_n be_v note_v in_o holy_a scripture_n for_o his_o profaneness_n which_o be_v show_v in_o this_o that_o for_o one_o mess_n of_o broth_n he_o sell_v his_o birthright_n gen._n 25_o 33._o heb._n 12_o 16._o so_o be_v it_o speak_v of_o judas_n that_o for_o thirty_o shekel_n he_o sell_v his_o master_n and_o betray_v the_o lord_n of_o life_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o sinner_n mat._n 26_o 15._o &_o 27_o 5._o a_o goodly_a price_n at_o which_o he_o that_o be_v god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n &_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v value_v say_v the_o prophet_n zachary_n ch_n 11_o 13._o the_o less_o the_o reward_n be_v the_o great_a be_v his_o iniquity_n for_o thereby_o he_o make_v it_o manifest_v at_o how_o vile_a how_o base_a and_o small_a a_o price_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o
sabbath_n and_o sacrament_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v do_v nothing_o but_o practice_v treason_n and_o rebellion_n against_o the_o king_n despise_v his_o word_n and_o contemn_v his_o proclamation_n in_o what_o a_o fearful_a condition_n will_v we_o account_v he_o to_o be_v and_o when_o the_o king_n himself_o shall_v appoint_v a_o day_n wherein_o he_o will_v have_v his_o own_o person_n special_o attend_v and_o whole_o wait_v upon_o if_o his_o household_n servant_n shall_v refuse_v to_o give_v he_o any_o attendance_n but_o wait_v worse_o upon_o he_o that_o day_n than_o any_o other_o and_o give_v themselves_o whole_o to_o attend_v upon_o their_o own_o pleasure_n will_v he_o not_o think_v himself_o notable_o abuse_v and_o discharge_v such_o of_o his_o service_n and_o be_v they_o not_o sure_a to_o run_v into_o his_o displeasure_n and_o to_o procure_v judgement_n upon_o themselves_o notwithstanding_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o many_o among_o us._n god_n have_v command_v we_o to_o reverence_v his_o name_n his_o sanctuary_n his_o sabbath_n his_o word_n his_o ministry_n if_o then_o we_o shall_v dare_v to_o swear_v &_o blaspheme_v open_o to_o reject_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o abuse_v the_o sabbath_n by_o follow_v after_o our_o pleasure_n and_o profit_n our_o sport_n and_o recreation_n and_o thereby_o practice_v after_o a_o sort_n against_o the_o person_n of_o god_n himself_o do_v they_o not_o provoke_v i_o to_o my_o face_n say_v the_o lord_n and_o shall_v they_o go_v unpunished_a no_o certain_o they_o shall_v not_o his_o judgement_n shall_v overtake_v they_o for_o these_o thing_n god_n have_v ordain_v and_o enact_v as_o by_o a_o solemn_a proclamation_n that_o all_o sort_n that_o profess_v themselves_o his_o servant_n shall_v wait_v upon_o he_o on_o the_o sabbath_n he_o be_v then_o determine_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o glorious_a name_n and_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o house_n and_z the_o may_v of_o his_o power_n and_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o majesty_n it_o be_v his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n that_o man_n woman_n &_o child_n shall_v assemble_v together_o before_o he_o to_o give_v he_o attendance_n shall_v we_o answer_v with_o korah_n and_o his_o company_n in_o the_o next_o chapter_n we_o will_v not_o come_v up_o numb_a 16_o 14._o and_o albeit_o we_o be_v not_o so_o impudent_a and_o shameless_a to_o say_v so_o yet_o it_o be_v little_o better_a because_o we_o do_v not_o appear_v before_o he_o nay_o we_o serve_v ourselves_o by_o walk_v in_o our_o own_o way_n and_o many_o serve_v satan_n the_o enemy_n of_o god_n by_o follow_v his_o way_n with_o greediness_n if_o we_o give_v up_o ourselves_o to_o our_o pleasure_n and_o profit_n we_o serve_v ourselves_o when_o we_o give_v up_o ourselves_o to_o our_o sin_n and_o delight_n in_o drunkenness_n and_o such_o like_a wickedness_n upon_o that_o day_n we_o serve_v the_o devil_n and_o in_o truth_n let_v any_o man_n mark_v it_o he_o shall_v see_v that_o god_n be_v no_o day_n worse_o serve_v of_o the_o common_a sort_n then_o upon_o his_o own_o holy_a day_n so_o that_o when_o he_o require_v all_o our_o service_n he_o can_v get_v little_a or_o none_o at_o all_o at_o our_o hand_n use_v 4_o last_o let_v no_o man_n flatter_v himself_o in_o performance_n of_o duty_n unto_o man_n and_o think_v himself_o in_o good_a case_n because_o he_o live_v unblamable_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n we_o must_v learn_v to_o deny_v not_o only_o worldly_a lust_n but_o all_o ungodliness_n and_o we_o must_v live_v not_o only_o sober_o &_o righteous_o but_o also_o godly_a in_o this_o present_a world_n titus_n 2_o 12._o christ_n give_v himself_o for_o this_o purpose_n to_o purge_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o to_o purify_v we_o to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n unto_o himself_o zealous_a of_o all_o good_a work_n and_o indeed_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o first_o table_n be_v the_o great_a &_o most_o heinous_a sin_n and_o deserve_v the_o great_a plague_n of_o god_n and_o most_o fearful_a condemnation_n he_o will_v reward_v with_o everlasting_a fire_n not_o only_o such_o as_o know_v not_o their_o duty_n to_o man_n but_o such_o as_o know_v not_o god_n neither_o obey_v the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 2_o thess_n 1_o 8._o and_o this_o be_v note_v as_o a_o main_a cause_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o old_a world_n to_o wit_n disobedience_n to_o the_o word_n 1_o pet._n 3_o 20._o when_o the_o israelitish_n woman_n son_n who_o father_n be_v a_o egyptian_a blaspheme_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o as_o it_o be_v thrust_v he_o through_o with_o horrible_a curse_n levit._fw-la 24_o 11._o he_o be_v command_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n and_o stone_v verse_n 16_o 23._o these_o sin_n be_v every_o where_o little_a thought_n upon_o and_o suppose_v to_o be_v either_o no_o sin_n at_o all_o or_o very_o little_a one_o but_o man_n judgement_n be_v corrupt_a in_o the_o matter_n of_o god_n second_n how_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o first_o table_n be_v great_a than_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o second_n except_o we_o look_v upon_o sin_n with_o the_o light_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o we_o shall_v parallel_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o first_o table_n with_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o second_o in_o equal_a degree_n the_o great_a of_o the_o one_o with_o the_o gross_a of_o the_o other_o &_o both_o do_v in_o knowledge_n alike_o and_o ignorance_n with_o ignorance_n compare_v deed_n with_o deed_n word_n with_o word_n &_o thought_n with_o thought_n the_o breach_n of_o the_o law_n be_v thus_o consider_v be_v far_o great_a against_o the_o first_o then_o against_o the_o second_o table_n because_o they_o be_v commit_v immediate_o against_o the_o person_n of_o the_o great_a god_n as_o rebellion_n against_o the_o person_n of_o a_o prince_n be_v great_a they_o the_o insurrection_n against_o another_o the_o murder_a of_o a_o prince_n more_fw-mi they_o of_o many_o other_o 2_o sam._n 18_o 3._o see_v then_o from_o hence_o the_o woeful_a abuse_n of_o our_o sinful_a time_n &_o profane_a people_n such_o as_o will_v seem_v to_o make_v conscience_n of_o steal_v of_o whore_v of_o rob_v and_o false_a witness_v in_o judgement_n and_o hold_v they_o unworthy_a to_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n that_o commit_v these_o thing_n mark_v their_o way_n in_o matter_n that_o concern_v the_o most_o high_a god_n possessor_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o you_o shall_v evident_o perceive_v they_o think_v it_o no_o evil_a or_o enormity_n to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o god_n and_o his_o word_n to_o maintain_v superstition_n and_o set_v up_o humane_a tradition_n to_o abuse_v his_o name_n by_o curse_a oath_n to_o profane_v his_o sabbath_n by_o curse_a or_o corrupt_a work_n to_o despise_v his_o word_n and_o to_o refuse_v his_o sacrament_n these_o be_v so_o ordinary_o so_o open_o so_o impudent_o commit_v with_o bold_a nay_o with_o brazen_a face_n and_o defend_v also_o by_o those_o that_o do_v they_o as_o if_o we_o will_v despite_o god_n to_o his_o face_n and_o thrust_v he_o out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o from_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o what_o i_o have_v observe_v by_o the_o common_a course_n of_o the_o world_n that_o more_o perish_v through_o ignorance_n and_o profaneness_n then_o do_v by_o all_o the_o deed_n of_o unrighteousness_n satan_n prevail_v more_o among_o the_o people_n by_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o profane_a life_n and_o keep_v they_o in_o sottishness_n and_o blindness_n touch_v the_o will_n of_o god_n then_o by_o murder_n whoredom_n and_o theft_n lay_v together_o i_o know_v i_o speak_v this_o to_o many_o that_o have_v most_o wretched_a and_o swinish_a heart_n but_o no_o ear_n to_o hear_v and_o therefore_o regard_v their_o own_o pleasure_n more_o than_o they_o do_v their_o salvation_n these_o be_v the_o dangerous_a day_n speak_v off_o by_o the_o apostle_n 2._o tim._n 3_o 1_o 4_o 5._o god_n in_o his_o mercy_n amend_v they_o if_o not_o let_v they_o that_o be_v ignorant_a be_v ignorant_a still_o 1_o cor._n 14_o 38._o and_o he_o that_o be_v filthy_a let_v he_o be_v filthy_a still_o revel_v 22_o 11._o that_o so_o they_o may_v fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o sin_n math._n 23_o 32._o 36_o and_o all_o the_o congregation_n bring_v he_o without_o the_o camp_n and_o stone_v he_o with_o stone_n and_o he_o die_v as_o the_o lord_n command_v moses_n it_o may_v seem_v strange_a at_o the_o first_o that_o they_o shall_v consult_v with_o god_n what_o to_o do_v with_o this_o profane_a person_n see_v the_o law_n have_v appoint_v death_n for_o he_o that_o transgress_v this_o commandment_n exod._n 31_o 14._o and_o 35_o 2._o why_o then_o do_v they_o inquire_v or_o wherefore_o do_v they_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n to_o know_v what_o shall_v be_v do_v unto_o he_o some_o answer_n that_o
what_o not_o shall_v all_o be_v bar_v therefore_o from_o the_o heavenly_a manna_n which_o be_v sweet_a than_o the_o honey_n and_o the_o honey_n comb_n more_o to_o be_v desire_v then_o great_a heap_n of_o riches_n which_o be_v much_o more_o profitable_a than_o be_v the_o find_n of_o great_a spoil_n the_o scripture_n be_v a_o notable_a part_n of_o our_o spiritual_a armour_n ephes_n 6_o 17._o able_a to_o offend_v and_o to_o wound_v our_o enemy_n if_o a_o captain_n shall_v go_v into_o the_o field_n with_o his_o soldier_n and_o suffer_v they_o to_o carry_v with_o they_o no_o weapon_n but_o such_o as_o shall_v serve_v to_o defend_v their_o own_o body_n and_o forbid_v they_o such_o armour_n as_o shall_v any_o way_n hurt_v their_o enemy_n if_o he_o shall_v permit_v they_o the_o shield_n but_o not_o the_o sword_n or_o allow_v they_o a_o corslet_n but_o not_o the_o spear_n will_v he_o not_o be_v think_v and_o that_o just_o and_o worthy_o to_o betray_v they_o into_o the_o enemy_n hand_n but_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o the_o popish_a captain_n that_o must_v or_o at_o least_o will_v be_v account_v the_o only_a master_n of_o israel_n they_o allow_v to_o the_o people_n after_o a_o sort_n the_o girdle_n of_o truth_n the_o breast_n plate_n of_o righteousness_n the_o shield_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o rest_n to_o defend_v themselves_o but_o touch_v the_o sword_n the_o two_o edge_a sword_n of_o the_o word_n heb._n 4_o 12_o wherewith_o christ_n our_o saviour_n resist_v and_o we_o after_o his_o example_n must_v resist_v the_o devil_n matth._n 4_o 4._o they_o forbid_v they_o to_o gird_v that_o about_o their_o loin_n as_o if_o it_o be_v like_o saules_n armour_n 39_o 1_o sam._n 17_o 39_o which_o david_n can_v not_o go_v withal_o because_o he_o have_v not_o prove_v it_o whereas_o indeed_o it_o be_v like_o david_n sling_n &_o the_o stone_n which_o he_o slang_v that_o smite_v the_o philistine_n in_o the_o forehead_n and_o cause_v he_o to_o fall_v upon_o his_o face_n to_o the_o earth_n verse_n 49._o and_o therefore_o what_o do_v they_o but_o treacherous_o betray_v the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o lead_v they_o naked_a into_o the_o field_n to_o be_v utter_o spoil_v and_o so_o to_o fall_v before_o their_o enemy_n second_o it_o confute_v those_o among_o ourselves_o that_o say_v what_o need_n so_o much_o teach_v and_o preach_v there_o be_v some_o that_o think_v themselves_o to_o be_v wise_a man_n much_o wise_a than_o their_o fellow_n that_o stick_v not_o to_o speak_v thus_o but_o this_o their_o wisdom_n be_v no_o better_a than_o foolishness_n with_o god_n 1_o cor._n 1.23_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o cross_n i_o confess_v be_v account_v no_o better_a than_o foolishness_n but_o it_o be_v to_o they_o that_o perish_v whereas_o to_o they_o that_o be_v save_v it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n it_o be_v account_v a_o state-policie_n now_o adays_o to_o defend_v little_a preach_v and_o less_o hear_v but_o ignorance_n can_v uphold_v no_o kingdom_n state_n true_a religion_n be_v the_o stay_n and_o pillar_n of_o a_o state_n religion_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o stay_n of_o a_o state_n and_o commonwealth_n the_o want_n of_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o tumult_n rebellion_n insurrection_n and_o sedition_n what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o rebellion_n in_o the_o north_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o late_a sovereign_n of_o bless_a memory_n be_v it_o any_o other_o than_o want_v of_o knowledge_n and_o of_o preacher_n to_o plant_v knowledge_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n but_o bless_v be_v god_n they_o have_v since_o be_v better_o store_v and_o that_o have_v bring_v better_a quietness_n in_o those_o part_n and_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o often_o rise_n rebellion_n and_o treason_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n at_o this_o day_n but_o because_o they_o remain_v either_o atheist_n or_o popish_a or_o sottish_a want_v the_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n to_o instruct_v and_o inform_v they_o better_o true_a religion_n be_v a_o bulwark_n and_o a_o castle_n of_o defence_n to_o any_o kingdom_n the_o very_a chariot_n and_o horseman_n of_o israel_n 2_o king_n 2.12_o and_o godliness_n have_v the_o promise_n of_o this_o life_n and_o of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 1_o tim._n 4_o 8._o wherefore_o they_o be_v profane_a speech_n of_o ignorant_a people_n or_o of_o idle_a teacher_n go_v about_o to_o maintain_v their_o ignorance_n and_o idleness_n who_o think_v that_o a_o sermon_n in_o a_o quarter_n be_v sufficient_a either_o for_o the_o minister_n to_o preach_v or_o the_o people_n to_o hear_v if_o you_o mark_v or_o will_v examine_v what_o the_o people_n be_v that_o live_v under_o such_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n you_o shall_v see_v they_o know_v nothing_o but_o the_o minister_n must_v preach_v in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n &_o the_o dull_a the_o scholar_n be_v he_o shall_v have_v his_o lesson_n the_o more_o often_o repeat_v such_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v the_o people_n slow_a in_o hear_v dull_a in_o conceive_v weak_a in_o remember_v &_o bear_v away_o what_o they_o have_v hear_v some_o there_o be_v who_o not_o only_o be_v ignorant_a but_o defend_v their_o ignorance_n and_o think_v man_n need_v not_o have_v any_o knowledge_n in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o trouble_v themselves_o any_o way_n about_o it_o these_o do_v imagine_v that_o it_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o minister_n and_o other_o learned_a man_n to_o know_v the_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v fit_a he_o shall_v have_v more_o knowledge_n than_o a_o private_a man_n because_o he_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n but_o this_o exempt_v not_o the_o people_n from_o it_o for_o take_v this_o as_o a_o certain_a principle_n that_o the_o poor_a &_o simple_a person_n must_v have_v as_o much_o knowledge_n for_o matter_n of_o salvation_n as_o the_o minister_n have_v or_o else_o he_o shall_v never_o be_v save_v use_v 3_o last_o let_v all_o man_n know_v man_n and_o woman_n child_n and_o servant_n that_o in_o their_o several_a place_n they_o be_v bind_v to_o exercise_v themselves_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o daily_o to_o meditate_v in_o they_o that_o so_o thereby_o they_o may_v come_v to_o knowledge_n for_o without_o knowledge_n in_o the_o word_n it_o be_v unpossible_a for_o any_o to_o be_v save_v the_o way_n for_o a_o man_n to_o get_v his_o live_n by_o his_o trade_n be_v not_o to_o exercise_v himself_o in_o it_o once_o in_o a_o week_n or_o to_o employ_v himself_o to_o it_o once_o in_o a_o quarter_n but_o he_o must_v use_v it_o daily_o and_o diligent_o or_o else_o he_o shall_v never_o live_v by_o it_o or_o thrive_v in_o it_o so_o may_v i_o say_v in_o this_o case_n a_o man_n that_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o live_v hereafter_o in_o a_o better_a life_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o he_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o meditate_v in_o they_o now_o and_o then_o or_o when_o he_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o do_v and_o to_o keep_v himself_o from_o idleness_n but_o he_o must_v observe_v a_o constant_a and_o continual_a course_n in_o the_o search_n and_o read_v of_o they_o that_o by_o they_o he_o may_v come_v to_o knowledge_n by_o knowledge_n to_o faith_n by_o faith_n to_o obedience_n and_o by_o obedience_n to_o salvation_n ignorance_n shall_v excuse_v no_o man_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n he_o that_o know_v not_o his_o master_n will_n shall_v be_v beat_v luke_n 12_o 48._o hosea_n 4_o 1_o 3._o if_o we_o think_v to_o plead_v for_o ourselves_o and_o to_o allege_v in_o our_o defence_n that_o we_o follow_v our_o calling_n to_o earn_v our_o live_n &_o to_o maintain_v our_o family_n it_o shall_v not_o serve_v our_o turn_n this_o will_v not_o be_v take_v for_o currant_n payment_n our_o particular_a and_o our_o general_a call_n agree_v well_o together_o god_n have_v not_o join_v they_o in_o every_o man_n our_o particular_a call_n be_v to_o follow_v our_o business_n our_o general_a call_n be_v to_o know_v the_o scripture_n the_o one_o do_v not_o abrogate_v the_o other_o inasmuch_o as_o god_n have_v command_v they_o both_o &_o what_o god_n have_v couple_v together_o no_o man_n shall_v put_v asunder_o math._n 19_o 6._o chap._n xvi_o 1_o now_o korah_n the_o son_n of_o izhar_n the_o son_n of_o kohath_n the_o son_n of_o levi_n and_o dathan_n and_o abiram_n the_o son_n of_o eliah_n and_o on_o the_o son_n of_o peleth_n son_n of_o reuben_n take_v man_n 2_o and_o they_o rise_v up_o before_o moses_n with_o certain_a of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n 250._o prince_n of_o the_o assembly_n famous_a in_o the_o congregation_n man_n of_o renown_n 3_o and_o they_o gather_v themselves_o together_o against_o moses_n and_o against_o aaron_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o take_v too_o much_o
by_o stay_a and_o repress_v it_o win_v ground_n and_o spread_v far_a like_o a_o canker_n whereby_o we_o see_v it_o be_v a_o easy_a step_n and_o descent_n from_o one_o evil_a to_o another_o as_o it_o be_v to_o go_v down_o a_o steep_a hill_n now_o the_o sin_n of_o these_o man_n be_v threefold_a first_o they_o be_v as_o blind_a man_n that_o can_v see_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o accuse_v moses_n of_o murder_n and_o impute_v to_o he_o the_o death_n and_o destruction_n of_o those_o that_o be_v bury_v in_o the_o earth_n &_o consume_v to_o ash_n with_o the_o fire_n moses_n be_v only_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n in_o their_o destruction_n the_o cause_n of_o their_o own_o death_n be_v in_o themselves_o as_o if_o a_o malefactor_n never_o consider_v what_o himself_o have_v commit_v shall_v cast_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o condemnation_n upon_o the_o judge_n and_o cry_v out_o against_o he_o as_o a_o shedder_n of_o blood_n second_o their_o unthankfulness_n who_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n confess_v that_o they_o be_v save_v the_o day_n before_o and_o sundry_a time_n beside_o from_o destruction_n by_o the_o intercession_n of_o moses_n if_o he_o have_v not_o pray_v for_o they_o they_o have_v perish_v as_o one_o man_n with_o the_o seditious_a for_o they_o be_v all_o become_v as_o one_o sick_a body_n wherein_o no_o part_n be_v sound_a but_o full_o of_o wound_n and_o bruise_n and_o putrify_a sore_n esay_n 1_o 6._o they_o seek_v his_o death_n that_o after_o a_o sort_n have_v give_v they_o life_n and_o they_o rise_v up_o against_o he_o that_o have_v be_v the_o mean_n of_o their_o deliverance_n three_o as_o they_o do_v condemn_v the_o innocent_a so_o they_o justify_v the_o ungodly_a both_o which_o be_v a_o abomination_n to_o the_o lord_n prou._n 17_o 15._o such_o wicked_a person_n as_o god_n have_v root_v out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o the_o live_n and_o turn_v they_o into_o the_o earth_n which_o be_v weary_a to_o bear_v such_o unprofitable_a burden_n they_o call_v they_o the_o people_n of_o god_n which_o be_v no_o better_o than_o a_o curse_a crew_n of_o conspirator_n against_o god_n and_o such_o as_o he_o have_v appoint_v to_o manage_v the_o state_n civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a these_o man_n therefore_o rise_v up_o in_o their_o stead_n that_o be_v fall_v into_o the_o pit_n and_o defend_v their_o cause_n of_o who_o god_n have_v take_v the_o account_n do_v make_v themselves_o guilty_a of_o their_o sin_n &_o be_v just_o sweep_v away_o with_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n doctrine_n we_o learn_v hereby_o judgement_n the_o wicked_a will_v not_o be_v warn_v by_o former_a judgement_n that_o such_o be_v the_o corrupt_a heart_n of_o wicked_a man_n that_o it_o will_v take_v no_o warning_n by_o former_a judgement_n though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o fearful_a and_o evident_a they_o have_v often_o see_v how_o great_a thing_n god_n have_v wrought_v among_o his_o people_n yet_o they_o be_v blind_a and_o do_v not_o see_v they_o they_o be_v wilful_a and_o will_v not_o regard_v they_o they_o be_v sottish_a and_o will_v take_v no_o knowledge_n of_o they_o psal_n 10_o 5._o esay_n 22_o 12_o 13_o psal_n 24_o 38_o 39_o luk._n 19_o 42._o dan._n 5_o 22._o this_o make_v sin_n out_o of_o measure_n sinful_a the_o reason_n first_o because_o they_o see_v god_n reason_n 1_o be_v a_o merciful_a &_o patient_a god_n he_o bear_v long_a and_o hold_v his_o peace_n and_o therefore_o they_o think_v he_o be_v like_a unto_o themselves_o psal_n 50_o 21._o so_o they_o abuse_v his_o patience_n and_o will_v do_v nothing_o second_o they_o think_v the_o day_n of_o their_o judgement_n reason_n 2_o be_v not_o near_o they_o set_v it_o far_o off_o from_o they_o it_o may_v be_v it_o may_v come_v in_o time_n but_o they_o hope_v there_o will_v be_v peace_n in_o their_o day_n ezek._n 12_o 27._o the_o people_n judge_v that_o the_o prophet_n have_v prophesy_v for_o many_o day_n to_o come_v and_o of_o such_o time_n as_o be_v far_o off_o and_o thereupon_o they_o conclude_v that_o the_o day_n be_v prolong_v and_o every_o vision_n fail_v three_o they_o love_v their_o own_o sin_n and_o reason_n 3_o out_o of_o that_o great_a love_n to_o their_o sin_n they_o be_v unwilling_a altogether_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o any_o judgement_n due_a to_o their_o sin_n &_o can_v abide_v that_o the_o minister_n or_o any_o other_o shall_v give_v they_o warning_n of_o the_o same_o for_o they_o hate_v he_o that_o rebuke_v in_o the_o gate_n and_o they_o abhor_v he_o that_o speak_v upright_o amos_n 5_o verse_n 10._o the_o use_n remain_v use_v 1_o first_o of_o all_o be_v man_n natural_o so_o unwilling_a of_o themselves_o to_o set_v before_o they_o god_n judgement_n then_o this_o serve_v as_o a_o admonition_n to_o the_o minister_n that_o they_o shall_v often_o threaten_v god_n iudgeme●●_n against_o the_o wicked_a see_v they_o be_v so_o dull_a a●d_n unwilling_a to_o take_v any_o notice_n of_o they_o or_o to_o be_v warn_v by_o they_o god_n work_v out_o his_o judgement_n in_o every_o place_n and_o he_o set_v his_o minister_n on_o work_n that_o they_o shall_v cry_v ou●●nd_v not_o spare_v to_o publish_v they_o and_o make_v they_o ●owne_n though_o man_n be_v never_o so_o much_o harden_v in_o their_o sin_n sometime_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o profit_n that_o they_o make_v by_o their_o sin_n &_o sometime_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o pleasure_n that_o they_o find_v in_o their_o sin_n but_o howsoever_o they_o be_v admonish_v of_o any_o judgement_n present_a or_o imminent_a they_o be_v little_o affect_v with_o it_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o say_v with_o the_o atheist_n 1_o cor._n 15_o 32._o let_v we_o eat_v and_o drink_v for_o to_o morrow_n we_o shall_v die_v let_v we_o alone_o with_o our_o do_v for_o the_o present_a and_o we_o will_v take_v order_n for_o those_o judgement_n that_o be_v to_o come_v hereafter_o well_o enough_o object_n if_o any_o say_v it_o behove_v not_o the_o minister_n to_o be_v so_o fervent_a and_o earnest_a in_o his_o reproof_n but_o to_o handle_v sin_n more_o gentle_o because_o many_o be_v the_o worse_a for_o sharp_a rebuke_n and_o few_o or_o none_o the_o better_a answer_n i_o answer_v this_o be_v our_o grief_n and_o cause_v we_o often_o to_o mourn_v in_o secret_a but_o yet_o this_o can_v be_v our_o discharge_n for_o we_o must_v labour_v to_o free_a and_o deliver_v all_o man_n so_o far_o as_o we_o can_v from_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n &_o judgement_n of_o god_n otherwise_o their_o blood_n will_v light_v upon_o our_o head_n and_o be_v require_v at_o our_o hand_n if_o they_o perish_v through_o our_o negligence_n it_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o cock_n as_o some_o observe_v that_o at_o the_o dead_a time_n of_o the_o night_n he_o crow_v most_o loud_a and_o shrill_a whether_o he_o do_v so_o or_o not_o i_o know_v not_o but_o this_o i_o be_o sure_a of_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n ought_v to_o do_v so_o when_o they_o see_v man_n to_o be_v most_o dull_a and_o dead_a in_o their_o sin_n they_o shall_v be_v most_o earnest_a and_o vehement_a even_o at_o the_o dead_a time_n of_o all_o they_o must_v be_v most_o zealous_a that_o so_o they_o may_v deliver_v their_o own_o soul_n and_o not_o be_v constrain_v to_o answer_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o those_o that_o perish_v use_v 2_o second_o this_o reprove_v the_o age_n wherein_o we_o live_v of_o much_o corruption_n because_o it_o can_v sleep_v so_o secure_o at_o the_o noise_n of_o god_n judgement_n these_o murmurer_n in_o this_o place_n have_v hear_v the_o pitiful_a cry_n and_o fearful_a noise_n of_o those_o that_o be_v swallow_v up_o in_o the_o earth_n yet_o they_o have_v already_o forget_v that_o which_o fall_v out_o but_o a_o day_n before_o we_o common_o say_v a_o wonder_n last_v but_o nine_o day_n but_o behold_v how_o they_o have_v see_v one_o of_o the_o great_a wonder_n in_o the_o world_n when_o the_o earth_n who_o foundation_n the_o lord_n have_v lay_v to_o be_v firm_a and_o stable_a that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v remove_v for_o ever_o psal_n 104_o 5_o open_v her_o mouth_n and_o swallow_v these_o unbeliever_n and_o they_o have_v hear_v with_o their_o ear_n their_o outcry_n when_o they_o descend_v into_o the_o deep_a yet_o this_o wonder_n last_v but_o one_o day_n nay_o not_o one_o whole_a day_n for_o on_o the_o morrow_n it_o be_v quite_o out_o of_o their_o remembrance_n we_o have_v have_v all_o sort_n of_o warning_n whatsoever_o general_a &_o particular_a by_o his_o word_n by_o his_o work_n by_o his_o judgement_n upon_o other_o and_o upon_o ourselves_o yet_o we_o take_v general_o and_o particular_o little_a warning_n by_o they_o how_o have_v god_n deal_v with_o many_o of_o we_o and_o how_o near_o have_v he_o come_v unto_o we_o with_o his_o particular_a
judgement_n upon_o our_o family_n we_o see_v this_o with_o our_o eye_n we_o need_v not_o say_v we_o have_v hear_v and_o our_o father_n have_v tell_v we_o for_o we_o have_v see_v and_o have_v know_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n heavy_a upon_o their_o wife_n their_o child_n their_o servant_n and_o yet_o they_o take_v no_o more_o notice_n of_o they_o then_o if_o they_o be_v in_o another_o world_n sometime_o god_n do_v punish_v man_n with_o less_o judgement_n when_o they_o have_v deserve_v great_a he_o do_v but_o as_o it_o be_v touch_v they_o with_o the_o little_a finger_n when_o they_o have_v deserve_v to_o be_v strike_v with_o his_o whole_a hand_n and_o smite_v they_o with_o the_o back_n of_o the_o sword_n that_o deserve_v to_o be_v cut_v in_o piece_n with_o the_o edge_n take_v example_n in_o the_o sin_n of_o drunkenness_n and_o wonder_v at_o it_o how_o many_o drunkard_n have_v god_n cast_v down_o in_o a_o ditch_n from_o a_o bridge_n from_o a_o horse_n where_o peradventure_o they_o have_v break_v arm_n or_o leg_n or_o face_n when_o god_n can_v as_o easy_o have_v suffer_v they_o to_o have_v break_v their_o neck_n &_o so_o to_o have_v end_v their_o sinful_a day_n wretched_o as_o they_o live_v profane_o yet_o which_o of_o they_o have_v be_v better_v or_o admonish_v by_o it_o or_o who_o have_v take_v instruction_n from_o it_o to_o fear_v the_o lord_n or_o to_o repent_v of_o the_o same_o sin_n many_o there_o be_v that_o be_v companion_n in_o sin_n and_o brethren_n in_o evil_a they_o join_v together_o in_o the_o practice_n thereof_o god_n give_v warn_v sometime_o by_o the_o death_n of_o one_o of_o these_o companion_n which_o die_v desperate_o in_o his_o sin_n yet_o will_v not_o the_o rest_n take_v warning_n but_o proceed_v in_o their_o wickedness_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o god_n to_o take_v vengeance_n of_o their_o presumptuous_a sin_n last_o it_o belong_v to_o every_o one_o to_o take_v use_v 3_o notice_n of_o the_o corruption_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n that_o he_o be_v very_o forgetful_a of_o god_n judgement_n &_o very_a unwilling_a to_o be_v admonish_v of_o they_o but_o be_v ready_a to_o pass_v they_o over_o and_o to_o put_v they_o from_o he_o as_o matter_n that_o no_o way_n concern_v he_o this_o be_v a_o voluntary_a and_o wilful_a ignorance_n let_v we_o therefore_o learn_v to_o make_v good_a use_n of_o they_o and_o to_o lay_v they_o up_o in_o our_o heart_n as_o we_o will_v do_v a_o treasure_n in_o our_o coffer_n the_o consideration_n of_o these_o well_o digest_v may_v do_v we_o more_o good_a than_o all_o the_o gold_n and_o silver_n in_o the_o world_n as_o david_n say_v i_o will_v never_o forget_v thy_o precept_n psal_n 119_o 61._o so_o let_v we_o say_v i_o will_v never_o forget_v thy_o judgement_n and_o as_o he_o remember_v his_o mercy_n of_o old_a so_o let_v we_o remember_v his_o judgment_n of_o old_a and_o whereas_o the_o great_a fort_n make_v a_o mock_n both_o of_o their_o own_o sin_n and_o of_o god_n punishment_n let_v we_o say_v with_o the_o prophet_n my_o flesh_n tremble_v for_o fear_n of_o thou_o and_o i_o be_o afraid_a of_o thy_o judgement_n psal_n 119_o 120._o he_o give_v warning_n of_o his_o judgement_n before_o he_o smite_v and_o he_o smite_v one_o to_o teach_v another_o that_o so_o we_o shall_v not_o fall_v into_o his_o judgment_n but_o may_v learn_v to_o prevent_v they_o by_o a_o timely_a care_n of_o avoid_v sin_n we_o be_v yet_o safe_a from_o his_o revenge_a hand_n let_v we_o not_o be_v secure_a nor_o abuse_v his_o patience_n security_n be_v one_o of_o the_o last_o sin_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o world_n for_o before_o the_o fearful_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o general_a security_n when_o all_o be_v ready_a to_o fall_v asleep_a let_v we_o be_v warn_v by_o other_o man_n harm_n lest_o we_o feel_v they_o upon_o ourselves_o esay_n 28_o 15._o christ_n our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o the_o last_o time_n say_v when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v shall_v he_o find_v faith_n on_o the_o earth_n luk._n 18_o 8_o and_o therefore_o he_o compare_v they_o to_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n and_o of_o lot_n when_o they_o do_v eat_v &_o drink_v build_v and_o plant_v marry_v and_o give_v in_o marriage_n even_o until_o his_o judgement_n fall_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o so_o shall_v the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v 37_o math._n 24_o 37_o the_o more_o common_a this_o sin_n shall_v be_v the_o more_o watchful_a we_o ought_v to_o be_v that_o so_o against_o this_o universal_a slumber_n we_o may_v prepare_v a_o general_a remedy_n 46_o and_o moses_n say_v unto_o aaron_n take_v a_o censer_n and_o put_v fire_n therein_o from_o off_o the_o altar_n and_o put_v on_o incense_n and_o go_v quick_o to_o the_o congregation_n and_o make_v a_o atonement_n for_o they_o for_o there_o be_v wrath_n go_v out_o from_o the_o lord_n the_o plague_n be_v begin_v 47_o and_o aaron_n take_v as_o moses_n command_v and_o run_v into_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o congregation_n and_o behold_v the_o plague_n be_v begin_v among_o the_o people_n and_o he_o put_v on_o incense_n and_o make_v a_o atonement_n for_o the_o people_n 48_o and_o he_o stand_v between_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o live_n and_o the_o plague_n be_v stay_v 49_o and_o they_o that_o die_v in_o the_o plague_n be_v fourteen_o thousand_o etc._n etc._n 50._o and_o aaron_n go_v again_o etc._n etc._n we_o hear_v before_o the_o sin_n or_o rather_o the_o many_o sin_n of_o these_o man_n now_o moses_n set_v down_o the_o punishment_n that_o fall_v upon_o they_o albeit_o god_n at_o the_o intercession_n of_o moses_n do_v not_o consume_v they_o in_o a_o moment_n yet_o he_o send_v a_o fearful_a plague_n and_o a_o devour_a pestilence_n among_o they_o that_o smite_v down_o fourteen_o thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o beside_o they_o that_o die_v about_o the_o matter_n of_o korah_n and_o this_o plague_n have_v pass_v a_o great_a deal_n far_o have_v not_o moses_n and_o aaron_n by_o their_o fervent_a prayer_n prevail_v mighty_o with_o god_n to_o stay_v his_o hand_n so_o that_o we_o may_v say_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o psalm_n he_o say_v he_o will_v destroy_v they_o have_v not_o moses_n his_o choose_a stand_v before_o he_o in_o the_o breach_n to_o turn_v away_o his_o wrath_n lest_o he_o shall_v destroy_v they_o psal_n 106_o 23._o this_o be_v a_o borrow_a speech_n from_o warrefare_n and_o the_o besiege_n of_o a_o city_n where_o the_o wall_n be_v batter_v with_o engine_n that_o make_v a_o breach_n in_o they_o ●each_n ●hat_n it_o be_v to_o ●nd_v in_o the_o ●each_n so_o that_o nothing_o remain_v but_o for_o the_o enemy_n to_o give_v the_o assault_n and_o to_o make_v a_o entrance_n &_o put_v all_o to_o the_o sword_n mean_v thereby_o that_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v as_o the_o violent_a shake_n of_o the_o wall_n of_o a_o city_n there_o can_v no_o strength_n hold_v out_o against_o he_o now_o moses_n and_o aaron_n do_v as_o it_o be_v oppose_v themselves_o against_o god_n wrath_n and_o the_o people_n danger_n by_o earnest_n and_o hearty_a prayer_n make_v on_o their_o behalf_n that_o god_n will_v spare_v his_o people_n &_o not_o destroy_v they_o with_o the_o pestilence_n for_o as_o in_o time_n of_o great_a danger_n and_o distress_n the_o most_o valiant_a captain_n and_o soldier_n offer_v themselves_o to_o manifest_a peril_n when_o a_o breach_n be_v make_v in_o the_o wall_n for_o the_o enemy_n to_o enter_v with_o all_o his_o force_n that_o thereby_o they_o may_v drive_v back_o such_o as_o be_v press_v forward_o to_o give_v the_o assault_n so_o do_v moses_n and_o aaron_n stand_v between_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a &_o interpose_a body_n for_o body_n and_o life_n for_o life_n doctrine_n doctrine_n we_o learn_v hereby_o that_o the_o necessity_n dignity_n ministry_n 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o ministry_n and_o worthiness_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v exceed_v great_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o good_a of_o the_o people_n 1_o tim_n 3_o 1._o eph._n 4_o 11_o 12_o 13._o act_n 8_o 29_o and_o 9_o 11_o and_z 10_o 20_o and_o 16_o 9_o 10_o 14.15_o 29.30_o math._n 16_o 19_o reason_n 1_o this_o be_v far_o confirm_v by_o the_o title_n whereby_o they_o be_v call_v and_o adorn_v they_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v shepherd_n by_o the_o great_a shepherd_n of_o the_o sheep_n 1_o pet._n 5._o eph._n 4_o 11_o 12_o to_o be_v overseer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n act_v 20_o 28_o to_o be_v as_o father_n over_o their_o child_n exod._n 20_o 12._o 1_o cor_fw-la 3_o to_o be_v as_o nurse_n over_o the_o infant_n and_o to_o be_v as_o steward_n over_o the_o house_n to_o give_v to_o every_o one_o his_o portion_n second_o they_o have_v charge_n over_o man_n reason_n
full_a of_o good_a work_n and_o alm_n deed_n he_o kneel_v down_o and_o pray_v 9.40_o 〈◊〉_d 9.40_o and_o turn_v he_o to_o the_o body_n he_o bid_v she_o arise_v and_o she_o open_v her_o eye_n and_o sit_v up_o hereunto_o also_o we_o may_v not_o unfit_o apply_v the_o example_n of_o such_o as_o have_v recover_v out_o of_o eminent_a danger_n and_o have_v be_v in_o a_o manner_n in_o the_o jaw_n of_o death_n and_o hold_v their_o soul_n in_o their_o hand_n as_o hebr._n 11.17_o 19_o touch_v isaac_n he_o lay_v bind_v with_o cord_n as_o a_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o altar_n the_o knife_n be_v lift_v up_o to_o have_v kill_v he_o and_o his_o father_n ready_a to_o have_v offer_v he_o for_o a_o burn_a offering_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v also_o say_v to_o have_v offer_v he_o account_v that_o god_n be_v able_a to_o raise_v he_o up_o even_o from_o the_o dead_a from_o whence_o also_o he_o receive_v he_o in_o a_o figure_n the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o many_o other_o the_o saint_n that_o have_v have_v experience_n of_o god_n power_n who_o be_v no_o better_a than_o dead_a in_o their_o own_o opinion_n by_o incurable_a disease_n and_o incredible_a danger_n have_v notwithstanding_o be_v sudden_o restore_v hezekiah_n be_v will_v to_o set_v his_o house_n in_o order_n for_o he_o shall_v die_v his_o disease_n be_v mortal_a yet_o by_o prayer_n he_o obtain_v the_o prolong_n of_o his_o day_n when_o daniel_n be_v in_o the_o lion_n den_n and_o the_o three_o servant_n of_o god_n in_o the_o fiery_a furnace_n noah_n in_o the_o ark_n upon_o the_o water_n jonah_n in_o the_o belly_n of_o the_o whale_n where_o be_v they_o but_o after_o a_o sort_n in_o death_n yet_o all_o these_o have_v deliverance_n and_o flourish_v again_o like_o the_o almond_n rod_n in_o this_o place_n the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o paul_n 10_o cor._n 11.26_o and_o 1.9_o 10_o he_o be_v press_v with_o trouble_n out_o of_o measure_n above_o strength_n insomuch_o that_o he_o despair_v even_o of_o life_n and_o receive_v the_o sentence_n of_o death_n in_o himself_o yet_o god_n which_o raise_v the_o dead_a deliver_v he_o from_o so_o great_a a_o death_n we_o read_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o he_o be_v stone_v with_o stone_n so_o that_o they_o draw_v he_o out_o of_o the_o city_n suppose_v that_o he_o have_v be_v dead_a but_o when_o the_o disciple_n stand_v round_o about_o he_o 2.27_o 〈◊〉_d 14.19_o 20_o 〈◊〉_d 2.27_o he_o rise_v up_o and_o come_v into_o the_o city_n so_o do_v this_o apostle_n speak_v of_o epaphroditus_n he_o be_v sick_a nigh_o unto_o death_n but_o god_n have_v mercy_n on_o he_o and_o not_o on_o he_o only_o but_o on_o i_o also_o lest_o i_o shall_v have_v sorrow_n upon_o sorrow_n this_o be_v likewise_o the_o flourish_a of_o the_o almond_n rod_n of_o aaron_n reason_n 1_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v marvel_v at_o forasmuch_o as_o god_n be_v the_o live_a god_n he_o have_v life_n and_o be_v in_o himself_o and_o he_o give_v life_n and_o breath_n and_o be_v unto_o other_o thing_n this_o be_v a_o title_n proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o god_n 22.32_o matth._n 22.32_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v he_o be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_n second_o he_o be_v of_o infinite_a power_n and_o be_v reason_n 2_o able_a in_o the_o beginning_n to_o create_v all_o thing_n of_o nothing_o 11.3_o heb_fw-mi 11.3_o so_o that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v be_v not_o make_v of_o thing_n which_o do_v appear_v three_o he_o reason_v 3_o can_v take_v away_o life_n and_o breath_n so_o often_o as_o it_o please_v he_o yea_o cast_a body_n and_o soul_n into_o hell_n 10.28_o psal_n 104.29_o matth._n 10.28_o the_o use_n remain_v first_o this_o be_v a_o type_n as_o use_v 1_o also_o the_o whole_a priesthood_n be_v of_o the_o person_n doctrine_n priesthood_n and_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n as_o appear_v in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o prophet_n 13.23_o esay_n 11.1_o 2._o psal_n 45.6_o and_o 22.14.18_o act._n 13.23_o al_n our_o salvation_n spring_v from_o his_o cross_n and_o our_o life_n from_o his_o death_n he_o offer_v up_o himself_o upon_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o our_o body_n to_o obtain_v for_o we_o everlasting_a peace_n perfect_a righteousness_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n he_o rise_v again_o from_o death_n to_o life_n for_o our_o justification_n 25._o rom._n 4_o 25._o this_o be_v the_o rod_n that_o come_v out_o of_o the_o stem_n of_o jesse_n and_o as_o a_o branch_n that_o grow_v out_o of_o his_o root_n who_o though_o he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_o become_v as_o a_o dry_a and_o wither_a stalk_n and_o staff_n that_o be_v not_o regard_v 4.24_o 1_o pet._n 3.18_o rom._n 4.24_o yet_o he_o be_v quicken_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o god_n raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a so_o that_o he_o become_v as_o the_o flourish_a rod_n of_o aaron_n in_o who_o we_o have_v redemption_n through_o his_o blood_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n eph._n 1.7_o second_o here_o be_v also_o a_o type_n set_v forth_o for_o use_v 2_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n at_o the_o last_o day_n which_o as_o dry_a seed_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o earth_n and_o bring_v to_o dust_n yet_o in_o due_a time_n shall_v flourish_v again_o as_o the_o rod_n of_o the_o almond_n in_o this_o place_n dan._n 12.2_o joh._n 5.25_o and_o 11.24_o 25._o joh._n 19.25_o 26_o 29._o this_o have_v be_v teach_v in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o very_a beginning_n gen._n 4.10_o and_o 5.24_o heb._n 11.5_o jude_n ver_fw-la 14_o 14._o exod._n 3.6_o 15._o 2_o king_n 2.11_o esay_n 26.19_o notwithstanding_o in_o all_o age_n some_o have_v be_v find_v that_o have_v deny_v the_o resurrection_n among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n that_o sadducee_n teach_v that_o man_n perish_v whole_o and_o that_o after_o death_n there_o be_v no_o rise_v or_o return_v to_o life_n but_o that_o he_o perish_v as_o the_o beast_n matth._n 22.23_o act._n 23.8_o and_o the_o apostle_n peter_n foretell_v that_o in_o the_o last_o day_n shall_v mocker_n arise_v that_o shall_v say_v where_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n 2_o pet._n 3.3_o 4._o and_o what_o be_v this_o else_o but_o not_o to_o believe_v that_o christ_n will_v come_v again_o to_o judgement_n nor_o raise_v uppe_o the_o dead_a to_o life_n and_o in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n some_o be_v find_v which_o say_v there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a 1_o cor._n 15_o 12._o some_o have_v confess_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o many_o also_o of_o the_o heathen_a do_v but_o touch_v the_o resurrection_n they_o have_v fancy_v it_o to_o be_v in_o this_o life_n and_o not_o after_o death_n so_o that_o the_o resurrection_n with_o they_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o regeneration_n to_o wit_n a_o die_a unto_o sin_n and_o arise_v again_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n the_o author_n of_o this_o heresy_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v hymeneus_n and_o philetus_n of_o who_o the_o apostle_n say_v concern_v the_o truth_n they_o have_v err_v say_v that_o the_o resurrection_n be_v already_o past_a 〈◊〉_d thereby_o do_v destroy_v the_o faith_n of_o some_o 2_o tim._n 2.18_o neither_o be_v this_o heresy_n dead_a with_o they_o but_o be_v reviue_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o damnable_a sect_n of_o the_o family_n of_o love_n who_o hold_v that_o hell_n and_o heaven_n be_v in_o this_o life_n and_o no_o other_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n or_o day_n of_o judgement_n or_o come_v of_o christ_n they_o in_o this_o world_n to_o these_o we_o may_v join_v as_o next_o neighbour_n the_o anabaptist_n of_o our_o time_n who_o utter_o deny_v that_o the_o same_o body_n which_o now_o we_o have_v and_o shall_v lie_v in_o the_o dust_n shall_v ever_o rise_v again_o but_o they_o hold_v that_o god_n at_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n will_v make_v we_o new_a body_n this_o be_v to_o maintain_v a_o new_a creation_n of_o new_a body_n but_o to_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o former_a body_n for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o make_v and_o another_o to_o raise_v up_o against_o all_o these_o error_n we_o must_v cleave_v to_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o scripture_n prove_v the_o resurrection_n prove_v for_o this_o be_v a_o fundamental_a point_n of_o religion_n if_o this_o be_v shake_v and_o overturn_v all_o religion_n be_v pull_v up_o by_o the_o root_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n reason_v against_o these_o at_o large_a 1_o cor._n 15._o and_o proove_v the_o point_n sound_o &_o substantial_o by_o many_o argument_n reason_n the_o first_o reason_n first_o if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n
they_o that_o reap_v carnal_a thing_n must_v be_v as_o ready_a to_o sow_v spiritual_a thing_n such_o then_o as_o be_v idle_a drone_n that_o will_v not_o labour_v or_o dumb_a dog_n that_o can_v bark_v 10._o esay_n 56_o 10._o have_v no_o right_n from_o god_n to_o take_v the_o maintenance_n of_o such_o as_o discharge_v their_o place_n with_o care_n and_o diligence_n he_o that_o have_v no_o lust_n to_o labour_n aught_o to_o have_v no_o liberty_n to_o eat_v but_o it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o many_o man_n to_o look_v more_o to_o the_o feed_n of_o themselves_o then_o to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o to_o mourn_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o loss_n of_o the_o flock_n as_o for_o the_o lack_n of_o the_o fleece_n these_o do_v possess_v much_o more_o th●n_n they_o do_v deserve_v none_o can_v call_v for_o more_o duty_n to_o be_v pay_v nor_o look_v more_o narrow_o to_o the_o utmost_a penny_n but_o none_o perform_v less_o duty_n to_o the_o people_n than_o themselves_o and_o if_o the_o people_n may_v not_o detain_v their_o tithe_n under_o colour_n and_o pretence_n of_o not_o be_v teach_v no_o more_o may_v the_o minister_n withhold_v his_o pain_n under_o colour_n of_o have_v his_o tithe_n withhold_v from_o he_o for_o albeit_o the_o people_n deal_v spare_o with_o we_o yet_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o sow_v spare_o unto_o they_o the_o more_o spare_o we_o feed_v the_o more_o hardly_o they_o fare_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o preach_v now_o and_o then_o for_o that_o be_v to_o nuzzle_v they_o in_o ignorance_n o_o what_o grief_n be_v it_o to_o see_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n famish_v and_o how_o shall_v it_o make_v our_o bowel_n to_o yearn_v within_o we_o to_o hear_v the_o young_a child_n ask_v bread_n &_o to_o have_v no_o man_n break_v it_o unto_o they_o 4._o lam_n 4_o 4._o god_n will_v have_v his_o son_n and_o daughter_n feed_v to_o the_o full_a and_o the_o table_n of_o his_o child_n furnish_v with_o bread_n plentiful_o or_o rich_o 23.5_o col._n 3_o 17._o psal_n 23.5_o and_o as_o david_n table_n with_o a_o cup_n run_v over_o to_o keep_v they_o not_o only_a live_n but_o in_o good_a like_n not_o only_o from_o be_v famish_v but_o also_o fat_a and_o flourish_a 23_o but_o the_o levite_n shall_v do_v the_o service_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n &_o they_o shall_v bear_v their_o iniquity_n it_o shall_v be_v a_o statute_n for_o ever_o throughout_o your_o generation_n etc._n etc._n 24_o but_o the_o tithe_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n which_o they_o offer_v as_o a_o heave_n offer_v unto_o the_o lord_n i_o have_v give_v unto_o the_o levite_n to_o inherit_v therefore_o i_o have_v say_v unto_o they_o among_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n they_o shall_v have_v no_o inheritance_n the_o office_n of_o the_o levite_n be_v set_v down_o they_o must_v take_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n and_o do_v service_n therein_o now_o among_o these_o not_o doubt_n be_v man_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o of_o sundry_a gift_n some_o be_v more_o learned_a and_o some_o less_o 2_o chron._n 30_o 22_o yet_o the_o dispensation_n be_v commit_v unto_o they_o and_o therefore_o all_o must_v be_v regard_v and_o respect_v the_o levite_n though_o inferior_a as_o well_o as_o the_o priest_n and_o among_o they_o both_o such_o as_o be_v more_o mean_o qualify_v and_o as_o god_n have_v give_v they_o charge_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n so_o he_o give_v charge_n to_o the_o people_n to_o accept_v of_o their_o ministry_n regard_v doctrine_n minister_n of_o very_a mean_a gift_n must_v be_v regard_v the_o doctrine_n be_v that_o all_o in_o the_o ministry_n whatsoever_o their_o gift_n be_v be_v to_o be_v accept_v yea_o though_o their_o gift_n oftentimes_o be_v small_a &_o slender_a true_a it_o be_v they_o must_v all_o have_v some_o gift_n to_o fit_v they_o to_o teach_v the_o people_n but_o howsoever_o they_o be_v inferior_a to_o many_o other_o yet_o for_o their_o office_n sake_n they_o must_v be_v regard_v i_o do_v not_o say_v the_o people_n shall_v depend_v upon_o they_o that_o be_v utter_o ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a but_o if_o mean_o gift_v in_o comparison_n of_o other_o the_o people_n must_v not_o forsake_v they_o neither_o wander_v from_o one_o levite_n to_o another_o mark_v therefore_o that_o minister_n endue_v with_o a_o small_a and_o yet_o a_o competent_a measure_n of_o gift_n may_v notwithstanding_o do_v unto_o god_n good_a service_n in_o the_o church_n and_o gain_v glory_n to_o his_o name_n he_o put_v his_o rich_a treasure_n in_o vessel_n not_o of_o silver_n and_o gold_n but_o of_o earth_n among_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o some_o have_v great_a gift_n than_o other_o 19_o mark_v 3_o 17._o 1_o cor_fw-la 15_o 10._o roman_n 15_o 19_o some_o be_v the_o son_n of_o thunder_n and_o some_o labour_v more_o abundant_o than_o other_o no_o doubt_n according_a to_o the_o gift_n they_o have_v receive_v yet_o all_o profitable_a to_o that_o church_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n of_o gift_n by_o the_o same_o spirit_n nevertheless_o all_o give_v to_o profit_v withal_o 1_o corin._n 12_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o and_o paul_n say_v he_o speak_v with_o tong_n more_o than_o other_o 1_o cor._n 14_o 18._o experience_n teach_v this_o among_o ourselves_o that_o many_o of_o mean_a gift_n and_o little_a humane_a learning_n yet_o have_v be_v profitable_a teacher_n and_o powerful_a instrument_n of_o much_o good_a in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n &_o gain_v many_o to_o he_o the_o reason_n first_o of_o all_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n be_v all_o in_o all_o reason_n 1_o upon_o the_o labour_n of_o those_o that_o be_v call_v he_o for_o the_o most_o part_n bring_v to_o pass_v the_o great_a work_n by_o the_o weak_a mean_n and_o the_o mean_a instrument_n and_o by_o they_o he_o will_v get_v and_o gain_v glory_n to_o himself_o as_o well_o as_o by_o man_n of_o the_o great_a gift_n albeit_o they_o also_o be_v of_o his_o own_o plant_n exod._n 4_o 10_o moses_n be_v not_o eloquent_a yet_o moses_n be_v potent_a he_o be_v not_o fine_a in_o speech_n but_o he_o be_v full_a of_o the_o spirit_n jeremy_n complain_v he_o can_v not_o speak_v chap._n 1_o 6._o but_o god_n supply_v his_o want_n and_o make_v he_o able_a to_o thunder_v out_o judgement_n against_o the_o impenitent_a second_o that_o the_o power_n &_o glory_n may_v reason_v 2_o be_v of_o god_n alone_o if_o god_n shall_v always_o work_v his_o will_n by_o man_n of_o high_a place_n &_o of_o great_a gift_n the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o soul_n will_v be_v judge_v to_o proceed_v from_o man_n and_o not_o from_o god_n as_o the_o host_n of_o gideon_n be_v too_o many_o for_o god_n to_o save_v withal_o 2._o judg._n 9_o 7_o 2._o so_o sometime_o the_o gift_n of_o man_n be_v too_o great_a for_o he_o to_o convert_v with_o they_o lest_o we_o shall_v say_v we_o have_v do_v it_o therefore_o do_v god_n often_o put_v this_o treasure_n in_o vessel_n of_o mean_a account_n that_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o power_n may_v be_v of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o we_o 2_o cor._n 4_o 7._o three_o such_o as_o reason_v 3_o be_v conscionable_a in_o their_o place_n do_v bring_v many_o blessing_n to_o the_o people_n and_o convert_v many_o soul_n so_o that_o the_o work_n of_o god_n do_v prosper_v under_o their_o hand_n which_o seek_v god_n glory_n ●_o jeremy_n 23_o ●_o &_o not_o their_o own_o praise_n that_o the_o people_n may_v thereby_o be_v encourage_v to_o hear_v they_o and_o to_o depend_v upon_o they_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o deny_v ourselves_o in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o to_o trample_v our_o own_o credit_n and_o estimation_n in_o the_o world_n under_o our_o foot_n as_o the_o great_a rabbi_n know_v well_o enough_o that_o we_o may_v seek_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n only_o with_o a_o right_a affection_n what_o then_o be_v it_o needless_a to_o have_v school_n object_n 1_o of_o learning_n or_o for_o the_o child_n of_o the_o prophet_n to_o be_v train_v up_o in_o they_o and_o there_o prepare_v for_o the_o ministry_n i_o answer_v answer_v no_o these_o be_v notable_a &_o necessary_a help_n to_o fit_a man_n to_o this_o great_a work_n and_o high_a call_n &_o all_o mean_n if_o they_o be_v great_a be_v little_a enough_o for_o who_o be_v sufficient_a for_o these_o thing_n 2_o cor._n 2_o 16._o we_o must_v use_v these_o and_o leave_v the_o success_n to_o god_n providence_n who_o be_v not_o tie_v unto_o they_o no_o more_o they_o christ_n to_o choose_v his_o disciple_n out_o of_o the_o company_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n again_o if_o god_n work_v his_o will_n whensoever_o object_n 2_o he_o will_v by_o man_n of_o mean_a gift_n
and_o out_o of_o which_o he_o be_v short_o to_o depart_v or_o will_v he_o be_v patch_v that_o tent_n and_o tabernacle_n which_o he_o have_v pitch_v for_o a_o day_n or_o two_o we_o dwell_v in_o earthly_a tabernacle_n as_o in_o house_n of_o clay_n 2_o cor._n 5_o 4._o 2_o pet._n 1_o 14._o what_o wisdom_n then_o be_v it_o to_o bestow_v day_n and_o month_n and_o year_n in_o plot_v &_o plod_v for_o the_o world_n for_o riches_n and_o the_o vanity_n of_o this_o life_n let_v we_o also_o prepare_v and_o provide_v before_o hand_n for_o the_o day_n of_o our_o dissolution_n that_o such_o as_o god_n have_v bless_v with_o this_o world_n good_a set_v their_o house_n and_o their_o estate_n in_o order_n as_o the_o prophet_n in_o this_o regard_n warn_v hezekiah_n esay_n 38_o 1._o set_a thy_o house_n in_o order_n for_o thou_o must_v die_v and_o we_o may_v learn_v this_o necessary_a practice_n of_o ahitophel_n though_o live_v in_o wickedness_n and_o die_v in_o despair_n of_o who_o the_o scripture_n say_v when_o he_o see_v that_o his_o counsel_n be_v not_o follow_v he_o go_v home_o unto_o his_o city_n put_v his_o house_n in_o order_n &_o hang_v himself_o 2_o sam._n 17_o 23._o this_o duty_n be_v to_o be_v think_v upon_o in_o health_n as_o that_o which_o deep_o concern_v ourselves_o and_o our_o posterity_n when_o we_o have_v right_o dispose_v the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n let_v we_o prepare_v for_o a_o nunc_fw-la dimittis_fw-la let_v we_o commend_v our_o spirit_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n let_v we_o resign_v up_o ourselves_o willing_o to_o death_n when_o we_o must_v enter_v into_o a_o particular_a judgement_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o soul_n be_v depart_v and_o separate_v from_o the_o body_n god_n hold_v his_o session_n to_o which_o we_o be_v summon_v by_o his_o messenger_n death_n to_o come_v into_o his_o presence_n to_o receive_v in_o part_n according_a to_o our_o work_n whether_o they_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n even_o as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o this_o life_n how_o judge_n and_o justice_n keep_v their_o session_n and_o assize_n wherein_o malefactor_n bring_v out_o of_o prison_n be_v arraign_v so_o god_n hold_v his_o time_n of_o judgement_n and_o justice_n to_o reward_v every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o work_n we_o have_v all_o a_o cause_n and_o case_n to_o be_v try_v the_o great_a the_o weighty_a the_o worthy_a that_o ever_o be_v handle_v not_o touch_v silver_n &_o gold_n not_o concern_v house_n or_o land_n not_o of_o title_n or_o inheritance_n but_o of_o the_o everlasting_a salvation_n or_o damnation_n of_o our_o soul_n for_o ever_o and_o therefore_o it_o stand_v we_o in_o hand_n to_o be_v well_o arm_v &_o thorough_o appoint_v that_o we_o come_v not_o as_o the_o foolish_a virgin_n without_o oil_n in_o our_o lamp_n or_o as_o the_o unprepared_a guest_n without_o our_o wedding_n garment_n we_o see_v in_o temporal_a court_n when_o man_n have_v a_o cause_n to_o be_v try_v and_o a_o action_n to_o be_v determine_v either_o of_o good_n or_o good_a name_n how_o careful_a they_o be_v before_o hand_n to_o read_v evidence_n to_o produce_v witness_n and_o to_o search_v record_n that_o the_o suit_n may_v pass_v on_o their_o side_n how_o much_o more_o careful_a aught_o we_o to_o be_v to_o answer_v before_o the_o eternal_a judge_n where_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v admit_v to_o appear_v by_o his_o attorney_n but_o all_o must_v come_v in_o their_o own_o person_n none_o shall_v be_v suffer_v to_o put_v in_o surety_n this_o will_v be_v a_o great_a day_n when_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v appear_v together_o at_o once_o high_a and_o low_a prince_n and_o subject_a noble_a and_o unnoble_a according_a to_o the_o description_n that_o john_n make_v i_o see_v the_o dead_a both_o great_a &_o small_a stand_n before_o god_n and_o the_o book_n be_v open_v and_o another_o book_n be_v open_v which_o be_v the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o the_o dead_a be_v judge_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n according_a to_o their_o work_n revel_v 20_o 12._o and_n be_v bury_v there_o hitherto_o of_o the_o death_n of_o miriam_n now_o of_o that_o which_o follow_v her_o death_n to_o wit_n her_o burial_n see_v here_o when_o life_n be_v depart_v what_o they_o do_v with_o the_o body_n they_o commit_v it_o to_o the_o earth_n the_o doctrine_n from_o hence_o be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v a_o necessary_a duty_n to_o bury_v the_o dead_a dead_a doctrine_n a_o commendable_a duty_n 〈◊〉_d bury_v the_o dead_a this_o appear_v by_o many_o example_n of_o the_o godly_a which_o have_v practise_v this_o duty_n gen._n 23_o 4._o abraham_n the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a buy_v a_o possession_n of_o burial_n of_o the_o hittite_n who_o by_o the_o sight_n and_o light_n of_o nature_n have_v their_o sepulcher_n &_o therefore_o answer_v abraham_n 13._o gen._n 23_o 6._o &_o 35_o 29_o &_o 50_o 12_o 13._o thou_o be_v a_o prince_n of_o god_n among_o we_o in_o the_o chief_a of_o our_o sepulcher_n bury_v thy_o dead_a none_o of_o we_o shall_v forbid_v thou_o his_o sepulchre_n but_o thou_o may_v bury_v thy_o dead_a therein_o so_o ch_z 25_o 8_o 9_o when_o abraham_n yield_v the_o spirit_n and_o die_v in_o a_o good_a age_n and_o be_v gather_v to_o his_o people_n his_o son_n isaac_n &_o ishmael_n bury_v he_o in_o the_o cave_n of_o machpelah_n in_o the_o field_n of_o hephron_n where_o abraham_n be_v bury_v with_o sarah_n his_o wife_n the_o like_a we_o see_v do_v to_o isaac_n when_o he_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n be_v old_a and_o full_a of_o day_n his_o two_o son_n esau_n and_o jacob_n bury_v he_o now_o as_o jacob_n do_v to_o his_o father_n so_o his_o child_n do_v to_o he_o according_a as_o he_o have_v command_v they_o for_o his_o son_n carry_v he_o into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n and_o bury_v he_o in_o the_o cave_n of_o the_o field_n of_o machpelah_n which_o abraham_n have_v buy_v the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o moses_n deut._n 34_o 5_o 6._o for_o albeit_o the_o people_n bury_v he_o not_o neither_o know_v of_o his_o sepulchre_n lest_o they_o shall_v abuse_v it_o to_o idolatry_n yet_o rather_o than_o he_o shall_v want_v burial_n he_o be_v bury_v of_o god_n the_o man_n of_o jabesh_n gilead_n be_v praise_v of_o god_n and_o reward_v of_o david_n because_o they_o bury_v king_n saul_n and_o his_o son_n and_o adventure_v their_o life_n to_o do_v unto_o he_o their_o last_o duty_n 2_o sa._n 2_o 5_o 6._o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o patriarch_n prophet_n judge_n king_n governor_n and_o priest_n yea_o of_o christ_n himself_o who_o burial_n albeit_o he_o be_v able_a immediate_o to_o have_v raise_v and_o restore_v himself_o to_o life_n be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o gospel_n that_o his_o death_n may_v be_v confirm_v and_o his_o far_a humiliation_n manifest_v these_o example_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o commendable_a duty_n of_o the_o living_n to_o be_v perform_v to_o the_o dead_a of_o child_n to_o be_v perform_v to_o their_o parent_n and_o of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n one_o to_o another_o to_o commit_v the_o body_n of_o the_o decease_a to_o the_o grave_n to_o put_v dust_n to_o dust_n and_o so_o to_o cover_v earth_n with_o earth_n and_o no_o marvel_n for_o first_o among_o all_o creature_n reason_n 1_o man_n be_v most_o loathsome_a and_o ugly_a when_o life_n be_v depart_v as_o in_o his_o birth_n and_o bring_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n of_o all_o creature_n he_o be_v most_o frail_a and_o feeble_a without_o strength_n to_o stand_v without_o help_n to_o defend_v himself_o so_o be_v dead_a he_o be_v most_o frail_a filthy_a and_o deform_v he_o that_o a_o little_a before_o glory_v in_o his_o beauty_n comeliness_n feature_n &_o proportion_n be_v now_o become_v the_o mirror_n and_o spectacle_n of_o a_o deform_a and_o misshape_a carcase_n such_o a_o confusion_n and_o wrack_n have_v sin_n wrought_v and_o bring_v into_o our_o nature_n this_o make_v abraham_n to_o say_v to_o the_o hittite_n i_o be_o a_o stranger_n &_o a_o foreigner_n among_o you_o give_v i_o a_o possession_n of_o burial_n to_o bury_v with_o you_o that_o i_o may_v bury_v my_o dead_a out_o of_o my_o sight_n gen._n 23_o 4._o this_o be_v note_v in_o lazarus_n who_o have_v lie_v bury_v but_o four_o day_n his_o b●dy_n stanke_z john_n 11_o 39_o reason_n 2_o second_o burial_n be_v promise_v as_o a_o blessing_n from_o god_n and_o the_o want_n of_o it_o threaten_v for_o a_o plague_n and_o judgement_n god_n offer_v it_o as_o a_o mercy_n to_o abraham_n 15._o ●5_n 15._o that_o he_o shall_v be_v bury_v in_o a_o ripe_a age_n and_o to_o josiah_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v put_v in_o his_o grave_n in_o peace_n 19_o ●_o 22_o 19_o and_o
receive_v thus_o he_o deal_v with_o david_n who_o he_o great_o favour_v and_o advance_v to_o the_o kingdom_n when_o he_o fall_v into_o grievous_a sin_n 2_o sam._n 12.9_o 10._o thou_o have_v kill_v vriah_n the_o hittite_n with_o the_o sword_n and_o have_v take_v his_o wife_n to_o be_v thy_o wife_n and_o have_v slay_v he_o with_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o child_n of_o ammon_n now_o therefore_o the_o sword_n shall_v never_o depart_v from_o thy_o house_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v up_o evil_a against_o thou_o out_o of_o thy_o own_o house_n so_o soon_o as_o solomon_n set_v up_o idolatry_n and_o wrought_v wickedness_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o stir_v up_o adversary_n unto_o solomon_n 14._o 1_o king_n 11._o ●_o 14._o and_o afterward_o rend_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o son_n this_o serve_v to_o convince_v all_o such_o profane_a person_n as_o presume_v of_o god_n patience_n and_o abuse_v his_o mercy_n to_o all_o looseness_n and_o licentiousness_n say_v god_n be_v merciful_a and_o yet_o continue_v in_o their_o sin_n but_o we_o must_v know_v that_o as_o he_o be_v merciful_a so_o he_o be_v just_a as_o his_o mercy_n be_v towards_o the_o penitent_a so_o his_o justice_n be_v towards_o the_o obstinate_a who_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o people_n that_o forget_v his_o law_n and_o therefore_o will_v deal_v more_o fierce_o against_o stranger_n use_v 3_o three_o measure_v not_o the_o favour_n and_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o ourselves_o or_o other_o by_o outward_a blessing_n or_o outward_a cross_n by_o prosperity_n or_o adversity_n which_o come_v alike_o to_o the_o godly_a and_o ungodly_a nay_o oftentimes_o the_o wicked_a flourish_n when_o the_o faithful_a be_v in_o great_a misery_n as_o psal_n 73.3_o 4_o 5._o so_o solomon_n teach_v eccle._n 9.2_o therefore_o christ_n our_o saviour_n correct_v the_o wrong_a judgement_n of_o the_o disciple_n suppose_v that_o such_o as_o pilate_n slay_v be_v the_o great_a sinner_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o dwell_v in_o jerusalem_n because_o they_o suffer_v those_o thing_n luke_n 13.1_o 2_o 3._o if_o then_o we_o will_v find_v sound_a comfort_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o feel_v unfeigned_a testimony_n of_o god_n favour_n towards_o we_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v for_o they_o in_o outward_a blessing_n or_o in_o want_n of_o outward_a blessing_n both_o which_o be_v common_a to_o the_o godly_a and_o ungodly_a but_o in_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o repentance_n from_o dead_a work_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n in_o faith_n in_o christ_n in_o peace_n of_o conscience_n which_o pass_v all_o understanding_n as_o for_o other_o thing_n place_v not_o thy_o heaven_n and_o happiness_n in_o they_o if_o blessing_n come_v receive_v they_o thankful_o if_o cross_n learn_v to_o bear_v they_o patient_o four_o we_o be_v hereby_o put_v in_o mind_n to_o use_v 4_o search_v our_o own_o way_n to_o survey_v our_o own_o heart_n and_o to_o prove_v by_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o word_n our_o own_o thought_n word_n and_o work_n that_o we_o have_v conceive_v speak_v and_o do_v what_o we_o have_v just_o deserve_v if_o god_n in_o justice_n shall_v proceed_v against_o we_o examine_v serious_o our_o own_o life_n mourn_v bitter_o for_o our_o sin_n past_a and_o turn_v unfeigned_o unto_o god_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n this_o duty_n be_v urge_v by_o jeremy_n the_o prophet_n lam._n 3.39_o 40_o 41_o 42._o this_o be_v the_o mark_n that_o god_n shoot_v at_o this_o be_v the_o end_n that_o he_o respect_v even_o by_o his_o affliction_n to_o bring_v we_o home_o to_o himself_o not_o to_o destroy_v and_o confound_v we_o for_o ever_o 10._o heb_fw-mi 12.5_o 10._o let_v we_o not_o despise_v the_o chastening_n of_o the_o lord_n nor_o faint_v when_o we_o be_v rebuke_v we_o have_v have_v the_o father_n of_o our_o body_n which_o correct_v we_o for_o a_o few_o day_n and_o we_o give_v they_o reverence_n shall_v we_o not_o much_o rather_o be_v in_o subjection_n to_o the_o father_n of_o spirit_n who_o chastn_v those_o who_o he_o love_v and_o scourge_v every_o son_n who_o he_o receive_v five_o let_v we_o labour_n to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n use_v 5_o by_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o by_o such_o ordinary_a mean_n as_o he_o have_v appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n hereunto_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v 1._o cor._n 11.30_o to_o examine_v ourselves_o and_o so_o to_o eat_v of_o that_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o that_o cup_n declare_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v break_v in_o among_o the_o corinthian_n insomuch_o that_o many_o be_v weak_a and_o sick_a among_o they_o and_o many_o sleep_v wherefore_o whensoever_o we_o find_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n sore_o and_o heavy_a upon_o we_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o seek_v strength_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n whereby_o we_o shall_v learn_v to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o those_o judgement_n and_o submit_v ourselves_o under_o his_o hand_n that_o strike_v we_o as_o a_o father_n for_o the_o scripture_n serve_v to_o direct_v we_o the_o sacrament_n serve_v to_o comfort_v we_o ●_o psal_n 116._o ●_o without_o which_o the_o prophet_n have_v perish_v in_o his_o affliction_n last_o see_v god_n chastise_v he_o when_o use_v 6_o they_o offend_v then_o most_o assure_o the_o wicked_a that_o be_v not_o he_o shall_v not_o escape_v his_o revenge_a hand_n if_o he_o correct_v the_o flock_n of_o his_o own_o pasture_n the_o child_n of_o his_o own_o household_n the_o citizen_n of_o his_o own_o kingdom_n and_o the_o member_n of_o his_o own_o body_n feed_v at_o his_o own_o table_n in_o this_o life_n and_o make_v heir_n of_o heaven_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v real_o possess_v that_o inheritance_n with_o what_o plague_n punishment_n &_o torment_n will_v he_o visit_v the_o rebellion_n of_o alien_n and_o stranger_n if_o the_o lord_n deal_v sharp_o towards_o these_o to_o who_o he_o be_v a_o merciful_a father_n and_o gracious_a saviour_n and_o who_o he_o often_o prevent_v with_o his_o liberal_a blessing_n sure_o his_o revenge_a wrath_n full_a of_o rage_n 21._o psal_n 21.8_o 2_o king_n 21._o shall_v find_v out_o all_o his_o enemy_n who_o he_o wipe_v will_v away_o as_o a_o man_n wipe_v a_o dish_n &_o turn_v it_o upside_o down_o this_o be_v that_o which_o solomon_n teach_v in_o the_o proverb_n behold_v 11.31_o ●_o 11.31_o the_o righteous_a shall_v be_v recompense_v in_o the_o earth_n how_o much_o more_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o sinner_n there_o remain_v a_o day_n of_o judgement_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v punish_v as_o they_o deserve_v either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v with_o this_o the_o apostle_n peter_n sweet_o accord_v 1_o pet._n 4.17_o 18._o the_o time_n be_v come_v that_o judgement_n must_v begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n if_o it_o first_o begin_v at_o we_o what_o shall_v the_o end_n be_v of_o they_o which_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n and_o if_o the_o righteous_a scarce_o be_v save_v where_o shall_v the_o wicked_a and_o the_o sinner_n appear_v where_o we_o see_v that_o god_n will_v scourge_v &_o whip_v his_o own_o child_n for_o their_o frailty_n and_o infirmity_n appear_v in_o they_o but_o he_o correct_v the_o godly_a in_o mercy_n the_o ungodly_a in_o anger_n the_o godly_a as_o a_o love_a father_n the_o ungodly_a as_o a_o just_a judge_n the_o godly_a to_o amend_v they_o the_o ungodly_a to_o condemn_v they_o the_o godly_a albeit_o humble_v and_o cast_v down_o with_o one_o hand_n be_v comfort_v and_o raise_v up_o with_o another_o whereas_o the_o punishment_n that_o fall_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o ungodly_a be_v but_o the_o beginning_n of_o sorrow_n and_o as_o the_o flashing_n of_o hell_n fire_n now_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o proper_o the_o place_n of_o vengeance_n and_o judgement_n for_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o god_n have_v appoint_v three_o place_n earth_n heaven_n hell_n for_o three_o several_a purpose_n ●poses_n ●ree_a place_n 〈◊〉_d need_v for_o ree_fw-mi several_a ●poses_n the_o earth_n to_o be_v a_o place_n of_o work_v the_o heaven_n a_o place_n of_o reward_v hell_n a_o place_n of_o punish_v earth_n as_o a_o shop_n of_o labour_n heaven_n as_o a_o palace_n of_o glory_n hell_n as_o a_o prison_n of_o torment_n notwithstanding_o rather_o than_o sinner_n shall_v escape_v and_o sin_n go_v unpunished_a the_o lord_n will_v call_v a_o privy_a or_o petty_a session_n even_o in_o this_o life_n and_o make_v the_o earth_n his_o gale_n or_o house_n of_o correction_n if_o then_o god_n will_v visit_v their_o transgression_n with_o such_o heavy_a stroke_n alas_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o all_o profane_a person_n unrepentant_a offender_n obstinate_a sinner_n such_o as_o contemn_v god_n and_o his_o word_n every_o
see_v in_o the_o book_n of_o king_n 1●_n 1_o king_n 1●_n in_o hiel_n the_o betheli●e_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o he_o speak_v by_o joshua_n the_o son_n of_o nun._n the_o like_a we_o see_v in_o zachariah_n when_o rest_v in_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o his_o own_o body_n he_o believe_v not_o the_o angel_n be_v be_v strike_v dumb_a and_o can_v not_o speak_v unto_o the_o people_n luke_n 1_o 20._o a_o memorable_a example_n also_o we_o have_v in_o the_o straight_a siege_n of_o samaria_n where_o a_o prince_n answer_v the_o man_n of_o god_n and_o say_v though_o the_o lord_n will_v make_v window_n in_o the_o heaven_n can_v it_o come_v so_o to_o pass_v 20._o 2_o king_n ●_o 19_o 20._o and_o he_o say_v behold_v thou_o shall_v see_v it_o with_o thy_o eye_n but_o thou_o shall_v not_o eat_v thereof_o and_o so_o it_o come_v unto_o he_o for_o the_o people_n tread_v upon_o he_o in_o the_o gate_n and_o he_o die_v the_o reason_n here_o of_o be_v evident_a for_o first_o reason_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v true_a and_o unchangeable_a heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v but_o one_o jot_n or_o tittle_n of_o his_o word_n shall_v not_o pass_v but_o shall_v be_v fulfil_v this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v urge_v afterward_o in_o this_o book_n chapter_n 23.19_o 1●_n 1_o sam._n 1●_n god_n be_v not_o as_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v lie_v nor_o as_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v repent_v have_v he_o say_v and_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v do_v have_v he_o speak_v and_o shall_v he_o not_o accomplish_v it_o see_v therefore_o god_n be_v unchangeable_a with_o who_o be_v no_o variableness_n or_o shadow_n of_o turn_v he_o will_v let_v none_o of_o his_o word_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n he_o be_v in_o one_o mind_n and_o who_o can_v turn_v he_o yea_o he_o do_v what_o his_o mind_n desire_v reason_n 2_o again_o who_o can_v hinder_v he_o or_o say_v unto_o he_o why_o do_v thou_o thus_o no_o might_n no_o power_n no_o policy_n can_v withstand_v he_o in_o his_o work_n albeit_o man_n rebel_v never_o so_o much_o and_o resist_v never_o so_o mighty_o against_o he_o there_o be_v great_a power_n in_o prince_n they_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v mighty_a thing_n to_o pass_v and_o to_o cross_v the_o attempt_n of_o other_o yet_o sometime_o they_o be_v cross_v and_o resist_v themselves_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n 33._o 〈◊〉_d 33._o who_o be_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_n he_o have_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o even_o of_o prince_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n 1_o ●●b_fw-la 21_o 1_o as_o the_o river_n of_o water_n he_o turn_v they_o about_o as_o please_v he_o this_o make_v the_o apostle_n cry_v out_o 19_o 〈◊〉_d 11.33_o ●5_n ●9_n 19_o o_o the_o deepness_n of_o the_o riches_n both_o of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n how_o unsearchable_a be_v his_o judgement_n and_o his_o way_n past_o find_v out_o for_o who_o have_v know_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o who_o be_v his_o counsellor_n or_o who_o have_v give_v he_o first_o and_o he_o shall_v be_v recompense_v and_o who_o have_v resist_v his_o will_n so_o then_o whether_o we_o consider_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n without_o change_n or_o the_o weakness_n of_o man_n without_o power_n we_o may_v safe_o and_o true_o conclude_v that_o all_o the_o threaten_n which_o have_v be_v pronounce_v and_o denounce_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v verify_v and_o perform_v without_o any_o alter_n or_o diminish_v of_o they_o use_v 1_o let_v we_o apply_v this_o to_o ourselves_o and_o gather_v assure_o from_o hence_o the_o woeful_a estate_n of_o all_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n for_o see_v he_o do_v not_o dally_v with_o we_o or_o scare_v we_o without_o cause_n so_o that_o all_o his_o threaten_n faithful_o denounce_v shall_v be_v undoubted_o accomplish_v how_o shall_v they_o escape_v so_o great_a condemnation_n as_o lie_v at_o the_o door_n and_o hang_v over_o their_o head_n howsoever_o therefore_o they_o put_v away_o the_o evil_a day_n far_o from_o they_o and_o live_v as_o if_o god_n sit_v idle_a in_o heaven_n behold_v all_o thing_n but_o punish_v nothing_o know_v all_o heart_n and_o thought_n but_o not_o regard_v the_o work_n of_o man_n say_v we_o have_v make_v a_o covenant_n with_o death_n and_o with_o hell_n we_o be_v at_o agreement_n 16._o 〈…〉_o 16._o though_o a_o scourge_n run_v over_o and_o pass_v through_o it_o shall_v not_o come_v at_o we_o for_o we_o have_v make_v falsehood_n our_o refuge_n and_o under_o vanity_n be_v we_o hide_v yet_o he_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o heaven_n shall_v laugh_v the_o lord_n shall_v have_v they_o in_o derision_n for_o what_o follow_v your_o covenant_n with_o death_n shall_v be_v disannul_v and_o your_o agreement_n with_o hell_n shall_v not_o stand_v when_o a_o scourge_n shall_v run_v over_o and_o pass_v through_o then_o shall_v you_o be_v tread_v down_o by_o it_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v eccles_n 8.11_o 12_o 13._o because_o sentence_v against_o a_o evil_a work_n be_v not_o speedy_o execute_v therefore_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o child_n of_o man_n be_v full_a set_v in_o they_o to_o do_v evil_a though_o a_o sinner_n do_v evil_a a_o hundred_o time_n and_o god_n prolong_v his_o day_n yet_o i_o know_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v well_o with_o they_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v well_o with_o the_o wicked_a neither_o shall_v he_o prolong_v his_o day_n he_o shall_v be_v like_o a_o shadow_n because_o he_o fear_v not_o before_o god._n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n speak_v chap._n 12_o 22_o 23_o 24_o 25_o 26_o 27_o 28._o where_o the_o prophet_n reprove_v two_o sort_n of_o person_n open_a derider_n of_o god_n word_n as_o if_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v perform_v and_o such_o as_o prolong_v the_o evil_a day_n as_o if_o the_o plague_n be_v for_o many_o year_n and_o shall_v not_o come_v in_o their_o day_n but_o god_n express_o and_o direct_o meet_v with_o they_o both_o and_o bind_v they_o together_o in_o one_o bundle_n declare_v and_o make_v it_o plain_a to_o their_o conscience_n that_o when_o he_o speak_v the_o word_n it_o shall_v be_v do_v and_o when_o he_o pronounce_v a_o decree_n it_o shall_v stand_v thus_o in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n sat●n_o prevail_v with_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n and_o draw_v more_o to_o destruction_n by_o presumption_n than_o he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v by_o desperation_n let_v we_o not_o harden_v our_o heart_n through_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n 6._o esay_n 55_o 6._o let_v we_o seek_v the_o lord_n while_o he_o may_v be_v find_v and_o call_v upon_o he_o while_o he_o be_v near_o second_o let_v we_o ground_v our_o faith_n in_o the_o undoubted_a use_v 2_o performance_n of_o those_o judgement_n that_o be_v yet_o to_o come_v as_o that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n at_o the_o appoint_a time_n will_v break_v the_o heaven_n and_o will_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a at_o his_o appearance_n and_o in_o his_o kingdom_n that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v rise_v again_o and_o stand_v before_o the_o bar_n of_o god_n throne_n these_o thing_n we_o see_v not_o yet_o accomplish_v for_o all_o thing_n continue_v alike_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o creation_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o mocker_n arise_v which_o walk_n after_o their_o lust_n and_o say_v where_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n 10._o 2_o pet._n 3_o 3.4_o 10._o but_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n will_v come_v as_o a_o thief_n in_o the_o night_n in_o the_o which_o the_o heaven_n shall_v pass_v away_o with_o a_o noise_n and_o the_o element_n shall_v melt_v with_o heat_n and_o the_o earth_n with_o the_o work_n that_o be_v therein_o shall_v be_v burn_v up_o yea_o when_o they_o shall_v say_v peace_n and_o safety_n 3._o 1_o thess_n 5_o 3._o then_o shall_v come_v upon_o they_o sudden_a destruction_n as_o the_o travail_n upon_o a_o woman_n with_o child_n and_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v thus_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n prophesi_v behold_v the_o day_n come_v that_o shall_v burn_v as_o a_o oven_n and_o all_o the_o proud_a 1._o malachy_n 4_o 1._o and_o all_o the_o wicked_a doer_n shall_v be_v stubble_n and_o the_o day_n that_o come_v shall_v burn_v they_o up_o and_o shall_v leave_v they_o neither_o root_n nor_o branch_n thus_o than_o we_o see_v a_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v decree_v and_o determine_v and_o remain_v for_o the_o appoint_a time_n but_o at_o last_o it_o shall_v come_v and_o not_o lie_v though_o it_o tarry_v wait_v for_o it_o shall_v sure_o come_v and_o not_o stay_v three_o we_o must_v not_o be_v dismay_v when_o use_v
the_o blind_a so_o that_o he_o have_v ruinate_v himself_o &_o his_o wife_n if_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n have_v not_o assist_v and_o prevent_v the_o mischief_n the_o like_a we_o see_v in_o lot_n in_o a_o great_a sin_n 35._o ge._n 19_o 33_o 35._o who_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o sodom_n and_o grow_v secure_a fall_v twice_o into_o horrible_a incest_n with_o his_o own_o daughter_n and_o yet_o recover_v himself_o by_o unfeigned_a repentance_n the_o like_a we_o see_v in_o john_n 8._o revel_v 19_o 10._o and_o 22_o 8._o one_o of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n and_o the_o disciple_n who_o jesus_n love_v how_o he_o fall_v into_o idolatry_n and_o worship_v a_o angel_n for_o which_o he_o be_v reprove_v of_o the_o angel_n yet_o he_o fail_v the_o second_o time_n in_o give_v divine_a worship_n to_o a_o creature_n which_o belong_v proper_o and_o peculiar_o to_o the_o lord_n the_o creator_n here_o then_o be_v comfort_n and_o consolation_n to_o all_o such_o as_o groan_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o sin_n &_o have_v fall_v through_o infirmity_n into_o the_o same_o sin_n let_v not_o such_o doubt_n of_o god_n mercy_n who_o be_v much_o in_o spare_v sinner_n and_o with_o who_o be_v plentiful_a redemption_n psal_n 130_o 7._o let_v they_o not_o fear_v the_o tentation_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o go_v about_o like_o a_o roar_a lion_n seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v 1_o pet._n 5_o 8_o but_o assure_v themselves_o that_o albeit_o with_o peter_n they_o fall_v often_o yet_o if_o with_o he_o they_o repent_v true_o &_o weep_v bitter_o for_o their_o sin_n the_o lord_n be_v merciful_a to_o forgive_v they_o their_o sin_n not_o that_o we_o shall_v sin_v proud_o presumptuous_o stubborne_o stiff_o and_o obstinate_o against_o he_o that_o grace_n may_v abound_v roman_n chapter_n 6_o verse_n 1_o but_o if_o we_o sin_n through_o frailty_n he_o will_v not_o shut_v we_o from_o his_o mercy_n the_o devil_n will_v tempt_v often_o the_o world_n allure_v often_o the_o flesh_n entice_v often_o so_o we_o may_v fall_v often_o through_o the_o tentation_n of_o the_o devil_n through_o the_o allurement_n of_o the_o world_n and_o through_o the_o enticement_n of_o the_o flesh_n if_o they_o do_v draw_v we_o and_o provoke_v we_o to_o sin_n but_o once_o we_o shall_v fall_v but_o once_o but_o they_o be_v ever_o at_o our_o elbow_n to_o work_v our_o ruin_n and_o forsake_v we_o not_o for_o ever_o as_o the_o devil_n depart_v from_o christ_n only_o for_o a_o season_n luke_n 4_o 13._o but_o the_o lord_n know_v whereof_o we_o be_v make_v he_o remember_v that_o we_o be_v but_o dust_n he_o consider_v that_o we_o be_v but_o flesh_n yea_o as_o a_o wind_n that_o pass_v and_o come_v not_o again_o psal_n 103_o 14_o and_o 78_o 39_o so_o that_o albeit_o we_o be_v often_o overcome_v by_o sin_n yet_o if_o we_o often_o repent_v and_o return_v unto_o he_o he_o be_v a_o father_n that_o have_v more_o than_o one_o blessing_n in_o store_n and_o a_o liberal_a giver_n that_o reproach_v no_o man_n 1.5_o jam._n 1.5_o and_o pardon_v those_o that_o have_v often_o ask_v and_o beg_v pardon_n it_o follow_v here_n be_v neither_o bread_n nor_o water_n and_o our_o soul_n loathe_v this_o light_a bread_n here_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o this_o people_n after_o god_n have_v plentiful_o and_o abundant_o feed_v they_o to_o the_o full_a they_o wax_v wanton_a and_o weary_a of_o this_o food_n they_o account_v their_o manna_n a_o vile_a and_o contemptible_a meat_n albeit_o it_o be_v most_o precious_a and_o name_v therefore_o 17._o psal_n 78_o 25._o doctrine_n natural_o we_o soon_o wax_v weary_a and_o wanton_a of_o god_n gift_n revel_v 2_o 17._o angel_n food_n the_o doctrine_n from_o this_o corrupt_a practice_n be_v this_o that_o we_o wax_v weary_a loathe_v and_o contemn_v god_n blessing_n which_o we_o seem_v at_o the_o first_o with_o joy_n and_o gladness_n to_o receive_v we_o soon_o learn_v to_o contemn_v to_o make_v little_a and_o light_a account_n of_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a blessing_n for_o this_o manna_n be_v both_o we_o see_v this_o in_o our_o first_o parent_n they_o be_v compass_v with_o the_o kindness_n of_o god_n and_o hedge_v about_o with_o his_o mercy_n yet_o be_v not_o long_o content_v with_o they_o nor_o rest_v in_o they_o with_o thanksgiving_n but_o lust_v to_o taste_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o be_v knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a and_o will_v be_v as_o god_n know_v good_a and_o evil_a gen._n 3_o 6._o so_o esau_n be_v the_o first_o bear_v he_o shall_v have_v delight_v therein_o as_o in_o a_o pledge_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o a_o mirror_n of_o his_o great_a mercy_n 17_o ge._n 25_o 33.44_o heb._n 12_o 16_o 17_o yet_o he_o grow_v profane_a and_o secure_a he_o sell_v the_o birthright_n and_o contemn_v the_o blessing_n this_o solomon_n teach_v prou._n 27_o 7._o the_o person_n that_o be_v full_a despise_v a_o honeycomb_n but_o unto_o the_o hungry_a soul_n every_o bitter_a thing_n be_v sweet_a the_o like_a we_o read_v in_o moses_n deut._n 32_o 15._o he_o that_o shall_v have_v be_v upright_o when_o he_o wax_v fat_a spurn_v with_o his_o heel_n thou_o be_v gross_a thou_o be_v lade_v with_o fatness_n therefore_o he_o forsake_v god_n that_o make_v he_o and_o regard_v not_o the_o strong_a god_n of_o his_o salvation_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o ready_a we_o be_v to_o despise_v god_n grace_n and_o so_o to_o come_v to_o the_o very_a top_n of_o iniquity_n reason_n 1_o the_o reason_n follow_v to_o be_v consider_v first_o it_o be_v not_o much_o to_o be_v marvel_v at_o that_o we_o wax_v weary_a of_o good_a thing_n because_o we_o want_v the_o spirit_n of_o discern_v and_o of_o judgement_n to_o see_v into_o our_o own_o self_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o we_o hold_v not_o on_o in_o a_o certain_a and_o settle_a course_n the_o way_n of_o godliness_n which_o we_o be_v enter_v into_o we_o halt_a in_o our_o journey_n and_o many_o way_n trip_v before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o end_n thereof_o and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o we_o weigh_v not_o heavenly_a thing_n with_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n but_o put_v they_o in_o the_o partial_a and_o deceitful_a balance_n of_o our_o own_o brain_n whereby_o we_o deceive_v ourselves_o rob_v god_n of_o his_o honour_n &_o prize_v the_o best_a thing_n at_o a_o vile_a rate_n as_o christ_n be_v value_v at_o thirty_o penny_n 22._o zach._n 11_o 22._o this_o sencelesnesse_n &_o sottishness_n christ_n himself_o check_v in_o the_o israelite_n say_v unto_o they_o when_o he_o be_v come_v near_o to_o the_o city_n and_o behold_v it_o with_o tear_n o_o 4●_n luke_n 19_o 4●_n if_o thou_o have_v even_o know_v at_o the_o least_o in_o this_o day_n those_o thing_n which_o belong_v unto_o thy_o peace_n but_o now_o be_v they_o hide_v from_o thy_o eye_n where_o there_o be_v this_o blindness_n of_o mind_n this_o security_n of_o heart_n this_o want_n of_o judgement_n to_o discern_v of_o their_o estate_n &_o condition_n aright_o no_o marvel_n if_o there_o be_v a_o loathe_n and_o leave_v of_o good_a thing_n as_o be_v among_o the_o israelite_n in_o this_o place_n second_o we_o be_v so_o besot_v and_o bewitch_v reason_n 2_o with_o the_o glitter_a show_n of_o this_o world_n and_o of_o the_o thing_n in_o this_o world_n that_o we_o have_v no_o leisure_n to_o mind_v the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o be_v so_o pamper_v up_o with_o the_o peace_n and_o plenty_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n that_o as_o resty_a horse_n we_o spurn_v against_o our_o creator_n 1_o deut._n 32_o 1_o as_o moses_n complain_v and_o we_o hear_v before_o as_o we_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n by_o creation_n so_o we_o always_o carry_v a_o lump_n of_o this_o earth_n about_o we_o our_o hand_n be_v full_a of_o it_o our_o eye_n look_v upon_o it_o our_o foot_n tread_v upon_o it_o our_o sense_n be_v exercise_v with_o it_o our_o talk_n &_o communication_n be_v upon_o it_o our_o heart_n be_v possess_v with_o it_o and_o all_o our_o life_n long_o we_o dwell_v upon_o it_o see_v therefore_o this_o mould_n of_o earth_n &_o earthly_a thing_n have_v take_v such_o root_n in_o we_o no_o marvel_n if_o we_o grow_v carnal_a and_o secure_a wax_v wanton_a and_o weary_a of_o the_o word_n and_o of_o those_o way_n that_o lead_v unto_o life_n and_o salvation_n this_o do_v our_o bless_a saviour_n teach_v we_o mat._n 13_o 22_o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o sour_a he_o that_o receive_v the_o seed_n among_o thorn_n be_v he_o that_o hear_v the_o word_n but_o the_o care_n of_o this_o world_n and_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o riches_n choke_v the_o word_n and_o he_o be_v make_v unfruitful_a the_o use_n hereof_o be_v first_o to_o show_v we_o the_o use_n 1_o difference_n between_o the_o godly_a and_o ungodly_a for_o the_o godly_a do_v magnify_v god_n
in_o the_o beginning_n how_o precious_a and_o sweet_a be_v it_o to_o our_o taste_n how_o zealous_a and_o forward_o be_v we_o in_o hear_v the_o lord_n and_z calling_z other_o thereunto_o but_o in_o these_o day_n wherein_o we_o have_v it_o continue_v in_o plenty_n and_o abundance_n that_o we_o may_v sit_v under_o our_o vine_n and_o figtree_n confer_v and_o reason_v of_o the_o way_n of_o god_n how_o many_o loathe_v it_o how_o many_o neglect_v it_o how_o few_o receive_v it_o who_o do_v prize_v it_o as_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v we_o be_v cloy_v with_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n we_o be_v heart-sick_a of_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n it_o be_v a_o happy_a and_o bless_a cure_n to_o restore_v we_o to_o the_o former_a day_n of_o our_o health_n this_o surfeit_n be_v the_o common_a sickness_n &_o almost_o desperate_a disease_n of_o our_o land_n that_o all_o her_o spiritual_a physician_n know_v not_o which_o way_n to_o turn_v their_o hand_n and_o their_o head_n to_o cure_v &_o recover_v she_o such_o as_o once_o have_v take_v a_o surfeit_n by_o eat_v any_o meat_n be_v ordinary_o prescribe_v by_o the_o physician_n to_o fast_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o stomach_n and_o appetite_n again_o and_o whensoever_o the_o body_n be_v distemper_v by_o repletion_n the_o way_n to_o recover_v 14._o fernel_n de_fw-fr morb_n cause_n cap._n 14._o be_v to_o take_v the_o diet_n as_o the_o master_n of_o that_o faculty_n do_v affirm_v so_o god_n as_o the_o chief_a physician_n of_o the_o soul_n when_o we_o once_o begin_v to_o loathe_v and_o abhor_v our_o meat_n and_o to_o surfeit_v of_o the_o food_n which_o he_o send_v bring_v upon_o we_o most_o worthy_o and_o just_o the_o famine_n of_o his_o word_n and_o do_v we_o not_o see_v if_o we_o be_v not_o altogether_o blind_v how_o he_o begin_v now_o for_o our_o sin_n to_o diet_n we_o and_o many_o assembly_n range_v in_o goodly_a order_n which_o make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o ring_n and_o resound_v with_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n to_o be_v leave_v as_o sheep_n disperse_v abroad_o and_o wander_v in_o the_o mountain_n without_o a_o shepherd_n this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n long_o since_o threaten_v to_o his_o people_n as_o one_o of_o his_o sore_a and_o sharp_a judgement_n behold_v the_o day_n come_v say_v the_o lord_n god_n that_o i_o will_v send_v a_o famine_n in_o the_o land_n not_o a_o famine_n of_o bread_n nor_o a_o thirst_n for_o water_n but_o of_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o they_o shall_v wander_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o from_o the_o north_n even_o to_o the_o east_n shall_v they_o run_v to_o and_o fro_o to_o seek_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o shall_v not_o find_v it_o etc._n etc._n amos_n 8_o 11_o 12_o 13._o a_o great_a &_o grievous_a thunderbolt_n throw_v down_o upon_o the_o head_n of_o all_o careless_a contemner_n of_o the_o word_n they_o shall_v have_v it_o take_v from_o they_o the_o child_n that_o be_v plentiful_o and_o full_o feed_v and_o have_v whatsoever_o he_o crave_v and_o call_v for_o at_o last_o wax_v wanton_a he_o begin_v to_o play_v &_o dally_v with_o his_o meat_n he_o break_v it_o into_o piece_n &_o cast_v it_o to_o the_o dog_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a sometime_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v abridge_v &_o pinch_v and_o cry_v hearty_o for_o it_o before_o he_o have_v it_o so_o do_v god_n deal_v with_o we_o when_o the_o food_n of_o his_o heavenly_a word_n be_v danle_v and_o dally_v withal_o and_o tread_v as_o a_o vile_a thing_n of_o base_a worth_n under_o our_o unclean_a foot_n he_o be_v constrain_v to_o take_v away_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o word_n ftom_n we_o &_o make_v we_o oftentimes_o in_o the_o anguish_n of_o our_o spirit_n to_o call_v and_o cry_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o want_n of_o it_o before_o he_o restore_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o again_o and_o you_o that_o be_v the_o lord_n remembrancer_n 7._o esay_n 62_o 6_o 7._o keep_v not_o silence_n and_o give_v he_o no_o rest_n until_o he_o repair_v and_o until_o he_o set_v up_o jerusalem_n the_o praise_n of_o the_o world_n let_v we_o repent_v and_o return_v betimes_o even_o while_o it_o be_v call_v to_o day_n lest_o the_o gospel_n be_v take_v away_o from_o us._n for_o as_o we_o show_v before_o among_o all_o sin_n the_o contempt_n of_o the_o word_n be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a that_o cry_v to_o heaven_n for_o vengeance_n to_o fall_v upon_o us._n this_o the_o lord_n jesus_n teach_v in_o many_o place_n whosoever_o shall_v not_o receive_v you_o nor_o hear_v your_o word_n when_o you_o depart_v out_o of_o that_o house_n or_o that_o city_n shake_v off_o the_o dust_n of_o your_o foot_n true_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o they_o of_o the_o land_n of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o for_o that_o city_n mat._n 10_o 14_o 15_o and_z 11_o 23._o act_n 13_o 51._o this_o serve_v to_o comfort_v the_o minister_n in_o the_o course_n of_o teach_v and_o show_v how_o much_o god_n esteem_v his_o gospel_n and_o strike_v a_o fear_n into_o all_o rebellious_a contemner_n of_o his_o word_n this_o ceremony_n of_o shake_v off_o the_o dust_n from_o the_o foot_n use_v among_o the_o jew_n serve_v to_o be_v as_o a_o figure_n of_o curse_v &_o as_o a_o witness_n against_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o that_o wicked_a place_n as_o if_o they_o corrupt_v the_o earth_n and_o infect_v the_o place_n of_o their_o abode_n with_o their_o contagion_n the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o command_v to_o use_v such_o a_o solemn_a kind_n of_o denunciation_n and_o detestation_n against_o murderer_n drunkard_n adulterer_n thief_n false_a witness_n perjure_a person_n &_o such_o heinous_a malefactor_n but_o against_o the_o contemner_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o teach_v that_o god_n be_v not_o more_o offend_v with_o any_o offence_n then_o with_o the_o contempt_n of_o his_o word_n therefore_o he_o affirm_v that_o such_o shall_v be_v more_o greevous_o punish_v they_o the_o sodomite_n who_o be_v destroy_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n from_o heaven_n 14._o gen._n 19_o 14._o this_o touch_v we_o near_o who_o yet_o enjoy_v the_o gospel_n and_o live_v under_o the_o shadow_n and_o protection_n of_o it_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o we_o be_v fall_v from_o our_o first_o love_n and_o like_n of_o it_o let_v we_o repent_v and_o do_v the_o first_o work_n lest_o the_o axe_n be_v lay_v to_o the_o root_n of_o the_o tree_n he_o come_v against_o we_o short_o and_o remove_v our_o candlestick_a out_o of_o his_o place_n except_o we_o repent_v from_o our_o heart_n ver._n 6._o wherefore_o the_o lord_n send_v fiery_a serpent_n among_o the_o people_n etc._n etc._n he_o show_v in_o these_o word_n whence_o the_o punishment_n of_o fiery_a serpent_n come_v upon_o they_o not_o by_o chance_n or_o fortune_n not_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o soil_n and_o wilderness_n itself_o but_o from_o god_n so_o then_o the_o present_a judgement_n upon_o they_o be_v amplify_v by_o the_o author_n the_o lord_n send_v they_o this_o teach_v that_o all_o punishment_n disease_n and_o judgement_n of_o what_o sort_n and_o condition_n soever_o be_v inflict_v upon_o we_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n god_n doctrine_n all_o punishment_n and_o ●sitations_n an●_n inflict_v up●_n we_o b●_n the_o ha●_n of_o god_n whatsoever_o visitation_n fall_v upon_o we_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v lay_v upon_o we_o at_o the_o will_n &_o pleasure_n of_o god_n this_o appear_v in_o moses_n when_o the_o old_a world_n be_v not_o spare_v but_o a_o general_a flood_n bring_v upon_o the_o ungodly_a god_n warn_v noah_n to_o prepare_v the_o ark_n to_o the_o save_n of_o his_o household_n and_o say_v 1●_n gen._n 6_o 7_o 1●_n a_o end_n of_o all_o flesh_n be_v come_v before_o i_o i_o will_v destroy_v from_o the_o earth_n the_o man_n who_o i_o have_v create_v from_o man_n to_o beast_n to_o the_o creep_a thing_n and_o to_o the_o foul_a of_o the_o heaven_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o sodomite_n who_o be_v exceed_v sinner_n against_o the_o lord_n he_o say_v the_o lord_n rain_v upon_o sodom_n and_o upon_o gomorrha_n brimstone_n and_o fire_n from_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o heaven_n gen._n 19_o 24._o so_o ●hen_o abimelech_n king_n of_o gerar_n take_v away_o abraham_n wife_n &_o afterward_o be_v constrain_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n to_o restore_v she_o it_o be_v say_v gen._n 21_o 17_o 18._o god_n heal_v he_o and_o his_o wife_n and_o they_o bare_a child_n for_o the_o lord_n have_v shut_v up_o every_o womb_n of_o the_o house_n of_o abimelech_n because_o of_o sarah_n abraham_n wife_n this_o point_n be_v also_o at_o large_a confirm_v leu._n 26_o 16_o 17._o if_o you_o will_v not_o obey_v i_o
sickness_n be_v from_o god_n the_o manner_n of_o it_o the_o measure_n of_o it_o the_o time_n of_o it_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o be_v of_o god_n which_o give_v good_a assurance_n and_o affiance_n that_o god_n will_v be_v merciful_a and_o gracious_a unto_o we_o see_v he_o strike_v we_o that_o be_v our_o father_n and_o in_o the_o stroke_n be_v it_o never_o so_o sharp_a he_o can_v forget_v his_o former_a compassion_n but_o he_o will_v make_v all_o thing_n fall_v out_o to_o further_a our_o salvation_n neither_o will_v he_o lay_v more_o stripe_n and_o stroke_n upon_o we_o they_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o bear_v he_o will_v make_v a_o way_n for_o we_o to_o escape_v 6._o 1_o cor._n 10_o 13._o psal_n 56_o 8._o psal_n 11_o 3._o cant._n 2_o 6._o he_o will_v make_v our_o bed_n in_o all_o our_o sickness_n he_o put_v our_o tear_n in_o his_o bottle_n his_o left_a hand_n be_v under_o our_o head_n and_o his_o right_a hand_n do_v embrace_v us._n let_v we_o comfort_v one_o another_o in_o these_o thing_n use_v 3_o three_o it_o stand_v we_o upon_o whensoever_o his_o hand_n be_v upon_o we_o to_o seek_v to_o he_o for_o health_n that_o smite_v and_o no_o man_n heal_v that_o make_v the_o wound_n and_o no_o man_n restore_v we_o be_v direct_v by_o this_o consideration_n to_o who_o to_o seek_v for_o our_o recovery_n to_o wit_n first_o to_o the_o hand_n that_o strike_v and_o next_o to_o go_v to_o man_n help_n which_o be_v his_o ordinance_n we_o must_v not_o first_o seek_v to_o the_o physician_n as_o asa_n do_v 2_o chron._n 16_o 13_o but_o first_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n the_o chief_a physician_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o pray_v unto_o he_o in_o our_o trouble_n as_o hezekiah_n do_v esay_n 38_o 2._o let_v we_o never_o look_v that_o any_o mean_n be_v they_o never_o so_o excellent_a shall_v profit_v we_o and_o prosper_v with_o we_o until_o we_o be_v at_o peace_n with_o god_n and_o have_v renew_v our_o repentance_n from_o dead_a work_n for_o our_o daily_a sin_n this_o the_o apostle_n show_v jam._n 5_o 13._o be_v any_o among_o you_o afflict_v let_v he_o pray_v this_o condemn_v those_o that_o seek_v to_o witch_n and_o wizard_n and_o forget_v the_o god_n of_o their_o salvation_n 6._o 1_o sam._n 2_o 6._o who_o kill_v and_o make_v alive_a bring_v down_o to_o the_o grave_n and_o raise_v up_o again_o let_v we_o thereby_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o our_o death_n which_o be_v god_n messenger_n and_o sergeant_n to_o arrest_v we_o and_o to_o bring_v we_o into_o his_o presence_n let_v we_o ever_o prepare_v ourselves_o to_o depart_v in_o peace_n consider_v that_o as_o the_o home_n of_o death_n shall_v take_v we_o so_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n shall_v find_v us._n here_o we_o repent_v or_o else_o we_o repent_v never_o 2._o chrys_n ho●_n de_fw-fr lazaro_n basil_n de_fw-fr moral_n 1._o reg._n 2._o here_o be_v time_n of_o change_v and_o turn_v but_o after_o this_o life_n there_o be_v no_o more_o place_n of_o repentance_n but_o a_o horrible_a expectation_n and_o fearful_a look_v for_o of_o judgement_n which_o shall_v devour_v the_o adversary_n the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o cain_n that_o evil_a man_n be_v of_o evil_a one_o and_o slay_v his_o brother_n we_o may_v multiply_v thousand_o of_o year_n since_o he_o utter_v that_o fearful_a and_o comfortless_a speech_n 13._o gen._n 4_o 13._o my_o sin_n be_v great_a than_o ca_fw-mi be_v pardon_v my_o punishment_n be_v great_a than_o can_v be_v suffer_v yet_o when_o christ_n shall_v break_v the_o heaven_n and_o come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o dead_a he_o shall_v appear_v no_o otherwise_o at_o the_o last_o day_n they_o as_o he_o be_v take_v out_o of_o this_o life_n the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o esau_n of_o saul_n of_o judas_n and_o of_o other_o who_o end_v their_o day_n in_o desperation_n as_o they_o die_v so_o they_o shall_v be_v judge_v &_o abide_v for_o ever_o after_o judgement_n as_o they_o turn_v not_o to_o god_n their_o creator_n while_o they_o live_v so_o they_o shall_v receive_v no_o ease_n or_o alteration_n in_o their_o estate_n when_o they_o be_v once_o depart_v and_o have_v receive_v judgement_n of_o who_o we_o may_v say_v as_o christ_n once_o speak_v of_o judas_n it_o have_v be_v good_a for_o these_o man_n if_o they_o have_v never_o be_v bear_v mat._n 26_o 24._o for_o not_o to_o be_v be_v ten_o thousand_o time_n better_o than_o ever_o to_o be_v in_o a_o live_a death_n in_o continual_a horror_n and_o desperation_n where_o their_o worm_n die_v not_o &_o the_o fire_n never_o go_v out_o 4●_n mark_n 9_o 4●_n this_o be_v the_o use_n that_o hezekiah_n make_v of_o his_o sickness_n es_fw-ge 38_o 10_o 11_o i_o say_v in_o the_o cut_n off_o of_o my_o day_n i_o shall_v go_v to_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o grave_n i_o be_o deprive_v of_o the_o residue_n of_o my_o year_n i_o say_v i_o shall_v not_o see_v the_o lord_n even_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o land_n of_o the_o live_n i_o shall_v see_v man_n no_o more_o among_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o world_n wherefore_o in_o sickness_n we_o be_v teach_v to_o seek_v health_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o our_o mortality_n last_o when_o god_n have_v show_v mercy_n upon_o use_v 4_o we_o in_o our_o deliverance_n let_v we_o spend_v the_o residue_n of_o our_o day_n in_o a_o godly_a conversation_n it_o be_v a_o common_a and_o ordinary_a matter_n to_o make_v solemn_a promise_n and_o protestation_n to_o become_v new_a man_n if_o we_o recover_v many_o do_v then_o lament_v the_o former_a error_n and_o ignorances_n of_o their_o life_n but_o when_o they_o have_v obtain_v mercy_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n when_o they_o have_v find_v a_o blessing_n and_o be_v restore_v they_o become_v as_o lewd_a and_o profane_a as_o they_o be_v before_o and_o this_o move_v christ_n our_o saviour_n to_o exhort_v the_o impotent_a man_n to_o sin_n no_o more_o lest_o a_o more_o grievous_a judgement_n be_v bring_v upon_o he_o joh._n 5_o 14._o we_o see_v how_o hezekiah_n be_v heal_v the_o three_o day_n after_o he_o go_v up_o to_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o praise_v he_o 18_o 2_o king_n 20_o ●_o esay_n 38_o 18_o &_o to_o speak_v of_o his_o goodness_n who_o have_v see_v his_o tear_n hear_v his_o prayer_n and_o who_o have_v remove_v his_o affliction_n the_o grave_n can_v confess_v thou_o death_n can_v praise_v thou_o they_o that_o go_v down_o into_o the_o pit_n can_v hope_v for_o thy_o truth_n but_o the_o live_n the_o live_n he_o shall_v confess_v thou_o as_o i_o do_v this_o day_n the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n shall_v declare_v thy_o truth_n this_o duty_n be_v require_v of_o we_o all_o when_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o our_o sickness_n or_o sorrow_n from_o trouble_n &_o calamity_n to_o be_v thankful_a to_o god_n and_o mindful_a of_o his_o mercy_n let_v every_o one_o examine_v his_o own_o heart_n how_o he_o have_v practise_v this_o duty_n &_o what_o use_n he_o have_v make_v of_o his_o affliction_n there_o be_v none_o of_o we_o but_o have_v a_o bless_a experience_n of_o god_n goodness_n towards_o he_o he_o have_v oftentimes_o preserve_v we_o from_o danger_n restore_v we_o from_o sickness_n deliver_v we_o from_o disease_n free_v we_o from_o trouble_n happy_a be_v we_o if_o thereby_o we_o have_v profit_v unto_o amendment_n of_o life_n and_o in_o the_o study_n of_o godliness_n and_o be_v careful_a that_o we_o fall_v not_o back_o again_o into_o our_o former_a offence_n we_o must_v not_o be_v like_a to_o pharaoh_n who_o return_v to_o his_o vomit_n and_o the_o hardness_n of_o his_o heart_n 14._o ●_o 7.13_o 14._o after_o he_o be_v free_v from_o the_o plague_n of_o god_n lest_o with_o he_o we_o be_v destroy_v by_o the_o just_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o lord_n send_v fiery_a serpent_n among_o the_o people_n which_o sting_v the_o people_n so_o that_o many_o of_o they_o die_v god_n may_v have_v destroy_v these_o ever-murmuring_a israelite_n by_o the_o canaanite_n or_o edomite_n their_o adversary_n he_o have_v man_n and_o angel_n at_o his_o book_n and_o commandment_n to_o afflict_v they_o and_o overthrow_v they_o but_o he_o send_v sting_a serpent_n which_o torment_v they_o and_o a_o multitude_n of_o venomous_a beast_n upon_o they_o that_o they_o may_v know_v that_o where_o with_o a_o man_n sin_v by_o the_o same_o also_o he_o shall_v be_v punish_v as_o we_o show_v before_o the_o doctrine_n from_o hence_o be_v that_o god_n have_v all_o creature_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n ●evaile_v ●ctrine_n ●d_a have_v all_o nature_n even●●malest_a to_o ●ploy_v in_o his_o ●uce_n which_o ●ing_v ●ent_v do_v ●evaile_v and_o he_o arm_v they_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n to_o execute_v his_o will_n and_o be_v so_o employ_v they_o
9_o act_n 2_o 23._o luke_n 19_o 8._o the_o reason_n first_o because_o repentance_n only_a reason_n 1_o make_v general_o &_o confuse_o for_o know_a sin_n be_v never_o true_a repentance_n but_o a_o common_a &_o hypocritical_a repentance_n of_o one_o resolve_a and_o settle_v to_o continue_v in_o sin_n &_o not_o yet_o touch_v with_o a_o true_a feel_n thereof_o true_a it_o be_v for_o secret_a and_o unknown_a sin_n which_o we_o in_o weakness_n &_o ignorance_n commit_v the_o lord_n accept_v a_o general_a confession_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o prophet_n david_n say_v who_o can_v understand_v his_o fault_n cleanse_v i_o from_o secret_a sin_n psalm_n 19_o 12._o thus_o do_v the_o rest_n no_o doubt_n of_o the_o godly_a deal_n &_o such_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o their_o unknown_a sin_n which_o they_o take_v not_o to_o be_v sin_n do_v they_o make_v in_o a_o general_a manner_n which_o be_v hide_v not_o only_o from_o other_o man_n but_o even_o from_o themselves_o this_o we_o may_v say_v of_o their_o polygamy_n or_o their_o marry_n of_o many_o wife_n and_o other_o their_o dail_a infirmity_n second_o we_o must_v make_v a_o particular_a account_n to_o god_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n when_o we_o reason_v 2_o must_v plead_v guilty_a or_o not_o guilty_a at_o his_o bar_n a_o general_a reckon_n and_o account_n will_v not_o then_o be_v take_v neither_o will_v the_o lord_n set_v before_o we_o gross_a sum_n but_o the_o account_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o special_n which_o may_v cause_v the_o stout_a and_o strong_a man_n to_o tremble_v and_o quake_v for_o very_a fear_n of_o that_o day_n all_o the_o sin_n of_o thy_o former_a life_n shall_v be_v represent_v before_o thou_o like_z ●_o squadron_n of_o enemy_n ready_a set_v in_o battle_n array_n to_o assault_v thou_o &_o to_o give_v in_o evidence_n against_o thou_o this_o be_v teach_v and_o witness_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o apostle_n john_n describe_v the_o manner_n of_o judgement_n to_o which_o we_o shall_v be_v summon_v revel_v 20_o 12._o i_o see_v the_o book_n open_v and_o the_o dead_a be_v judge_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n according_a to_o their_o work_n it_o stand_v we_o upon_o in_o regard_n of_o these_o book_n to_o make_v up_o our_o book_n and_o to_o look_v to_o our_o reckon_n forasmuch_o as_o we_o must_v give_v a_o account_n of_o our_o stewardship_n luk._n 16_o 2._o let_v we_o now_o make_v use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n first_o use_v 1_o we_o learn_v from_o hence_o that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o say_v we_o be_v sinner_n and_o so_o to_o cry_v god_n mercy_n for_o a_o pang_n or_o a_o brunt_n and_o so_o away_o or_o to_o desire_n god_n to_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n but_o we_o must_v uncase_v ourselves_o and_o uncover_v our_o particular_a trespass_n if_o we_o will_v have_v god_n to_o cover_v they_o with_o the_o precious_a garment_n of_o christ_n if_o a_o sick_a man_n come_v to_o the_o physician_n and_o only_o tell_v he_o he_o be_v sick_a and_o never_o show_v he_o his_o particular_a grief_n and_o disease_n that_o trouble_v he_o in_o what_o part_n he_o be_v pain_v and_o in_o what_o sort_n he_o be_v take_v he_o can_v never_o look_v to_o be_v cure_v and_o restore_v to_o health_n if_o we_o come_v unto_o god_n the_o father_n of_o spirit_n and_o physician_n of_o soul_n and_o only_o say_v we_o have_v sin_v we_o can_v assure_v ourselves_o of_o pardon_n we_o declare_v before_o that_o we_o must_v confess_v our_o unknown_a sin_n general_o but_o our_o know_a sin_n we_o must_v confess_v particular_o without_o any_o excuse_n or_o defence_n without_o any_o hide_v or_o diminish_v of_o they_o as_o the_o same_o prophet_n do_v after_o he_o have_v sin_v in_o number_v of_o the_o people_n i_o have_v sin_v great_o because_o i_o have_v do_v this_o thing_n 8._o thro'_o 21_o 8._o etc._n etc._n wherefore_o ●t_z stand_v we_o upon_o with_o great_a grief_n &_o heaviness_n of_o heart_n to_o confess_v our_o special_a sin_n &_o to_o give_v sentence_n against_o ourselves_o and_o to_o pray_v with_o earnestness_n of_o spirit_n as_o for_o life_n and_o death_n for_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o offence_n which_o we_o have_v commit_v at_o such_o and_o such_o time_n in_o such_o place_n with_o such_o person_n and_o in_o such_o manner_n otherwise_o our_o repentance_n be_v only_o in_o show_n and_o for_o fashion_n sake_n which_o be_v never_o acceptable_a to_o god_n be_v do_v in_o hypocrisy_n and_o without_o a_o conscionable_a feel_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o soul_n use_v 2_o second_o this_o particular_a confession_n overthrow_v and_o overturn_v sundry_a corruption_n and_o abuse_n in_o the_o case_n of_o repentance_n it_o condemn_v all_o impenitent_a person_n such_o as_o live_v &_o continue_v in_o one_o estate_n never_o sorrow_n for_o any_o sin_n neither_o at_o any_o time_n turn_v from_o it_o neither_o have_v any_o feeling_n or_o ●●eefe_n for_o sin_n neither_o know_v what_o it_o mean_v this_o be_v a_o dangerous_a estate_n and_o a_o most_o perilous_a judgement_n for_o as_o a_o sick_a man_n be_v then_o most_o dangerous_o sick_a when_o he_o have_v no_o feel_n of_o his_o sickness_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o say_v he_o be_v well_o and_o have_v small_a sense_n or_o none_o at_o all_o of_o any_o pain_n or_o peril_n so_o sinful_a man_n be_v then_o in_o great_a misery_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o sin_n when_o he_o think_v himself_o to_o be_v no_o sinner_n such_o one_o be_v far_o off_o from_o mourning_n &_o sorrow_v for_o sin_n from_o turn_v from_o they_o and_o return_v to_o god_n see_v be_v take_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o good_a ●ase_n and_o to_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o no_o repentance_n such_o be_v the_o pharisy_n in_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n who_o he_o reprove_v mat._n 9_o 12_o 13._o beside_o it_o condemn_v ceremonial_a repentance_n which_o carry_v a_o outward_a show_n of_o die_v to_o sin_n but_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o inward_a truth_n of_o a_o sound_a heart_n thus_o saul_n repent_v 1_o sam._n 15.74_o and_o 26_o 21_o and_o 24_o 17_o 18._o and_o ahab_n rend_v his_o clothes_n but_o not_o his_o heart_n he_o fast_v from_o food_n but_o not_o from_o sin_n 1_o kin._n 21.27.29_o thus_o the_o hypocrite_n repent_v mention_v in_o the_o prophet_n when_o a_o man_n afflict_v his_o soul_n for_o a_o day_n 7._o esay_n 58_o 5._o mic._n 6_o 7._o and_o boweth-downe_a his_o head_n as_o a_o bulrush_n yet_o lose_v not_o the_o bond_n of_o wickedness_n and_o therefore_o immediate_o afterward_o he_o embrace_v his_o former_a sin_n and_o return_v to_o his_o old_a way_n as_o phazaoh_n do_v who_o be_v annoy_v with_o the_o frog_n smite_v with_o the_o hail_n terrify_v with_o the_o thunder_n trouble_v with_o the_o grassehopper_n pester_v with_o the_o fly_n disquiet_v with_o the_o darkness_n this_o be_v the_o even●_n and_o issue_n of_o all_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v rest_n give_v unto_o he_o he_o harden_v his_o heart_n and_o hearken_v not_o unto_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v the_o common_a sickness_n of_o the_o common_a repentance_n that_o man_n ordinary_o practice_v in_o these_o day_n whereby_o they_o deceive_v themselves_o and_o their_o own_o soul_n deal_v in_o hypocrisy_n &_o dissemble_v with_o the_o lord_n catch_v at_o the_o shadow_n instead_o of_o the_o body_n &_o rest_v in_o show_n instead_o of_o the_o substance_n last_o it_o condemn_v all_o such_o as_o have_v harden_v their_o heart_n in_o sin_n and_o be_v grow_v thereby_o to_o be_v past_a feel_n such_o as_o can_v discern_v between_o good_a and_o evil_a nor_o tremble_v at_o god_n judgement_n but_o draw_v sin_n ●o_o themselves_o as_o it_o be_v with_o cart-rope_n and_o work_v all_o uncleanness_n even_o with_o greediness_n these_o have_v their_o conscience_n sear_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n and_o it_o accuse_v they_o not_o for_o any_o sin_n but_o bring_v they_o into_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n so_o that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o confess_v their_o proper_a and_o particular_a sin_n that_o they_o have_v no_o sense_n or_o remorse_n of_o any_o sin_n but_o be_v full_a of_o all_o wickedness_n and_o unrighteousness_n last_o it_o behoove_v we_o to_o search_v out_o our_o way_n to_o see_v what_o we_o have_v leave_v undo_v and_o use_v 3_o what_o lie_v most_o upon_o our_o conscience_n and_o especial_o bewail_v the_o same_o otherwise_o there_o be_v in_o we_o no_o sound_a conversion_n this_o the_o prophet_n testify_v lam._n 3_o 40_o 41._o some_o be_v special_o incline_v to_o lust_n &_o uncleanness_n some_o to_o covetousness_n some_o to_o surfeit_v &_o drunkenness_n some_o to_o envy_n &_o revenge_n some_o to_o swear_v &_o blaspheme_v some_o to_o pleasure_n &_o delight_n of_o the_o outward_a man_n now_o where_o we_o be_v weak_a satan_n will_v be_v strong_a where_o our_o defence_n be_v
oppressor_n as_o a_o honest_a jurate_n witness_v against_o he_o and_o cry_v for_o vengeance_n and_o shall_v the_o lord_n be_v deaf_a and_o not_o hear_v such_o great_a and_o loud_a out-crying_n of_o so_o many_o distress_a and_o oppress_v person_n enter_v into_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o pierce_v the_o ear_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n shall_v not_o god_n avenge_v his_o elect_a which_o day_n and_o night_n cry_v unto_o he_o 7.8_o ●e_n 18_o 7.8_o yea_o though_o he_o suffer_v long_o for_o they_o i_o tell_v you_o he_o will_v avenge_v they_o quick_o to_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o oppress_a but_o to_o the_o confusion_n of_o the_o oppressor_n use_v 3_o last_o see_v wrongful_a deal_v must_v be_v avoid_v it_o serve_v to_o condemn_v all_o inordinate_a live_n in_o no_o settle_a or_o lawful_a call_n idle_o unthrifty_o and_o prodigal_o for_o every_o man_n live_v in_o the_o church_n of_o what_o degree_n or_o condition_n soever_o must_v have_v some_o particular_a calling_n to_o walk_v in_o how_o high_a soever_o his_o estate_n be_v how_o great_a soever_o his_o revenue_n be_v which_o condemn_v the_o wander_a up_o &_o down_o of_o rogue_n and_o beggar_n the_o cloister_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n the_o idleness_n of_o rich_a man_n that_o have_v land_n and_o live_n all_o such_o as_o be_v drone_n unprofitable_a to_o the_o church_n or_o commonwealth_n or_o family_n wherein_o they_o abide_v adam_n in_o time_n of_o his_o innocency_n immediate_o after_o his_o creation_n in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n 15._o ●2_n 15._o have_v a_o special_a calling_n appoint_v he_o to_o dress_v and_o keep_v the_o garden_n it_o be_v likewise_o say_v to_o he_o and_o his_o posterity_n immediate_o after_o the_o fall_n 19_o ●3_n 19_o in_o the_o sweat_n of_o thy_o brow_n thou_o shall_v eat_v thy_o bread_n till_o thou_o return_v unto_o the_o earth_n out_o of_o which_o thou_o be_v take_v so_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2_o thess_n 3_o 11_o 12._o christ_n jesus_n the_o head_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n before_o the_o solemn_a invest_n and_o enter_v into_o his_o office_n live_v private_o in_o joseph_n house_n and_o wrought_v in_o his_o trade_n 〈◊〉_d ●_o 6_o 3_o ●●tra_fw-la 〈◊〉_d and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o jew_n call_v he_o not_o only_o the_o carpenter_n son_n but_o a_o carpenter_n if_o then_o we_o will_v settle_v ourselves_o in_o a_o lawful_a call_n eat_v our_o own_o bread_n trust_v in_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n content_v ourselves_o with_o our_o present_a estate_n think_v it_o the_o best_a and_o fit_a for_o we_o we_o shall_v keep_v ourselves_o from_o oppression_n &_o wrong_n but_o because_o some_o live_v without_o any_o call_n some_o without_o a_o lawful_a call_n other_o live_v distrustful_a &_o discontent_a it_o drive_v they_o to_o make_v ungodly_a shift_n and_o use_v unlawful_a mean_n which_o god_n abhor_v let_v we_o lay_v these_o thing_n to_o our_o own_o heart_n and_o not_o spend_v our_o day_n in_o idleness_n the_o time_n be_v precious_a let_v we_o seek_v to_o redeem_v it_o let_v we_o every_o day_n do_v some_o good_a or_o other_o 16._o ephe._n 5_o 16._o let_v we_o learn_v some_o good_a of_o other_o or_o be_v teach_v some_o good_a thing_n to_o other_o but_o alas_o how_o many_o be_v there_o in_o all_o place_n that_o spend_v whole_a day_n and_o month_n and_o year_n in_o vanity_n who_o if_o they_o will_v call_v themselves_o to_o a_o account_n of_o their_o life_n past_a may_v see_v and_o perceive_v many_o day_n pass_v over_o their_o head_n without_o do_v any_o good_a whereof_o albeit_o they_o will_v take_v no_o account_n of_o themselves_o yet_o they_o must_v give_v a_o account_n to_o god_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n verse_n 23._o but_o sihon_n give_v israel_n no_o licence_n to_o pass_v through_o his_o border_n and_o sihon_n assemble_v all_o his_o people_n and_o go_v out_o against_o israel_n into_o the_o wilderness_n etc._n etc._n the_o request_n to_o give_v the_o israelite_n a_o quiet_a and_o peaceable_a passage_n be_v quiet_a &_o peaceable_a man_n be_v just_a and_o reasonable_a yet_o the_o petition_n be_v deny_v and_o the_o people_n themselves_o that_o make_v it_o be_v persecute_v they_o offer_v no_o wrong_n they_o draw_v no_o sword_n they_o shoot_v no_o arrow_n they_o cast_v no_o dart_n they_o take_v away_o nothing_o yet_o they_o be_v hate_v and_o hurry_v unto_o the_o death_n and_o assault_v without_o mercy_n this_o teach_v cause_n doctrine_n the_o wicked_a hate_n and_o persecute_v the_o godly_a without_o cause_n that_o the_o ungodly_a do_v hate_n and_o persecute_v the_o godly_a without_o cause_n this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o wicked_a man_n to_o pursue_v the_o child_n of_o god_n with_o all_o injurious_a and_o despiteful_a deal_n albeit_o they_o offer_v no_o occasion_n of_o hurt_n or_o harm_n unto_o they_o we_o see_v this_o practice_n in_o cain_n who_o hate_v his_o brother_n 8._o gen._n 4_o 8._o and_o albeit_o he_o speak_v friendly_a unto_o he_o yet_o draw_v he_o into_o the_o field_n he_o rise_v up_o against_o he_o &_o slay_v he_o this_o the_o prophet_n complain_v of_o psalm_n 69_o 4_o and_o 35_o 7._o joseph_n be_v sell_v as_o a_o slave_n and_o imprison_v as_o a_o malefactor_n jeremy_n be_v many_o way_n trouble_v and_o clap_v up_o david_n be_v hate_v &_o hunt_v from_o place_n to_o place_n the_o apostle_n be_v whip_v and_o scourge_v in_o the_o synagogue_n stephen_n be_v revile_v and_o stone_v christ_n be_v scorn_v and_o crucify_v paul_n be_v buffet_v and_o persecute_v the_o saint_n be_v try_v by_o mock_v burn_v in_o the_o fire_n slay_v with_o the_o sword_n they_o wander_v in_o the_o wilderness_n they_o be_v hide_v in_o cave_n and_o hole_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o reason_n be_v very_o plain_a &_o direct_v for_o first_o it_o seem_v unto_o they_o more_o than_o strange_a reason_n 1_o that_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o brethren_n with_o they_o in_o evil_a but_o separate_v themselves_o from_o they_o &_o will_v touch_v no_o unclean_a thing_n if_o we_o be_v of_o the_o world_n the_o world_n will_v love_v his_o own_o but_o because_o we_o be_v choose_v out_o of_o the_o world_n therefore_o the_o world_n hate_v us._n so_o long_o as_o paul_n join_v with_o the_o pharisy_n in_o persecute_v the_o church_n &_o imprison_v all_o those_o that_o call_v upon_o the_o lord_n jesus_n who_o be_v in_o great_a favour_n and_o credit_n with_o they_o but_o when_o he_o be_v call_v to_o preach_v the_o truth_n which_o before_o he_o have_v oppugn_v and_o become_v zealous_a in_o the_o faith_n which_o before_o he_o destroy_v by_o &_o by_o the_o jew_n take_v counsel_n to_o kill_v he_o 23._o act_n 9_o 23._o christ_n jesus_n the_o lord_n of_o life_n before_o he_o be_v install_v into_o his_o office_n 29_o luke_n 2_o 52_o &_o 3_o 2_o &_o 4_o 28_o 29_o be_v in_o favour_n with_o god_n and_o man_n but_o when_o he_o be_v baptize_v albeit_o he_o be_v always_o in_o favour_n with_o his_o father_n yet_o immediate_o afterward_o he_o be_v tempt_v of_o the_o devil_n contemn_v of_o his_o countryman_n and_o lead_v to_o the_o edge_n of_o a_o hill_n to_o be_v cast_v down_o headlong_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n peter_n witness_v 1_o pet._n 4.4_o 5._o but_o it_o be_v better_a for_o we_o to_o have_v the_o hatred_n of_o man_n and_o the_o ill_a will_n of_o all_o the_o world_n then_o fail_v in_o any_o part_n of_o our_o duty_n unto_o god_n who_o be_v able_a to_o cast_v body_n and_o soul_n into_o hell_n reason_n 2_o second_o no_o marvel_n if_o the_o wicked_a hate_n the_o godly_a for_o the_o world_n hate_v christ_n he_o be_v call_v a_o samaritan_n he_o be_v count_v a_o conjurer_n he_o be_v esteem_v as_o a_o drunkard_n a_o deceiver_n a_o devil_n a_o friend_n of_o publican_n and_o sinner_n if_o they_o have_v thus_o revile_v the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n no_o marvel_n if_o they_o respect_v not_o the_o member_n the_o ambassador_n must_v not_o look_v to_o be_v great_a than_o he_o that_o send_v he_o 16.20_o john_n 13_o 16_o and_o 16.20_o the_o disciple_n must_v not_o dream_v of_o a_o better_a condition_n than_o the_o lord_n if_o they_o have_v do_v thus_o to_o the_o green_a tree_n what_o will_v they_o do_v to_o the_o dry_a and_o wither_a 31._o luke_n 23_o 31._o if_o they_o deal_v thus_o with_o he_o that_o be_v always_o fruitful_a &_o flourish_a and_o live_v for_o ever_o we_o must_v not_o look_v that_o they_o shall_v deal_v better_o with_o we_o that_o be_v unfruitful_a and_o full_a of_o the_o unsavoury_a fruit_n of_o our_o corruption_n this_o christ_n himself_o teach_v in_o sundry_a place_n mat._n 10_o 24_o 25._o the_o disciple_n be_v not_o above_o his_o master_n nor_o the_o servant_n above_o his_o lord_n it_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o disciple_n to_o be_v as_o his_o master_n be_v and_o the_o servant_n
and_o gomorrha_n genes_n 18.19_o i_o know_v he_o that_o he_o will_v command_v his_o son_n and_o his_o household_n after_o he_o that_o they_o keep_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o do_v righteousness_n and_o judgement_n that_o the_o lord_n may_v bring_v upon_o abraham_n that_o he_o have_v speak_v unto_o he_o this_o the_o prophet_n urge_v psal_n 78_o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o so_o the_o prophet_n joel_n or_o rather_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o prophet_n threaten_v a_o grievous_a plague_n of_o dearth_n and_o famine_n that_o the_o field_n shall_v be_v waste_v the_o corn_n destroy_v the_o new_a wine_n dry_v up_o the_o oil_n decay_v and_o the_o husbandman_n howl_v because_o the_o harvest_n of_o the_o field_n shall_v perish_v say_v joel_n 1_o 2_o ●_o hear_v ●e_v this_o o_o elder_n and_o hearken_v you_o all_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o land_n whether_o such_o a_o thing_n have_v be_v in_o your_o day_n or_o yet_o in_o the_o dayer_n of_o your_o father_n tell_v you_o your_o child_n of_o it_o and_o let_v your_o child_n show_v it_o to_o their_o child_n and_o their_o child_n to_o another_o generation_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o god_n require_v of_o we_o a_o diligent_a consideration_n of_o his_o judgement_n see_v he_o smite_v one_o to_o admonish_v another_o we_o must_v not_o account_v these_o stroke_n only_o as_o punishment_n upon_o the_o offender_n but_o as_o example_n offer_v for_o the_o amendment_n and_o repentance_n of_o other_o as_o our_o saviour_n teach_v his_o disciple_n of_o those_o that_o be_v murder_v by_o pilate_n and_o of_o those_o be_v slay_v by_o the_o fall_n of_o a_o tower_n except_o you_o repent_v you_o shall_v all_o likewise_o perish_v luke_n 13_o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o verse_n 28._o for_o a_o fire_n be_v go_v out_o of_o heshbon_n and_o a_o flame_n from_o the_o city_n of_o sihon_n and_o have_v consume_v har_n of_o the_o moabite_n etc._n etc._n when_o war_n be_v once_o begin_v and_o set_v on_o foot_n it_o be_v not_o so_o easy_o lay_v down_o neither_o be_v the_o thirst_n of_o ambition_n in_o a_o proud_a man_n so_o easy_o quench_v therefore_o this_o song_n declare_v that_o when_o sihon_n have_v assault_v and_o take_v heshbon_n he_o rest_v not_o there_o but_o proceed_v far_o and_o lead_v his_o army_n against_o the_o village_n adjoin_v deal_v with_o they_o as_o he_o have_v do_v with_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o heshbon_n thus_o we_o see_v the_o people_n border_v upon_o the_o heshbonite_n be_v touch_v with_o their_o ruin_n and_o companion_n with_o they_o in_o their_o adversity_n as_o when_o a_o mighty_a tree_n fall_v it_o throw_v down_o with_o it_o the_o lesser_a &_o low_a shrub_n now_o moses_n in_o this_o borrow_a speech_n set_v forth_o the_o misery_n bring_v upon_o the_o moabite_n which_o like_o a_o violent_a and_o vehement_a fire_n consume_v wheresoever_o it_o light_v mark_v therefore_o in_o this_o place_n the_o comparison_n &_o similitude_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n use_v to_o express_v the_o rage_n of_o war_n waste_v far_o and_o near_o as_o a_o mighty_a flame_n of_o fire_n great_a doctrine_n the_o misery_n misch●●●e_v 〈◊〉_d wa●●exe●ding_v great_a we_o learn_v from_o hence_o this_o doctrine_n that_o great_a be_v the_o misery_n and_o mischief_n of_o war_n whereby_o blood_n be_v shed_v nation_n be_v spoil_v country_n be_v ruinate_v city_n be_v dispeople_v murder_n be_v commit_v and_o the_o image_n of_o god_n deface_v and_o albeit_o the_o life_n be_v spare_v yet_o liberty_n be_v restrain_v and_o oftentimes_o death_n be_v better_a than_o b●ndage_n and_o the_o sword_n not_o so_o bitter_a as_o captivity_n even_o to_o become_v slave_n to_o they_o who_o be_v slave_n to_o satan_n this_o we_o see_v express_v in_o the_o war_n of_o chedarlaomer_n genes_n 14_o 5_o 6_o 7._o who_o come_v to_o chasten_v the_o rebellion_n of_o sodom_n and_o other_o city_n in_o the_o plain_a he_o seize_v upon_o the_o people_n border_v so_o that_o they_o taste_v the_o bitterness_n of_o the_o sword_n be_v neighbour_n to_o the_o nation_n offend_v against_o he_o this_o moses_n express_v deut._n 28_o 50_o 51_o describe_v the_o fierceness_n of_o the_o enemy_n and_o the_o plague_n of_o war_n say_v they_o shall_v not_o regard_v the_o person_n of_o the_o old_a nor_o have_v compassion_n of_o the_o young_a they_o shall_v eat_v the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o cattle_n they_o shall_v consume_v the_o profit_n of_o thy_o land_n they_o shall_v besiege_v thou_o within_o thy_o wall_n they_o shall_v drive_v thou_o to_o eat_v thy_o child_n the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o body_n during_o the_o siege_n and_o straightness_n wherewith_o they_o shall_v compass_v thou_o in_o thy_o city_n hereunto_o that_o proverb_n guide_v we_o use_v by_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n against_o such_o as_o boast_v before_o the_o victory_n let_v not_o he_o that_o gird_v his_o harness_n boast_v himself_o 11_o king_n 20_o 11_o as_o he_o that_o put_v it_o off_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o we_o read_v how_o thousand_o and_o ten_o thousand_o be_v consume_v in_o battle_n which_o devour_v one_o as_o well_o as_o another_o to_o teach_v we_o the_o casualty_n and_o calamity_n of_o war_n reason_n 1_o the_o reason_n be_v not_o to_o be_v forget_v that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o settle_v this_o doctrine_n in_o our_o heart_n first_o it_o be_v threaten_v as_o a_o heavy_a plague_n and_o fearful_a judgement_n to_o be_v bring_v upon_o that_o people_n that_o set_v their_o face_n against_o god_n and_o walk_v stubborne_o in_o the_o breach_n of_o his_o commandment_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o arrow_n of_o god_n 17._o 〈◊〉_d 5_o 16_o 17._o which_o he_o have_v in_o his_o quiver_n &_o reserve_v to_o shoot_v against_o all_o the_o contemner_n of_o his_o statute_n he_o will_v send_v upon_o they_o famine_n to_o punish_v they_o evil_a beast_n to_o spoil_v they_o the_o pestilence_n to_o consume_v they_o &_o blood_n to_o pass_v through_o they_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n threaten_v levit._fw-la 26_o 25_o 31._o i_o will_v send_v a_o sword_n upon_o you_o that_o shall_v avenge_v the_o quarrel_n of_o my_o covenant_n and_o when_o you_o be_v gather_v in_o your_o city_n i_o will_v send_v the_o pestilence_n among_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v deliver_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o enemy_n &_o i_o will_v make_v your_o city_n desolate_a if_o then_o god_n proclaim_v open_a war_n against_o such_o as_o bear_v themselves_o stout_o and_o stubborn_o against_o he_o if_o he_o be_v at_o utter_a defiance_n with_o they_o that_o despite_n and_o despise_v he_o if_o he_o denounce_v against_o those_o the_o day_n of_o battle_n as_o a_o day_n of_o wrath_n a_o day_n of_o trouble_n and_o heaviness_n a_o day_n of_o destruction_n and_o desolation_n a_o day_n of_o obscurity_n and_o darkness_n a_o day_n of_o cloud_n and_o blackness_n a_o day_n of_o the_o trumpet_n and_o alarm_n against_o the_o strong_a city_n against_o the_o high_a tower_n and_o against_o mighty_a warrior_n that_o their_o blood_n shall_v be_v pour_v out_o as_o dust_n &_o their_o flesh_n make_v as_o the_o dung_n it_o must_v necessary_o follow_v that_o the_o time_n of_o war_n be_v the_o time_n of_o woe_n yea_o of_o weep_v and_o wail_v and_o great_a lamentation_n of_o young_a and_o old_a rich_a &_o poor_a woman_n and_o child_n babe_n and_o suckling_n reason_n 2_o second_o great_a be_v the_o benefit_n of_o peace_n and_o many_o be_v the_o blessing_n that_o come_v with_o it_o and_o ensue_v after_o it_o if_o then_o peace_n be_v a_o great_a benefit_n then_o must_v war_v needs_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o great_a want_n and_o a_o fearful_a judgement_n the_o peace_n of_o a_o state_n be_v as_o the_o health_n of_o a_o body_n of_o strong_a constitution_n therefore_o war_n be_v a_o dangerous_a disease_n in_o any_o body_n politic_a when_o it_o can_v be_v purge_v and_o wash_v without_o blood_n we_o see_v how_o moses_n among_o the_o blessing_n that_o shall_v come_v upon_o israel_n and_o overtake_v they_o reckon_v up_o peace_n in_o their_o border_n 6._o levit._fw-la 26_o 6._o i_o will_v send_v peace_n in_o the_o land_n and_o you_o shall_v sleep_v &_o none_o shall_v make_v you_o afraid_a and_o the_o sword_n shall_v not_o go_v through_o your_o land_n if_o there_o be_v but_o a_o iarie_n in_o a_o private_a house_n or_o a_o strong_a faction_n in_o any_o society_n it_o threaten_v the_o ruin_n thereof_o 25._o math_n 12_o 25._o if_o a_o house_n or_o city_n be_v divide_v against_o itself_o it_o can_v stand_v if_o a_o kingdom_n be_v divide_v against_o itself_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o nought_o but_o when_o god_n give_v peace_n and_o rest_n to_o his_o church_n many_o blessing_n come_v with_o it_o and_o great_a contentment_n on_o all_o side_n and_o in_o all_o estate_n especial_o the_o free_a liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n with_o the_o preach_n and_o profess_v of_o it_o
they_o will_v not_o enter_v into_o their_o field_n they_o will_v not_o meddle_v with_o their_o vineyard_n they_o will_v not_o drink_v of_o their_o water_n free_o yet_o see_v with_o what_o a_o terror_n and_o tremble_v they_o be_v strike_v at_o the_o approach_n of_o the_o israelite_n near_o their_o border_n and_o this_o be_v the_o heavy_a hand_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o as_o moses_n declare_v deut._n 2._o this_o day_n will_v i_o begin_v to_o send_v thy_o fear_n and_o thy_o dread_n upon_o all_o people_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n which_o shall_v hear_v thy_o fame_n and_o shall_v tremble_v and_o quake_v before_o thou_o hereby_o we_o learn_v for_o our_o instruction_n that_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o people_n be_v many_o time_n afraid_a where_o no_o true_a cause_n of_o any_o fear_n be_v be_v doctrine_n evil_a man_n fear_v where_o no_o fear_n be_v evil_a man_n be_v often_o afraid_a of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n that_o fain_o will_v live_v in_o peace_n so_o saul_n live_v in_o continual_a fear_n of_o david_n 1_o sam._n 18_o 15_o 29_o he_o be_v vex_v &_o disquiet_v in_o heart_n and_o never_o in_o rest_n although_o he_o we●e_v harmless_a though_o he_o seek_v peace_n and_o ensue_v after_o it_o yea_o the_o more_o david_n prosper_v the_o more_o saul_n fear_v he_o so_o do_v pharaoh_n and_o the_o egyptian_n fear_v the_o israelite_n when_o they_o begin_v to_o multiply_v and_o increase_v in_o abundance_n exod._n 1.12_o thus_o herod_n fear_v john_n know_v that_o he_o be_v a_o just_a and_o holy_a man_n reverence_v he_o great_o hear_v he_o glad_o &_o do_v many_o thing_n at_o his_o preach_n mark_v 6_o 20._o thus_o the_o high_a priest_n fear_v the_o apostle_n and_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o people_n act_v 5_o 26._o when_o herod_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o jerusalem_n hear_v of_o the_o birth_n of_o a_o new_a king_n they_o be_v great_o trouble_v and_o perplex_v in_o mind_n mat_n 2.3_o all_o these_o thing_n confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o doctrine_n &_o verify_v the_o say_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n the_o wicked_a fly_n when_o none_o pursue_v but_o the_o righteous_a be_v bold_a as_o a_o lion_n prou._n 28_o 1._o reason_n 1_o the_o reason_n be_v these_o first_o because_o a_o evil_a man_n carry_v in_o his_o own_o bosom_n a_o conscience_n for_o sin_n which_o strike_v and_o accuse_v he_o which_o cit_v and_o summon_v he_o before_o the_o bar_n of_o god_n judgement_n seat_n albeit_o no_o man_n can_v be_v depose_v against_o he_o albeit_o none_o can_v give_v sentence_n and_o judgement_n against_o he_o yet_o he_o carry_v that_o about_o he_o which_o be_v instead_o of_o all_o mala_fw-la mens_fw-la 2._o tert._n 〈…〉_o 1._o sc_fw-la 2._o malus_fw-la animus_n as_o the_o poet_n say_v a_o evil_a mind_n a_o evil_a meaning_n a_o evil_a conscience_n arraign_v he_o at_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o eternal_a judge_n who_o shall_v give_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o work_n it_o shall_v serve_v as_o plaintiff_n witness_n judge_v and_o executioner_n against_o he_o this_o be_v confirm_v unto_o we_o by_o many_o example_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n when_o cain_n have_v slay_v his_o own_o brother_n &_o shed_v his_o innocent_a blood_n which_o cry_v for_o vengeance_n unto_o heaven_n the_o revenge_a hand_n of_o god_n pursue_v he_o gen._n 4_o 10_o 12_o 17._o live_v as_o a_o runagate_n and_o vagabond_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o fear_v the_o sight_n of_o every_o creature_n to_o be_v arm_v against_o he_o he_o begin_v to_o build_v a_o city_n to_o hide_v his_o head_n to_o yield_v he_o comfort_n to_o provide_v for_o his_o safety_n and_o to_o defend_v he_o from_o injury_n but_o there_o also_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n overtake_v he_o the_o vengeance_n of_o his_o hand_n follow_v he_o and_o he_o be_v drive_v from_o that_o enterprise_n the_o like_a we_o see_v in_o belteshazzer_n dan._n 5.56_o when_o there_o appear_v finger_n of_o a_o man_n hand_n which_o write_v over_o against_o the_o candlestick_n upon_o the_o plaster_n of_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o king_n palace_n albeit_o he_o know_v not_o the_o substance_n and_o signification_n of_o the_o miracle_n whether_o it_o foreshowed_n good_a or_o evil_n yet_o he_o carry_v his_o witness_n with_o he_o that_o can_v not_o be_v bribe_v or_o corrupt_v so_o that_o his_o countenance_n be_v change_v his_o thought_n be_v trouble_v the_o joint_n of_o his_o loin_n be_v loose_v and_o his_o knee_n smite_v one_o against_o the_o other_o this_o terror_n of_o conscience_n the_o lord_n fortolde_v as_o the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n leu._n 26_o 17_o 36_o 37._o and_o deuteronomy_n 28._o verse_n 65_o 66_o 67._o again_o no_o marvel_v if_o the_o wicked_a be_v oftentimes_o reason_v 2_o smite_v with_o fear_n as_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o giddiness_n because_o they_o want_v the_o shield_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o helmet_n of_o hope_n which_o be_v as_o two_o strong_a anchor_n to_o hold_v the_o ship_n that_o it_o be_v not_o shake_v in_o piece_n with_o the_o storm_n or_o dash_v on_o rock_n or_o drown_v in_o the_o water_n or_o swallow_v in_o quicksand_n a_o lively_a faith_n in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o true_a comfort_n the_o peace_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o life_n of_o good_a work_n the_o key_n of_o heaven_n for_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n rom._n 5_o 1._o we_o have_v peace_n towards_o god_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o rejoice_v under_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n we_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n to_o fear_v again_o but_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n whereby_o we_o cry_v abba_n father_n ro._n 8_o 15._o we_o have_v boldness_n against_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n there_o be_v no_o fear_n in_o love_n but_o perfect_a love_n cast_v out_o fear_n for_o fear_n have_v painfulness_n and_o he_o that_o fear_v be_v not_o perfect_a in_o love_n 1_o john_n 4_o 17_o 18._o the_o strong_a our_o faith_n be_v the_o less_o be_v our_o fear_n as_o one_o increase_v the_o other_o decrease_v if_o our_o faith_n be_v little_a our_o fear_n be_v great_a as_o our_o saviour_n show_v in_o the_o example_n of_o his_o disciple_n toss_v with_o a_o tempest_n on_o the_o sea_n cry_v unto_o christ_n &_o say_v master_n save_v we_o we_o perish_v mat._n 8_o 25_o 26._o who_o say_v unto_o they_o why_o be_v you_o fearful_a o_o you_o of_o little_a faith_n now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o use_v if_o this_o be_v the_o use_v 1_o nature_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o he_o carry_v about_o with_o he_o a_o trouble_a and_o tremble_a conscience_n than_o a_o wicked_a man_n be_v a_o very_a coward_n &_o fainthearted_a be_v afraid_a of_o every_o thing_n true_a it_o be_v there_o be_v many_o who_o neither_o fear_n god_n nor_o the_o devil_n who_o seem_v to_o be_v valiant_a to_o adventure_v their_o flesh_n and_o to_o expose_v themselves_o to_o desperate_a danger_n in_o fight_v and_o quarrel_v as_o the_o manner_n of_o sundry_a ruffian_n and_o swashbuckler_n be_v who_o fear_v not_o to_o meet_v any_o man_n in_o the_o field_n at_o any_o weapon_n and_o for_o every_o cross_a word_n be_v ready_a to_o give_v the_o stab_n yet_o bring_v these_o venturous_a and_o fool_n hardy_a fellow_n to_o encounter_v hand_n to_o hand_n with_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o wrestle_v against_o spiritual_a wickedness_n in_o high_a place_n and_o to_o strive_v as_o for_o life_n and_o death_n against_o pride_n &_o profaneness_n against_o concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o word_n against_o idle_a game_n of_o evil_a report_n against_o our_o lust_n and_o sin_n which_o fight_v against_o our_o own_o soul_n we_o shall_v see_v no_o child_n so_o weak_a and_o willing_a to_o turn_v his_o heel_n as_o these_o ruffianlike_a spirit_n who_o albeit_o they_o walk_v with_o long_a blade_n by_o their_o side_n or_o long_a pole_n on_o their_o neck_n and_o jet_v up_o and_o down_o as_o ●ords_n of_o the_o earth_n ready_a always_o to_o lay_v the_o hand_n upon_o the_o dagger_n and_o to_o pick_v a_o quarrel_n at_o every_o word_n yet_o they_o have_v not_o the_o hand_n or_o the_o heart_n to_o strike_v one_o stroke_n to_o conquer_v sin_n and_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o devil_n in_o themselves_o but_o yield_v themselves_o like_o slave_n and_o captive_n to_o do_v his_o will_n and_o be_v lead_v away_o to_o destruction_n as_o a_o ox_n to_o the_o slaughter_n notwithstanding_o this_o be_v true_a valour_n and_o manhood_n to_o wound_v more_o and_o more_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o old_a man_n he_o be_v strong_a that_o conquer_v himself_o than_o he_o that_o win_v a_o city_n prou._n 16_o 32._o he_o be_v a_o better_a man_n of_o his_o hand_n that_o overcom_v his_o own_o concupiscence_n than_o he_o that_o have_v the_o upper_a hand_n
obstinate_a offender_n true_a it_o be_v the_o man_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v patient_a towards_o all_o man_n 2_o tim._n 2_o 25_o suffer_v the_o evil_a instruct_v the_o ignorant_a and_o wait_v for_o the_o repentance_n of_o such_o as_o be_v fall_v but_o when_o they_o refuse_v to_o hearken_v or_o pull_v away_o their_o shoulder_n and_o stop_v their_o ear_n and_o make_v their_o heart_n as_o a_o adamant_n stone_n it_o be_v both_o lawful_a &_o requisite_a after_o a_o sort_n to_o insult_v over_o they_o not_o that_o their_o person_n shall_v be_v scorn_v and_o contemn_v but_o that_o their_o profaneness_n shall_v be_v correct_v and_o amend_v thus_o do_v solomon_n deal_v eccl._n 11_o 9_o when_o he_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o proud_a and_o insolent_a young_a man_n that_o think_v themselves_o privilege_v by_o their_o age_n to_o run_v riot_n with_o all_o greediness_n and_o without_o all_o controllment_n rejoice_v o_o young_a man_n in_o thy_o youth_n and_o let_v thy_o heart_n cheer_v thou_o in_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o youth_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o thy_o heart_n and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o thy_o eye_n but_o know_v that_o for_o all_o these_o thing_n god_n will_v bring_v thou_o to_o judgement_n this_o we_o see_v practise_v by_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 24_o 38._o if_o any_o man_n be_v ignorant_a let_v he_o be_v ignorant_a and_o the_o apostle_n john_n speak_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n revel_v 22_o 11._o he_o that_o be_v unjust_a let_v he_o be_v unjust_a still_o and_o he_o that_o be_v filthy_a let_v he_o be_v filthy_a still_o whereby_o we_o see_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v not_o give_v leave_n neither_o do_v encourage_v or_o command_v man_n to_o be_v filthy_a or_o unjust_a but_o see_v they_o in_o a_o settle_a rage_n and_o wilful_a course_n obstinate_o bend_v and_o resolve_v to_o go_v forward_o that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v hinder_v nor_o hearken_v unto_o any_o wholesome_a counsel_n he_o tell_v they_o they_o may_v proceed_v but_o they_o shall_v smart_v for_o it_o in_o the_o end_n if_o the_o minister_n in_o the_o zeal_n of_o god_n spirit_n tread_v in_o these_o step_n &_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o god_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n they_o have_v a_o fair_a warrant_v set_v before_o they_o &_o can_v be_v reproove_v for_o this_o imitation_n they_o may_v say_v unto_o the_o stubborn_a and_o stiffnecked_a contemner_n of_o the_o word_n if_o you_o will_v needs_o be_v ignorant_a be_v ignorant_a still_o but_o god_n will_v find_v you_o out_o in_o your_o blindness_n and_o ignorance_n if_o you_o have_v the_o light_n and_o yet_o will_v willing_o and_o wilful_o shut_v your_o eye_n go_v forward_o yet_o god_n will_v open_v they_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o visitation_n that_o you_o shall_v see_v your_o own_o misery_n if_o you_o have_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o food_n of_o salvation_n bring_v unto_o you_o and_o yet_o you_o will_v needs_o starve_v and_o famish_v what_o remedy_n pine_v away_o your_o soul_n and_o starve_v they_o but_o know_v that_o it_o will_v be_v bitter_a in_o the_o l●tter_a end_n use_v 2_o second_o see_v this_o scoff_a at_o evil_n be_v lawful_a let_v man_n take_v heed_n they_o deserve_v not_o thus_o to_o be_v deal_v withal_o when_o we_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o all_o meekness_n and_o gentleness_n with_o all_o patience_n and_o long_o suffer_v offer_v unto_o we_o let_v we_o rest_v in_o it_o and_o not_o reject_v it_o from_o we_o let_v we_o believe_v it_o and_o obey_v it_o and_o grow_v every_o day_n from_o faith_n to_o faith_n when_o micaiah_n the_o prophet_n see_v ahab_n addict_v to_o flatterer_n and_o false_a informer_n then_o very_o dangerous_a plague_n to_o prince_n he_o judge_v he_o not_o worthy_a to_o have_v the_o truth_n reveal_v unto_o he_o and_o therefore_o in_o derision_n he_o say_v unto_o he_o go_v up_o and_o prosper_v and_o the_o lord_n shall_v deliver_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o king_n 2_o king_n 22_o 15._o it_o be_v a_o grievous_a thing_n to_o be_v scorn_v and_o deride_v and_o we_o hardly_o brook_v that_o indignity_n if_o then_o we_o will_v not_o be_v so_o rough_o and_o taunt_o handle_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o world_n let_v we_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n while_o it_o be_v call_v to_o day_n lest_o be_v harden_v through_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n the_o lord_n be_v compel_v so_o to_o deal_v with_o us._n it_o be_v use_v for_o our_o benefit_n and_o salvation_n albeit_o it_o be_v bitter_a and_o sharp_a but_o many_o time_n bitter_a thing_n be_v most_o wholesome_a and_o healthful_a and_o this_o answer_v the_o objection_n of_o carnal_a man_n when_o they_o be_v admonish_v to_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n to_o attend_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o to_o walk_v before_o the_o lord_n with_o a_o perfect_a mind_n they_o answer_v if_o i_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v a_o professor_n and_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o word_n i_o shall_v be_v mock_v every_o one_o will_v deride_v and_o flout_v at_o i_o i_o shall_v be_v a_o laugh_a stock_n to_o the_o world_n i_o shall_v become_v a_o proverb_n unto_o they_o and_o the_o drunkard_n will_v sing_v song_n against_o i_o but_o choose_v whether_o thou_o will_v endure_v a_o reproach_n here_o for_o a_o season_n or_o be_v mock_v of_o the_o lord_n for_o ever_o it_o be_v better_a for_o thou_o here_o to_o suffer_v affliction_n with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n then_o to_o have_v the_o lord_n scorn_v thy_o folly_n for_o ever_o therefore_o the_o wise_a man_n teach_v we_o this_o doctrine_n prou._n 1_o 25_o 26._o because_o you_o refuse_v my_o counsel_n and_o will_v none_o of_o my_o correction_n i_o will_v also_o laugh_v at_o your_o destruction_n and_o mock_v when_o your_o fear_n come_v and_o the_o prophet_n david_n declare_v that_o when_o the_o wicked_a band_n themselves_o against_o the_o lord_n and_o against_o christ_n he_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o heaven_n shall_v laugh_v the_o lord_n shall_v have_v they_o in_o derision_n psal_n 2_o 3_o 4._o true_a it_o be_v this_o be_v speak_v according_a to_o our_o capacity_n and_o understanding_n not_o that_o there_o be_v any_o disposition_n of_o laugh_v or_o affection_n of_o scorn_v in_o god_n but_o he_o leave_v man_n in_o their_o misery_n and_o make_v they_o oftentimes_o a_o mock_a stock_n to_o the_o world_n they_o shall_v have_v no_o comfort_n from_o his_o presence_n he_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o calamity_n which_o shall_v be_v to_o they_o as_o bitter_a as_o death_n and_o as_o hard_o to_o be_v bear_v as_o hell_n itself_o last_o use_v use_v hereby_o a_o door_n be_v not_o set_v open_a to_o fleer_v and_o flout_v one_o of_o another_o which_o proceed_v from_o the_o scum_n and_o froth_n of_o many_o man_n wit_n for_o as_o all_o deride_v be_v not_o unlawful_a so_o all_o taunt_a be_v not_o lawful_a wherefore_o whatsoever_o mock_v proceed_v from_o the_o gall_n of_o our_o heart_n from_o the_o contempt_n of_o our_o brethren_n from_o pride_n disdain_n lightness_n bitterness_n bite_a disgrace_v and_o reproach_v of_o other_o can_v stand_v with_o our_o holy_a profession_n but_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o the_o flesh_n &_o a_o corruption_n of_o the_o old_a man_n which_o must_v be_v pull_v uppe_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n write_v to_o the_o ephesian_n and_o instruct_v they_o to_o walk_v in_o love_n as_o christ_n have_v love_v we_o say_v ●_o ephes_n ●_o fornication_n and_o all_o uncleanness_n or_o covetousness_n let_v they_o not_o be_v once_o name_v among_o you_o as_o it_o become_v saint_n neither_o filthiness_n neither_o foolish_a talk_n neither_o jest_n which_o be_v thing_n not_o comely_a but_o rather_o give_v of_o thanks_n where_o he_o do_v not_o simple_o forbid_v all_o mirth_n and_o jest_n but_o the_o peevish_a humour_n of_o many_o man_n that_o delight_v in_o jest_v and_o gibe_v against_o other_o who_o regard_v not_o what_o jest_n they_o break_v upon_o their_o brethren_n so_o they_o may_v revenge_v their_o own_o malice_n and_o disgorge_v the_o venom_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n these_o man_n seek_v to_o build_v up_o their_o own_o name_n by_o the_o ruin_n of_o other_o and_o desire_v to_o grace_v themselves_o by_o the_o disgrace_n of_o other_o such_o person_n may_v well_o be_v in_o love_n with_o their_o own_o wit_n but_o all_o discreet_a man_n may_v espy_v the_o want_n of_o much_o wisdom_n in_o they_o this_o bite_a and_o bitterness_n one_o towards_o another_o can_v stand_v with_o our_o call_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n we_o have_v not_o so_o learned_a jesus_n christ_n we_o must_v account_v the_o good_a name_n of_o our_o brethren_n as_o their_o chief_a jewel_n the_o credit_n and_o reputation_n of_o many_o man_n be_v as_o their_o chief_a
behind_o they_o no_o way_n be_v leave_v they_o to_o escape_v the_o danger_n in_o man_n judgement_n but_o as_o the_o church_n in_o this_o world_n be_v ever_o subject_a to_o affliction_n and_o to_o lie_v under_o the_o cross_n so_o god_n do_v not_o incontinent_o deliver_v it_o out_o of_o danger_n but_o many_o time_n continue_v their_o trouble_n and_o augment_v their_o calamity_n to_o exercise_v their_o faith_n to_o try_v their_o patience_n and_o to_o prove_v their_o obedience_n notwithstanding_o in_o the_o end_n god_n make_v a_o happy_a issue_n and_o show_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o the_o church_n therefore_o when_o the_o israelite_n begin_v to_o murmur_v and_o not_o so_o much_o against_o moses_n as_o against_o god_n and_o look_v more_o to_o the_o danger_n of_o death_n before_o they_o then_o to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n above_o they_o and_o consider_v more_o what_o they_o do_v want_v than_o what_o they_o shall_v believe_v moses_n say_v unto_o they_o fear_v you_o not_o stand_v still_o and_o behold_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o he_o will_v show_v to_o thou_o this_o day_n for_o the_o egyptian_n who_o you_o have_v see_v this_o day_n you_o shall_v never_o see_v they_o again_o the_o lord_n shall_v fight_v for_o you_o 1._o 〈◊〉_d 1._o therefore_o hold_v you_o your_o peace_n when_o there_o be_v a_o great_a persecution_n raise_v against_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n so_o that_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n be_v scatter_v abroad_o and_o nothing_o but_o threaten_n and_o slaughter_n breathe_v out_o against_o the_o disciple_n of_o the_o lord_n 3._o 〈◊〉_d 2_o 3._o authority_n be_v give_v by_o the_o highpriest_n to_o imprison_v all_o such_o as_o call_v on_o his_o name_n rather_o than_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v root_v out_o the_o lord_n jesus_n appear_v in_o the_o heaven_n to_o paul_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o way_n be_v now_o come_v near_o to_o damascus_n call_v he_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o appoint_v he_o to_o be_v a_o teacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o before_o he_o destroy_v 11_o 1._o sam._n 10_o 11_o so_o that_o we_o may_v renew_v the_o ancient_a proverb_n be_v saul_n also_o among_o the_o prophet_n so_o when_o we_o see_v the_o dangerous_a time_n and_o perilous_a season_n of_o the_o church_n let_v we_o not_o hang_v down_o our_o head_n but_o rather_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n and_o cry_v unto_o god_n say_v help_v lord_n in_o the_o time_n of_o need_n forsake_v not_o thy_o inheritance_n which_o thou_o have_v purchase_v nor_o the_o vine-yard_n which_o thy_o right_a hand_n have_v plant_v and_o let_v we_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o when_o the_o cause_n thereof_o seem_v most_o desperate_a and_o help_n appear_v to_o we_o to_o be_v far_a off_o 9_o 2._o cor._n 12_o 9_o then_o be_v his_o mercy_n great_a and_o his_o presence_n near_o then_o be_v his_o power_n make_v perfect_a through_o our_o weakness_n this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o prophet_n zachary_n witness_v chap._n 8._o speak_v of_o the_o return_n of_o the_o people_n from_o captivity_n unto_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o the_o love_a kindness_n of_o god_n to_o be_v extend_v towards_o they_o for_o albeit_o the_o residue_n that_o be_v leave_v be_v reproach_v the_o city_n ruinate_v the_o gate_n burn_v and_o the_o wall_n break_v down_o yet_o he_o prophesi_v ●_o zach._n 8_o 4_o 5_o ●_o that_o old_a man_n and_o old_a woman_n shall_v dwell_v in_o the_o street_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o street_n of_o the_o city_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o boy_n and_o girl_n play_v in_o the_o street_n thereof_o for_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n though_o it_o seem_v unpossible_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o remnant_n of_o this_o people_n in_o these_o day_n shall_v it_o therefore_o be_v unpossible_a in_o my_o sight_n say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n use_v 4_o last_o as_o this_o doctrine_n teach_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n so_o it_o teach_v we_o not_o to_o doubt_v or_o despair_v of_o the_o salvation_n &_o conversion_n of_o our_o brethren_n for_o god_n be_v able_a to_o call_v and_o convert_v they_o to_o the_o save_a knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o the_o apostle_n urge_v entreat_v of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o jew_n 23._o rom._n 11_o 23._o to_o embrace_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o they_o also_o if_o they_o abide_v not_o still_o in_o unbelief_n shall_v be_v graft_v in_o for_o god_n be_v able_a to_o graft_v they_o in_o again_o likewise_o when_o the_o disciple_n see_v and_o hear_v the_o difficulty_n of_o enter_v into_o heaven_n for_o those_o that_o trust_v in_o their_o riches_n that_o they_o have_v need_n of_o a_o singular_a gift_n of_o god_n to_o escape_v out_o of_o the_o snare_n &_o subtlety_n of_o satan_n 26_o math._n 19_o 26_o christ_n jesus_n behold_v they_o and_o say_v unto_o they_o with_o man_n this_o be_v unpossible_a but_o with_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v possible_a 1._o math._n 20_o 1._o he_o call_v at_o all_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n at_o the_o dawn_n of_o the_o day_n at_o the_o three_o hour_n at_o the_o sixth_o at_o the_o nine_o and_o at_o the_o eleven_o hour_n for_o as_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o no_o person_n so_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o no_o time_n he_o call_v who_o he_o will_v he_o teach_v and_o touch_v the_o heart_n when_o he_o will_n this_o we_o see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n which_o we_o speak_v of_o before_o he_o be_v at_o the_o first_o a_o blasphemer_n 13_o 1_o tim._n 1_o 13_o a_o persecutor_n and_o a_o oppressor_n yet_o he_o be_v receive_v of_o god_n to_o mercy_n to_o the_o encouragement_n of_o they_o which_o shall_v in_o time_n to_o come_v believe_v in_o he_o unto_o eternal_a life_n 9_o mark_v 16_o 9_o so_o be_v mary_n magdalen_n a_o grievous_a sinner_n a_o unclean_a liver_n 47._o luke_n 7_o 47._o out_o of_o who_o he_o have_v cast_v seven_o devil_n yet_o many_o sin_n be_v forgive_v she_o inasmuch_o as_o she_o love_v much_o &_o be_v the_o first_o to_o who_o the_o lord_n appear_v after_o his_o resurrection_n wherefore_o albeit_o we_o s●e_v man_n run_v on_o in_o their_o wickedness_n and_o shut_v their_o ear_n against_o the_o wholesome_a admonition_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n albeit_o their_o whole_a life_n be_v a_o continual_a practice_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o they_o drink_v in_o iniquity_n as_o the_o fish_n do_v the_o water_n yet_o we_o must_v judge_v nothing_o before_o the_o time_n 5._o 1._o cor._n 4_o 5._o until_o the_o lord_n come_v who_o will_v lighten_v thing_n that_o be_v hide_v in_o darkness_n and_o make_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heart_n manifest_a and_o then_o shall_v every_o man_n have_v praise_n of_o god_n god_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o ordinary_a cause_n but_o as_o he_o feed_v the_o people_n with_o quail_n in_o the_o wilderness_n so_o he_o can_v inward_o instruct_v the_o conscience_n he_o can_v make_v the_o least_o mean_v powerful_a and_o effectual_a to_o salvation_n 30._o math._n 19_o 30._o so_o that_o as_o many_o which_o be_v first_o shall_v be_v last_o so_o sometime_o the_o last_o shall_v be_v first_o he_o call_v john_n the_o baptist_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o dawn_n of_o the_o day_n who_o he_o sanctify_v from_o his_o mother_n womb_n 15._o luke_n 1_o 15._o he_o call_v timothy_n and_o titus_n &_o some_o other_o as_o it_o be_v at_o the_o three_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n 5._o 2_o tim._n 3_o 15_o and_z 1_o 5._o who_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o child_n which_o be_v able_a to_o make_v thou_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n through_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o honour_v the_o lord_n with_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o their_o life_n he_o call_v paul_n to_o be_v a_o apostle_n mary_n magdalene_n to_o be_v a_o believer_n as_o it_o be_v at_o the_o sixth_o hour_n who_o after_o their_o conversion_n redeem_v the_o time_n and_o though_o they_o be_v inferior_a to_o other_o in_o respect_n of_o time_n yet_o they_o be_v equal_a unto_o they_o or_o before_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o zeal_n &_o other_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n he_o call_v the_o thief_n upon_o the_o cross_n as_o it_o be_v at_o the_o eleven_o hour_n to_o be_v partaker_n of_o his_o kingdom_n 43._o luke_n 23.42_o 43._o to_o who_o christ_n say_v this_o day_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n let_v we_o not_o therefore_o enter_v into_o judgement_n against_o our_o brethren_n let_v we_o commit_v they_o to_o god_n 7._o act_n 1_o 7._o see_v it_o be_v not_o for_o we_o to_o know_v the_o time_n and_o season_n which_o the_o father_n have_v put_v in_o his_o own_o power_n let_v we_o pray_v for_o their_o conversion_n to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v give_v they_o repentance_n to_o know_v he_o
&_o compel_v to_o give_v testimony_n and_o witness_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n the_o lord_n as_o it_o be_v wringe_v and_o wre_v it_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o those_o that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o he_o as_o we_o see_v how_o balaam_n in_o this_o and_o the_o chapter_n follow_v utter_v excellent_a and_o heavenly_a thing_n albeit_o against_o his_o will_n of_o god_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n of_o the_o church_n prosper_v and_o flourish_v through_o his_o favour_n yet_o he_o be_v lewd_a in_o life_n and_o profane_a in_o heart_n love_v neither_o god_n nor_o his_o truth_n this_o we_o see_v in_o the_o sorcerer_n in_o egypt_n when_o they_o see_v and_o feel_v the_o plague_n of_o louse_n but_o can_v not_o with_o their_o enchantment_n bring_v forth_o the_o like_a they_o confess_v this_o be_v the_o finger_n of_o god_n exod._n 8_o 19_o this_o appear_v far_a in_o the_o history_n of_o gideon_n when_o one_o of_o his_o enemy_n have_v tell_v a_o dream_n to_o his_o neighbour_n which_o he_o have_v dream_v his_o fellow_n answer_v and_o say_v this_o be_v nothing_o else_o save_v the_o sword_n of_o gideon_n the_o son_n of_o joash_n a_o man_n of_o israel_n for_o into_o his_o hand_n have_v god_n deliver_v midian_a and_o all_o the_o host_n judg._n 7_o 14._o this_o likewise_o we_o see_v in_o the_o centurion_n and_o soldier_n that_o be_v with_o he_o watch_v jesus_n math._n 27_o 54_o when_o they_o see_v the_o rent_v of_o the_o veil_n the_o tremble_a of_o the_o earth_n the_o open_n of_o the_o grave_n the_o cleave_v of_o the_o stone_n and_o arise_v of_o the_o dead_a body_n they_o fear_v great_o say_v true_o this_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n hereunto_o come_v the_o confession_n of_o caiaphas_n a_o enemy_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n which_o he_o persecute_v for_o he_o utter_v a_o prophecy_n of_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n joh._n 11_o 49_o 50_o 51_o 52._o it_o be_v a_o extraordinary_a motion_n of_o god_n that_o guide_v his_o tongue_n to_o prophesy_v of_o christ_n so_o he_o speak_v afterward_o in_o they_o that_o cry_v out_o at_o his_o arraignment_n mat._n 27_o 25._o his_o blood_n be_v upon_o we_o and_o upon_o our_o child_n which_o be_v plentiful_o perform_v in_o its_o time_n and_o season_n the_o like_a we_o may_v observe_v in_o pilate_n when_o he_o be_v admonish_v by_o the_o jew_n to_o amend_v this_o title_n of_o christ_n set_v on_o his_o cross_n jesus_n of_o nazareth_n the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n pilate_n answer_v what_o i_o have_v write_v i_o have_v write_v john_n 19_o 22._o wherein_n at_o unaware_o he_o be_v make_v after_o a_o sort_n a_o preacher_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n who_o govern_v his_o tongue_n as_o here_o he_o do_v the_o tongue_n of_o balaam_n the_o reason_n remain_v to_o be_v consider_v reason_n 1_o first_o to_o leave_v the_o wicked_a without_o excuse_n when_o they_o hear_v the_o truth_n for_o god_n never_o leave_v himself_o without_o witness_n no_o not_o among_o the_o infidel_n as_o the_o apostle_n declare_v act_v 14_o 16_o 17._o now_o if_o the_o pour_v down_o shower_n of_o rain_n send_v the_o fruitfulness_n of_o the_o earth_n feed_v all_o creature_n with_o bodily_a food_n be_v the_o lord_n witness_n and_o testimony_n of_o his_o power_n how_o much_o more_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v forseeing_a god_n open_v the_o mouth_n of_o caiaphas_n as_o we_o show_v before_o to_o utter_v a_o prophecy_n concern_v christ_n the_o obstinate_a incredulity_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v convince_v when_o both_o the_o cause_n and_o virtue_n of_o his_o death_n be_v utter_v by_o their_o own_o high-priest_n albeit_o he_o speak_v it_o in_o another_o meaning_n second_o he_o speak_v often_o in_o wicked_a man_n to_o increase_v their_o judgement_n and_o bring_v upon_o reason_n 2_o they_o the_o great_a damnation_n if_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v his_o truth_n unto_o they_o their_o punishment_n shall_v be_v the_o less_o this_o we_o see_v set_v down_o luk._n 12_o 47_o 48._o this_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o disciple_n math._n 7_o 23._o luke_n 13_o 25_o 26._o many_o will_v say_v to_o i_o in_o that_o day_n lord_n lord_n have_v we_o not_o by_o thy_o name_n prophesy_v and_o by_o thy_o name_n cast_v out_o devil_n and_o by_o thy_o name_n do_v many_o great_a work_n and_o then_o will_v i_o profess_v to_o they_o i_o never_o know_v you_o depart_v from_o i_o you_o that_o work_v iniquity_n thus_o christ_n upbraid_v the_o city_n wherein_o most_o of_o his_o great_a work_n be_v do_v because_o they_o repent_v not_o and_o tell_v they_o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o tyre_n and_o sidon_n for_o sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o for_o they_o math._n 11_o 22._o three_o to_o strengthen_v &_o confirm_v his_o child_n reason_v 3_o in_o the_o truth_n reveal_v unto_o they_o great_a be_v their_o waver_a and_o weakness_n when_o god_n make_v know_v his_o word_n unto_o they_o &_o seal_v it_o unto_o they_o by_o his_o sign_n and_o sacrament_n they_o be_v full_a of_o doubt_v and_o their_o faith_n be_v mingle_v with_o infidelity_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o gideon_n judge_n 7_o 14._o god_n appear_v unto_o he_o at_o the_o thressing-floore_n command_v he_o to_o go_v in_o his_o might_n to_o save_v israel_n promise_v he_o the_o victory_n and_o strengthen_v he_o by_o the_o sign_n that_o he_o ask_v yet_o he_o remain_v fearful_a &_o fainthearted_a after_o these_o so_o many_o mean_v use_v to_o give_v he_o courage_n &_o confirmation_n judg._n 7_o 10._o hence_o it_o be_v that_o god_n raise_v up_o one_o in_o the_o host_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o guide_v his_o tongue_n to_o be_v a_o preacher_n and_o publisher_n of_o his_o truth_n tell_v this_o dream_n of_o he_o to_o his_o fellow_n that_o lo_o a_o cake_n of_o barley-bread_n tumble_v from_o above_o into_o the_o boast_n of_o midian_a and_o come_v unto_o a_o tent_n and_o smite_v it_o that_o it_o fall_v and_o overturn_v it_o that_o the_o tent_n fall_v down_o which_o be_v expound_v and_o interpret_v to_o be_v the_o sword_n of_o gideon_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o god_n open_v the_o mouth_n and_o direct_v the_o tongue_n of_o this_o idolater_n for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o gideon_n and_o the_o further_a of_o he_o in_o his_o work_n now_o let_v we_o make_v use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n first_o use_v 1_o behold_v herein_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o power_n &_o name_n cause_v his_o enemy_n to_o profess_v and_o acknowledge_v it_o we_o see_v how_o they_o resist_v &_o rebel_v against_o god_n we_o see_v how_o they_o abide_v not_o to_o submit_v their_o neck_n to_o his_o obedience_n but_o cast_v away_o the_o cord_n of_o discipline_n from_o they_o yet_o he_o over-ruleth_a they_o order_v their_o tongue_n and_o dispose_v the_o word_n of_o their_o mouth_n to_o his_o own_o glory_n this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o prophet_n declare_v psal_n 8_o 1_o 2._o this_o also_o appear_v in_o the_o example_n of_o saul_n and_o of_o the_o messenger_n that_o he_o send_v to_o take_v david_n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n fall_v upon_o they_o and_o they_o prophesy_v therefore_o it_o be_v a_o proverb_n be_v saul_n also_o among_o the_o prophet_n 1_o san_n 10_o 11_o and_o 19_o 24._o this_o verifi_v the_o say_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n prou._n 16_o 1._o the_o preparation_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v in_o man_n but_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o tongue_n be_v from_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v howsoever_o a_o man_n many_o time_n m●streth_v a_o whole_a army_n of_o thought_n in_o his_o mind_n as_o it_o be_v in_o battle_n array_n and_o conclude_v with_o himself_o both_o what_o &_o how_o to_o speak_v yet_o man_n be_v rule_v by_o a_o superior_a power_n &_o shall_v speak_v as_o god_n guide_v his_o mouth_n not_o as_o himself_o purpose_v and_o determine_v see_v therefore_o god_n frame_v unfit_a instrument_n to_o his_o own_o purpose_n and_o make_v they_o serve_v for_o the_o advancement_n of_o his_o own_o glory_n we_o must_v conclude_v again_o with_o the_o prophet_n o_o lord_n our_o lord_n how_o excellent_a be_v thy_o name_n in_o all_o the_o world_n second_o it_o be_v not_o hard_o with_o god_n to_o retain_v use_v 2_o and_o reserve_v a_o people_n to_o himself_o in_o all_o age_n albeit_o there_o be_v never_o so_o many_o enemy_n &_o albeit_o the_o church_n be_v not_o always_o visible_a to_o the_o eye_n and_o keep_v in_o outward_a beauty_n he_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o any_o nation_n people_n or_o place_n let_v we_o never_o fear_v the_o decay_n or_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n he_o that_o do_v gain_v it_o to_o himself_o will_v maintain_v it_o against_o all_o the_o practice_n and_o
of_o mortification_n to_o prepare_v they_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o follow_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o lust_n of_o their_o eye_n and_o the_o pride_n of_o life_n so_o they_o shall_v find_v their_o own_o death_n to_o be_v far_o differ_v from_o the_o quiet_a sleep_n of_o the_o righteous_a who_o see_v by_o faith_n the_o heaven_n open_a for_o they_o with_o stephen_n and_o know_v that_o the_o glorious_a angel_n be_v their_o attendant_n ready_a to_o conduct_v and_o to_o direct_v their_o soul_n into_o glory_n they_o know_v that_o their_o redeemer_n live_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v see_v god_n in_o their_o flesh_n with_o the_o same_o eye_n 2d_o job_n 19_o 2d_o albeit_o their_o reins_n be_v consume_v within_o they_o for_o the_o lord_n know_v the_o way_n of_o the_o righteous_a as_o for_o the_o wicked_a it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o with_o they_o psalm_n 73.19_o 20._o they_o shall_v sudden_o be_v destroy_v and_o horrible_o consume_v as_o a_o dream_n when_o one_o awake_v o_o lord_n when_o thou_o raise_v we_o uppe_o thou_o shall_v make_v their_o image_n despise_v their_o death_n be_v full_a of_o fear_n and_o horror_n man_n ●_o thing_n ●fying_v th●●_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d man_n they_o see_v three_o fearful_a object_n represent_v before_o their_o eye_n dismay_v all_o their_o sense_n and_o affright_v all_o the_o power_n of_o their_o soul_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o apprehend_v they_o through_o all_o which_o die_v without_o repentance_n they_o must_v pass_v without_o redemption_n or_o deliverance_n to_o wit_n death_n judgement_n and_o hell_n the_o one_o follow_v the_o heel_n of_o another_o they_o shall_v know_v the_o pang_n of_o death_n they_o shall_v appear_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n they_o shall_v feel_v the_o torment_n of_o hell_n and_o fire_n unquenchable_a when_o they_o have_v run_v out_o their_o miserable_a and_o wretched_a race_n they_o shall_v sudden_o be_v attach_v and_o arrest_v by_o death_n death_n shall_v call_v and_o cry_v out_o for_o judgement_n and_o judgement_n shall_v take_v they_o and_o throw_v they_o into_o hell_n and_o perpetual_a perdition_n if_o a_o man_n in_o this_o life_n that_o have_v live_v wanton_o be_v clad_v gorgeous_o and_o fare_v delicious_o every_o day_n shall_v see_v these_o three_o fearful_a spectacle_n the_o sword_n to_o smite_v he_o the_o plague_n to_o touch_v he_o and_o famine_n to_o consume_v he_o it_o be_v able_a to_o astonish_v he_o and_o bring_v he_o to_o despair_v but_o all_o these_o be_v nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o former_a for_o as_o it_o be_v appoint_v unto_o they_o once_o to_o die_v heb._n 9_o 27._o which_o be_v the_o entrance_n into_o the_o next_o plague_n so_o after_o death_n come_v judgement_n which_o shall_v be_v according_a to_o their_o work_n when_o their_o most_o secret_a thought_n shall_v be_v write_v in_o their_o forehead_n and_o grave_v as_o with_o a_o pen_n of_o iron_n to_o remain_v in_o remembrance_n for_o ever_o and_o after_o judgement_n come_v hell_n fire_n than_o shame_n and_o contempt_n shall_v be_v pour_v upon_o they_o then_o utter_a desperation_n shall_v seize_v upon_o they_o than_o a_o eternal_a separation_n from_o the_o comfortable_a presence_n of_o god_n shall_v overtake_v they_o &_o fall_v upon_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v have_v perpetual_a fellowship_n with_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n this_o be_v it_o which_o make_v the_o ungodly_a so_o loath_a to_o hear_v of_o death_n and_o so_o willing_a to_o wish_v in_o word_n to_o die_v the_o death_n of_o the_o righteous_a they_o will_v live_v like_o themselves_o but_o will_v die_v like_o the_o faithful_a but_o we_o can_v sever_v and_o divorce_v the_o life_n and_o the_o death_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n they_o must_v always_o go_v together_o and_o follow_v one_o the_o other_o necessary_o thus_o we_o see_v as_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o ungodly_a in_o their_o life_n so_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o they_o after_o this_o life_n for_o albeit_o all_o sleep_n in_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n &_o shall_v awake_v out_o of_o their_o sleep_n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 12_o 2._o yet_o the_o godly_a shall_v inherit_v everlasting_a life_n but_o the_o ungodly_a shall_v go_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n this_o appear_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o rich_a man_n and_o lazarus_n there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o they_o while_o they_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n the_o one_o abound_v in_o riches_n be_v clad_v in_o purple_a and_o feed_v with_o dainty_a fare_n lu._n 16_o 22_o 23_o the_o other_o be_v clothe_v in_o rag_n cover_v with_o sore_n and_o abound_v in_o nothing_o but_o in_o penury_n and_o misery_n here_o be_v a_o main_a difference_n between_o they_o but_o when_o they_o go_v the_o way_n of_o all_o flesh_n and_o be_v gather_v unto_o their_o father_n than_o be_v the_o great_a difference_n of_o all_o as_o if_o the_o other_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v upon_o for_o when_o this_o poor_a beggar_n die_v he_o be_v carry_v by_o the_o angel_n into_o abraham_n bosom_n the_o rich_a man_n also_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v and_o be_v carry_v into_o the_o torment_n of_o hell_n to_o who_o abraham_n say_v luk._n 16.25_o son_n remember_v that_o thou_o in_o thy_o life_n time_n receive_v thy_o pleasure_n and_o likewise_o lazarus_n pain_n now_o therefore_o be_v he_o comfort_v and_o thou_o be_v torment_v this_o be_v that_o great_a gulf_n and_o wide_a space_n set_v between_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o ungodly_a use_v 3_o last_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o stir_v up_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n in_o we_o and_o to_o take_v heed_n we_o quench_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o us._n the_o gift_n of_o god_n give_v unto_o we_o be_v as_o a_o spark_n of_o fire_n kindle_v in_o our_o heart_n our_o corruption_n be_v as_o a_o water_n seek_v to_o quench_v they_o wherefore_o it_o stand_v we_o upon_o to_o be_v careful_a and_o diligent_a in_o kindle_v this_o fire_n and_o in_o blow_v these_o coal_n that_o the_o talent_n commit_v unto_o we_o may_v be_v increase_v and_o the_o lord_n receive_v at_o his_o come_v his_o own_o with_o advantage_n this_o the_o apostle_n paul_n teach_v timothy_n who_o have_v be_v bring_v up_o in_o the_o scripture_n of_o a_o child_n 2_o tim._n 1_o 6._o i_o put_v thou_o in_o remembrance_n that_o thou_o stir_v up_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o thou_o by_o the_o put_n on_o of_o my_o hand_n christ_n jesus_n compare_v in_o the_o gospel_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n to_o a_o grain_n of_o mustard_n seed_n which_o be_v small_a to_o see_v to_o at_o the_o beginning_n 26._o 〈◊〉_d ●3_n 31_o ●●_o 26._o but_o when_o it_o be_v once_o plant_v in_o the_o fruitful_a ground_n of_o a_o regenerate_a heart_n it_o spring_v up_o incontinent_o increase_v speedy_o spread_v mighty_o and_o prosper_v exceed_o if_o a_o man_n at_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o his_o conversion_n have_v some_o little_a feel_n of_o his_o want_n some_o weak_a and_o faint_a desire_n of_o faith_n and_o some_o small_a testimony_n of_o his_o adoption_n he_o must_v remember_v to_o be_v thankful_a for_o these_o and_o seek_v to_o increase_v they_o by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n sacrament_n prayer_n meditation_n conference_n and_o such_o like_a help_n that_o we_o may_v be_v always_o proceed_v endeavour_v strive_v ask_v seek_v and_o knock_v to_o know_v the_o height_n depth_n &_o breadth_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n 〈…〉_o we_o must_v always_o grow_v uppe_o 〈…〉_o god_n psal_n 143_o 6._o and_o desire_v 〈…〉_o be_v give_v we_o to_o supply_v our_o weakn●_n 〈…〉_o must_v long_o after_o he_o as_o the_o thirsty_a l●●_n 〈…〉_o shall_v pant_v after_o he_o as_o the_o hart_n bray_v 〈…〉_o river_n of_o water_n psal_n 42_o 1._o bless_a be_v 〈…〉_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o righteousness_n for_o t●●_n 〈…〉_o be_v satisfy_v math._n 5_o 6._o he_o will_v give_v to_o he_o t●●_n 〈◊〉_d a_o thirst_n to_o drink_v of_o the_o well_o of_o the_o water_n of_o 〈◊〉_d free_o if_o we_o have_v this_o appetite_n use_v all_o the_o mean_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v and_o be_v careful_a to_o honour_v he_o for_o that_o which_o we_o have_v receyve_v already_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o he_o which_o have_v begin_v this_o good_a work_n in_o we_o will_v perfect_v and_o finish_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o day_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_n let_v my_o last_o end_n be_v like_o he_o here_o be_v a_o lively_a testimony_n of_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o if_o he_o have_v believe_v that_o man_n have_v end_v with_o death_n and_o then_o there_o have_v be_v no_o further_a reckon_n nor_o account_n to_o be_v make_v it_o have_v be_v a_o vain_a and_o
salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a see_v the_o day_n of_o account_n come_v and_o see_v we_o must_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n to_o receyve_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v in_o this_o body_n whether_o they_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o some_o &_o body_n be_v separate_v let_v we_o remember_v our_o creator_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o youth_n eccl._n 12_o 1._o let_v our_o conversation_n while_o we_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n be_v lift_v up_o to_o the_o heaven_n let_v we_o mortify_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o not_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n assure_v ourselves_o that_o for_o all_o such_o thing_n god_n will_v bring_v we_o to_o judgement_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n peter_n speak_v of_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o world_n the_o pass_v away_o of_o the_o heaven_n the_o melt_a of_o the_o element_n the_o burn_a of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o ungodly_a draw_v from_o these_o word_n this_o exhortation_n see_v therefore_o all_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v dissolve_v what_o manner_n of_o person_n ought_v you_o to_o be_v in_o holy_a conversation_n and_o godliness_n look_v for_o and_o haste_v unto_o the_o come_n of_o that_o day_n of_o god_n 2._o pet._n 3_o 11_o 12._o let_v we_o set_v this_o day_n before_o our_o eye_n whatsoever_o we_o do_v and_o then_o we_o shall_v not_o sin_n for_o ever_o let_v we_o arraign_v ourselves_o at_o his_o bar_n and_o thereby_o provoke_v one_o another_o and_o be_v provoke_v ourselves_o to_o our_o duty_n for_o if_o we_o will_v judge_v ourselves_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o the_o lord_n 1_o cor._n 11._o let_v we_o be_v careful_a to_o lay_v a_o good_a foundation_n of_o salvation_n and_o never_o give_v over_o until_o we_o have_v christ_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n and_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n to_o cry_v in_o our_o heart_n abba_n father_n for_o if_o we_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n without_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o without_o hope_n of_o salvation_n it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o we_o that_o we_o have_v never_o be_v bear_v 24._o matth._n 26_o 24._o as_o christ_n speak_v of_o judas_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n for_o what_o will_v it_o profit_v we_o to_o win_v the_o whole_a world_n &_o then_o lose_v our_o own_o soul_n to_o live_v in_o pleasure_n &_o to_o have_v all_o that_o our_o hart_n can_v wish_v or_o desire_v for_o a_o season_n and_o afterward_o to_o be_v tormeneed_a in_o hell_n fire_n for_o ever_o use_v 5_o five_o this_o be_v a_o great_a and_o exceed_a comfort_n to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n to_o know_v that_o after_o this_o short_a this_o weak_a this_o feeble_a this_o frail_a life_n our_o soul_n shall_v return_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v lift_v up_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n let_v we_o therefore_o prepare_v ourselves_o for_o death_n that_o we_o may_v be_v fit_a vessel_n for_o eternal_a l●fe_n and_o commend_v our_o soul_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n at_o our_o departure_n this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o apostle_n practise_v phil._n 1_o 23._o 2_o cor._n 4_o 18_o &_o 5_o 1.2_o the_o great_a affliction_n that_o can_v befall_v we_o here_o be_v nothing_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o bless_a reward_n of_o immortality_n as_o the_o same_o apostle_n teach_v rom._n 8_o 18._o i_o count_v that_o the_o affliction_n of_o this_o present_a time_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o the_o glory_n which_o shall_v be_v show_v to_o us._n let_v we_o not_o fear_v the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n they_o may_v separate_v the_o soul_n from_o the_o body_n but_o they_o can_v never_o separate_v the_o soul_n from_o god_n they_o may_v kill_v the_o body_n but_o they_o can_v kill_v the_o soul_n they_o may_v take_v from_o we_o a_o little_a momentany_a pleasure_n of_o this_o life_n but_o they_o can_v keep_v we_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n at_o who_o right_a hand_n be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o this_o be_v that_o which_o christ_n teach_v his_o disciple_n mat._n 10_o 28._o nay_o they_o have_v no_o power_n over_o the_o body_z further_o than_o god_n permit_v they_o as_o christ_n answer_v to_o pilate_n glory_v in_o his_o authority_n &_o say_v know_v thou_o not_o that_o i_o have_v power_n to_o crucify_v thou_o and_o to_o loose_v thou_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o against_o i_o except_o it_o be_v give_v thou_o from_o above_o therefore_o he_o that_o deliver_v i_o unto_o thou_o have_v the_o great_a sin_n so_o then_o let_v we_o not_o fear_v their_o fear_n who_o power_n be_v limit_v be_v limit_v &_o restrain_v death_n with_o one_o stroke_n shall_v set_v we_o at_o liberty_n and_o free_v we_o from_o the_o yoke_n of_o all_o oppression_n to_o our_o unspeakable_a and_o endless_a comfort_n contrariwise_o this_o be_v a_o doleful_a and_o woeful_a doctrine_n to_o the_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a who_o live_v here_o after_o their_o own_o lust_n &_o follow_v their_o pleasure_n delight_v in_o vanity_n and_o forget_v god_n to_o consider_v the_o perpetuity_n &_o immortality_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o that_o they_o must_v give_v a_o straight_a account_n of_o all_o their_o way_n and_o work_n this_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o fear_n and_o terror_n unto_o they_o able_a to_o break_v their_o stony_a heart_n and_o astonish_v their_o inward_a sense_n and_o dash_v they_o upon_o the_o rock_n of_o hopeless_a and_o helpless_a desperation_n what_o can_v be_v more_o heavy_a news_n to_o a_o servant_n that_o have_v waste_v &_o consume_v his_o master_n money_n with_o riotous_a live_n then_o to_o hear_v of_o a_o day_n of_o reckon_n &_o account_n to_o be_v give_v of_o his_o stewardship_n so_o be_v it_o with_o all_o the_o ungodly_a they_o fear_v nothing_o more_o than_o their_o appear_v before_o the_o heavenly_a judge_n to_o be_v try_v according_a to_o their_o work_n oh_o it_o be_v well_o with_o they_o if_o their_o soul_n be_v mortal_a that_o they_o may_v sleep_v in_o the_o dust_n and_o lie_v in_o the_o grave_n for_o ever_o to_o be_v bury_v with_o their_o body_n never_o to_o be_v raise_v again_o oh_o their_o case_n be_v happy_a and_o thrice_o happy_a shall_v they_o be_v if_o they_o may_v never_o come_v to_o judgement_n or_o have_v be_v bear_v as_o toad_n and_o serpent_n or_o worm_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o live_v their_o life_n they_o may_v also_o die_v their_o death_n but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o with_o they_o their_o case_n shall_v not_o be_v so_o well_o the_o end_n of_o this_o life_n bring_v they_o into_o eternal_a torment_n and_o when_o they_o have_v taste_v the_o first_o death_n the_o second_o death_n shall_v take_v hold_n on_o they_o then_o they_o shall_v pronounce_v a_o thousand_o woe_n against_o themselves_o then_o they_o shall_v wish_v they_o have_v never_o be_v bear_v then_o they_o shall_v weep_v and_o howl_v without_o recovery_n then_o they_o shall_v gnash_v with_o their_o tooth_n and_o gnaw_v their_o tongue_n for_o anger_n mat._n 22_o 12._o 23_o revel_v 6_o luke_n 23_o then_o they_o shall_v desire_v the_o mountain_n to_o fall_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o hill_n to_o cover_v they_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n and_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o ●he_n lamb_n etc._n etc._n for_o as_o they_o be_v happy_a that_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n be_v join_v to_o he_o and_o free_v from_o all_o sorrow_n so_o they_o be_v wretched_a and_o a_o thousand_o time_n miserable_a that_o depart_v hence_o out_o of_o god_n favour_n &_o have_v the_o sin_n of_o their_o youth_n and_o age_n accompany_v they_o to_o who_o he_o will_v say_v depart_v from_o i_o you_o curse_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n matth._n 25_o 41._o we_o see_v how_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o session_n or_o assize_n strike_v a_o terror_n into_o the_o heart_n and_o conscience_n of_o the_o guilty_a malefactor_n how_o much_o more_o than_o shall_v the_o solemn_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n last_o judgement_n amaze_v affright_v and_o astonish_v the_o reprobate_n who_o have_v draw_v sin_n unto_o they_o as_o with_o cart-rope_n and_o have_v clothe_v themselves_o with_o shame_n as_o with_o a_o robe_n this_o will_v be_v a_o day_n of_o blackness_n and_o of_o darkness_n a_o day_n of_o cloud_n and_o obscurity_n a_o day_n of_o horror_n and_o confusion_n unto_o they_o that_o dwell_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n when_o god_n shall_v come_v to_o judge_v without_o respect_n of_o person_n for_o what_o rest_n or_o comfort_n can_v the_o malefactor_n take_v when_o he_o be_v always_o in_o expectation_n of_o the_o come_n &_o approach_n of_o the_o judge_n whereas_o the_o godly_a have_v peace_n of_o conscience_n and_o shall_v lift_v up_o their_o head_n
then_o our_o justification_n stand_v not_o in_o our_o good_a work_n but_o in_o that_o god_n pardon_v our_o evil_a work_n for_o we_o have_v all_o be_v as_o a_o unclean_a thing_n and_o all_o our_o righteousness_n be_v as_o filthy_a clout_n esay_n ch_n 64._o ver_fw-la 6._o use_v 1_o now_o let_v we_o make_v use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n first_o this_o minister_v great_a comfort_n to_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v in_o christ_n the_o glory_n and_o happiness_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n in_o this_o life_n &_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v consist_v herein_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n comprehend_v under_o it_o as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o short_a sum_n all_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o prophet_n esay_n teach_v chap_n 40_o 1._o so_o david_n declare_v the_o blessedness_n of_o the_o man_n unto_o who_o god_n impute_v righteousness_n without_o work_n say_v bless_a be_v they_o who_o iniquity_n be_v forgive_v and_o who_o sin_n be_v cover_v bless_a be_v the_o man_n to_o who_o the_o lord_n impute_v not_o his_o sin_n psal_n 32_o 1_o 2_o 7._o this_o mercy_n of_o god_n will_v be_v sweet_a unto_o we_o and_o cheer_v up_o our_o heart_n with_o unspeakable_a comfort_n and_o give_v we_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o we_o consider_v these_o circumstance_n that_o we_o daily_o offend_v god_n after_o our_o new_a birth_n that_o all_o sin_n be_v odious_a in_o itself_o and_o make_v we_o vile_a and_o abominable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n keep_v all_o good_a thing_n from_o we_o and_o pull_v down_o all_o evil_a upon_o we_o and_o that_o the_o wage_n thereof_o be_v death_n be_v able_a to_o press_v we_o down_o to_o the_o very_a bottom_n of_o the_o gulf_n of_o hell_n jer._n 5_o 25._o esay_n 59_o 1_o 2_o 3._o if_o a_o man_n have_v all_o the_o skill_n of_o wise_a solomon_n to_o speak_v as_o he_o do_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o beast_n of_o bird_n and_o creep_a thing_n &_o know_v the_o virtue_n of_o all_o tree_n and_o plant_n 4.33_o 1_o king_n 4.33_o from_o the_o cedar_n that_o be_v in_o libanus_n unto_o the_o hyssop_n that_o spring_v out_o of_o the_o wall_n and_o be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o bless_a privilege_n and_o have_v not_o the_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o it_o in_o his_o conscience_n it_o can_v not_o avail_v or_o profit_v he_o one_o whit_n it_o may_v peradventure_o delight_v the_o outward_a man_n for_o a_o season_n but_o want_v the_o sweet_a feel_n of_o god_n favour_n in_o wash_v away_o his_o sin_n the_o other_o can_v be_v but_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n if_o a_o man_n be_v able_a to_o measure_v the_o heaven_n &_o to_o tell_v the_o order_n height_n distance_n influence_n and_o number_n of_o the_o star_n and_o yet_o be_v ignorant_a at_o home_n and_o do_v not_o know_v what_o be_v do_v as_o it_o be_v within_o his_o own_o house_n and_o within_o the_o door_n and_o closert_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n what_o shall_v it_o profit_v he_o thus_o to_o gaze_v up_o into_o heaven_n when_o the_o burden_n of_o sin_n be_v ready_a to_o thrust_v he_o down_o to_o hell_n if_o a_o man_n be_v so_o excellent_a and_o expert_a as_o out_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o herb_n and_o simple_n to_o remedy_v all_o the_o disease_n of_o the_o body_n yet_o if_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o salve_v the_o sore_n of_o his_o soul_n &_o know_v not_o how_o the_o sickness_n and_o infirmity_n thereof_o shall_v be_v cure_v this_o can_v be_v little_a comfort_n to_o he_o for_o than_o he_o may_v have_v a_o sound_a body_n but_o a_o infect_a soul_n a_o healthy_a body_n but_o a_o sickly_a soul_n full_a of_o the_o botch_n and_o blemish_n of_o sin_n which_o of_o all_o disease_n be_v most_o dangerous_a and_o deadly_a if_o a_o man_n have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o law_n and_o statute_n and_o be_v able_a to_o decide_v any_o controversy_n and_o end_v any_o suit_n between_o man_n &_o man_n yet_o be_v not_o assure_v how_o himself_o shall_v be_v acquit_v when_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v come_v and_o hold_v his_o assize_n and_o how_o thing_n shall_v stand_v with_o he_o it_o can_v bring_v no_o peace_n unto_o he_o see_v god_n have_v a_o controversy_n against_o he_o so_o long_o as_o his_o sin_n be_v unpardoned_a hos_n 4_o 1._o what_o shall_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n to_o be_v pass_v well_o see_v in_o music_n by_o voice_n or_o instrument_n to_o be_v skilful_a in_o report_n and_o descant_n and_o be_v always_o trouble_v with_o a_o jar_a conscience_n last_o of_o all_o what_o shall_v it_o avail_v if_o a_o man_n understand_v all_o art_n and_o mystery_n if_o he_o can_v work_v miracle_n and_o speak_v with_o the_o tongue_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n if_o he_o know_v all_o science_n and_o secret_n of_o nature_n yet_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n 2._o philip._n 3_o 7._o 1_o cor._n 2_o 2._o who_o only_a if_o we_o know_v the_o matter_n be_v not_o great_a if_o we_o know_v nothing_o else_o who_o if_o we_o know_v not_o it_o be_v worth_a nothing_o if_o we_o know_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o use_v 2_o second_o woeful_a be_v their_o estate_n that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v not_o in_o christ_n that_o be_v without_o true_a faith_n and_o feel_n of_o this_o heavenly_a doctrine_n wretched_a and_o miserable_a be_v the_o condition_n of_o many_o thousand_o in_o the_o world_n which_o want_v this_o assurance_n it_o be_v such_o a_o burden_n as_o stay_v we_o from_o the_o heaven_n and_o waigh_v we_o ●owne_n to_o hell_n poverty_n be_v a_o great_a burden_n the_o sword_n famine_n pestilence_n imprisonment_n sickness_n oppression_n and_o such_o cross_n be_v indeed_o ●eavy_a burden_n but_o the_o burden_n of_o sin_n sur●ounteth_v they_o all_o therefore_o the_o prophet_n ●aith_o psal_n 38_o 4._o my_o iniquity_n be_v go_v over_o my_o head_n and_o as_o weighty_a burden_n they_o be_v too_o heavy_a hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v we_o heb._n 12_o 1_o to_o cast_v off_o every_o thing_n that_o press_v down_o and_o the_o sin_n that_o hang_v so_o fast_o on_o that_o so_o we_o may_v run_v with_o patience_n the_o race_n that_o be_v set_v before_o us._n so_o heavy_a it_o be_v on_o the_o angel_n that_o keep_v not_o their_o first_o estate_n that_o it_o cast_v they_o down_o to_o hell_n and_o they_o be_v reserve_v in_o chain_n unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a day_n 2_o pet._n 2_o 4._o so_o heavy_a it_o be_v upon_o the_o shoulder_n of_o dathan_n and_o abiram_n that_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o able_a to_o hold_v they_o but_o receive_v they_o to_o destruction_n yea_o it_o be_v so_o intolerable_a a_o burden_n as_o it_o bring_v terror_n and_o horror_n that_o can_v be_v express_v and_o lead_v to_o the_o gulf_n of_o desperation_n when_o god_n charge_v the_o conscience_n with_o sin_n so_o that_o though_o a_o man_n have_v all_o riches_n and_o honour_n all_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n all_o kingdom_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o world_n what_o joy_n or_o comfort_n can_v he_o feel_v in_o these_o thing_n so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v not_o at_o peace_n with_o his_o god_n contrariwise_o he_o that_o be_v ease_v of_o this_o weight_n &_o lighten_v of_o this_o burden_n though_o he_o have_v all_o the_o trouble_n cross_n and_o affliction_n of_o job_n be_v lay_v in_o fetter_n with_o joseph_n be_v banish_v his_o country_n with_o moses_n be_v cast_v to_o the_o lion_n with_o daniel_n he_o put_v in_o the_o stock_n with_o jeremy_n be_v feed_v with_o bread_n of_o affliction_n with_o micaiah_n and_o have_v no_o more_o comfort_n and_o compassion_n show_v unto_o he_o then_o the_o poor_a beggar_n in_o the_o gospel_n to_o have_v the_o dog_n lick_v his_o sore_n 21._o luke_n 16_o 21._o though_o his_o estate_n be_v vile_a contemptible_a and_o miserable_a to_o the_o world_n yet_o so_o long_o as_o he_o have_v a_o discharge_n of_o his_o debt_n a_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n &_o a_o cancel_v of_o the_o bill_n of_o enditement_n draw_v against_o he_o write_v in_o his_o heart_n and_o feel_v that_o peace_n of_o conscience_n which_o pass_v all_o understanding_n seal_v he_o up_o to_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n this_o man_n before_o god_n be_v most_o happy_a and_o bless_a for_o ever_o but_o if_o sin_n be_v impute_v unto_o we_o and_o god_n enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o we_o who_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v before_o he_o or_o be_v righteous_a in_o his_o sight_n psal_n 130_o 3._o &_o 143_o 2._o this_o feel_n of_o sin_n and_o wound_n of_o conscience_n which_o the_o stroke_n of_o god_n hand_n have_v make_v will_v weary_v the_o strong_a and_o lusty_a man_n that_o live_v when_o he_o shall_v open_v the_o eye_n to_o see_v
therefore_o to_o be_v esteem_v above_o all_o the_o glory_n riches_n pleasure_n and_o profit_n of_o this_o world_n this_o make_v the_o prophet_n david_n say_v many_o say_v lord_n who_o will_v show_v we_o any_o good_a but_o lord_n lift_v thou_o up_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o countenance_n upon_o we_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o more_o joy_n of_o heart_n than_o they_o have_v have_v when_o their_o wheat_n and_o their_o wine_n do_v abound_v psal_n 4_o 6_o 7._o hereunto_o accord_v the_o apostle_n phil._n 3_o 20._o so_o then_o they_o be_v convince_v &_o condemn_v to_o be_v profane_a beast_n possess_v with_o the_o evil_a spirit_n of_o esau_n that_o will_v not_o keep_v the_o lord_n sabbath_n nor_o attend_v upon_o his_o worship_n but_o make_v that_o day_n a_o time_n of_o toil_n and_o travail_v about_o their_o worldly_a business_n and_o a_o day_n to_o be_v spend_v in_o dance_v and_o dally_v in_o surfeit_v and_o drunkenness_n in_o game_n &_o idleness_n thereby_o make_v that_o which_o be_v the_o lord_n day_n by_o his_o institution_n to_o be_v to_o they_o the_o devil_n day_n by_o their_o profanation_n the_o gospel_n and_o all_o thing_n of_o a_o better_a life_n be_v light_o regard_v of_o all_o such_o as_o be_v give_v to_o their_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n to_o pamper_v up_o the_o flesh_n no_o religion_n can_v enter_v into_o the_o rich_a glutton_n that_o be_v clad_v in_o purple_a and_o fare_v delicious_o every_o day_n luk._n 16_o 19_o the_o rich_a man_n who_o ground_n bring_v forth_o fruit_n plenteous_o who_o tongue_n promise_v to_o he_o perpetuity_n and_o who_o heart_n breed_v in_o he_o security_n never_o think_v what_o shall_v become_v of_o his_o soul_n never_o dream_v of_o sudden_a death_n never_o mind_v his_o own_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o god_n say_v unto_o he_o o_o fool_n this_o night_n will_v they_o fetch_v away_o thy_o soul_n from_o thou_o than_o who_o shall_v those_o thing_n be_v which_o thou_o have_v provide_v luk_n 12_o 16._o the_o apostle_n peter_n make_v it_o a_o special_a mark_n of_o the_o profane_a beast_n in_o that_o time_n 13._o 2_o pet._n 2_o 13._o that_o they_o account_v it_o their_o chief_a pleasure_n to_o live_v delicious_o for_o a_o season_n and_o the_o apostle_n jude_n speak_v of_o the_o like_a liver_n say_v 11._o jude_n 11._o they_o be_v feast-hunter_n fill_v &_o pamper_v themselves_o of_o this_o sort_n be_v all_o drunkard_n glutton_n epicure_n and_o belly-god_n speak_v unto_o they_o to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n to_o mind_v heavenly_a thing_n to_o consider_v wherefore_o they_o be_v create_v and_o to_o remember_v the_o shortness_n of_o their_o life_n they_o can_v hear_v the_o belly_n have_v no_o ear_n they_o be_v ready_a to_o answer_v with_o carnal_a mind_a man_n what_o will_v the_o gospel_n advantage_n i_o why_o shall_v i_o be_v a_o professor_n and_o become_v a_o by_o word_n of_o the_o world_n what_o good_a come_v to_o a_o man_n by_o hear_v the_o word_n by_o read_v the_o scripture_n or_o by_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n it_o can_v get_v i_o neither_o many_o in_o my_o purse_n nor_o clothes_n to_o my_o back_n nor_o food_n to_o my_o belly_n nor_o any_o other_o pleasure_n to_o my_o heart_n i_o have_v rather_o have_v the_o company_n of_o good_a fellow_n and_o a_o draught_n of_o wine_n or_o strong_a drink_n then_o to_o hear_v the_o best_a sermon_n that_o can_v be_v preach_v and_o here_o consider_v with_o i_o profane_a esau_n once_o again_o when_o jacob_n demand_v of_o he_o the_o sale_n of_o his_o birthright_n the_o say_v loe_o i_o be_o almost_o dead_a what_o be_v then_o this_o birthright_n to_o i_o gen._n 25_o 31._o thus_o the_o atheist_n speak_v in_o the_o book_n of_o job_n chap._n 21_o 15._o who_o be_v the_o almighty_a that_o we_o shall_v serve_v he_o and_o what_o profit_n shall_v we_o have_v if_o we_o shall_v pray_v unto_o he_o such_o profane_a esave_n there_o be_v many_o in_o the_o world_n monster_n among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n proud_a giant_n that_o be_v at_o open_a defiance_n with_o god_n that_o regard_v the_o cup_n and_o can_n the_o pot_n and_o good_a fellowship_n before_o heaven_n and_o heavenly_a thing_n that_o prize_n the_o most_o precious_a pearl_n of_o god_n most_o base_o like_o judas_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n that_o value_v christ_n at_o thirty_o penny_n so_o these_o sell_v everlasting_a life_n and_o give_v heaven_n &_o depart_v from_o salvation_n some_o for_o their_o whore_n some_o for_o their_o drink_n some_o for_o their_o money_n and_o other_o for_o other_o base_a and_o beastly_a pleasure_n all_o these_o shall_v one_o day_n know_v the_o price_n of_o their_o folly_n and_o confess_v with_o their_o own_o mouth_n that_o they_o be_v worse_o than_o fool_n and_o mad_a man_n that_o every_o one_o be_v ready_a to_o point_v at_o with_o the_o finger_n every_o one_o be_v ready_a to_o sit_v in_o judgement_n upon_o esau_n &_o to_o condemn_v the_o profaneness_n of_o his_o hart_n because_o he_o regard_v more_o the_o satsfy_n of_o his_o present_a lust_n and_o moment_n any_o pleasure_n then_o to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o his_o father_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yet_o of_o this_o number_n there_o be_v infinite_a thousand_o in_o the_o world_n that_o prize_v the_o precious_a treasure_n of_o god_n heavenly_a grace_n the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o frame_n of_o christian_a religion_n the_o glorious_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n the_o hope_n of_o a_o better_a life_n and_o the_o endless_a joy_n of_o god_n kingdom_n thing_n more_o of_o value_n then_o the_o whole_a world_n beside_o as_o brutish_o &_o base_o as_o ever_o esau_n do_v his_o birthright_n &_o be_v ready_a to_o sell_v they_o for_o every_o filthy_a gain_n &_o drudgery_n pleasure_n they_o think_v of_o no_o other_o life_n then_o this_o present_a and_o know_v no_o other_o god_n but_o mammon_n and_o therefore_o howsoever_o they_o have_v oftentimes_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o commendation_n to_o be_v civil_a &_o honest_a man_n they_o be_v not_o only_a enemy_n unto_o their_o soul_n but_o to_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n 18._o 〈◊〉_d 3_o 18._o and_o be_v in_o the_o fearful_a estate_n of_o condemnation_n verse_n 14._o come_v i_o will_v counsel_v thou_o such_o thing_n as_o this_o people_n shall_v do_v to_o thy_o people_n in_o the_o latter_a day_n here_o we_o have_v set_v down_o unto_o we_o the_o chief_a occasion_n of_o that_o great_a judgement_n which_o fall_v upon_o the_o people_n wherein_o four_o &_o twenty_o thousand_o perish_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o chap_a follow_v namely_o the_o devilish_a counsel_n of_o balaam_n which_o he_o give_v unto_o balak_n to_o draw_v the_o people_n into_o fornication_n but_o it_o may_v seem_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n that_o balaam_n speak_v very_o unproper_o for_o whereas_o he_o say_v i_o will_v counsel_v thou_o such_o thing_n as_o this_o people_n shall_v do_v to_o thy_o people_n some_o may_v suppose_v he_o shall_v rather_o have_v say_v i_o will_v counsel_v thou_o such_o thing_n as_o thou_o and_o thy_o people_n shall_v do_v to_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n notwithstanding_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o word_n aright_o we_o shall_v see_v his_o meaning_n to_o be_v so_o in_o effect_n so_o then_o if_o we_o mark_v what_o the_o people_n of_o god_n shall_v do_v to_o they_o we_o shall_v find_v what_o they_o shall_v do_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o israelite_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o seventeenth_o verse_n shall_v smite_v the_o coast_n of_o moab_n and_o destroy_v they_o subdue_v they_o and_o bring_v they_o under_o so_o be_v the_o drift_n of_o his_o counsel_n to_o lay_v a_o plot_n and_o prepare_v a_o snare_n whereby_o the_o israelite_n shall_v be_v weaken_v and_o many_o thousand_o of_o they_o destroy_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o know_v this_o people_n who_o thou_o hate_v shall_v waste_v and_o weaken_v thy_o posterity_n in_o time_n to_o come_v but_o harken_v unto_o i_o and_o obey_v my_o counsel_n i_o will_v show_v thou_o how_o thou_o shall_v ruin_v they_o and_o compass_v their_o destruction_n and_o so_o do_v unto_o they_o that_o which_o they_o shall_v do_v unto_o thy_o people_n thus_o we_o see_v the_o wickedness_n of_o balaams_n heart_n to_o be_v exceed_o great_a who_o when_o he_o be_v restrain_v from_o curse_v open_v his_o mouth_n to_o wicked_a counsel_n &_o thereby_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n fall_v into_o horrible_a sin_n and_o draw_v upon_o themselves_o heavy_a punishment_n counsel_n ●ctrine_n 〈◊〉_d a_o horri●_n 〈◊〉_d to_o give_v 〈◊〉_d counsel_n hereby_o we_o learn_v that_o to_o give_v evil_a counsel_n be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o we_o to_o abstain_v from_o do_v evil_a but_o we_o must_v beware_v of_o this_o great_a sin_n that_o we_o do_v not_o counsel_v any_o to_o
the_o wicked_a into_o shard_n like_o a_o potter_n vessel_n psal_n 2_o 9_o we_o see_v how_o man_n admire_v the_o proud_a and_o haughty_a of_o the_o world_n and_o esteem_v the_o ungodly_a as_o the_o great_a magnifico_n that_o may_v not_o be_v contemn_v or_o control_v the_o poor_a and_o mean_a saint_n of_o god_n shall_v in_o time_n to_o come_v be_v their_o judge_n &_o sit_v with_o christ_n upon_o the_o bench_n in_o glory_n when_o they_o shall_v stand_v as_o their_o vassal_n at_o the_o bar_n and_o be_v judge_v as_o most_o wretched_a caitiff_n and_o malefactor_n and_o receive_v their_o wage_n according_a to_o their_o work_n then_o they_o shall_v say_v with_o horror_n of_o conscience_n we_o fool_v think_v their_o life_n madness_n &_o their_o end_n without_o honour_n but_o now_o they_o be_v count_v among_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o have_v their_o portion_n among_o his_o saint_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n reprove_v the_o corinthian_n that_o abase_v and_o abuse_v their_o dignity_n that_o do_v bring_v their_o cause_n to_o be_v try_v and_o judge_v before_o the_o wicked_a do_v you_o not_o know_v that_o the_o saint_n shall_v judge_v the_o world_n if_o then_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v judge_v by_o you_o be_v you_o unworthy_a to_o judge_v the_o small_a matter_n &_o c_o 1_o cor._n 6._o verse_n 2_o 3._o this_o be_v a_o great_a honour_n vouchsafe_v to_o the_o faithful_a no_o earthly_a honour_n can_v be_v compare_v unto_o it_o all_o temporal_a glory_n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o show_n or_o shadow_n of_o it_o on_o the_o other_o side_n great_a shall_v be_v the_o dishonour_n and_o disgrace_n the_o shame_n and_o contempt_n that_o shall_v be_v pour_v out_o upon_o the_o ungodly_a dan._n 12_o 2._o they_o have_v here_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o world_n the_o pleasure_n of_o this_o life_n the_o praise_n of_o man_n they_o be_v fear_v of_o some_o and_o flatter_v of_o other_o but_o when_o this_o glory_n shall_v pass_v away_o as_o the_o wind_n and_o fly_v as_o a_o arrow_n that_o be_v shoot_v at_o a_o mark_n than_o they_o shall_v be_v arraign_v as_o evil_a doer_n and_o every_o servant_n of_o god_n shall_v tread_v they_o under_o their_o foot_n then_o they_o shall_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n then_o they_o shall_v see_v all_o the_o godly_a who_o they_o have_v scorn_v and_o deride_v receyve_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o themselves_o shut_v out_o of_o the_o door_n then_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o continual_a fellowship_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o his_o angel_n in_o hell_n fire_n where_o shall_v be_v weep_a and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n use_v 2_o second_o we_o must_v all_o be_v careful_a to_o walk_v worthy_a of_o so_o great_a a_o call_n we_o must_v be_v as_o spiritual_a king_n to_o rule_v and_o bear_v sway_n over_o our_o thought_n will_n and_o affection_n overmaster_v they_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v proclaim_v continual_a war_n against_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n against_o the_o devil_n and_o against_o the_o world_n and_o very_o he_o that_o can_v bear_v rule_n over_o his_o own_o heart_n be_v a_o true_a king_n indeed_o and_o shall_v sure_o reign_v for_o evermore_o with_o christ_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 6._o revelat._n 1_o 6._o he_o that_o have_v beat_v down_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sin_n and_o sathan_n and_o receive_v some_o measure_n of_o grace_n to_o reign_v over_o himself_o have_v perform_v a_o great_a and_o more_o glorious_a work_n than_o he_o that_o have_v subdue_v a_o kingdom_n for_o all_o these_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v horrible_a &_o hideous_a monster_n and_o fearful_a serpent_n their_o sting_n be_v deadly_a their_o poison_n be_v mortal_a it_o be_v a_o hard_a labour_n to_o pull_v out_o their_o sting_n and_o take_v away_o their_o poison_n from_o they_o but_o they_o which_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o the_o swinge_n of_o their_o corruption_n as_o with_o a_o violent_a stream_n have_v blindness_n &_o ignorance_n to_o reign_v in_o their_o mind_n rebellion_n in_o their_o will_n and_o looseness_n in_o their_o whole_a life_n be_v not_o spiritual_a king_n but_o base_a slave_n and_o bondman_n the_o strong_a man_n sathan_n keep_v the_o hold_n of_o their_o heart_n 21._o luke_n 11_o 21._o and_o as_o lord_n and_o king_n set_v up_o his_o sceptre_n there_o wherefore_o my_o brethren_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o our_o high_a call_n we_o must_v make_v conscience_n of_o every_o sin_n we_o hear_v before_o that_o we_o be_v make_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n for_o a_o judge_n to_o be_v a_o thief_n that_o sit_v in_o judgement_n to_o condemn_v a_o thief_n so_o be_v it_o a_o shame_n for_o we_o to_o be_v give_v to_o wickedness_n that_o must_v judge_v the_o wicked_a world_n when_o the_o just_a shall_v appear_v a_o judge_n must_v take_v heed_n of_o those_o sin_n in_o himself_o which_o he_o must_v condemn_v in_o other_o lest_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o he_o thou_o which_o teach_v another_o teach_v thou_o not_o thyself_o rom._n 2_o 21_o 22._o this_o be_v that_o use_n which_o the_o apostle_n make_v to_o the_o thessalonian_o chap._n 1_o 10_o 11_o after_o he_o have_v show_v that_o at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o might_n and_o majesty_n he_o will_v be_v glorious_a in_o his_o saint_n &_o make_v marvelous_a in_o they_o that_o believe_v he_o intreat_v that_o god_n will_v make_v they_o to_o walk_v worthy_a of_o their_o call_n and_o sure_o if_o we_o have_v any_o the_o least_o spark_n of_o grace_n or_o any_o feel_n of_o our_o natural_a condition_n when_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n and_o the_o firebrand_n of_o hell_n it_o can_v not_o but_o work_v in_o we_o a_o marvelous_a love_n unto_o god_n a_o desire_n to_o please_v he_o and_o a_o delight_n to_o bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o righteousness_n three_o our_o victory_n in_o christ_n offer_v comfort_n use_v 3_o unto_o we_o in_o all_o trouble_n tentation_n poverty_n and_o in_o death_n itself_o we_o be_v to_o arm_v ourselves_o with_o this_o power_n of_o christ_n against_o all_o terror_n and_o fear_n that_o seek_v to_o dismay_v us._n we_o be_v in_o christ_n appoint_v king_n and_o judge_n over_o those_o that_o trouble_v we_o conqueror_n over_o sathan_n and_o death_n our_o fear_n then_o be_v already_o past_a let_v we_o lift_v up_o our_o head_n and_o be_v of_o good_a comfort_n this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v bold_a to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o 1_o cor._n 15_o 56_o 57_o o_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n o_o grave_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n now_o thanks_n be_v unto_o god_n who_o have_v give_v we_o the_o victory_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o fear_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o then_o our_o redemption_n draw_v never_o we_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o judge_n for_o he_o shall_v be_v our_o saviour_n howsoever_o therefore_o we_o seem_v base_a unto_o the_o world_n and_o of_o vile_a account_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o carnal_a man_n who_o portion_n be_v in_o this_o life_n yet_o we_o be_v indeed_o advance_v into_o the_o high_a honour_n about_o he_o receyve_v by_o our_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n with_o he_o a_o communication_n of_o his_o kingly_a power_n and_o glory_n to_o subdue_v under_o we_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n for_o if_o we_o fight_v with_o he_o and_o under_o his_o banner_n we_o can_v lose_v the_o field_n but_o shall_v be_v assure_v to_o reign_v with_o he_o they_o then_o be_v deceive_v that_o think_v they_o the_o scum_n and_o offscouring_a of_o the_o world_n this_o shall_v also_o persuade_v all_o careless_a and_o backward_a person_n to_o embrace_v true_a religion_n and_o give_v it_o the_o chief_a seat_n in_o their_o heart_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o make_v they_o of_o the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n and_o vassal_n of_o sathan_n glorious_a king_n and_o triumphant_a conqueror_n over_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n furthermore_o it_o shall_v encourage_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o make_v they_o glad_a to_o labour_v in_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o in_o win_a soul_n unto_o god_n be_v set_v apart_o by_o god_n mercy_n to_o consecrate_v man_n king_n and_o priest_n unto_o he_o which_o be_v a_o great_a privilege_n for_o they_o have_v mighty_a weapon_n give_v they_o by_o their_o captain_n christ_n to_o wit_n the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o the_o vigour_n of_o his_o mighty_a word_n which_o cause_v they_o to_o prevail_v therefore_o the_o lord_n say_v by_o his_o prophet_n hosea_n chap._n 6_o 5._o i_o have_v cut_v down_o this_o people_n by_o the_o prophet_n &_o slay_v they_o by_o the_o word_n of_o my_o mouth_n and_o the_o apostle_n teach_v 2_o cor._n 10_o 5_o 6_o that_o the_o weapon_n
deceive_v and_o shall_v be_v disappoint_v of_o our_o hope_n let_v we_o not_o look_v for_o any_o consolation_n from_o he_o but_o woe_n and_o confusion_n of_o face_n this_o our_o saviour_n teach_v in_o the_o gospel_n john_n 3_o 19_o this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n that_o light_n come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o man_n love_v darkness_n rather_o than_o that_o light_n because_o their_o deed_n be_v evil_a it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o strange_a darkness_n that_o can_v be_v drive_v away_o by_o the_o beam_n of_o this_o bright_a shine_a it_o must_v be_v a_o very_a gross_a and_o wilful_a blindness_n where_o the_o continual_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n proceed_v from_o the_o love_a face_n of_o christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n have_v wrought_v no_o knowledge_n nor_o profit_n in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n the_o apostle_n in_o this_o respect_n say_v if_o our_o gospel_n be_v hide_v it_o be_v hide_v to_o they_o that_o be_v lose_v 4._o 2_o cor._n 4_o 3_o 4._o in_o who_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v blind_v the_o mind_n that_o be_v of_o the_o infidel_n that_o the_o light_n of_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o shine_v unto_o they_o christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n have_v appear_v and_o shine_v glorious_o in_o this_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o alas_o how_o many_o be_v there_o stark_o blind_a and_o willing_o blind_a even_o under_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o most_o painful_a servant_n of_o god_n that_o labour_n in_o the_o lord_n vineyard_n and_o spend_v their_o strength_n to_o give_v light_n to_o other_o if_o a_o man_n hear_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o trumpet_n yet_o will_v stop_v his_o ear_n or_o have_v the_o light_n of_o the_o day_n yet_o will_v shut_v fast_o his_o eye_n this_o be_v a_o wilful_a ignorance_n 5._o 2_o pet_n 3_o 5._o and_o a_o presumptuous_a sin_n that_o shall_v increase_v their_o judgement_n and_o condemnation_n this_o do_v our_o saviour_n teach_v john_n 15_o 12._o if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o speak_v unto_o they_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v have_v sin_n but_o now_o have_v they_o no_o cloak_n for_o their_o sin_n the_o prophet_n prophesy_v of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o people_n that_o shall_v believe_v in_o christ_n declare_v as_o we_o note_v before_o that_o god_n will_v pour_v out_o his_o spirit_n upon_o all_o flesh_n 3._o esay_n 11_o 9_o &_o 2_o 3._o that_o all_o shall_v be_v teach_v of_o god_n that_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o the_o water_n do_v cover_v the_o sea_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o these_o thing_n the_o palpable_a ignorance_n and_o horrible_a blindness_n which_o be_v see_v in_o the_o world_n show_v plain_o that_o we_o be_v not_o that_o people_n the_o prophet_n tell_v we_o what_o readiness_n and_o forwardness_n shall_v be_v in_o man_n to_o come_v into_o god_n house_n for_o increase_v of_o knowledge_n to_o be_v instruct_v in_o his_o will_n and_o to_o walk_v in_o his_o way_n that_o they_o shall_v say_v one_o to_o another_o up_o let_v we_o go_v and_o pray_v before_o the_o lord_n let_v we_o seek_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o i_o will_v go_v also_o zach._n 8_o 21._o we_o be_v far_o from_o this_o zeal_n and_o from_o encourage_v one_o another_o in_o good_a thing_n and_o therefore_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n do_v stand_v far_o from_o we_o also_o so_o then_o we_o see_v such_o as_o live_v in_o ignorance_n and_o sin_n be_v darkness_n and_o have_v no_o communion_n with_o christ_n for_o what_o fellowship_n can_v there_o be_v between_o light_n and_o darkness_n use_v 2_o second_o we_o must_v all_o have_v a_o special_a care_n that_o this_o star_n may_v rise_v in_o our_o heart_n &_o that_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n may_v rejoice_v and_o refresh_v us._n now_o the_o right_a way_n to_o have_v he_o with_o a_o gracious_a aspect_n to_o shine_v upon_o we_o be_v for_o we_o to_o regard_v and_o give_v heed_n to_o the_o lesser_a light_n the_o candle-light_n or_o starre-light_n which_o be_v forerunner_n of_o this_o star_n to_o wit_n the_o light_n of_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o servant_n of_o god_n which_o be_v appoint_v to_o direct_v we_o in_o the_o course_n of_o our_o life_n and_o to_o point_v out_o unto_o we_o this_o light_n so_o the_o apostle_n say_v you_o have_v a_o sure_a word_n of_o the_o prophet_n unto_o which_o you_o shall_v do_v well_o to_o give_v heed_n as_o unto_o a_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o dark_a place_n until_o the_o day_n dawn_n and_o the_o daystar_n arise_v in_o your_o heart_n 2_o pet._n 1_o 19_o and_o our_o saviour_n call_v his_o disciple_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n and_o a_o city_n set_v upon_o a_o hill_n john_n baptist_n be_v a_o burn_a and_o a_o shine_a candle_n john_n 5_o 35._o they_o that_o will_v not_o follow_v these_o light_n nor_o seek_v to_o be_v guide_v by_o these_o star_n shall_v never_o feel_v the_o comfort_n of_o this_o star_n of_o jacob_n so_o they_o these_o place_n of_o the_o world_n where_o those_o lesser_a light_n have_v no_o entertainment_n or_o where_o by_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o people_n they_o be_v remove_v or_o their_o light_n put_v out_o be_v most_o wretched_a and_o miserable_a the_o people_n be_v say_v in_o the_o prophet_n to_o have_v walk_v in_o darkness_n esay_n 9_o 2._o math._n 4_o 13._o and_o to_o have_v dwell_v in_o the_o land_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n before_o these_o light_n shine_v on_o they_o so_o long_o as_o israel_n be_v without_o a_o preach_a priesthood_n to_o deliver_v unto_o they_o the_o law_n of_o god_n so_o long_o they_o be_v without_o god_n and_o his_o word_n 2_o chron._n 15_o 3._o so_o long_o as_o they_o want_v these_o steward_n of_o the_o lord_n house_n to_o give_v they_o their_o portion_n of_o meat_n in_o due_a season_n they_o endure_v a_o grievous_a famine_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o perish_v for_o want_n of_o food_n it_o stand_v we_o therefore_o upon_o to_o rejoice_v in_o these_o light_n and_o to_o be_v glad_a when_o these_o star_n begin_v to_o shine_v among_o we_o they_o be_v the_o joy_n and_o solace_n of_o the_o earth_n howsoever_o they_o be_v base_o esteem_v off_o in_o the_o world_n and_o reproach_v by_o they_o that_o love_n darkness_n more_o than_o light_n because_o their_o way_n be_v evil_a john_n 3_o 20_o 21_o for_o every_o man_n that_o evil_a do_v hate_v the_o light_n neither_o come_v to_o the_o light_n lest_o his_o deed_n shall_v be_v reprove_v but_o he_o that_o do_v truth_n come_v to_o the_o light_n that_o his_o deed_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v wrought_v according_a to_o god_n the_o galatian_n do_v so_o affect_v paul_n that_o they_o will_v have_v pull_v out_o both_o their_o light_n to_o wit_n their_o eye_n to_o do_v he_o good_a gal._n 4_o 15._o but_o the_o practice_n of_o our_o time_n and_o the_o lamentable_a experience_n of_o our_o day_n show_v the_o contrary_a man_n seek_v by_o all_o way_n and_o device_n they_o can_v to_o dim_v and_o darken_v these_o light_n by_o grieve_v and_o vex_v they_o by_o disgrace_v and_o slander_v they_o by_o molest_v and_o trouble_v of_o they_o by_o discourage_v and_o discountenance_v of_o they_o that_o so_o they_o may_v hinder_v the_o build_n of_o the_o lord_n house_n if_o these_o man_n be_v ask_v the_o question_n whether_o they_o will_v have_v christ_n shine_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o arise_v as_o a_o bright_a star_n to_o scatter_v the_o cloudy_a mist_n of_o their_o unbelieve_a mind_n no_o doubt_n they_o will_v answer_v it_o be_v their_o desire_n and_o that_o they_o find_v more_o use_n of_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o soul_n then_o of_o the_o shine_a of_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n and_o yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o do_v not_o use_v those_o mean_n whereby_o the_o beam_n of_o this_o star_n of_o jacob_n may_v shine_v upon_o they_o they_o make_v it_o manifest_a they_o regard_v not_o the_o star_n itself_o and_o therefore_o let_v no_o man_n flatter_v himself_o that_o he_o regard_v the_o gospel_n or_o christ_n the_o bringer_n of_o the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o salvation_n when_o they_o will_v not_o open_v their_o ear_n to_o the_o gospel_n preach_v by_o such_o as_o christ_n have_v appoint_v over_o us._n use_v 3_o last_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n we_o be_v not_o deceive_v in_o judge_v of_o this_o light_n for_o many_o imagine_v they_o have_v the_o light_n of_o this_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n and_o of_o this_o star_n of_o jacob_n when_o they_o have_v but_o a_o false_a light_n true_a it_o be_v christ_n be_v in_o himself_o &_o of_o himself_o always_o a_o light_n howsoever_o he_o be_v receive_v albeit_o man_n shut_v
motion_n of_o sin_n &_o break_v out_o into_o all_o enormity_n thes_n use_n be_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o be_v handle_v use_v 1_o first_o we_o may_v true_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v bless_v that_o think_v of_o the_o day_n of_o their_o reckon_n and_o of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o account_n that_o they_o must_v give_v of_o their_o stewardship_n and_o so_o prepare_v their_o garment_n that_o they_o be_v not_o find_v naked_a we_o see_v how_o man_n in_o danger_n as_o in_o a_o fire_n come_v in_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o night_n be_v glad_a to_o catch_v any_o thing_n to_o cover_v and_o hide_v themselves_o so_o must_v we_o be_v clothe_v with_o christ_n and_o put_v on_o his_o righteousness_n there_o before_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v who_o be_v a_o faithful_a steward_n and_o wise_a who_o the_o master_n shall_v make_v ruler_n over_o his_o household_n math._n 24_o 44_o 46._o and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o speak_v in_o the_o revelation_n of_o john_n revel_v 16_o 15._o there_o be_v no_o way_n for_o the_o ungodly_a to_o escape_v when_o a_o thief_n have_v a_o purpose_n to_o do_v a_o mischief_n come_v upon_o a_o house_n in_o the_o night_n when_o all_o be_v asleep_a and_o so_o take_v they_o unprepared_a and_o unprofitable_a be_v in_o bed_n and_o destitute_a of_o all_o help_n they_o can_v escape_v or_o shift_v themselves_o out_o of_o the_o way_n there_o can_v be_v no_o prevent_n of_o this_o fearful_a and_o sudden_a destruction_n by_o foresee_v the_o appoint_a time_n and_o by_o determine_v of_o the_o season_n beforehand_o so_o as_o we_o may_v live_v as_o we_o listen_v until_o that_o time_n for_o as_o the_o lightning_n come_v out_o of_o the_o east_n and_o be_v see_v into_o the_o west_n so_o shall_v also_o the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v math._n 2d_o 27._o so_o then_o we_o may_v see_v the_o bless_a estate_n and_o condition_n of_o all_o such_o as_o wise_o consider_v the_o sudden_a come_n of_o god_n judgment_n and_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n into_o they_o as_o a_o bird_n into_o a_o snare_n be_v thereby_o make_v circumspect_a and_o wise_a to_o prevent_v a_o mischief_n before_o they_o fall_v into_o it_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o may_v conclude_v the_o curse_a and_o wretched_a estate_n of_o all_o ungodly_a and_o wicked_a man_n they_o be_v sudden_o take_v as_o in_o a_o net_n and_o horrible_o consume_v they_o fall_v into_o the_o pit_n before_o they_o dream_v of_o any_o danger_n they_o feel_v their_o own_o misery_n to_o be_v without_o redemption_n before_o they_o will_v see_v it_o to_o prevent_v it_o happy_a be_v they_o that_o see_v the_o plague_n come_v and_o do_v avoid_v it_o use_v 2_o second_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o awake_v out_o of_o sin_n &_o to_o be_v watchful_a over_o our_o own_o soul_n we_o must_v not_o sleep_v in_o sin_n nor_o give_v ourselves_o to_o security_n but_o be_v careful_a and_o circumspect_a that_o we_o be_v not_o sudden_o overtake_v we_o ought_v always_o to_o be_v occupy_v in_o the_o work_n of_o godliness_n and_o in_o the_o duty_n of_o our_o call_n to_o perform_v they_o as_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n to_o the_o end_n that_o be_v always_o ready_a we_o shall_v not_o fear_v his_o come_n this_o be_v the_o charge_n that_o christ_n give_v we_o to_o be_v always_o ready_a m●th_n 24_o 44._o luke_n 12_o 35._o to_o this_o purpose_n do_v he_o give_v this_o exhortation_n that_o see_v we_o know_v not_o when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v come_v whether_o at_o even_o or_o midnight_n at_o the_o cock_n crow_v or_o in_o the_o dawn_n we_o shall_v careful_o watch_v &_o pray_v continual_o mar._n 13_o 35_o 36_o 37._o luke_n 21_o 36._o and_o the_o which_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n must_v be_v consider_v of_o we_o touch_v the_o end_n ofour_v own_o day_n and_o must_v teach_v we_o so_o to_o number_v up_o our_o time_n that_o we_o may_v apply_v our_o heart_n unto_o wisdom_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v our_o loin_n gird_v and_o as_o it_o be_v our_o staff_n in_o our_o hand_n that_o every_o hour_n we_o may_v look_v for_o our_o lord_n come_v the_o lord_n will_v have_v we_o know_v his_o first_o come_n because_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o be_v profitable_a and_o necessary_a and_o therefore_o he_o reprove_v the_o jew_n that_o they_o know_v not_o the_o time_n of_o their_o visitation_n luke_n 19_o 45._o but_o his_o second_o come_v he_o have_v hide_v from_o we_o as_o unnecessary_a ad_fw-la unprofitable_a nay_o as_o dangerous_a and_o hurtful_a unto_o we_o lest_o we_o shall_v say_v with_o the_o evil_a servant_n my_o master_n do_v defer_v his_o come_n and_o thereupon_o begin_v to_o smite_v our_o fellow-servant_n and_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v with_o the_o drunken_a whereas_o the_o master_n of_o that_o servant_n will_v come_v in_o a_o day_n when_o he_o think_v not_o and_o at_o a_o hour_n when_o he_o be_v not_o ware_n of_o and_o will_v cut_v he_o off_o and_o give_v he_o a_o portion_n with_o the_o unbeliever_n the_o servant_n that_o know_v his_o master_n will_n and_o prepare_v not_o himself_o neither_o do_v according_a to_o his_o will_n use_v 3_o shall_v be_v beat_v with_o many_o stripe_n last_o albeit_o he_o be_v patient_a let_v we_o not_o put_v off_o from_o day_n to_o day_n the_o time_n of_o our_o repentance_n it_o be_v the_o exhortation_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o church_n at_o sardis_n remember_v how_o thou_o have_v receive_v and_o hear_v hold_v fast_o &_o repent_v &_o reu._n 3_o 3._o the_o prophet_n denounce_v a_o grievous_a woe_n to_o all_o they_o that_o put_v away_o the_o evil_a day_n 3._o amos_n 6_o 3._o that_o continue_v still_o in_o their_o wickedness_n and_o think_v that_o god_n plague_n be_v not_o at_o hand_n this_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o many_o evil_n when_o a_o man_n never_o consider_v of_o the_o day_n of_o his_o death_n and_o dissolution_n and_o that_o the_o day_n of_o his_o appear_v be_v near_o and_o the_o time_n of_o his_o answer_v at_o hand_n he_o regard_v not_o what_o injury_n he_o offer_v he_o commit_v many_o grievous_a sin_n so_o then_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o suddenness_n of_o god_n judgement_n afford_v a_o notable_a use_n against_o the_o drowsy_a security_n and_o profaneness_n of_o those_o that_o mock_v and_o dally_v with_o repentance_n as_o if_o it_o may_v be_v obtain_v at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n these_o man_n think_v it_o a_o vain_a thing_n to_o trouble_v themselves_o that_o way_n until_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v and_o do_v lie_v at_o the_o very_a last_o gasp_n these_o man_n regard_v not_o how_o they_o live_v so_o they_o may_v have_v time_n to_o call_v for_o pardon_n and_o to_o cry_v lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o but_o understand_v o_o you_o foolish_a man_n that_o not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v lord_n lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n math._n 7_o 21._o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v threaten_v to_o come_v upon_o thou_o as_o a_o thief_n and_o to_o sweep_v thou_o away_o sudden_o thou_o know_v not_o whether_o thou_o shall_v have_v a_o hour_n or_o moment_n give_v thou_o to_o repent_v thou_o may_v be_v smite_v with_o sudden_a death_n when_o thou_o rise_v out_o of_o thy_o bed_n thou_o know_v not_o whether_o thou_o shall_v lie_v down_o again_o when_o thou_o lie_v down_o in_o thy_o bed_n thou_o know_v not_o what_o may_v happen_v unto_o thou_o before_o it_o be_v day_n let_v god_n be_v in_o our_o first_o thought_n in_o the_o morning_n let_v he_o be_v in_o our_o last_o thought_n in_o the_o evening_n let_v we_o remember_v he_o rise_v and_o lie_v down_o let_v we_o call_v ourselves_o to_o a_o account_n of_o our_o do_n every_o day_n what_o evil_a we_o have_v do_v what_o good_a we_o have_v leave_v undo_v let_v we_o continual_o commend_v ourselves_o our_o soul_n our_o body_n our_o good_n our_o brethren_n into_o god_n hand_n as_o a_o most_o faithful_a keeper_n by_o earnest_n and_o faithful_a prayer_n and_o not_o go_v into_o our_o bed_n as_o the_o dog_n into_o his_o kennel_n or_o the_o swine_n into_o his_o sty_n or_o the_o ox_n unto_o his_o stall_n boast_v not_o of_o to_o morrow_n for_o thou_o know_v not_o what_o a_o day_n may_v bring_v forth_o pro._n 27_o 1._o thyself_o may_v be_v dead_a thy_o house_n fire_v thy_o good_n spoil_v thy_o child_n destroy_v and_o a_o thousand_o misery_n be_v multiply_v upon_o thou_o and_o if_o thy_o day_n be_v prolong_v the_o long_o thou_o continue_v in_o sin_n the_o hard_a thou_o shall_v find_v it_o to_o repent_v thy_o heart_n be_v more_o harden_a by_o custom_n &_o continuance_n a_o old_a ruinous_a house_n the_o long_a it_o be_v let_v run_v the_o more_o
labour_n time_n and_o charge_v it_o will_v require_v in_o re-edify_n and_o repair_v a_o old_a disease_n be_v more_o hardly_o cure_v the_o deep_a a_o nail_n be_v drive_v with_o the_o hammer_n &_o the_o more_o blow_n be_v give_v it_o the_o hard_a it_o be_v to_o pluck_v out_o again_o he_o that_o will_v not_o be_v fit_a to_o day_n shall_v find_v himself_o less_o fit_a to_o morrow_n &_o his_o heart_n every_o day_n less_o incline_v than_o other_o to_o turn_v to_o god_n and_o more_o and_o more_o harden_v wherefore_o let_v we_o while_o it_o be_v call_v to_o day_n repent_v and_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n that_o when_o his_o judgement_n come_v sudden_o the_o destroyer_n may_v pass_v over_o we_o and_o we_o remain_v safe_a under_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o almighty_a 23_o again_o he_o utter_v his_o parable_n and_o say_v alas_o who_o shall_v live_v when_o god_n do_v this_o 24_o the_o ship_n also_o shall_v come_v from_o the_o coast_n of_o chittim_n and_o subdue_v ashur_n and_o shall_v subdue_v eber_n and_o he_o also_o shall_v come_v to_o destruction_n 25_o then_o balaam_n rise_v up_o and_o go_v and_o return_v to_o his_o place_n and_o balak_n also_o go_v his_o way_n hitherto_o of_o the_o special_a prophecy_n belong_v to_o several_a people_n both_o to_o the_o believe_a jew_n and_o unbelieve_a gentile_n for_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o israelite_n moabite_n edomite_n amalekite_n and_o kenites_n now_o we_o come_v to_o the_o last_o of_o his_o prophecy_n balaam_n the_o seven_o prophecy_n of_o balaam_n appertain_v joint_o and_o general_o to_o many_o people_n wherein_o we_o must_v consider_v three_o thing_n first_o the_o entrance_n into_o it_o second_o the_o prophecy_n itself_o three_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o history_n the_o entrance_n into_o it_o be_v not_o set_v down_o simple_o and_o naked_o but_o be_v garnish_v with_o a_o effectual_a and_o rhetorical_a exclamation_n as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o earnest_a admiration_n of_o the_o greatness_n and_o horror_n thereof_o alas_o who_o shall_v live_v when_o god_n do_v this_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v o_o how_o great_a and_o grievous_a shall_v those_o calamity_n be_v the_o which_o albeit_o none_o of_o we_o that_o be_v now_o alive_a shall_v live_v to_o see_v or_o feel_v yet_o they_o shall_v most_o certain_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o woe_n unto_o they_o upon_o who_o they_o shall_v fall_v the_o prophecy_n itself_o follow_v set_v down_o exceed_a judgement_n of_o god_n against_o great_a kingdom_n and_o monarchy_n of_o the_o assyrian_n and_o grecian_n the_o former_a judgment_n be_v against_o particular_a nation_n these_o be_v against_o whole_a empire_n and_o first_o of_o all_o whereas_o the_o chaldean_n under_o nimrod_n and_o the_o assyrian_n under_o ninus_n usurp_a dominion_n over_o whole_a country_n &_o kingdom_n he_o show_v that_o in_o process_n of_o time_n ship_n shall_v come_v from_o the_o shore_n of_o chittim_n that_o be_v the_o navy_n of_o the_o grecian_n and_o the_o army_n of_o the_o seleucians_n which_o shall_v subdue_v both_o the_o hebrew_n and_o the_o assyrian_n by_o chittim_n in_o this_o place_n he_o mean_v cilicia_n which_o descend_v of_o kittim_n one_o of_o the_o posterity_n of_o javan_n of_o who_o we_o read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n chap._n 10_o verse_n 4._o 10._o esay_n 23_o 1._o jer._n 23_o 10._o for_o alexander_n the_o great_a set_v out_o a_o fleet_n rig_v and_o furnish_v especial_o by_o they_o of_o cyprus_n which_o be_v now_o sever_v from_o the_o continent_n of_o cilicia_n and_o after_o he_o the_o posterity_n of_o seleucus_n nicanor_n waste_v assyria_n judea_n palestina_n and_o all_o syria_n with_o perpetual_a inroad_n and_o incursion_n which_o they_o make_v into_o they_o and_o in_o the_o end_n subject_v they_o all_o to_o themselves_o true_a it_o be_v alexander_n do_v rather_o prosecute_v his_o war_n by_o land_n service_n then_o by_o sea_n yet_o when_o the_o ambassador_n of_o tyre_n eze._n 28_o 2_o a_o island_n situate_a in_o the_o sea_n have_v give_v he_o a_o mock_n trust_v in_o the_o fortification_n of_o the_o place_n 4._o q_o urt_n 〈…〉_o gest_n 〈◊〉_d lib._n 4._o despise_v his_o land_n power_n refuse_v to_o suffer_v he_o to_o enter_v into_o their_o city_n and_o esteem_v themselves_o worthy_a rather_o to_o join_v with_o he_o as_o friend_n and_o confederate_n then_o to_o become_v h●s_a subject_n and_o vastalle_n he_o be_v constrain_v before_o he_o can_v do_v any_o thing_n against_o they_o to_o send_v for_o his_o ship_n from_o cyprus_n whereby_o he_o prevail_v more_o against_o the_o tyrian_n then_o by_o the_o peres_n and_o moles_n that_o he_o build_v as_o q●intus_n curtius_n at_o large_a relate_v in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o the_o noble_a act_n of_o alexander_n this_o be_v it_o which_o balaam_n speak_v of_o in_o this_o place_n the_o assyrian_n be_v vanquish_v by_o alexander_n the_o hebrew_n which_o come_v of_o eber_n be_v oppress_v and_o vex_v by_o the_o posterity_n of_o seleucus_n descend_v from_o alexander_n gen._n 10_o 21._o &_o 11_o 15._o &_o 14_o 13._o likewise_o when_o the_o grecian_n have_v rule_v their_o time_n and_o have_v proud_o bear_v themselves_o as_o conqueror_n of_o the_o world_n arise_v of_o small_a beginning_n they_o also_o perish_v after_o a_o little_a time_n as_o balaam_n here_o pronounce_v long_o before_o the_o event_n thereof_o come_v 2.34_o dan_n 2.34_o and_o as_o daniel_n afterwards_o prophesy_v immediate_o before_o the_o accomplishment_n thereof_o which_o be_v effect_v and_o bring_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o power_n and_o puissance_n of_o the_o roman_n which_o serve_v they_o as_o they_o before_o have_v serve_v other_o and_o take_v the_o empire_n and_o monarchy_n from_o they_o as_o they_o have_v take_v it_o from_o other_o thus_o we_o see_v how_o all_o earthly_a thing_n even_o the_o mighty_a estate_n &_o great_a dominion_n of_o large_a circuit_n be_v subject_a to_o their_o time_n and_o season_n of_o revolution_n 2._o g●i●_n ●●t_v 〈◊〉_d lib_n 2._o so_o that_o in_o mortal_a felicity_n there_o can_v be_v no_o assurance_n nor_o perpetuity_n for_o as_o it_o be_v a_o infallible_a property_n belong_v to_o all_o humane_a thing_n change_v with_o that_o swift_a and_o violent_a return_n whereby_o they_o do_v rise_v to_o their_o exaltation_n and_o fullness_n so_o these_o great_a prince_n &_o potentate_n these_o kingdom_n and_o empire_n rise_v with_o their_o felicity_n into_o humour_n of_o pride_n and_o security_n and_o forget_v in_o their_o greatness_n the_o great_a god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n that_o do_v set_v they_o up_o and_o show_v that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o throw_v they_o down_o as_o appear_v most_o evident_o in_o alexander_n who_o will_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o jupiter_n and_o be_v content_a to_o suffer_v they_o to_o fall_v down_o flat_a upon_o the_o ground_n &_o worship_v he_o these_o i_o say_v see_v the_o declination_n of_o their_o prosperity_n and_o great_a triumph_n thereby_o show_v themselves_o more_o happy_a to_o get_v glory_n then_o able_a to_o keep_v it_o we_o see_v therefore_o in_o these_o example_n that_o all_o monarchy_n have_v their_o period_n and_o point_n of_o continuance_n as_o it_o be_v the_o centre_n to_o which_o they_o tend_v and_o in_o which_o after_o sundry_a mutation_n and_o alteration_n they_o full_o be_v accomplish_v thus_o much_o of_o the_o prophecy_n both_o special_a and_o general_a now_o in_o the_o last_o verse_n moses_n hand●●th_v the_o event_n both_o of_o these_o prophecy_n and_o general_o of_o the_o whole_a history_n balaam_n rise_v up_o depart_v and_o return_v that_o be_v he_o go_v his_o way_n with_o a_o purpose_n and_o intent_n to_o return_v unto_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o he_o come_v but_o he_o stay_v among_o the_o midianite_n either_o to_o expect_v the_o issue_n and_o fruit_n of_o his_o counsel_n among_o who_o also_o he_o be_v slay_v 31.8_o 〈◊〉_d 31.8_o as_o appear_v after_o in_o this_o book_n or_o be_v hire_v of_o they_o to_o do_v some_o other_o exploit_n thus_o balaam_n the_o sorcerer_n be_v defeat_v the_o superstitious_a king_n be_v disappoint_v the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v ease_v of_o a_o deadly_a enemy_n and_o last_o the_o exceed_a mercy_n of_o god_n be_v commend_v to_o the_o church_n overturning_a the_o practice_n of_o they_o make_v good_a the_o word_n of_o his_o own_o mouth_n and_o cause_v the_o invention_n of_o his_o enemy_n to_o vanish_v into_o smoke_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o moses_n deuter._n 23_o 5._o they_o hire_v balaam_n to_o curse_v thou_o nevertheless_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n will_v not_o hearken_v unto_o he_o but_o turn_v the_o curse_n to_o a_o blessing_n unto_o thou_o because_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n love_v thou_o and_o the_o prophet_n micaiah_n call_v upon_o the_o people_n to_o consider_v this_o kindness_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o chap._n 6_o verse_n 5_o o_o my_o people_n remember_v what_o balak_n king_n
thing_n for_o a_o man_n to_o climb_v aloft_o and_o not_o consider_v that_o the_o high_a he_o climb_v the_o great_a be_v his_o fall_n to_o covet_v the_o fruit_n &_o not_o consider_v the_o height_n of_o the_o tree_n whereon_o it_o grow_v we_o must_v take_v heed_n lest_o while_o we_o labour_v to_o attain_v unto_o the_o top_n we_o fall_v down_o with_o the_o bough_n that_o we_o do_v embrace_v all_o thing_n be_v here_o turn_v and_o toss_v with_o uncertainty_n and_o nothing_o continue_v in_o one_o stay_n or_o state_n there_o be_v nothing_o so_o sure_a that_o be_v not_o in_o danger_n of_o his_o inferior_a the_o lion_n have_v be_v sometime_o the_o food_n of_o small_a beast_n and_o the_o rust_n do_v consume_v the_o iron_n let_v we_o therefore_o like_a and_o look_v after_o better_a thing_n that_o do_v continue_v earthly_a thing_n although_o we_o have_v they_o in_o great_a abundance_n can_v save_v we_o in_o the_o day_n of_o danger_n let_v we_o not_o trust_v in_o they_o who_o help_n be_v in_o vain_a verse_n 25._o then_o balaam_n rise_v up_o and_o go_v and_o return_v to_o his_o place_n here_o be_v brief_o the_o conclusion_n set_v down_o as_o the_o event_n and_o issue_n of_o all_o the_o device_n and_o purpose_n of_o balak_n and_o balaam_n they_o rise_v up_o and_o go_v their_o way_n without_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o they_o intend_v and_o first_o touch_v balaam_n we_o have_v often_o note_v that_o the_o mark_n which_o he_o aim_v at_o be_v his_o wage_n yet_o see_v here_o how_o covet_v a_o evil_a covetousness_n and_o thirst_v after_o money_n which_o he_o make_v his_o god_n he_o be_v deceive_v &_o lose_v his_o wage_n yea_o and_o his_o life_n too_o at_o length_n as_o appear_v afterward_o in_o this_o book_n deceive_v num_fw-la 31_o 8._o doctrine_n such_o as_o covet_v after_o a_o evil_a covetousness_n be_v oftentimes_o deceive_v hereby_o we_o learn_v for_o our_o instruction_n that_o they_o which_o gape_v after_o unlawful_a gain_n and_o the_o deceitful_a wage_n of_o wickedness_n be_v oftentimes_o deceive_v of_o that_o which_o they_o look_v for_o and_o find_v contrary_a to_o their_o expectation_n loss_n instead_o of_o gain_n and_o hindrance_n in_o stead_n of_o advantage_n this_o be_v confirm_v unto_o we_o by_o sundry_a example_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n look_v upon_o the_o example_n of_o achan_n record_v in_o the_o book_n of_o joshua_n he_o think_v to_o enrich_v himself_o by_o the_o wedge_n of_o gold_n and_o the_o babylonish_n garment_n which_o he_o have_v purloin_v contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n who_o will_v have_v all_o those_o destroy_v not_o convert_v to_o the_o private_a profit_n of_o any_o but_o it_o fall_v out_o to_o his_o own_o destruction_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o those_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o josh_n 7_o 25_o the_o like_a judgement_n come_v upon_o gehazi_n he_o turn_v after_o naaman_n and_o take_v of_o he_o a_o bribe_n to_o enrich_v himself_o but_o the_o leprosy_n of_o naaman_n do_v cleave_v unto_o he_o so_o that_o his_o loss_n be_v great_a than_o his_o gain_n 2._o king_n 5.27_o ahab_n rise_v up_o and_o take_v possession_n of_o naboth_n vineyard_n which_o lie_v commodious_o for_o he_o but_o withal_o he_o purchase_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n the_o destruction_n of_o his_o person_n the_o ruin_n of_o his_o house_n the_o loss_n of_o his_o kingdom_n the_o undoo_n of_o all_o his_o posterity_n 1._o king_n 21_o 16._o judas_n betray_v his_o master_n 27_o mat._n 26_o &_o 27_o and_o sell_v he_o for_o thirty_o penny_n he_o be_v carry_v after_o his_o covetousness_n and_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n even_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o immaculate_a lamb_n of_o god_n but_o how_o he_o be_v enrich_v hereby_o the_o evangelist_n declare_v when_o he_o see_v that_o christ_n be_v condemn_v he_o repent_v himself_o and_o bring_v again_o the_o thirty_o piece_n of_o silver_n to_o the_o high-priest_n and_o elder_n say_v i_o have_v sin_v betray_v the_o innocent_a blood_n hereunto_o accord_v solomon_n in_o his_o proverb_n who_o say_v he_o that_o be_v greedy_a of_o gain_n trouble_v his_o own_o house_n but_o he_o that_o hate_v gift_n shall_v live_v prou._n 15_o 16._o where_o he_o teach_v that_o such_o as_o increase_v their_o riches_n by_o hook_n and_o by_o crook_n they_o care_v not_o how_o or_o gain_v by_o wrongful_a mean_n be_v the_o cause_n and_o occasion_n of_o many_o evil_n in_o their_o estate_n and_o family_n this_o appear_v also_o by_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o rich_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n luke_n 12.20_o thou_o fool_n this_o night_n shall_v they_o take_v away_o thy_o soul_n from_o thou_o and_o then_o who_o shall_v all_o these_o be_v that_o thou_o have_v gather_v together_o all_o which_o place_n of_o scripture_n serve_v direct_o to_o prove_v that_o such_o as_o be_v give_v to_o unlawful_a gain_n and_o get_v the_o good_n of_o this_o life_n wrongful_o be_v oftentimes_o deceive_v of_o their_o hope_n and_o expectation_n which_o make_v the_o apostle_n jude_n speak_v of_o the_o matter_n that_o now_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n to_o call_v the_o hire_n that_o balaam_n seek_v after_o the_o deceitful_a wage_n of_o balaam_n jude_n 11._o reason_n 1_o the_o reason_n may_v easy_o be_v discern_v of_o we_o if_o we_o consider_v that_o god_n will_v have_v his_o wisdom_n and_o justice_n to_o appear_v in_o cross_v their_o cark_n and_o care_v for_o these_o transitory_a thing_n this_o we_o see_v in_o all_o the_o example_n before_o allege_a of_o achan_n judas_n of_o gehazi_n ahab_n and_o of_o the_o rich_a man_n for_o god_n know_v to_o deliver_v the_o godly_a out_o of_o tentation_n and_o to_o reserve_v the_o unjust_a unto_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n under_o punishment_n 2._o pet._n 2.9_o how_o can_v it_o be_v therefore_o that_o such_o as_o fill_v their_o house_n with_o the_o riches_n of_o iniquity_n and_o with_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o righteous_a shall_v prosper_v and_o bring_v a_o blessing_n with_o they_o when_o as_o god_n which_o be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n shall_v set_v himself_o against_o they_o &_o root_v out_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v wrongful_o get_v reason_n 2_o second_o every_o sin_n be_v deceitful_a and_o profit_v nothing_o whatsoever_o show_v of_o profit_n and_o commodity_n it_o make_v this_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o book_n of_o job_n i_o have_v see_v the_o foolish_a well_o root_v and_o sudden_o i_o curse_v his_o habitation_n his_o child_n shall_v be_v far_o from_o salvation_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v destroy_v in_o the_o gate_n and_o none_o shall_v deliver_v they_o job_n 5_o 3_o 4._o all_o sin_n to_o the_o natural_a man_n be_v sweet_a and_o pleasant_a he_o find_v it_o sweet_a to_o his_o taste_n but_o it_o be_v as_o sweet_a meat_n that_o have_v poison_n mingle_v and_o temper_v with_o it_o job_n 20_o 12_o 13._o and_o as_o poison_v though_o it_o be_v sweet_a in_o the_o mouth_n bring_v death_n and_o destruction_n with_o it_o when_o it_o enter_v into_o the_o body_n so_o it_o be_v with_o sin_n it_o delight_v in_o the_o commit_n but_o it_o bit_v at_o the_o latter_a end_n for_o god_n turn_v it_o to_o destruction_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o shall_v take_v heed_n we_o be_v not_o seduce_v and_o deceive_v through_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n use_v 1_o the_o use_n be_v to_o be_v think_v upon_o that_o we_o may_v apply_v the_o doctrine_n to_o ourselves_o first_o we_o see_v here_o the_o common_a proverb_n true_o verify_v that_o covetousness_n bring_v nothing_o home_n so_o may_v it_o be_v say_v of_o all_o other_o sin_n of_o profaneness_n of_o contempt_n of_o the_o word_n of_o abuse_v the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o his_o sabbath_n of_o uncleanness_n of_o whoredom_n of_o drunkenness_n and_o of_o all_o sinful_a pleasure_n whatsoever_o which_o natural_a man_n make_v their_o happiness_n and_o felicity_n they_o may_v delight_v for_o a_o time_n and_o please_v the_o carnal_a desire_n of_o natural_a man_n but_o they_o bring_v a_o heavy_a account_n and_o reckon_n in_o the_o end_n so_o then_o we_o may_v say_v to_o all_o the_o man_n of_o this_o world_n who_o portion_n be_v in_o this_o life_n as_o abner_n say_v in_o one_o case_n know_v thou_o not_o that_o it_o will_v be_v bitterness_n in_o the_o latter_a end_n 2._o sam._n 2_o 26._o we_o hear_v how_o naboth_n vineyard_n be_v a_o eyesore_n to_o ahab_n and_o make_v he_o enter_v into_o ungodly_a course_n and_o bloody_a practice_n he_o destroy_v naboth_n and_o his_o child_n he_o seem_v to_o have_v make_v his_o title_n strong_a &_o secure_v his_o estate_n but_o what_o bring_v it_o in_o the_o end_n the_o utter_a ruin_n of_o his_o whole_a house_n every_o man_n can_v say_v ready_o when_o a_o man_n grow_v prodigal_a and_o spend_v excessive_o and_o hold_v a_o right_a course_n and_o
than_o adversity_n but_o many_o more_o fall_n away_o by_o peace_n &_o prosperity_n by_o riches_n wealth_n &_o pleasure_n which_o when_o man_n be_v delight_v and_o drunken_a with_o they_o be_v more_o dangerous_a enemy_n than_o affliction_n and_o adversity_n we_o see_v many_o by_o experience_n who_o in_o the_o day_n of_o tribulation_n have_v not_o give_v over_o their_o hold_n but_o endure_v slander_n revile_n imprisonment_n hunger_n and_o thirst_n in_o a_o necessitous_a estate_n yet_o have_v be_v overcome_v with_o peace_n drown_v with_o sensuality_n and_o lull_v asleep_a in_o carnal_a security_n even_o as_o a_o company_n of_o mariner_n so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o drown_v through_o violence_n of_o wind_n and_o rage_n of_o the_o tempest_n and_o work_v of_o the_o sea_n do_v watch_n and_o look_v about_o they_o follow_v their_o call_n and_o keep_v the_o ship_n from_o sink_v but_o when_o all_o be_v safe_a and_o quiet_a do_v fall_v out_o among_o themselves_o or_o delight_n in_o quaff_v and_o care_v not_o which_o end_n go_v forward_o so_o be_v it_o with_o we_o that_o live_v in_o these_o day_n of_o peace_n and_o quyetnesse_n we_o remember_v not_o what_o god_n have_v do_v for_o we_o neither_o be_v lead_v by_o his_o mercy_n unto_o obedience_n we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o our_o blessing_n have_v be_v many_o and_o great_a but_o as_o moses_n complain_v deut_n 32_o 15._o he_o that_o shall_v have_v be_v upright_o when_o he_o wax_v fat_a spurn_v with_o his_o heel_n for_o it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v of_o we_o which_o be_v speak_v against_o israel_n we_o be_v fat_a we_o be_v gross_a we_o be_v lade_v with_o fatness_n and_o therefore_o have_v we_o forsake_v the_o lord_n &_o have_v not_o regard_v the_o strong_a god_n of_o our_o salvation_n thus_o like_o foolish_a people_n and_o unwise_a have_v we_o reward_v the_o lord_n for_o his_o goodness_n and_o recompense_v the_o kindness_n that_o we_o have_v receive_v at_o his_o hand_n use_v 4_o last_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o pray_v continual_o to_o god_n that_o we_o be_v not_o overtake_v with_o they_o we_o live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o peace_n we_o dwell_v quiet_o in_o our_o house_n we_o taste_v not_o the_o bitterness_n of_o affliction_n as_o our_o neighbour_n have_v do_v round_o about_o we_o let_v we_o take_v heed_n we_o fall_v not_o into_o pride_n and_o presumption_n and_o so_o by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n for_o our_o unthankfulness_n be_v deliver_v over_o as_o bondslave_n unto_o the_o devil_n this_o be_v it_o which_o be_v offer_v to_o our_o consideration_n in_o the_o sixth_o and_o last_o petition_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n where_o we_o pray_v not_o to_o be_v lead_v into_o temptation_n but_o to_o be_v deliver_v from_o evil_a mat._n 6_o 13._o it_o be_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n in_o these_o word_n that_o we_o shall_v desire_v of_o god_n to_o be_v whole_o free_v from_o tentation_n but_o we_o crave_v his_o grace_n and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o sustain_v &_o uphold_v we_o that_o we_o be_v not_o overcome_v &_o yield_v unto_o they_o that_o we_o may_v stand_v steadfast_a in_o our_o obedience_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o prosperity_n nor_o deject_a or_o cast_v down_o with_o adversity_n this_o make_v the_o wiseman_n say_v to_o god_n in_o his_o meditation_n give_v i_o not_o riches_n but_o feed_v i_o with_o convenient_a food_n for_o i_o 9_o prou._n 30_o 8_o 9_o lest_o be_v full_a i_o lie_v and_o say_v who_o be_v the_o lord_n he_o pray_v in_o that_o place_n not_o only_o against_o inconvenient_a want_n and_o hurtful_a poverty_n but_o against_o inconvenient_a wealth_n hurtful_a store_n and_o overflow_a and_o superfluous_a abundance_n lest_o his_o heart_n shall_v be_v lift_v up_o and_o so_o he_o turn_v from_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n so_o then_o when_o we_o live_v under_o plentifulness_n of_o outward_a blessing_n when_o we_o enjoy_v health_n wealth_n peace_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o all_o thing_n for_o this_o present_a life_n be_v we_o free_a from_o damnger_n have_v we_o no_o need_n to_o watch_v or_o may_v we_o be_v secure_a sure_o if_o we_o will_v judge_v aright_o and_o measure_v our_o case_n either_o by_o the_o right_a line_n of_o god_n holy_a law_n or_o by_o our_o own_o christian_a experience_n we_o shall_v find_v our_o peril_n to_o be_v the_o great_a when_o we_o have_v such_o strong_a allurement_n and_o deceivable_a provocation_n to_o set_v our_o delight_n upon_o this_o world_n then_o when_o we_o be_v hold_v under_o affliction_n for_o then_o satan_n as_o a_o subtle_a enemy_n crafty_o wind_v in_o with_o we_o and_o work_v upon_o our_o heart_n by_o occasion_n of_o these_o blessing_n of_o god_n bestow_v upon_o us._n for_o as_o the_o parch_a heat_n of_o the_o sun_n will_v soon_o make_v a_o man_n cast_v away_o his_o cloak_n then_o the_o boisterous_a and_o bluster_a wind_n so_o the_o gracious_a day_n of_o peace_n shine_v upon_o we_o will_v soon_o cause_v we_o to_o cast_v off_o our_o confidence_n then_o the_o storm_n and_o tempest_n that_o beat_v upon_o us._n moses_n charge_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n when_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n flow_v with_o milk_n and_o honey_n to_o beware_v lest_o they_o forget_v the_o lord_n which_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n deut._n 6_o 12._o whilst_o david_n wander_v in_o the_o wilderness_n be_v hunt_v out_o of_o hole_n by_o saul_n into_o which_o he_o be_v glad_a to_o creep_v to_o hide_v himself_o and_o be_v train_v up_o in_o the_o school_n of_o affliction_n he_o comfort_v himself_o in_o the_o lord_n his_o god_n he_o make_v he_o his_o rock_n and_o refuge_n he_o ask_v counsel_n of_o he_o &_o follow_v his_o direction_n but_o when_o he_o have_v rest_n from_o enemy_n safety_n from_o danger_n deliverance_n from_o trouble_n comfort_n from_o sorrow_n and_o freedom_n from_o affliction_n he_o fall_v into_o horrible_a sin_n both_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o vriah_n &_o in_o number_v of_o the_o people_n when_o hezekiah_n fall_v sick_a and_o receive_v a_o message_n that_o the_o sickness_n be_v in_o itself_o unto_o death_n esay_n 38_o 2._o he_o turn_v his_o face_n to_o the_o wall_n he_o pray_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o beseech_v the_o lord_n to_o remember_v how_o he_o have_v walk_v before_o he_o in_o the_o truth_n &_o with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n but_o after_o that_o god_n have_v remember_v he_o according_a to_o his_o prayer_n he_o forget_v the_o lord_n incontinent_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v release_v and_o restore_v he_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o ambition_n and_o vainglory_n when_o he_o show_v to_o the_o messenger_n of_o the_o king_n of_o babel_n the_o riches_n of_o his_o kingdom_n the_o house_n of_o his_o armour_n the_o greatness_n of_o his_o treasure_n and_o the_o abundance_n of_o his_o spice_n and_o precious_a ointment_n when_o the_o rich_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v will_v to_o sell_v all_o that_o he_o have_v and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o poor_a &_o thereby_o try_v whether_o he_o love_v the_o lord_n better_a than_o riches_n he_o go_v away_o heavy_a and_o sorrowful_a whereupon_o our_o saviour_n deliver_v this_o warning_n to_o teach_v we_o wisdom_n matth._n 19_o 23._o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o a_o rich_a man_n shall_v hardly_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n he_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o rich_a man_n entrance_n or_o shut_v the_o door_n against_o he_o but_o he_o lay_v before_o he_o his_o danger_n and_o tell_v we_o how_o hardly_o he_o shall_v enter_v he_o never_o say_v in_o the_o gospel_n how_o hardly_o shall_v the_o poor_a man_n enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n he_o never_o say_v how_o hardly_o shall_v he_o that_o be_v persecute_v imprison_a revile_v afflict_a and_o torment_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o warn_v he_o that_o live_v in_o abundance_n to_o look_v to_o his_o foot_n that_o he_o do_v not_o slide_v and_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o his_o heart_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lift_v up_o so_o then_o to_o conclude_v when_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n do_v shine_v in_o our_o dwelling_n when_o he_o fill_v our_o house_n with_o store_n give_v we_o a_o ample_a portion_n of_o wealth_n &_o possession_n when_o he_o furnish_v our_o table_n and_o make_v our_o cup_n to_o run_v over_o let_v we_o bless_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o our_o plenty_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o let_v not_o we_o be_v high_o mind_v and_o trust_v in_o uncertain_a riches_n but_o in_o the_o live_a god_n which_o give_v we_o abundant_o all_o thing_n to_o enjoy_v which_o hart_n can_v wish_v or_o tongue_n can_v crave_v or_o hand_n can_v receyve_v verse_n 2._o which_o call_v the_o people_n unto_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o their_o god_n the_o
youth_n shall_v we_o make_v a_o mock_n of_o it_o and_o a_o may-game_n at_o it_o these_o profane_a beast_n have_v fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o scorner_n god_n allow_v no_o more_o liberty_n in_o sin_v to_o youth_n than_o he_o do_v to_o age_n the_o wise_a man_n will_v such_o to_o remember_v their_o creator_n in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o youth_n eccl._n 12_o 1._o &_o 11._o and_o tell_v they_o that_o for_o all_o the_o lust_n of_o their_o eye_n the_o vanity_n of_o their_o mind_n the_o swinge_n of_o their_o pleasure_n and_o the_o lewdness_n of_o their_o heart_n god_n will_v bring_v they_o to_o judgement_n the_o apostle_n teach_v that_o whoremonger_n and_o adulterer_n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 1_o corinth_n chapter_n 6_o verse_n 9_o the_o wise_a solomon_n say_v he_o that_o commit_v adultery_n with_o a_o woman_n destroy_v his_o own_o soul_n prou._n 6_o verses_z 22_o 33._o and_o so_o be_v accessary_a to_o his_o own_o death_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v he_o shall_v find_v a_o wound_n and_o dishonour_n and_o his_o reproach_n shall_v never_o be_v put_v away_o and_o shall_v we_o make_v a_o sport_n of_o it_o to_o delight_v ourselves_o in_o it_o we_o be_v admonish_v by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n that_o our_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o corinth_n 6_o 19_o so_o that_o see_v god_n vouchsafe_v we_o this_o honour_n to_o choose_v our_o vile_a body_n which_o be_v dust_n and_o ash_n earth_n and_o rottenness_n to_o make_v they_o temple_n and_o tabernacle_n for_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o dwell_v in_o let_v we_o not_o turn_v they_o into_o filthy_a stable_n and_o unclean_a sty_n and_o so_o drive_v he_o from_o we_o who_o will_v possess_v we_o as_o his_o mansion_n and_o dwell_a place_n hereby_o than_o we_o understand_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o judge_v of_o whoredom_n after_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o man_n which_o make_v but_o a_o sport_n and_o pastime_n of_o it_o as_o we_o see_v how_o scoffer_n jest_v at_o it_o and_o despiser_n of_o god_n make_v a_o game_n of_o it_o such_o mocker_n be_v rise_v up_o long_o ago_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o who_o he_o exhort_v we_o to_o beware_v for_o have_v say_v that_o no_o whoremonger_n neither_o unclean_a person_n have_v any_o inheritance_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n he_o add_v in_o the_o next_o place_n let_v no_o man_n deceive_v you_o with_o vain_a word_n for_o for_o such_o thing_n come_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n eph._n 5.5_o 6._o and_o this_o example_n of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n which_o now_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n in_o this_o chapter_n be_v able_a to_o strike_v a_o terror_n and_o fear_n into_o our_o heart_n for_o ever_o break_v out_o into_o this_o iniquity_n the_o life_n of_o man_n be_v precious_a and_o dear_a unto_o god_n we_o be_v creature_n create_v according_a to_o his_o image_n he_o take_v no_o pleasure_n in_o our_o destruction_n now_o in_o that_o he_o destroy_v such_o a_o number_n of_o his_o own_o image_n and_o creature_n for_o this_o sin_n must_v not_o this_o sin_n of_o fornication_n be_v great_a &_o grievous_a which_o kindle_v such_o a_o fire_n of_o his_o vengeance_n and_o indignation_n that_o flame_v out_o so_o far_o and_o can_v not_o be_v quench_v but_o with_o the_o slaughter_n of_o so_o many_o thousand_o three_o it_o behove_v every_o one_o according_a use_v 3_o to_o his_o place_n and_o calling_n to_o punish_v this_o sin_n severe_o that_o so_o evil_a may_v be_v take_v out_o of_o israel_n but_o such_o as_o have_v a_o light_a estimation_n of_o this_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o increase_n of_o it_o do_v object_n the_o example_n of_o christ_n who_o have_v a_o woman_n bring_v before_o he_o object_n that_o be_v sound_a commit_v adultery_n in_o the_o very_a act_n will_v not_o condemn_v she_o nor_o pronounce_v sentence_n of_o death_n upon_o she_o but_o say_v unto_o she_o go_v and_o sin_n no_o more_o john_n 8_o 11._o here_o our_o saviour_n seem_v to_o free_v she_o from_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n levit._n 20_o 10._o i_o answer_v this_o be_v popish_a divinity_n answer_n teach_v in_o the_o day_n of_o darkness_n which_o can_v bear_v the_o trial_n of_o the_o light_n for_o this_o be_v to_o make_v it_o not_o only_o a_o venial_a sin_n but_o no_o sin_n at_o all_o christ_n forgive_v she_o free_o and_o denounce_v no_o punishment_n at_o all_o against_o she_o neither_o of_o limb_n nor_o life_n nor_o chastisement_n nor_o other_o mulct_n be_v inflict_v upon_o she_o so_o that_o if_o it_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o the_o magistrate_n shall_v not_o punish_v whoredom_n sharp_o it_o prove_v as_o well_o that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o punish_v it_o at_o all_o &_o if_o it_o ought_v to_o receive_v no_o correction_n we_o can_v acknowlenge_v it_o for_o any_o transgression_n furthermore_o the_o jew_n be_v in_o subjection_n unto_o the_o roman_n and_o constrain_v to_o bear_v the_o yoke_n of_o foreign_a government_n have_v the_o civil_a punishment_n of_o death_n either_o whole_o take_v from_o they_o or_o at_o least_o suspend_v upon_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o their_o officer_n which_o be_v seldom_o upright_o often_o corrupt_v this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o pharisy_n confess_v in_o the_o gospel_n for_o when_o pilate_n will_v they_o to_o take_v christ_n &_o to_o judge_v he_o after_o their_o own_o law_n although_o the_o malice_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o the_o cruelty_n of_o their_o hand_n be_v against_o he_o yet_o they_o say_v unto_o he_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o we_o to_o put_v any_o man_n to_o death_n john_n 18_o 31._o last_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v a_o earthly_a judge_n to_o give_v sentence_n of_o death_n but_o to_o be_v a_o saviour_n to_o call_v sinner_n to_o repentance_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o he_o refuse_v a_o temporal_a kingdom_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v unto_o he_o 15._o john_n 6_o 15._o and_o deny_v to_o divide_v the_o inheritance_n when_o he_o be_v request_v as_o whole_o impertinent_a unto_o his_o call_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v man_n who_o make_v i_o a_o judge_n or_o a_o divider_n over_o you_o luke_n 12_o 14._o so_o then_o this_o objection_n be_v remove_v it_o belong_v to_o all_o magistrate_n to_o be_v zealous_a in_o punish_v this_o sin_n and_o to_o sharpen_v the_o law_n against_o this_o &_o other_o sin_n that_o bud_n up_o and_o grow_v apace_o among_o we_o lest_o they_o overthrow_v good_a corne._n yea_o it_o appertain_v not_o only_o to_o magistrate_n but_o general_o to_o all_o man_n to_o bring_v such_o offender_n to_o open_a shame_n that_o so_o they_o may_v come_v to_o amendment_n of_o life_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o unclean_a liver_n say_v if_o any_o that_o be_v call_v a_o brother_n be_v a_o fornicator_n or_o covetous_a or_o a_o idolater_n or_o a_o railer_n or_o a_o drunkard_n or_o a_o extortioner_n with_o such_o a_o one_o eat_v not_o 1_o cor._n 5_o 5_o 11_o and_o speak_v of_o a_o incestuous_a person_n he_o charge_v the_o corinthian_n to_o put_v he_o from_o among_o they_o and_o to_o deliver_v he_o to_o satan_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n such_o unclean_a liver_n shall_v be_v sweep_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o have_v the_o sword_n of_o excommunication_n draw_v out_o against_o they_o that_o so_o they_o may_v learn_v not_o to_o transgress_v but_o so_o long_o as_o we_o bear_v with_o such_o person_n and_o foster_v they_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o practice_n be_v too_o common_a neither_o be_v we_o their_o friend_n neither_o be_v we_o the_o friend_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o indeed_o be_v we_o the_o friend_n of_o almighty_a god_n for_o if_o we_o be_v their_o friend_n and_o love_v they_o aright_o we_o will_v seek_v their_o conversion_n and_o repentance_n we_o will_v use_v the_o mean_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o shame_n of_o their_o offence_n to_o a_o sight_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o unto_o a_o confession_n of_o their_o iniquity_n and_o if_o we_o be_v the_o friend_n of_o the_o church_n we_o will_v labour_v to_o separate_v the_o unclean_a from_o the_o clean_a and_o the_o infect_a from_o the_o sound_n know_v that_o a_o little_a leaven_n leaven_v the_o whole_a lump_n and_o if_o we_o be_v the_o friend_n of_o god_n we_o will_v be_v zealous_a of_o his_o glory_n and_o not_o suffer_v his_o name_n to_o be_v profane_v through_o the_o lewd_a and_o wicked_a life_n of_o such_o rot_a member_n for_o so_o long_o as_o such_o be_v harbour_v in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o
regard_v neither_o god_n nor_o man_n neither_o heaven_n nor_o hell_n neither_o salvation_n nor_o damnation_n this_o be_v indeed_o a_o dangerous_a estate_n and_o a_o fearful_a condition_n use_v 2_o second_o see_v evil_a man_n wax_v worse_o &_o worse_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o their_o judgement_n sleep_v not_o but_o be_v increase_v as_o their_o sin_n increase_v yea_o it_o be_v not_o far_o off_o but_o lie_v at_o the_o door_n every_o sin_n be_v in_o it_o own_o nature_n a_o sin_n to_o death_n and_o a_o remove_n from_o god_n the_o wage_n of_o it_o be_v death_n and_o provoke_v to_o a_o utter_a consumption_n of_o we_o rom._n 6_o 23_o how_o then_o can_v we_o answer_v so_o many_o thousand_o if_o one_o be_v so_o grievous_a for_o if_o the_o lord_n mark_v what_o be_v do_v amiss_o who_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v thus_o the_o apostle_n set_v down_o their_o condition_n that_o be_v settle_v in_o wickedness_n that_o their_o condemnation_n long_o since_o rest_v not_o &_o their_o destruction_n stumber_v not_o 2._o pet._n 2_o 3._o so_o then_o we_o may_v assure_v ourselves_o that_o the_o judgment_n of_o god_n follow_v at_o their_o heel_n when_o man_n be_v come_v to_o the_o top_n and_o height_n of_o their_o sin_n thus_o it_o be_v with_o the_o old_a world_n when_o their_o way_n be_v whole_o corrupt_v then_o be_v the_o earth_n universal_o drown_v when_o the_o sodomite_n become_v exceed_v sinner_n against_o the_o lord_n and_o their_o sin_n cry_v to_o heaven_n the_o lord_n rain_v down_o fire_n &_o brimstone_n upon_o they_o when_o israel_n abound_v in_o all_o sin_n that_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n nor_o mercy_n nor_o knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o the_o land_n but_o that_o by_o swear_v and_o lie_v by_o kill_v and_o steal_v they_o break_v out_o and_o blood_n touch_v blood_n the_o lord_n denounce_v by_o his_o prophet_n that_o the_o land_n shall_v mourn_v and_o every_o one_o that_o dwell_v therein_o shall_v he_o cut-off_a hos_fw-la 4_o 1_o 2._o when_o the_o amorites_n have_v fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o sin_n gen._n 15_o 14._o they_o shall_v be_v root_v out_o of_o the_o land_n and_o the_o people_n of_o god_n come_v in_o their_o stead_n where_o the_o lord_n declare_v that_o howsoever_o this_o people_n be_v exceed_v sinner_n in_o the_o day_n of_o abraham_n and_o deserve_v to_o be_v root_v out_o at_o the_o very_a first_o yet_o do_v he_o withhold_v his_o hand_n and_o wait_v for_o their_o repentance_n a_o long_a time_n until_o they_o be_v past_a recovery_n do_v we_o then_o see_v any_o wax_n worse_o and_o worse_o and_o increase_v in_o sin_n as_o they_o grow_v in_o age_n we_o may_v conclude_v that_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v become_v ripe_a nay_o rot_v in_o their_o sin_n the_o appoint_a time_n of_o god_n draw_v on_o to_o destroy_v they_o for_o even_o as_o man_n when_o their_o corn_n be_v waxen_a ripe_a and_o the_o field_n be_v white_a unto_o the_o harvest_n do_v thrust_v in_o their_o sickle_n 29._o mark_n 4_o 29._o and_o cut_v it_o down_o so_o will_v the_o lord_n deal_v with_o all_o the_o ungodly_a for_o when_o their_o sin_n be_v at_o the_o high_a than_o his_o judgement_n be_v at_o the_o near_a according_a as_o the_o apostle_n john_n show_v that_o a_o angel_n come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n unto_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o cloud_n thrust_v in_o thy_o sickle_n and_o reap_v for_o the_o time_n be_v come_v to_o reap_v for_o the_o harvest_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v ripe_a revel_v 14_o 15._o this_o be_v it_o which_o be_v declare_v in_o a_o vision_n unto_o amos_n where_o the_o lord_n show_v unto_o he_o a_o basket_n of_o summer_n fruit_n and_o say_v amos_n what_o see_v thou_o who_o answer_v a_o basket_n of_o summer_n fruit_n then_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o he_o the_o end_n be_v come_v upon_o my_o people_n of_o israel_n i_o will_v pass_v by_o they_o no_o more_o amos_n 8_o 1_o 2._o declare_v thereby_o the_o ripeness_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o the_o readiness_n of_o god_n judgement_n to_o give_v they_o their_o reward_n wherefore_o whatsoever_o sin_n ungodly_a man_n commit_v the_o old_a be_v not_o forget_v and_o only_o the_o new_a remember_v but_o all_o both_o old_a and_o new_a do_v come_v together_o &_o add_v unto_o the_o heap_n that_o the_o measure_n be_v full_a press_v down_o shake_v together_o and_o run_v over_o certain_a destruction_n may_v fall_v upon_o they_o let_v we_o not_o make_v a_o mock_n of_o sin_n or_o think_v that_o god_n have_v forget_v it_o when_o we_o have_v forget_v it_o the_o iniquity_n that_o man_n commit_v one_o day_n be_v forget_v with_o they_o the_o next_o and_o such_o as_o be_v practise_v in_o their_o youth_n be_v past_o their_o knowledge_n before_o they_o come_v to_o age_n but_o we_o can_v hide_v they_o from_o the_o almighty_a who_o write_v bitter_a thing_n against_o we_o and_o make_v we_o to_o possess_v the_o iniquity_n of_o our_o youth_n job_n 14_o 26._o psal_n 25.7_o every_o sin_n shall_v help_v somewhat_o to_o increase_v the_o weight_n and_o make_v our_o account_n the_o great_a in_o the_o day_n of_o account_n for_o as_o every_o corn_n of_o wheat_n help_v to_o fill_v up_o the_o bushel_n and_o to_o enlarge_v the_o heap_n so_o do_v every_o sin_n that_o we_o commit_v help_v to_o bring_v our_o wickedness_n to_o the_o full_a and_o as_o man_n keep_v their_o book_n of_o reckon_n and_o account_n which_o they_o will_v bring_v forth_o when_o they_o be_v to_o reckon_v so_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o he_o see_v and_o remember_v our_o offence_n be_v say_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n to_o keep_v a_o register_n of_o the_o deed_n of_o man_n and_o to_o write_v they_o up_o in_o the_o same_o and_o every_o sin_n serve_v to_o fill_v up_o the_o account_n revel_v 20_o 12._o he_o note_v so_o many_o oath_n as_o every_o day_n come_v from_o our_o unclean_a mouth_n our_o drunkenness_n at_o this_o time_n and_o that_o place_n and_o in_o that_o company_n our_o whoredom_n uncleanness_n and_o wantonness_n our_o contempt_n of_o his_o word_n our_o neglect_n of_o this_o sermon_n and_o that_o sermon_n on_o this_o sabbath_n and_o on_o such_o a_o sabbath_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v find_v when_o the_o day_n of_o reckon_n come_v sin_n upon_o sin_n and_o heap_n upon_o heap_n until_o the_o measure_n run_v over_o and_o when_o we_o must_v go_v the_o way_n of_o all_o flesh_n they_o will_v stand_v before_o we_o as_o a_o huge_a sea_n whereof_o we_o can_v sound_v no_o bottom_n to_o swallow_v we_o up_o for_o if_o we_o must_v give_v a_o account_n for_o every_o idle_a word_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n mat._n 12_o 36_o how_o much_o more_o for_o our_o blasphemy_n and_o unclean_a deed_n which_o be_v without_o number_n which_o shall_v make_v we_o cry_v out_o with_o the_o prophet_n o_o lord_n i_o know_v that_o the_o way_n of_o man_n be_v not_o in_o himself_o neither_o be_v it_o in_o man_n to_o walk_v &_o to_o direct_v his_o step_n lord_n correct_v i_o but_o with_o judgement_n not_o in_o thy_o anger_n lest_o thou_o bring_v i_o to_o nothing_o jer._n 10_o 23_o 24._o to_o conclude_v howsoever_o god_n spare_v long_o because_o he_o be_v patient_a yet_o if_o we_o grow_v worse_o and_o worse_o and_o abuse_v his_o patience_n and_o run_v into_o all_o riot_n and_o excess_n of_o sin_n he_o will_v fill_v up_o the_o viol_n of_o his_o judgement_n and_o pour_v out_o his_o wrath_n upon_o we_o to_o the_o utmost_a this_o serve_v to_o answer_v the_o curiosity_n and_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o many_o man_n who_o see_v wicked_a man_n proceed_v in_o sin_n and_o prosper_v in_o their_o way_n be_v offend_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o say_v do_v not_o the_o lord_n see_v this_o or_o be_v there_o no_o righteousness_n in_o the_o almighty_a why_o do_v the_o way_n of_o the_o wicked_a prosper_v and_o why_o be_v they_o in_o wealth_n that_o rebellious_o transgress_v jer._n 12_o 1._o god_n suffer_v wicked_a man_n a_o long_a time_n because_o their_o sin_n be_v not_o yet_o full_a the_o measure_n be_v not_o fill_v up_o but_o wait_v a_o while_n and_o they_o shall_v not_o go_v unpunished_a use_v 3_o last_o see_v man_n give_v themselves_o over_o to_o sin_n come_v at_o the_o last_o to_o be_v freeze_v in_o the_o dregs_n of_o it_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o resist_v the_o beginning_n to_o prevent_v the_o breach_n and_o to_o stop_v the_o first_o course_n of_o it_o it_o be_v as_o a_o serpent_n that_o must_v be_v tread_v on_o in_o the_o egg_n it_o be_v as_o a_o birth_n that_o will_v be_v smother_v in_o the_o conception_n let_v we_o take_v heed_n that_o sin_n grow_v not_o into_o a_o custom_n and_o get_v a_o habit_n this_o be_v it_o which_o
manna_n as_o a_o light_a meat_n he_o smite_v they_o with_o a_o exceed_a great_a plague_n he_o slay_v the_o strong_a of_o they_o and_o smite_v down_o the_o choose_a man_n of_o israel_n so_o that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o place_n be_v call_v the_o grave_n of_o lust_n because_o there_o they_o bury_v the_o people_n that_o fall_v a_o lust_a numb_a 11.33_o when_o corah_n dathan_n &_o abiram_n rise_v up_o against_o moses_n back_v with_o certain_a captain_n famous_a in_o the_o congregation_n and_o man_n of_o renown_n they_o be_v swallow_v up_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o consume_v with_o fire_n and_o on_o the_o morrow_n when_o the_o multitude_n murmur_v against_o moses_n and_o aaron_n say_v you_o have_v kill_v the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n 49._o numb_a 16_o 41_o 49._o he_o send_v a_o plague_n among_o they_o that_o quick_o waste_v &_o consume_v fourteen_o thousand_o and_o seven_o hundred_o beside_o they_o that_o die_v in_o the_o conspiracy_n of_o korah_n when_o david_n have_v sin_v in_o number_v of_o the_o people_n and_o in_o glory_v in_o his_o own_o strength_n 2_o sam._n 24_o 15_o the_o lord_n send_v a_o pestilence_n in_o israel_n and_o there_o dye_v of_o the_o people_n from_o dan_n to_o beersheba_n seventy_o thousand_o man_n the_o apostle_n jude_n produce_v sundry_a example_n to_o this_o purpose_n of_o the_o angel_n that_o be_v reserve_v in_o everlasting_a chain_n under_o darkness_n unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o israelite_n who_o albeit_o they_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o egypt_n yet_o be_v afterward_o destroy_v because_o they_o believe_v not_o 5._o ●●de_n 6_o 5._o of_o those_o ungodly_a man_n that_o turn_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o wantonness_n and_o be_v ordain_v to_o condemnation_n the_o truth_n here_o of_o shall_v more_o full_o and_o wonderful_o appear_v in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n when_o justice_n only_o shall_v be_v execute_v and_o the_o lord_n show_v himself_o to_o the_o wicked_a only_o as_o a_o terrible_a judge_n he_o shall_v come_v from_o heaven_n with_o all_o his_o mighty_a angel_n with_o a_o great_a shout_n and_o with_o the_o trumpet_n of_o god_n to_o render_v vengeance_n unto_o they_o which_o know_v not_o god_n and_o which_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a perdition_n from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o from_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o power_n 2_o thess_n 1_o 9_o then_o they_o shall_v say_v unto_o the_o mountain_n and_o rock_n fall_v on_o we_o and_o hide_v we_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n and_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lamb_n for_o the_o great_a day_n of_o his_o wrath_n be_v come_v and_o who_o can_v stand_v revel_v 6_o 16._o and_o to_o the_o end_n no_o doubt_n hereof_o shall_v remain_v reason_n 1_o in_o we_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o reason_n the_o anger_n of_o god_n be_v as_o himself_o be_v infinite_a and_o without_o end_n so_o that_o nothing_o be_v able_a to_o stand_v before_o he_o this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o prophet_n david_n teach_v psal_n 90_o 11._o who_o know_v the_o power_n of_o thy_o wrath_n or_o of_o thy_o anger_n according_a to_o thy_o fear_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v when_o thy_o hand_n be_v any_o way_n heavy_a upon_o we_o no_o man_n stand_v in_o awe_n of_o thy_o indignation_n and_o fearful_a displeasure_n so_o much_o as_o thou_o and_o thy_o anger_n ought_v to_o be_v fear_v of_o us._n hereunto_o accord_v the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n nah._n 1_o 5_o 6_o the_o mountain_n tremble_v for_o he_o and_o the_o hill_n melt_v and_o the_o earth_n be_v burn_v at_o his_o sight_n yea_o the_o world_n and_o all_o that_o dwell_v therein_o who_o can_v stand_v before_o his_o wrath_n or_o who_o can_v abide_v in_o the_o fierceness_n of_o his_o wrath_n his_o wrath_n be_v pour_v out_o like_o fire_n and_o the_o rock_n be_v break_v by_o he_o if_o then_o his_o wrath_n be_v infinite_a without_o limitation_n of_o time_n without_o circumscription_n of_o place_n and_o without_o respect_n of_o person_n so_o that_o the_o heaven_n melt_v the_o mountain_n be_v dissolve_v and_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v discover_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o when_o he_o be_v move_v his_o wrath_n be_v very_o full_a of_o rage_n and_o revenge_n second_o we_o must_v needs_o hold_v that_o plenty_n reason_n 2_o of_o desolation_n be_v make_v in_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o comparison_n whereby_o it_o be_v express_v it_o be_v compare_v sometime_o to_o the_o roar_n of_o a_o lion_n which_o make_v all_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o forest_n to_o tremble_v it_o be_v a_o fearful_a voice_n it_o make_v man_n and_o beast_n to_o stand_v in_o fear_n this_o the_o prophet_n amos_n express_v the_o lion_n have_v roar_v who_o will_v not_o be_v afraid_a the_o lord_n god_n have_v speak_v who_o can_v but_o prophesy_v amos_n 3.4_o 8._o sometime_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o violent_a fire_n that_o spread_v itself_o far_o and_o near_o this_o moses_n do_v teach_v the_o people_n when_o he_o will_v they_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o themselves_o lest_o they_o forgive_v the_o covenant_n of_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n and_o make_v to_o themselves_o any_o grave_a image_n say_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n be_v a_o consume_a fire_n and_o a_o jealous_a god_n deut._n 4_o 24._o &_o 9_o 3._o fire_n we_o know_v be_v fierce_a and_o fearful_a waste_v and_o devour_v all_o thing_n before_o it_o so_o that_o nothing_o be_v able_a to_o resist_v the_o strength_n and_o force_n thereof_o we_o say_v in_o a_o common_a proverb_n that_o fire_n and_o water_n be_v without_o mercy_n they_o be_v of_o a_o untamed_a nature_n even_o so_o be_v the_o displeasure_n of_o almighty_a god_n be_v provoke_v by_o sin_n intolerable_a unspeakable_a unsearchable_a without_o limitation_n of_o time_n of_o quantity_n or_o quality_n and_o therefore_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v arm_v with_o great_a wrath_n kindle_v against_o the_o ungodly_a use_v 1_o the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v very_o many_o but_o we_o will_v stand_v only_o upon_o the_o principal_a first_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o it_o be_v a_o fearful_a thing_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o so_o mighty_a a_o god_n it_o be_v extreme_a madness_n for_o any_o man_n to_o set_v himself_o against_o such_o a_o god_n who_o be_v able_a to_o prevail_v that_o have_v he_o his_o enemy_n take_v heed_n therefore_o god_n will_v not_o be_v mock_v be_v we_o strong_a than_o he_o that_o we_o shall_v fight_v against_o he_o this_o be_v the_o use_n which_o the_o apostle_n make_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n we_o know_v he_o that_o have_v say_v vengeance_n be_v i_o i_o will_v recompense_v hebr._n 10_o 30_o 31_o and_o again_o the_o lord_n shall_v judge_v his_o people_n it_o be_v a_o fearful_a thing_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o live_a god._n there_o be_v no_o jest_n nor_o dally_v with_o so_o fearful_a and_o dreadful_a a_o majesty_n who_o be_v so_o great_a in_o power_n glorious_a in_o holiness_n fearful_a in_o praise_n terrible_a in_o his_o anger_n and_o just_a in_o all_o his_o do_n exod_a 15_o 11._o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n together_o with_o the_o earth_n and_o all_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v the_o lest_o spark_n of_o his_o displeasure_n when_o it_o be_v kindle_v the_o flame_n whereof_o shall_v burn_v up_o the_o wicked_a and_o shall_v we_o play_v with_o he_o in_o his_o anger_n as_o with_o a_o little_a child_n alas_o then_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o the_o wretched_a soul_n of_o wicked_a and_o damnable_a man_n when_o his_o wrath_n shall_v smoke_v against_o they_o and_o the_o whole_a viol_n of_o his_o fury_n shall_v be_v pour_v down_o upon_o they_o o_o how_o miserable_a shall_v their_o anguish_n and_o tribulation_n be_v and_o how_o infinite_a and_o unmeasurable_a their_o torment_n which_o shall_v be_v thus_o plague_v condemn_v and_o curse_a of_o the_o lord_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o swearer_n drunkard_n whoremonger_n and_o such_o like_a in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n wrath_n they_o shall_v wish_v that_o they_o have_v never_o be_v bear_v mat._n 26_o 24_o they_o shall_v think_v it_o a_o benefit_n if_o they_o have_v be_v bear_v toad_n and_o if_o they_o can_v behold_v at_o the_o least_o in_o these_o their_o day_n but_o a_o shadow_n of_o the_o misery_n that_o remain_v for_o they_o and_o of_o the_o pit_n of_o destruction_n that_o gape_v for_o they_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o swallow_v they_o up_o in_o heaviness_n and_o make_v they_o even_o dissolve_v themselves_o into_o tear_n and_o torment_n as_o pass_v all_o that_o can_v be_v speak_v or_o think_v thereof_o but_o now_o
these_o thing_n be_v hide_v from_o their_o eye_n and_o can_v enter_v into_o their_o heart_n yet_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o those_o that_o work_n iniquity_n god_n will_v rain_v down_o upon_o the_o wicked_a snare_n fire_n &_o brimstone_n &_o stormy_a tempest_n this_o be_v the_o portion_n of_o their_o cup_n for_o the_o righteous_a lord_n love_v righteousness_n his_o countenance_n do_v behold_v the_o just_a psal_n 11_o 6_o 7._o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v and_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v a_o bless_a thing_n to_o be_v at_o peace_n with_o god_n it_o be_v a_o great_a blessing_n to_o live_v at_o peace_n in_o the_o world_n and_o to_o be_v in_o unity_n with_o man_n among_o who_o we_o live_v but_o much_o more_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a be_v it_o to_o be_v at_o one_o with_o the_o eternal_a god_n so_o as_o he_o have_v no_o controversy_n against_o us._n this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o prophet_n conclude_v kiss_v the_o son_n lest_o he_o be_v angry_a &_o so_o you_o perish_v in_o the_o way_n when_o his_o wrath_n shall_v sudden_o burn_v bless_a be_v all_o they_o that_o trust_v in_o he_o psal_n 2_o 12._o so_o then_o as_o the_o estate_n of_o all_o the_o ungodly_a that_o be_v under_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v most_o miserable_a so_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o godly_a how_o soever_o account_v of_o by_o the_o unfaithful_a of_o the_o world_n be_v happy_a and_o bless_a who_o be_v safe_a under_o the_o wing_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v be_v deliver_v in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n second_o we_o must_v be_v wise_a and_o circumspect_a use_v 2_o to_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o do_v not_o kindle_v it_o to_o our_o own_o confusion_n this_o be_v the_o exhortation_n of_o moses_n to_o the_o people_n take_v heed_n that_o there_o be_v not_o among_o you_o man_n nor_o family_n nor_o tribe_n which_o shall_v turn_v their_o heart_n away_o from_o the_o live_a god_n that_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v among_o you_o any_o root_n that_o bring_v forth_o gall_n and_o wormwood_n for_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o jealousy_n shall_v smoke_v against_o that_o man_n &_o every_o curse_n that_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n shall_v light_v upon_o he_o and_o the_o lord_n shall_v put_v out_o his_o name_n from_o under_o heaven_n deut._n 29_o 8._o this_o serve_v to_o reproove_v such_o as_o be_v in_o this_o point_n like_o the_o horse_n and_o mule_n that_o be_v without_o knowledge_n and_o have_v no_o understanding_n they_o never_o regard_v the_o judgment_n of_o god_n present_a they_o never_o seek_v to_o prevent_v they_o be_v to_o come_v this_o be_v it_o which_o our_o saviour_n touch_v in_o the_o jew_n when_o he_o come_v near_o the_o city_n he_o weep_v for_o it_o and_o say_v if_o thou_o have_v even_o know_v at_o the_o least_o in_o this_o thy_o day_n those_o thing_n which_o belong_v unto_o thy_o peace_n but_o now_o be_v they_o hide_v from_o thy_o eye_n luke_n 19_o 42._o it_o be_v therefore_o our_o duty_n to_o labour_v to_o know_v the_o time_n of_o his_o judgment_n it_o be_v unpossible_a to_o avoid_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n unless_o we_o have_v a_o care_n to_o know_v it_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n to_o come_v upon_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v foreknow_v three_o way_n first_o way_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n to_o come_v be_v for●_n know_v thr●_n way_n by_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o by_o reason_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n second_o by_o sign_n and_o wonder_n which_o god_n show_v in_o heaven_n or_o in_o earth_n or_o in_o the_o sea_n three_o by_o plague_n and_o punishment_n that_o he_o send_v the_o which_o as_o they_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o his_o anger_n present_a so_o they_o be_v testimony_n and_o token_n of_o great_a judgment_n to_o come_v and_o as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o that_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v resemble_v oftentimes_o to_o a_o consume_a fire_n so_o we_o understand_v that_o a_o fire_n be_v already_o kindle_v &_o will_v grow_v great_a by_o these_o three_o mean_n before_o express_v to_o wit_n c._n zanch_n de_fw-fr di●●●_n attrib_o lib._n 4._o c._n either_o by_o the_o report_n of_o credible_a witness_n or_o by_o behold_v of_o the_o smoke_n ascend_v or_o by_o sensible_a perceive_v of_o the_o flame_n break_v out_o which_o be_v a_o fearful_a sign_n of_o a_o far_a fire_n and_o a_o great_a burn_n except_o it_o be_v speedy_o quench_v and_o prevent_v first_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v foreshow_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n which_o be_v inspire_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o foretell_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n to_o come_v upon_o we_o for_o our_o sin_n and_o as_o the_o law_n of_o god_n set_v down_o sundry_a threaten_n and_o curse_n so_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n out_o of_o the_o same_o do_v denounce_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n &_o gather_v that_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n hang_v over_o a_o kingdom_n or_o city_n by_o a_o infallible_a conclusion_n without_o repentance_n for_o where_o sin_n reign_v there_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n come_v but_o in_o this_o nation_n or_o city_n or_o family_n sin_n reign_v wherefore_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n hang_v over_o such_o a_o nation_n city_n or_o house_n such_o threaten_n denounce_v by_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n 30._o 〈◊〉_d 28_o 20._o 〈◊〉_d 26_o 21._o cor._n 11_o 30._o collect_v by_o certain_a reason_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v but_o fear_v not_o to_o be_v pass_v over_o but_o to_o be_v prevent_v not_o to_o be_v deride_v but_o to_o be_v apply_v to_o our_o conscience_n that_o if_o we_o find_v those_o sin_n in_o we_o we_o may_v labour_v earnest_o to_o repent_v of_o they_o for_o albeit_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n do_v not_o speak_v by_o special_a inspiration_n and_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o prophet_n yet_o their_o threaten_n be_v not_o void_a and_o vain_a but_o be_v ground_v upon_o effectual_a reason_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o behold_v of_o present_a wickedness_n that_o abound_v every_o where_n we_o must_v not_o therefore_o account_v they_o as_o scarecrow_n which_o can_v hurt_v for_o god_n will_v make_v they_o powerful_a in_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o servant_n so_o that_o they_o which_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v to_o fear_v they_o shall_v be_v constrain_v certain_o to_o feel_v they_o whether_o they_o will_v or_o not_o another_o mean_n to_o give_v we_o understand_v of_o god_n wrath_n before_o it_o fall_v be_v by_o the_o undoubted_a sign_n and_o token_n which_o be_v as_o the_o messenger_n of_o god_n and_o the_o forerunner_n of_o wrath_n which_o we_o see_v in_o heaven_n above_o or_o in_o the_o earth_n beneath_o or_o in_o the_o water_n for_o whensoever_o god_n be_v determine_v in_o his_o heavy_a but_o yet_o just_a judgement_n to_o bring_v any_o plague_n upon_o the_o world_n and_o to_o make_v manifest_a his_o fierce_a indignation_n he_o use_v to_o send_v certain_a token_n of_o his_o anger_n to_o testify_v that_o it_o be_v not_o far_o off_o which_o be_v as_o the_o sprouting_n of_o the_o figtree_n signify_v that_o summer_n be_v near_o thus_o do_v christ_n foretell_v the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o sign_n which_o shall_v go_v before_o they_o 32._o 〈◊〉_d 24_o 32._o say_v learn_v the_o parable_n of_o the_o figtree_n when_o her_o bough_n be_v yet_o tender_a &_o it_o put_v forth_o leaf_n you_o know_v that_o the_o summer_n be_v never_o so_o likewise_o you_o when_o you_o see_v all_o these_o thing_n know_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v near_o even_o at_o the_o door_n these_o appear_v in_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o moon_n in_o the_o star_n in_o the_o element_n and_o in_o the_o creature_n when_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n be_v alter_v &_o change_v ●_o 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr bell_n 〈◊〉_d lib._n 7._o cap._n ●_o the_o very_a insensible_a and_o unreasonable_a thing_n do_v preach_v repentance_n unto_o we_o and_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v and_o not_o despise_v last_o the_o former_a punishment_n be_v a_o forerunner_n of_o a_o further_a judgement_n the_o small_a of_o a_o great_a and_o the_o first_o of_o a_o second_o god_n bring_v sundry_a plague_n upon_o pharaoh_n king_n of_o egypt_n but_o such_o as_o come_v after_o press_v and_o punish_v he_o more_o than_o such_o as_o go_v before_o when_o christ_n have_v foretell_v many_o evilles_n that_o shall_v come_v upon_o jerusalem_n for_o their_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o their_o refuse_v of_o all_o grace_n offer_v unto_o they_o he_o add_v mat._n 24_o 6_o 8._o the_o end_n be_v not_o yet_o all_o these_o be_v but_o the_o begin_n of_o sorrow_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v there_o shall_v more_o in_o
number_n and_o great_a in_o weight_n follow_v after_o these_o when_o god_n send_v the_o barrenness_n of_o ground_n the_o blast_a of_o corn_n the_o unseasonablenesse_n of_o weather_n the_o overflow_a of_o water_n the_o infection_n of_o sickness_n &_o such_o like_a scourge_n of_o his_o hand_n they_o be_v evident_a mark_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o the_o very_a print_n of_o his_o footstep_n whereby_o we_o may_v trace_v he_o out_o come_v against_o we_o to_o destroy_v us._n they_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o god_n to_o cite_v and_o summon_v we_o to_o answer_v before_o he_o for_o our_o contempt_n of_o his_o word_n and_o of_o his_o former_a threaten_n when_o he_o take_v away_o faithful_a man_n that_o fear_v his_o name_n &_o especial_o good_a prince_n and_o godly_a ruler_n it_o be_v a_o assure_a token_n that_o his_o wrath_n begin_v to_o be_v kindle_v and_o will_v overtake_v the_o remnant_n of_o the_o people_n when_o the_o head_n be_v smite_v it_o can_v be_v but_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n must_v immediate_o after_o smart_n for_o it_o thus_o god_n threaten_v in_o the_o prophet_n esay_n 3_o 2._o &_o 57_o 1._o that_o he_o will_v take_v away_o the_o strong_a man_n and_o the_o man_n of_o war_n the_o judge_n and_o the_o prophet_n the_o prudent_a and_o the_o age_a the_o captain_n of_o fifty_o and_o the_o honourable_a and_o the_o counsellor_n and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o righteous_a perish_v and_o no_o man_n consider_v it_o in_o heart_n and_o merciful_a man_n be_v take_v away_o and_o no_o man_n understand_v that_o the_o righteous_a be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o evil_a to_o come_v a_o notable_a example_n hereof_o we_o have_v in_o noah_n and_o his_o family_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o ark_n and_o the_o door_n of_o it_o shut_v up_o immediate_o the_o rain_n fall_v the_o flood_n come_v the_o fountain_n of_o the_o deep_a be_v break_v up_o the_o window_n of_o heaven_n be_v open_v &_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v drown_v gen._n 7_o 16._o &_o 19_o 16._o when_o lot_n and_o his_o family_n be_v bring_v out_o of_o sodom_n and_o set_v without_o the_o city_n the_o lord_n be_v merciful_a to_o they_o the_o lord_n rain_v fire_n and_o brimstone_n from_o heaven_n upon_o the_o people_n of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrah_n when_o the_o godly_a king_n josiah_n be_v take_v away_o that_o his_o eye_n shall_v not_o see_v all_o the_o evil_n which_o the_o lord_n will_v bring_v upon_o the_o land_n the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n arise_v against_o they_o they_o mock_v the_o messenger_n of_o god_n despise_v his_o word_n and_o misuse_v his_o prophet_n and_o he_o bring_v upon_o they_o the_o king_n of_o the_o chaldean_n who_o slay_v their_o young_a man_n with_o the_o sword_n and_o spare_v neither_o young_a man_n nor_o virgin_n ancient_a nor_o age_a god_n give_v all_o into_o his_o hand_n 2_o kin._n 22_o 20_o 2_o chron._n 36_o 16._o moreover_o the_o lord_n have_v other_o scourge_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o soul_n as_o when_o he_o take_v away_o godly_a minister_n &_o with_o they_o his_o holy_a word_n so_o he_o threaten_v by_o the_o prophet_n amos_n to_o send_v a_o famine_n of_o his_o word_n chap._n 8_o 11._o this_o be_v a_o token_n that_o god_n will_v forsake_v that_o people_n and_o condemn_v they_o to_o death_n when_o he_o take_v from_o they_o the_o mean_n and_o maintenance_n of_o their_o life_n these_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o great_a judgement_n and_o by_o they_o we_o may_v judge_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n to_o be_v at_o hand_n which_o be_v as_o a_o warn_a piece_n unto_o that_o volley_n of_o the_o lord_n ordinance_n which_o our_o great_a sin_n have_v cause_v he_o to_o mount_v up_o against_o we_o and_o he_o threaten_v to_o discharge_v upon_o us._n so_o then_o it_o behoove_v we_o not_o to_o be_v dull_a and_o drowsy_a in_o mark_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n &_o the_o sign_n of_o his_o wrath_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v be_v prepare_v to_o prevent_v they_o and_o to_o meet_v the_o lord_n by_o unfeigned_a repentance_n before_o they_o fall_v upon_o us._n use_v 3_o three_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o pray_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o entreat_v he_o that_o albeit_o we_o continual_o provoke_v he_o by_o our_o sin_n yet_o that_o he_o will_v not_o fall_v upon_o we_o in_o his_o wrath_n nor_o punish_v we_o in_o his_o sore_a displesure_n but_o deal_v with_o we_o as_o a_o father_n with_o his_o child_n this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o prophet_n crave_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n psal_n 6_o 1._o &_o 38_o 1_o 2._o to_o this_o purpose_n jeremy_n speak_v of_o the_o captivity_n at_o hand_n pray_v thus_o jer._n 10_o 24_o 25._o o_o lord_n correct_v i_o but_o with_o judgement_n not_o in_o thy_o anger_n lest_o thou_o bring_v i_o to_o nothing_o pour_v out_o thy_o wrath_n upon_o the_o heathen_a that_o know_v thou_o not_o etc._n etc._n if_o the_o lord_n shall_v deal_v with_o we_o according_a to_o our_o sin_n and_o recompense_v we_o according_a to_o our_o deserve_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o stand_v in_o his_o sight_n if_o he_o shall_v enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o we_o no_o flesh_n shall_v be_v righteous_a before_o he_o we_o must_v therefore_o desire_v he_o to_o chastise_v we_o as_o a_o father_n not_o as_o a_o judge_n to_o amend_v we_o not_o to_o destroy_v we_o as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o his_o own_o experience_n psal_n 118_o 18._o the_o lord_n have_v chastened_a i_o sore_o but_o he_o have_v not_o deliver_v i_o to_o death_n use_v 4_o last_o we_o must_v be_v provoke_v upon_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n full_a of_o rage_n &_o jealousy_n move_v with_o our_o sin_n to_o seek_v to_o please_v he_o to_o forsake_v our_o iniquity_n and_o to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n this_o be_v the_o use_n which_o the_o apostle_n make_v heb._n 12_o 28_o 29._o see_v we_o receive_v a_o kingdom_n which_o can_v be_v shake_v let_v we_o have_v grace_n whereby_o we_o may_v so_o serve_v god_n that_o we_o may_v please_v he_o with_o reverence_n &_o fear_n etc._n etc._n so_o we_o be_v charge_v to_o mortify_v our_o member_n which_o be_v on_o earth_n as_o fornication_n uncleanness_n and_o such_o like_a because_o for_o such_o thing_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n come_v on_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n col._n 3_o 5_o 6._o so_o then_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o fierceness_n of_o god_n wrath_n must_v bring_v we_o near_o unto_o he_o and_o make_v we_o obedient_a to_o his_o will_n let_v we_o walk_v in_o all_o his_o commandment_n and_o make_v conscience_n of_o all_o our_o way_n let_v we_o study_v to_o please_v god_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o to_o be_v fruitful_a in_o good_a work_n let_v we_o live_v sober_o righteous_o and_o godly_a in_o this_o life_n and_o show_v forth_o the_o lively_a fruit_n of_o he_o that_o have_v call_v we_o out_o of_o darkness_n into_o this_o marvelous_a light_n that_o so_o his_o wrath_n do_v not_o overtake_v we_o nor_o his_o judgement_n find_v we_o unprepared_a we_o shall_v always_o live_v as_o if_o we_o shall_v die_v present_o or_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n come_v immediate_o for_o what_o shall_v it_o profit_v we_o to_o live_v in_o all_o pleasure_n and_o carnal_a delight_n for_o a_o few_o year_n and_o then_o to_o suffer_v eternal_a torment_n what_o shall_v it_o avail_v we_o to_o win_v the_o world_n &_o then_o to_o lose_v our_o own_o foul_n matth._n 16_o 26._o be_v not_o they_o more_o than_o mad_a man_n that_o will_v hazard_v their_o soul_n &_o procure_v the_o heavy_a wrath_n of_o god_n for_o a_o little_a profit_n and_o a_o short_a pleasure_n let_v such_o as_o will_v not_o be_v draw_v from_o their_o sweet_a sin_n assure_v themselves_o they_o shall_v one_o day_n pay_v dear_o for_o it_o and_o taste_v the_o most_o bitter_a woe_n that_o can_v be_v conceive_v when_o they_o shall_v be_v separate_v from_o god_n shut_v out_o of_o his_o favour_n and_o be_v bar_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n oh_o that_o there_o be_v in_o we_o wise_a heart_n to_o consider_v these_o thing_n betimes_o and_o to_o prevent_v all_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o hang_v over_o our_o head_n let_v we_o prepare_v ourselves_o against_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n than_o which_o nothing_o be_v more_o terrible_a against_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n than_o which_o nothing_o be_v more_o horrible_a and_o against_o the_o danger_n of_o hell_n fire_n than_o which_o nothing_o be_v more_o intolerable_a the_o pain_n &_o pang_n whereof_o be_v without_o end_n without_o ease_n without_o remedy_n verse_n 10_o 11_o 12_o 13._o then_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o moses_n say_v phinehas_n the_o son_n of_o eleazar_n have_v turn_v my_o anger_n away_o from_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n etc._n etc._n we_o have_v see_v the_o zeal_n of_o phinehas_n in_o
the_o sin_n may_v be_v know_v and_o the_o man_n also_o know_v that_o do_v commit_v it_o and_o to_o what_o end_n do_v the_o apostle_n john_n tell_v we_o 1_o john_n 5_o ver_fw-la 16._o there_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o death_n and_o of_o see_v our_o brother_n sin_n unto_o death_n if_o then_o it_o may_v be_v see_v it_o may_v be_v know_v and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o when_o the_o church_n see_v julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la who_o have_v be_v enlighten_v with_o the_o truth_n and_o be_v zealous_a in_o the_o profession_n of_o it_o to_o despite_n god_n open_o to_o lift_v up_o himself_o against_o his_o word_n and_o to_o make_v a_o mock_n of_o all_o religion_n they_o will_v have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v with_o he_o they_o account_v he_o as_o a_o devil_n and_o they_o pray_v with_o one_o consent_n against_o he_o that_o god_n will_v confound_v and_o destroy_v he_o they_o do_v not_o pray_v unto_o god_n for_o his_o conversion_n and_o to_o give_v he_o a_o new_a heart_n but_o because_o he_o can_v not_o repent_v be_v past_a amendment_n they_o call_v upon_o god_n to_o hasten_v his_o condemnation_n that_o he_o may_v show_v thereby_o what_o account_n he_o make_v of_o his_o most_o holy_a truth_n last_o of_o all_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v a_o care_n to_o be_v use_v 3_o helpful_a and_o profitable_a to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o be_v zealous_a in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n that_o thereby_o to_o the_o comfort_n of_o ourselves_o and_o our_o posterity_n we_o may_v carry_v a_o sweet_a remembrance_n &_o a_o bless_a report_n in_o the_o church_n for_o ever_o the_o love_n of_o mary_n in_o anoint_v christ_n with_o the_o precious_a oil_n which_o she_o pour_v on_o his_o head_n be_v promise_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v remember_v for_o ever_o in_o what_o place_n of_o the_o world_n soever_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v publish_v very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o whersoever_o this_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v throughout_o all_o the_o world_n there_o shall_v also_o this_o that_o she_o have_v do_v be_v speak_v of_o for_o a_o memorial_n of_o she_o matth._n 26_o 13._o the_o praise_n of_o jehoiada_n be_v record_v in_o scripture_n he_o die_v a_o old_a man_n and_o full_a of_o day_n &_o they_o bury_v he_o in_o the_o city_n of_o david_n with_o the_o king_n because_o he_o have_v do_v good_a in_o israel_n and_o towards_o god_n &_o his_o house_n 2_o chr._n 14_o 16._o this_o serve_v to_o reproove_v such_o as_o care_v not_o at_o all_o what_o man_n think_v or_o speak_v of_o they_o and_o regard_v not_o what_o name_n they_o have_v good_a or_o bad_a what_o report_n be_v give_v of_o they_o honourable_a or_o dishonourable_a sweet_a or_o rot_a so_o they_o may_v prevail_v in_o their_o purpose_n 1._o cicer._n of_o flic_n l_o 1._o and_o bring_v to_o effect_v their_o devilish_a device_n a_o heathen_a man_n can_v say_v it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o reckless_a and_o dissolute_a man_n to_o neglect_v what_o a_o man_n say_v of_o he_o solomon_n teach_v we_o that_o a_o good_a name_n be_v more_o to_o be_v desire_v then_o great_a riches_n and_o a_o love_a favour_n more_o than_o silver_n and_o gold_n pro._n 22_o 1_o eccles_n 7_o 3_o this_o be_v not_o attain_v by_o flattery_n or_o falsehood_n but_o by_o godliness_n and_o righteousness_n by_o humility_n and_o a_o upright_a conscience_n riches_n be_v frail_a and_o transitory_a subject_a to_o vanity_n and_o corruption_n but_o a_o good_a name_n and_o love_a favour_n remain_v for_o ever_o so_o the_o prophet_n describe_v the_o blessedness_n of_o the_o man_n that_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o delight_v in_o his_o commandment_n say_v that_o he_o shall_v never_o be_v move_v but_o the_o righteous_a shall_v be_v have_v in_o perpetual_a remembrance_n ps_n 112.6_o a_o good_a name_n be_v better_a than_o a_o great_a name_n and_o albeit_o the_o godly_a be_v despise_v in_o the_o world_n yet_o god_n will_v advance_v their_o estimation_n &_o give_v they_o a_o sweet_a savour_n among_o all_o good_a man_n true_a it_o be_v sinful_a man_n be_v magnify_v of_o sinner_n for_o even_o the_o sinner_n love_v those_o that_o love_v they_o 32._o luke_n 6_o 32._o to_o receyve_v the_o like_a of_o they_o again_o yet_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v abominable_a unto_o the_o saint_n and_o their_o name_n shall_v be_v curse_v and_o as_o much_o loathe_v as_o the_o filthy_a favour_n of_o his_o carcase_n that_o lie_v rot_v in_o the_o grave_n so_o then_o see_v shame_n shall_v be_v as_o a_o unseparable_a companion_n of_o wickedness_n and_o no_o man_n can_v separate_v those_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v join_v together_o on_o the_o other_o side_n here_o be_v comfort_n to_o the_o godly_a that_o god_n will_v undertake_v the_o protection_n of_o their_o name_n so_o that_o no_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o rob_v they_o of_o it_o but_o as_o he_o preserve_v they_o to_o salvation_n so_o he_o will_v maintain_v their_o credit_n and_o estimation_n we_o see_v this_o in_o many_o the_o dear_a servant_n of_o god_n who_o albeit_o they_o have_v have_v their_o name_n for_o a_o time_n diminish_v &_o impair_v yet_o they_o have_v be_v restore_v and_o recover_v the_o name_n of_o naboth_n be_v great_o blemish_v with_o the_o slanderous_a imputation_n of_o treason_n and_o blasphemy_n but_o that_o momentary_a shame_n be_v swallow_v up_o and_o recompense_v with_o everlasting_a honour_n throughout_o all_o generation_n 1_o king_n 21.10_o the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o cranmer_n ridley_n latimer_n hooper_n bradford_n philpot_n and_o many_o other_o the_o dear_a servant_n of_o god_n that_o give_v their_o life_n for_o the_o truth_n howsoever_o they_o be_v condemn_v for_o heretic_n yet_o they_o be_v renown_v for_o saint_n and_o shall_v be_v so_o acknowledge_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 16_o again_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o moses_n say_v 17_o vex_v the_o midianite_n and_o smite_v they_o 18_o for_o they_o trouble_v you_o with_o their_o wile_n wherewith_o they_o have_v beguile_v you_o as_o concern_v peor_n and_o as_o concern_v their_o sister_n cosbi_n the_o daughter_n of_o a_o prince_n of_o midian_a which_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o plague_n because_o of_o peor_n we_o have_v hitherto_o in_o this_o chapter_n handle_v the_o transgression_n of_o the_o israelite_n and_o the_o reconciliation_n of_o god_n now_o remain_v the_o decree_n and_o determination_n of_o god_n against_o the_o midianite_n for_o after_o that_o god_n have_v chastened_a his_o own_o people_n and_o judgement_n have_v begin_v to_o break_v out_o against_o the_o house_n of_o god_n he_o rise_v up_o in_o wrath_n and_o indignation_n as_o a_o just_a judge_n against_o his_o enemy_n herein_o we_o be_v to_o mark_v two_o thing_n first_o the_o commandment_n second_o the_o reason_n or_o cause_n of_o the_o commandment_n the_o commandment_n and_o charge_n direct_v unto_o moses_n in_o this_o smite_v and_o slay_v the_o midianite_n thus_o do_v wickedness_n return_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o author_n thereof_o these_o enemy_n be_v draw_v into_o the_o league_n to_o take_v part_n with_o the_o moabite_n have_v conspire_v against_o israel_n soght_v to_o subdue_v they_o not_o by_o strength_n but_o by_o sensuality_n nor_o by_o force_n of_o war_n but_o by_o lasciviousness_n and_o wantonness_n of_o woman_n now_o the_o wheel_n be_v turn_v upon_o themselves_o the_o stone_n be_v roll_v upon_o they_o that_o first_o stir_v it_o and_o mischief_n fall_v upon_o the_o first_o contriver_n object_n but_o here_o out_o of_o this_o commandment_n arise_v two_o question_n fit_a to_o be_v move_v and_o worthy_a to_o be_v discuss_v first_o inasmuch_o as_o god_n every_o where_n forbid_v revenge_v of_o our_o own_o cause_n and_o quarrel_n why_o do_v he_o now_o permit_v and_o provoke_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n thereunto_o as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o by_o nature_n prone_a enough_o to_o vengeance_n i_o answer_v answ_n there_o be_v a_o double_a kind_n of_o revenge_n one_o private_a the_o other_o public_a private_a revenge_n be_v that_o which_o proceed_v from_o the_o private_a motion_n of_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n seek_v to_o satisfy_v our_o own_o malice_n with_o the_o hurt_n of_o other_o this_o be_v forbid_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n matthew_n 5_o 44_o command_v we_o to_o love_v our_o enemy_n and_o to_o overcome_v evil_a with_o good_a public_a revenge_n be_v that_o which_o be_v command_v and_o warrant_v by_o god_n be_v impose_v upon_o we_o either_o mediate_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o magistrate_n or_o immediate_o by_o the_o secret_a instinct_n of_o the_o spirit_n this_o be_v allow_v and_o lawful_a as_o we_o see_v before_o in_o phinehas_n and_o other_o inasmuch_o as_o it_o proceed_v not_o from_o the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n but_o from_o the_o inspiration_n of_o god_n for_o god_n the_o just_a revenger_n of_o all_o wickedness_n may_v use_v the_o ministry_n of_o
man_n and_o angel_n to_o execute_v his_o purpose_n so_o often_o as_o it_o please_v he_o another_o question_n arise_v out_o of_o this_o commandment_n objection_n be_v touch_v the_o person_n against_o who_o it_o be_v direct_v as_o the_o first_o be_v touch_v the_o person_n to_o who_o it_o be_v direct_v for_o why_o shall_v the_o midianite_n be_v name_v only_o see_v the_o moabite_n also_o be_v the_o profess_a enemy_n of_o the_o israelite_n seek_v their_o ruin_n and_o hire_v balaam_n to_o curse_v they_o i_o answer_v answer_v the_o moabite_n do_v not_o escape_v but_o be_v also_o punish_v as_o appear_v evident_o deut._n 23_o 6._o but_o the_o midianite_n be_v first_o in_o the_o punishment_n because_o albeit_o they_o be_v far_o off_o yet_o they_o have_v the_o chief_a hand_n and_o carry_v the_o great_a stroke_n in_o this_o wickedness_n who_o make_v their_o daughter_n common_a yea_o even_o the_o chief_a among_o they_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o balaam_n as_o we_o see_v by_o one_o example_n in_o this_o chapter_n the_o like_a whereof_o we_o do_v not_o read_v to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o moabite_n beside_o after_o that_o balaam_n be_v depart_v we_o read_v not_o that_o the_o moabite_n attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o israel_n but_o the_o midianite_n give_v the_o sorcerer_n far_o entertainment_n and_o cease_v not_o as_o may_v be_v presume_v &_o presuppose_a to_o plot_n and_o contrive_v their_o destruction_n hitherto_o of_o the_o commandment_n the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o division_n the_o reason_n enforce_v the_o commandment_n follow_v to_o be_v consider_v which_o be_v two_o in_o number_n first_o because_o they_o cunning_o gull_v and_o crafty_o circumvent_v the_o people_n of_o god_n second_o because_o they_o allure_v they_o both_o to_o idolatry_n and_o to_o fornication_n for_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n when_o moses_n say_v they_o have_v beguile_v you_o as_o concern_v peor_n and_o as_o concern_v their_o sister_n cozbi_n and_o hereunto_o john_n point_v in_o the_o revelation_n say_v balaam_n teach_v balak_n to_o put_v a_o stumble_a block_n before_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n that_o they_o shall_v eat_v of_o thing_n sacrifice_v to_o idol_n and_o commit_v fornication_n reve._n 2_o 14._o both_o these_o reason_n may_v be_v gather_v into_o one_o and_o thus_o conclude_v if_o the_o midianite_n draw_v you_o into_o sin_n and_o bring_v upon_o you_o the_o plague_n of_o god_n then_o spare_v not_o to_o smite_v they_o but_o the_o midianites_n draw_v you_o into_o sin_n and_o bring_v upon_o you_o the_o plague_n of_o god_n therefore_o spare_v not_o you_o to_o smite_v they_o this_o be_v the_o force_n and_o strength_n of_o the_o reason_n to_o move_v the_o israelite_n to_o make_v themselves_o strong_a and_o to_o be_v of_o good_a courage_n assure_v themselves_o that_o god_n will_v give_v they_o victory_n &_o enable_v they_o to_o destroy_v they_o that_o do_v compass_v their_o destruction_n thus_o we_o have_v see_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o text_n and_o the_o order_n of_o the_o word_n this_o be_v the_o natural_a meaning_n intend_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o before_o we_o pass_v any_o further_a it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o a_o little_a to_o consider_v the_o notable_a abuse_n of_o this_o place_n and_o of_o other_o scripture_n avouch_v by_o some_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o one_o of_o late_a chr._n alabast_n apparat_fw-la in_o revel_v je_v chr._n not_o only_o a_o common_a professor_n of_o our_o religion_n but_o a_o public_a preacher_n of_o the_o same_o in_o our_o church_n have_v revolt_v from_o we_o through_o some_o worldly_a tentation_n run_v into_o our_o enemy_n camp_n lift_v up_o his_o heel_n against_o we_o and_o in_o bitter_a and_o bite_a manner_n rail_v at_o us._n this_o man_n want_v no_o good_a will_n to_o write_v against_o we_o and_o yet_o find_v no_o strength_n in_o himself_o to_o deal_v against_o we_o out_o of_o evident_a and_o plain_a scripture_n have_v turn_v all_o into_o allegory_n and_o out_o of_o his_o inward_a and_o hide_a sense_n wre_v and_o wringe_v all_o thing_n against_o the_o protestant_n as_o for_o example_n when_o the_o lord_n in_o this_o place_n be_v say_v to_o have_v speak_v to_o moses_n in_o this_o manner_n vex_v the_o midianite_n and_o smite_v they_o because_o they_o trouble_v you_o with_o their_o wile_n and_o beguile_v you_o as_o concern_v peor_n 96._o apparat_fw-la in_fw-la revel_v cap._n 6._o pag_n 96._o the_o meaning_n according_a to_o his_o interpretation_n be_v this_o christ_n say_v to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n suppress_v the_o writing_n of_o heretic_n and_o confute_v they_o because_o they_o trouble_v you_o with_o their_o guile_n and_o make_v their_o false_a doctrine_n appear_v beautiful_a to_o the_o show_n and_o outward_a appearance_n the_o heretic_n receive_v a_o counterfeit_a word_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o true_a scripture_n which_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o pope_n censure_n behold_v here_o the_o heavy_a judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o this_o man_n since_o his_o apostasy_n and_o revolt_n from_o the_o true_a church_n to_o the_o synagogue_n of_o antichrist_n be_v not_o here_o strange_a proof_n and_o far_o set_v interpretation_n to_o prove_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o writing_n of_o heretic_n be_v to_o be_v suppress_v and_o that_o the_o heretic_n themselves_o do_v deceive_v and_o delude_v the_o world_n under_o a_o colour_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o a_o pretence_n of_o the_o bare_a literal_a meaning_n 7._o apparat._n cap._n 1_o &_o 7._o and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o profound_a inward_a mystical_a and_o right_a scripture_n that_o he_o so_o often_o boast_v of_o but_o let_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n judge_v whether_o this_o manner_n of_o interpretation_n be_v not_o the_o highway_n to_o set_v up_o all_o atheism_n to_o overthrow_v the_o authority_n and_o certainty_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o true_a religion_n &_o to_o leave_v no_o ground_n for_o christian_n to_o stand_v upon_o and_o this_o have_v be_v the_o ancient_a practice_n of_o such_o disciple_n as_o have_v learn_v such_o divinity_n in_o the_o school_n of_o antichrist_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o pighius_fw-la compare_v the_o scripture_n to_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n and_o to_o a_o rule_n of_o lead_n 7_o pigh_a hi●●_n lib._n cap._n 3._o cens_fw-la c●lon_n pag._n 112._o cusan_a epist_n 2_o &_o 7_o the_o censure_n of_o colen_n affirm_v the_o like_a in_o the_o same_o word_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n cardinal_n cusane_n teach_v that_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v expound_v diverse_o and_o frame_v to_o the_o time_n &_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o at_o one_o time_n they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o interpret_v one_o way_n and_o at_o another_o time_n another_o way_n these_o be_v some_o of_o those_o bold_a blasphemy_n which_o many_o of_o the_o pope_n minion_n have_v utter_v to_o the_o world_n now_o such_o as_o apply_v the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o fancy_n &_o turn_v they_o into_o allegory_n do_v not_o come_v far_o behind_o the_o former_a if_o we_o suffer_v the_o scripture_n of_o god_n to_o be_v thus_o wrest_v and_o corrupt_v the_o religion_n of_o christ_n can_v long_o continue_v if_o a_o man_n pull_v down_o the_o foundation_n of_o a_o house_n whereon_o it_o stand_v or_o shake_v the_o main_a pillar_n whereon_o it_o lean_v the_o house_n itself_o can_v long_o hold_v out_o but_o must_v fall_v down_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n 20._o eph._n 2_o 20._o so_o long_o as_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o they_o be_v maintain_v and_o keep_v pure_a and_o undefiled_a the_o church_n shall_v stand_v upright_o and_o remain_v without_o danger_n of_o be_v shake_v in_o piece_n but_o when_o once_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v mingle_v with_o the_o chaff_n of_o man_n invention_n or_o infect_v with_o the_o poison_n of_o the_o devil_n device_n by_o and_o by_o it_o totter_v &_o decay_v until_o in_o the_o end_n no_o remedy_n be_v provide_v it_o languish_v and_o die_v now_o to_o apply_v this_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n howsoever_o some_o glory_n of_o the_o hide_a sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o they_o have_v find_v out_o and_o please_v themselves_o in_o their_o foolish_a conceit_n it_o be_v no_o better_a than_o to_o make_v merchandise_n of_o the_o word_n and_o to_o turn_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n into_o a_o lie_n 2._o cor._n 2_o 17._o for_o whereas_o out_o of_o this_o commandment_n of_o god_n charge_v moses_n to_o slay_v the_o midianite_n that_o trouble_a israel_n with_o their_o guile_n and_o draw_v they_o to_o fornication_n this_o construction_n be_v gather_v that_o moses_n be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o midianite_n signify_v the_o writing_n of_o heretic_n with_o such_o like_a trash_n the_o only_a
unbeliever_n but_o let_v they_o alone_o and_o spare_v they_o as_o though_o he_o have_v forget_v their_o work_n or_o have_v not_o see_v their_o sinful_a way_n yet_o they_o must_v know_v that_o their_o transgression_n be_v record_v in_o the_o book_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v come_v to_o account_v for_o he_o suffer_v those_o who_o he_o love_v not_o to_o wax_v ripe_a yea_o to_o rot_n away_o in_o their_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n he_o chastise_v those_o who_o he_o have_v adopt_v to_o be_v his_o child_n gen._n 15._o the_o state_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v in_o the_o fight_n of_o man_n and_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o world_n more_o miserable_a than_o the_o state_n of_o the_o despiser_n of_o god_n which_o rest_n at_o ease_n and_o welter_v in_o all_o pleasure_n they_o seem_v to_o be_v forget_v of_o god_n and_o utter_o forsake_v of_o help_n so_o that_o they_o pine_v away_o with_o sorrow_n of_o heart_n whereas_o the_o wicked_a lift_n up_o their_o head_n and_o set_v their_o horn_n on_o high_a they_o be_v merry_a and_o make_v a_o mock_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o despite_n of_o god_n and_o in_o scorn_n of_o all_o godliness_n alas_o how_o will_v this_o trouble_n and_o torment_v we_o and_o bring_v we_o to_o our_o wit_n end_n if_o we_o have_v not_o this_o doctrine_n that_o judgement_n enter_v first_o into_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o that_o when_o god_n shall_v have_v finish_v all_o his_o work_n upon_o mount_n zion_n then_o will_v he_o not_o spare_v the_o wicked_a esay_n 10_o 12._o god_n will_v indeed_o keep_v correction_n first_o in_o his_o own_o house_n see_v he_o love_v they_o most_o and_o seek_v to_o cleanse_v they_o from_o their_o sin_n he_o will_v visit_v they_o in_o the_o first_o place_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v condemn_v with_o the_o world_n and_o then_o a_o most_o horrible_a vengeance_n be_v prepare_v and_o a_o stormy_a tempest_n be_v make_v ready_a for_o those_o that_o have_v long_o abuse_v his_o patience_n and_o harden_v their_o heart_n not_o know_v that_o his_o long_a sufferance_n ought_v to_o have_v lead_v they_o to_o repentance_n 1._o cor_n 11_o 32._o this_o serve_v as_o a_o notable_a comfort_n on_o the_o one_o side_n to_o all_o the_o godly_a that_o be_v try_v by_o affliction_n of_o long_a continuance_n we_o must_v consider_v that_o the_o more_o the_o lord_n love_v we_o the_o more_o forward_o he_o be_v in_o visit_v of_o we_o and_o when_o he_o see_v we_o have_v step_v awry_o and_o be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o right_a way_n of_o salvation_n he_o watch_v over_o we_o to_o bring_v we_o home_o again_o to_o he_o with_o speed_n this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n teach_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n for_o this_o cause_n many_o be_v weak_a and_o sick_a among_o you_o and_o many_o sleep_n for_o if_o we_o will_v judge_v ourselves_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v judge_v but_o when_o we_o be_v judge_v we_o be_v chastened_a of_o the_o lord_n because_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v condemn_v with_o the_o world_n let_v we_o not_o therefore_o despise_v the_o chasten_n of_o the_o lord_n neither_o faint_v when_o we_o be_v rebuke_v of_o he_o for_o who_o the_o lord_n love_v he_o chasten_v and_o he_o scourge_v every_o son_n who_o he_o receive_v if_o therefore_o we_o be_v without_o correction_n etc._n etc._n heb._n 12_o 5.6_o even_o as_o when_o a_o man_n behold_v two_o child_n commit_v evil_a correct_v one_o of_o they_o and_o let_v the_o other_o go_v free_a the_o stander_n by_o will_v say_v sure_o that_o be_v his_o son_n which_o he_o do_v smite_v and_o chasten_v but_o the_o other_o be_v not_o beside_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v perish_v and_o that_o the_o ungodly_a shall_v be_v punish_v second_o this_o serve_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o woeful_a condition_n of_o all_o the_o reprobate_n for_o when_o they_o see_v how_o god_n deal_v with_o his_o own_o dear_a child_n chasten_v they_o for_o their_o sin_n and_o send_v they_o great_a affliction_n as_o appear_v in_o david_n that_o the_o sword_n depart_v not_o from_o his_o house_n &_o that_o god_n do_v visit_v he_o with_o sundry_a other_o judgement_n in_o his_o child_n all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o fearful_a threaten_n to_o the_o wicked_a to_o make_v they_o afraid_a of_o the_o reward_n which_o be_v lay_v up_o in_o store_n for_o they_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v this_o be_v that_o which_o solomon_n call_v to_o their_o remembrance_n behold_v the_o righteous_a shall_v be_v recompense_v etc._n etc._n prou._n 11_o 31._o and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n speak_v the_o apostle_n peter_n the_o time_n be_v c●me_v that_o judgement_n must_v begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n 1._o peter_n 4_o 17._o if_o it_o first_o begin_v at_o we_o what_o shall_v the_o end_n be_v of_o they_o which_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n and_o if_o the_o righteous_a scarce_o be_v save_v where_o shall_v the_o ungodly_a and_o the_o sinner_n appear_v woe_n therefore_o to_o all_o wicked_a man_n how_o wretched_a shall_v their_o end_n be_v how_o horrible_a shall_v their_o destruction_n be_v when_o god_n come_v to_o give_v they_o the_o hire_n and_o wage_n of_o their_o work_n let_v they_o therefore_o repent_v of_o their_o evil_a way_n and_o call_v upon_o god_n betimes_o before_o the_o evil_a day_n approach_v and_o before_o judgement_n do_v come_v upon_o they_o use_v 3_o last_o from_o hence_o arise_v sundry_a duty_n to_o be_v practise_v as_o well_o of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n that_o lie_n under_o chastisement_n as_o of_o other_o that_o be_v beholder_n of_o it_o first_o see_v god_n will_v begin_v his_o chastisement_n upon_o his_o own_o child_n it_o teach_v they_o when_o they_o be_v punish_v to_o consider_v and_o search_v out_o the_o true_a cause_n thereof_o and_o to_o call_v upon_o he_o to_o pardon_v their_o sin_n true_a it_o be_v he_o be_v able_a to_o preserve_v they_o in_o the_o time_n of_o trouble_n &_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o regard_v their_o prayer_n but_o their_o sin_n be_v loathsome_a to_o he_o and_o do_v turn_v away_o his_o love_a countenance_n from_o they_o according_a unto_o the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n esay_n 59_o 1_o 2._o behold_v the_o lord_n hand_n be_v not_o shorten_v that_o it_o can_v save_v neither_o be_v his_o ear_n heavy_a that_o it_o can_v hear_v but_o your_o iniquity_n have_v separate_v between_o you_o and_o your_o god_n &_o your_o sin_n have_v hide_v away_o his_o face_n from_o you_o that_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v when_o our_o sin_n be_v hearty_o confess_v they_o shall_v be_v free_o pardon_v and_o when_o they_o be_v pardon_v god_n be_v reconcile_v unto_o we_o and_o when_o he_o be_v reconcile_v his_o judgement_n shall_v be_v remove_v second_o let_v we_o begin_v a_o new_a life_n &_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n for_o as_o solomon_n teach_v righteousness_n deliver_v from_o death_n prou._n 10_o 2._o we_o must_v turn_v from_o our_o wickedness_n and_o then_o god_n will_v turn_v from_o his_o judgement_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o cry_v out_o in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o affliction_n but_o we_o be_v not_o so_o ready_a to_o practice_v true_a religion_n if_o we_o will_v call_v in_o god_n judgement_n we_o must_v turn_v to_o he_o by_o amendment_n of_o life_n last_o when_o we_o see_v the_o lord_n strike_v his_o own_o child_n we_o must_v behold_v it_o with_o a_o eye_n of_o compassion_n so_o soon_o as_o we_o see_v their_o misery_n and_o calamity_n that_o lie_v heavy_a upon_o they_o we_o must_v show_v ourselves_o to_o have_v a_o feel_n of_o their_o affliction_n we_o must_v express_v our_o pity_n we_o must_v manifest_v our_o kindness_n and_o we_o must_v declare_v the_o bowel_n of_o our_o love_n towards_o they_o this_o be_v it_o which_o job_n require_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o friend_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o sorrow_n 21._o job_n 19_o 21._o the_o wicked_a have_v despise_v i_o &_o when_o i_o rise_v they_o speak_v against_o i_o all_o my_o secret_a friend_n abhor_v i_o and_o they_o who_o i_o love_v be_v turn_v against_o i_o etc._n etc._n where_o we_o see_v he_o show_v that_o god_n have_v chastened_a he_o that_o his_o brethren_n stand_v far_o from_o he_o that_o his_o acquaintance_n be_v stranger_n unto_o he_o that_o his_o neighbour_n have_v forsake_v he_o that_o his_o familiar_n have_v forget_v he_o that_o his_o servant_n disdain_v he_o that_o his_o wife_n loathe_v he_o that_o the_o wicked_a despise_v he_o that_o his_o secret_a friend_n abhor_v he_o &_o thereupon_o he_o cry_v out_o for_o some_o to_o pity_v he_o in_o his_o misery_n and_o to_o comfort_v he_o in_o his_o extremity_n this_o duty_n shall_v be_v perform_v by_o we_o to_o testify_v our_o love_n unto_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o so_o
10_o 31_o 32_o that_o see_v a_o certain_a man_n rob_v of_o his_o money_n spoil_v of_o his_o raiment_n and_o wound_v of_o his_o body_n yet_o depart_v from_o he_o and_o pass_v by_o on_o the_o other_o side_n leave_v he_o half_o dead_a but_o when_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o relieve_v they_o in_o their_o want_n and_o comfort_v they_o in_o their_o distress_n and_o help_v they_o with_o our_o counsel_n that_o we_o seduce_v they_o ourselves_o or_o bolster_v they_o up_o in_o their_o sin_n or_o draw_v they_o into_o wickedness_n we_o shall_v draw_v upon_o ourselves_o the_o heavy_a judgement_n of_o god_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o visitation_n for_o if_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v that_o be_v lead_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o follow_v the_o direction_n of_o false_a and_o lie_a seducer_n of_o great_a judgement_n and_o sore_a punishment_n shall_v they_o be_v worthy_a that_o lie_v snare_n to_o catch_v other_o and_o draw_v they_o unto_o destruction_n in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o jeremy_n we_o see_v pashur_n the_o son_n of_o immer_n the_o priest_n threaten_v jer._n 20_o 6._o that_o because_o he_o have_v preach_v lie_n he_o and_o all_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o shall_v die_v in_o captivity_n and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o lord_n denounce_v his_o judgement_n to_o come_v upon_o the_o prophet_n which_o have_v sweet_a tongue_n 23.31_o jer._n 23.31_o seduce_v the_o people_n with_o please_a lie_n hereunto_o we_o may_v refer_v all_o ignorant_a minister_n which_o be_v utter_o disable_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o their_o duty_n in_o teach_v the_o people_n they_o have_v the_o place_n but_o want_v the_o gift_n 1_o tim._n 3_o 2_o they_o have_v the_o call_n but_o want_v the_o ability_n 2.2_o 2_o tim._n 2.2_o they_o fill_v up_o the_o room_n of_o workman_n but_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v the_o work_n these_o commit_v a_o heinous_a sin_n not_o only_o destroy_v their_o own_o fowl_n but_o bring_v the_o people_n to_o destruction_n for_o through_o their_o ignorance_n and_o insufficiency_n they_o cast_v away_o their_o own_o soul_n &_o the_o soul_n of_o other_o man_n the_o wise_a man_n teach_v prou._n 29_o 18_o that_o where_o there_o be_v no_o vision_n there_o the_o people_n decay_n wherefore_o to_o conclude_v let_v all_o faithful_a minister_n of_o god_n with_o care_n &_o conscience_n be_v stir_v up_o to_o deliver_v that_o embassage_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n not_o as_o man_n pleaser_n but_o as_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o let_v all_o the_o people_n know_v that_o it_o become_v they_o with_o all_o patience_n and_o reverence_n to_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o exhortation_n which_o god_n have_v sanctify_v as_o the_o mean_n to_o work_v in_o they_o faith_n and_o obedience_n it_o shall_v excuse_v no_o man_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o say_v i_o will_v have_v hearken_v to_o the_o truth_n but_o i_o be_v deceive_v i_o will_v have_v walk_v in_o the_o right_a way_n but_o alas_o i_o be_v seduce_v these_o be_v old_a adam_n figge-leave_n which_o will_v not_o serve_v to_o cover_v our_o shame_n and_o to_o hide_v our_o nakedness_n we_o must_v seek_v after_o the_o truth_n and_o learn_v to_o discern_v of_o it_o from_o error_n if_o we_o be_v content_a to_o live_v in_o ignorance_n and_o voluntary_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o be_v lead_v or_o rather_o mislead_v by_o blind_a guide_n that_o can_v neither_o inform_v themselves_o nor_o we_o in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n if_o we_o wilful_o shut_v our_o eye_n because_o we_o will_v not_o see_v our_o ignorance_n be_v without_o excuse_n and_o for_o want_v of_o knowledge_n we_o shall_v certain_o be_v destroy_v let_v we_o all_o walk_n in_o the_o right_a way_n and_o make_v straight_a step_n unto_o our_o foot_n heb._n 12_o 13_o that_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v our_o soul_n save_v &_o we_o entire_o preserve_v in_o the_o truth_n through_o jesus_n christ_n to_o who_o be_v praise_n and_o glory_n in_o the_o church_n for_o ever_o amen_n chap._n xxvi_o 1_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v after_o the_o plague_n that_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o moses_n and_o unto_o eleazar_n the_o son_n of_o aaron_n the_o priest_n say_v 2_o take_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n from_o twenty_o year_n old_a and_o upward_a throughout_o their_o father_n house_n all_o that_o be_v able_a to_o go_v to_o war_n in_o israel_n 3_o and_o moses_n and_o eleazar_n the_o priest_n speak_v unto_o they_o etc._n etc._n 5_o reuben_n the_o elder_a son_n of_o israel_n etc._n etc._n 9_o this_o be_v that_o dathan_n and_o abiram_n which_o be_v famous_a in_o the_o congregation_n etc._n etc._n 10_o and_o the_o earth_n open_v her_o mouth_n etc._n etc._n have_v sufficient_o see_v the_o weak_a estate_n and_o condition_n of_o this_o people_n who_o as_o much_o as_o lay_v in_o they_o rush_v forward_o to_o their_o own_o destruction_n and_o be_v unworthy_a of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v learn_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o salvation_n to_o ascribe_v all_o to_o god_n deut._n 8_o 17._o let_v we_o consider_v the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n 6_o 1_o cor._n 12_o 6_o see_v and_o make_v perfect_a in_o their_o weakness_n to_o the_o end_n of_o this_o book_n wherein_o we_o be_v to_o mark_v a_o description_n partly_o of_o the_o holy_a and_o ecclesiastical_a law_n give_v to_o the_o 31._o chap_a and_o partly_o sundry_a civil_a and_o political_a law_n belong_v to_o their_o inheritance_n in_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n before_o both_o these_o we_o have_v in_o this_o and_o the_o chapter_n follow_v a_o new_a number_n of_o the_o people_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n wherein_o we_o must_v mark_v two_o thing_n one_o touch_v the_o number_n of_o they_o the_o other_o touch_v the_o order_n to_o be_v devise_v in_o the_o divide_n of_o the_o inheritance_n touch_v the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n we_o must_v remember_v that_o this_o be_v now_o the_o three_o number_v since_o the_o israelite_n by_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n depart_v out_o of_o egypt_n the_o first_o be_v the_o same_o year_n they_o be_v bring_v forth_o when_o the_o sum_n be_v take_v of_o they_o and_o a_o general_a payment_n exact_v of_o rich_a and_o poor_a for_o the_o provision_n and_o preparation_n of_o holy_a thing_n requisite_a for_o the_o tabernacle_n exod._n 30_o 14_o 15_o 16._o the_o second_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o second_o year_n when_o the_o holy_a thing_n be_v make_v and_o a_o order_n set_v down_o among_o the_o people_n in_o their_o journey_n numb_a 1_o and_o 2._o the_o three_o be_v that_o which_o be_v in_o this_o place_n and_o notwithstanding_o the_o two_o former_a this_o be_v not_o without_o special_a cause_n people_n the_o cause_n of_o this_o new_a number_n of_o the_o people_n for_o there_o have_v be_v a_o great_a change_n and_o alteration_n among_o the_o people_n since_o the_o second_o number_v of_o they_o which_o be_v 38._o year_n before_o they_o that_o be_v then_o number_v be_v dead_a in_o the_o plague_n and_o punishment_n that_o fall_v upon_o they_o again_o the_o division_n of_o the_o land_n can_v not_o but_o by_o these_o breach_n among_o they_o be_v very_o unjust_a and_o unequal_a unless_o this_o sum_n have_v be_v take_v whereas_o the_o land_n ought_v to_o be_v indifferent_o divide_v and_o part_v to_o end_v all_o controversy_n to_o cut_v off_o all_o occasion_n of_o envy_n and_o emulation_n and_o to_o preserve_v love_n and_o unity_n among_o brethren_n three_o in_o regard_n of_o military_a discipline_n that_o they_o may_v march_v in_o good_a array_n and_o keep_v order_v the_o better_a among_o they_o for_o they_o be_v now_o in_o a_o manner_n come_v to_o hand_n blow_v with_o their_o enemy_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o encounter_v with_o they_o four_o that_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n towards_o this_o people_n may_v be_v better_o see_v and_o know_v to_o wit_n both_o his_o power_n and_o goodness_n in_o that_o though_o many_o thousand_o of_o they_o be_v waste_v &_o consume_v in_o the_o wilderness_n yet_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v not_o diminish_v but_o rather_o increase_v &_o likewise_o his_o justice_n and_o truth_n in_o that_o though_o he_o chastened_a the_o rebellious_a and_o refractory_a against_o he_o yet_o he_o keep_v the_o promise_n he_o have_v make_v to_o their_o father_n touch_v the_o multiply_a of_o their_o seed_n as_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n 46_o theod._n quaest_n 46_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v able_a of_o stone_n to_o raise_v up_o child_n unto_o abraham_n mat._n 3_o 9_o and_o to_o call_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o as_o though_o they_o be_v rom._n 4_o 17_o 18._o last_o to_o show_v that_o as_o he_o know_v perfect_o and_o exact_o the_o number_n of_o all_o that_o enter_v into_o the_o earthly_a canaan_n so_o he_o know_v the_o
prince_n hold_v their_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o none_o but_o he_o that_o give_v they_o can_v take_v they_o away_o from_o they_o they_o be_v accountable_a to_o he_o but_o to_o no_o mortal_a man_n whatsoever_o 10._o ambros_n in_o his_o apol._n of_o david_n chap._n 10._o and_o therefore_o david_n say_v to_o thou_o only_o i_o have_v sin_v psal_n 51_o 4._o and_o this_o teach_v they_o a_o good_a lesson_n to_o remember_v that_o they_o must_v one_o day_n appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o god_n and_o plead_v before_o his_o bar_n guilty_a or_o not_o guilty_a as_o now_o their_o subject_n do_v before_o they_o this_o then_o be_v the_o regal_a tenor_n to_o hold_v immediate_o from_o god_n to_o who_o they_o must_v do_v homage_n and_o fealty_n for_o their_o crown_n and_o kingdom_n it_o be_v not_o unknown_a what_o exorbitant_a course_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v take_v exalt_v himself_o from_o a_o christian_a pastor_n to_o be_v a_o antichristian_a pope_n and_o from_o a_o pope_n to_o a_o temporal_a prince_n and_o from_o a_o temporal_a prince_n to_o be_v a_o supreme_a monarch_n over_o all_o and_o to_o have_v omnipotent_a power_n as_o a_o vicegod_n on_o earth_n such_o almain-leapes_a in_o good_a time_n there_o be_v good_a hope_n will_v break_v his_o back_n nay_o his_o neck_n and_o free_a the_o christian_a world_n from_o his_o yoke_n and_o bondage_n worse_a a_o thousand_o time_n then_o the_o slavery_n of_o the_o israelite_n in_o egypt_n when_o god_n shall_v open_v the_o eye_n of_o all_o christian_a prince_n to_o see_v his_o usurp_a ambition_n &_o dominion_n which_o god_n grant_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o poor_a people_n that_o be_v hold_v in_o more_o them_z turkish_a captivity_n last_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o magistrate_n use_v 3_o be_v of_o great_a necessity_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o end_n of_o their_o office_n be_v the_o good_a and_o benefit_n of_o the_o people_n over_o who_o they_o be_v place_v lam._n 4_o 20._o they_o serve_v as_o a_o comfortable_a shadow_n to_o preserve_v we_o from_o the_o scorch_a fire_n of_o rage_a persecuter_n like_o the_o gourd_n of_o jonah_n which_o come_v over_o his_o head_n to_o deliver_v he_o from_o the_o hear_v of_o the_o sun_n jonah_n 4_o 6_o 8_o which_o serve_v to_o condemn_v the_o anabaptist_n which_o can_v abide_v any_o government_n or_o governor_n whereas_o we_o must_v learn_v to_o pray_v for_o they_o and_o to_o be_v subject_a unto_o they_o which_o be_v the_o lord_n shepherd_n over_o his_o flock_n without_o who_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v see_v but_o miserable_a disorder_n &_o confusion_n of_o all_o thing_n judg._n 18._o for_o a_o commonwealth_n without_o a_o governor_n be_v as_o a_o body_n without_o a_o head_n as_o a_o ship_n without_o a_o pilot_n as_o a_o army_n without_o a_o leader_n or_o as_o a_o house_n without_o a_o ruler_n the_o loss_n of_o a_o good_a and_o godly_a prince_n be_v a_o great_a loss_n and_o great_o to_o be_v lament_v 2_o chron._n 35_o verse_n 24._o zach._n 12_o verse_n 11._o chap._n xxviii_o 1._o and_o the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o moses_n say_v 2._o command_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o my_o offering_n and_o my_o bread_n for_o my_o sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n 3._o and_o thou_o shall_v say_v unto_o they_o this_o be_v the_o offer_v make_v by_o fire_n which_o you_o shall_v offer_v unto_o the_o lord_n two_o lamb_n of_o the_o first_o year_n without_o spot_n day_n by_o day_n for_o a_o continual_a burn_a offering_n 4._o the_o one_o lamb_n shall_v thou_o offer_v in_o the_o morning_n and_o the_o other_o lamb_n shall_v thou_o offer_v at_o even_o 5._o and_o a_o ten_o part_n of_o a_o ephah_n etc._n etc._n 6._o it_o be_v a_o continual_a burn_a offering_n etc._n etc._n 7._o and_o the_o drink_n roffer_v etc._n etc._n 8._o and_o the_o etc._n etc._n moses_n have_v set_v down_o the_o number_v of_o the_o people_n proceed_v to_o handle_v the_o law_n under_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v whereof_o some_o belong_v to_o church-matter_n and_o some_o to_o the_o commonwealth_n some_o sacred_a and_o some_o civil_a such_o as_o be_v holy_a have_v the_o first_o place_n and_o that_o worthy_o which_o order_n show_v that_o the_o commonwealth_n can_v never_o be_v well_o establish_v until_o the_o church_n be_v right_o order_v religion_n doctrine_n the_o first_o and_o chief_a care_n be_v to_o be_v have_v of_o the_o church_n and_o matter_n of_o religion_n the_o first_o and_o chief_a care_n be_v to_o be_v have_v of_o the_o church_n and_o afterward_o of_o the_o civil_a state_n &_o commonwealth_n they_o begin_v at_o a_o wrong_a end_n that_o begin_v with_o matter_n of_o policy_n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v very_o careful_a to_o look_v to_o the_o body_n but_o be_v careless_a of_o look_v to_o the_o soul_n or_o shall_v have_v regard_n to_o the_o foot_n and_o utter_o neglect_v the_o head_n it_o be_v evermore_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o godly_a &_o religious_a king_n of_o judah_n to_o begin_v first_o with_o church-matter_n and_o look_v to_o religion_n and_o order_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o we_o see_v in_o david_n jehoshaphat_n hezekiah_n and_o josiah_n so_o do_v zerubbabel_n immediate_o after_o their_o return_n from_o captivity_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o book_n of_o ezra_n reason_n 1_o and_o no_o marvel_n for_o true_a religion_n be_v the_o soul_n and_o life_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n without_o this_o it_o can_v prosper_v and_o flourish_v but_o be_v as_o a_o dead_a carcase_n without_o life_n it_o may_v carry_v a_o goodly_a show_n and_o seem_v to_o promise_v peace_n &_o perpetuity_n but_o it_o be_v not_o well_o ground_v and_o will_v deceive_v in_o the_o end_n witness_v the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o world_n which_o all_o receive_v their_o decay_a and_o decline_v in_o their_o time_n &_o season_n of_o which_o before_o chap._n 3._o second_o true_a religion_n be_v that_o only_a which_o instruct_v all_o sort_n in_o true_a obedience_n &_o teach_v they_o to_o perform_v their_o duty_n which_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o establish_v a_o commonwealth_n &_o to_o order_v it_o aright_o when_o every_o one_o know_v his_o stand_n and_o no_o man_n encroach_v upon_o the_o call_n of_o another_o and_o the_o contrary_n bring_v confusion_n three_o every_o one_o be_v charge_v to_o seek_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n above_o his_o own_o good_a and_o to_o set_v up_o he_o before_o ourselves_o for_o as_o he_o will_v not_o give_v his_o glory_n to_o any_o other_o so_o we_o ought_v to_o take_v heed_n we_o do_v not_o rob_v he_o of_o it_o but_o when_o we_o have_v the_o first_o care_n to_o establish_v matter_n of_o religion_n than_o we_o show_v that_o we_o be_v zealous_a of_o his_o glory_n first_o then_o they_o be_v deceive_v that_o think_v it_o use_v 1_v enough_o to_o make_v law_n for_o preservation_n of_o public_a peace_n and_o tranquillity_n that_o every_o man_n may_v keep_v and_o enjoy_v his_o own_o &_o that_o wrong_n and_o injury_n may_v be_v suppress_v and_o banish_v the_o chief_a care_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o god_n service_n and_o worship_n otherwise_o our_o commonwealth_n shall_v differ_v little_a or_o nothing_o from_o the_o state_n and_o government_n of_o the_o heathen_a here_o than_o be_v a_o lesson_n for_o all_o lawgivers_n if_o they_o desire_v to_o have_v christian_a commonwealth_n to_o begin_v with_o christian_a religion_n and_o look_v to_o the_o church_n and_o there_o lie_v a_o good_a foundation_n he_o that_o will_v build_v a_o house_n to_o stand_v against_o storm_n and_o tempest_n that_o will_v beat_v against_o it_o and_o seek_v to_o bear_v it_o down_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o begin_v with_o the_o foundation_n &_o make_v sure_a work_n there_o so_o such_o as_o desire_v to_o have_v a_o flourish_a commonwealth_n and_o all_o estate_n as_o a_o goodly_a building_n to_o grow_v up_o and_o prosper_v in_o it_o must_v make_v religion_n the_o foundation_n and_o then_o it_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o stand_v because_o that_o be_v as_o a_o rock_n that_o shall_v never_o fail_v nor_o fall_v use_v 2_o second_o hereby_o also_o we_o may_v try_v ourselves_o whether_o we_o belong_v to_o god_n or_o not_o if_o in_o the_o first_o place_n we_o regard_v duty_n of_o piety_n and_o godliness_n and_o be_v more_o careful_a to_o fear_n god_n they_o to_o fear_v man_n than_o we_o be_v true_o religious_a and_o may_v assure_v ourselves_o we_o be_v true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n we_o must_v make_v he_o our_o fear_n who_o be_v able_a to_o cast_v body_n and_o soul_n into_o hell_n matth_n 10_o rather_o than_o man_n who_o can_v but_o kill_v the_o body_n if_o kill_v the_o body_n john_n 19_o let_v every_o one_o of_o we_o therefore_o be_v more_o
5_o last_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o governor_n to_o look_v to_o their_o family_n and_o therefore_o god_n begin_v with_o they_o and_o direct_v the_o commandment_n unto_o they_o governor_n why_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o sabbath_n be_v direct_v to_o governor_n and_o that_o for_o these_o cause_n first_o because_o they_o must_v give_v a_o acount_n of_o their_o government_n to_o god_n of_o who_o they_o have_v receyve_v it_o who_o be_v the_o high_a commander_n and_o general_a master_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o of_o all_o their_o soul_n that_o be_v under_o their_o charge_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o will_v search_v and_o inquire_v not_o only_o how_o civil_a and_o just_a among_o man_n and_o towards_o man_n our_o government_n have_v be_v but_o how_o godly_a and_o religious_a second_o god_n set_v they_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o teach_v they_o that_o god_n require_v at_o their_o hand_n to_o teach_v their_o family_n to_o command_v their_o son_n and_o household_n to_o fear_n god_n &_o to_o bring_v they_o up_o in_o his_o faith_n &_o fear_n and_o in_o true_a religion_n eph._n 6_o 4._o gen._n 18_o 19_o three_o because_o they_o must_v go_v before_o they_o by_o good_a example_n and_o practice_n of_o all_o holy_a duty_n as_o paul_n will_v have_v timothy_n to_o do_v 1_o tim._n 4_o 12_o as_o we_o look_v for_o any_o comfort_n at_o the_o lord_n hand_n in_o that_o great_a day_n of_o his_o dreadful_a judgement_n when_o he_o will_v bring_v every_o work_n to_o light_n with_o every_o secret_a thing_n whether_o good_a or_o evil_a eccl._n 12_o 12._o if_o we_o have_v be_v example_n in_o good_a thing_n we_o shall_v receyve_v everlasting_a life_n if_o example_n in_o evil_a everlasting_a death_n four_o the_o lord_n single_v out_o the_o father_n and_o master_n in_o the_o first_o place_n because_o if_o they_o go_v before_o and_o lead_v the_o way_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o house_n will_v quick_o follow_v after_o john_n chap._n 4_o verse_n 53._o act_n chapter_n sixteen_o verse_n 32_o contrariwise_o if_o they_o yield_v not_o obedience_n for_o conscience_n sake_n to_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o sabbath_n they_o may_v by_o the_o abuse_n of_o their_o authority_n hinder_v &_o frustrate_v the_o holy_a endeavour_n of_o his_o child_n &_o servant_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o many_o father_n urge_v their_o child_n many_o master_n command_v their_o servant_n to_o go_v about_o their_o own_o business_n and_o send_v they_o from_o place_n to_o place_n at_o that_o time_n when_o they_o shall_v attend_v to_o the_o holy_a commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n whereas_o both_o of_o they_o may_v well_o and_o lawful_o reply_v to_o their_o father_n and_o master_n and_o say_v with_o christ_n our_o saviour_n luke_n 2_o 49_o witted_a you_o not_o that_o i_o must_v be_v about_o my_o father_n business_n last_o the_o lord_n lay_v this_o weighty_a charge_n upon_o they_o that_o such_o as_o be_v under_o their_o government_n may_v yield_v willing_o and_o cheerful_o to_o god_n will_v consider_v how_o straight_o a_o charge_n god_n have_v give_v to_o all_o governor_n if_o they_o shall_v do_v it_o of_o their_o own_o head_n or_o lay_v a_o heavy_a burden_n upon_o they_o which_o themselves_o will_v not_o touch_v with_o their_o little_a finger_n the_o charge_n can_v carry_v no_o authority_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o their_o father_n or_o master_n that_o restrain_v they_o of_o their_o liberty_n &_o tie_v up_o their_o wicked_a and_o wander_a affection_n but_o god_n himself_o to_o who_o all_o obedience_n be_v due_a the_o father_n do_v show_v love_n to_o his_o child_n when_o he_o restrayn_v they_o from_o wickedness_n the_o master_n do_v no_o wrong_n to_o his_o servant_n that_o bridle_v they_o from_o follow_v their_o own_o will_n and_o pleasure_n so_o then_o the_o point_n to_o be_v learned_a and_o practise_v be_v that_o we_o must_v first_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n in_o our_o own_o person_n and_o begin_v reformation_n within_o the_o door_n or_o closert_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n or_o else_o we_o will_v be_v very_o remiss_a &_o negligent_a in_o reform_v of_o other_o or_o if_o we_o be_v forward_o we_o shall_v be_v charge_v and_o challenge_v to_o be_v hypocrite_n while_o we_o teach_v other_o but_o do_v not_o teach_v ourselves_o rom._n 2_o 21._o second_o we_o must_v cast_v our_o eye_n upon_o other_o and_o look_v to_o they_o that_o belong_v unto_o we_o that_o they_o may_v sanctify_v the_o sabbath_n as_o well_o as_o ourselves_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o we_o to_o come_v to_o the_o house_n of_o of_o god_n alone_o but_o we_o must_v come_v with_o the_o train_n of_o our_o family_n as_o a_o captain_n with_o his_o army_n psal_n 110_o 3_o and_o 42.4_o the_o father_n oftentimes_o be_v pray_v in_o the_o church_n when_o his_o child_n be_v play_v in_o the_o street_n the_o master_n many_o time_n sit_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n when_o his_o servant_n lie_v at_o the_o alehouse_n the_o wife_n sometime_o go_v with_o her_o husband_n to_o the_o sermon_n when_o the_o daughter_n and_o maidservant_n either_o be_v send_v or_o suffer_v to_o run_v to_o lascivious_a dance_n and_o wanton_a company_n whereby_o their_o mind_n and_o oftentimes_o their_o body_n also_o be_v defile_v as_o it_o fall_v out_o to_o dinah_n gen._n chapter_n 34_o verse_n 1_o 2_o and_o so_o the_o say_n of_o solomon_n be_v verify_v proverb_n chap._n 29_o verse_n 15._o a_o child_n leave_v to_o himself_o bring_v his_o mother_n to_o shame_n but_o haply_o some_o master_n will_v allege_v for_o themselves_o that_o their_o servant_n be_v unruly_a object_n as_o the_o untamed_a heyffer_n and_o will_v not_o be_v order_v by_o they_o that_o they_o be_v much_o greeve_v they_o can_v prevail_v no_o more_o with_o they_o and_o that_o they_o break_v out_o and_o will_v not_o be_v hold_v in_o by_o they_o i_o answer_v answer_v this_o be_v not_o a_o good_a plea_n but_o a_o vain_a excuse_n and_o no_o better_o for_o if_o thy_o authority_n serve_v to_o bridle_v they_o and_o keep_v they_o under_o in_o the_o six_o day_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o thou_o want_v power_n to_o prevail_v over_o they_o on_o the_o seven_o day_n can_v we_o rule_v they_o in_o our_o own_o cause_n and_o can_v we_o not_o rule_v they_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n have_v we_o mean_v to_o enforce_v they_o to_o look_v to_o our_o business_n and_o want_v we_o mean_v to_o compel_v they_o to_o do_v god_n business_n it_o seem_v therefore_o to_o i_o to_o be_v rather_o want_v of_o will_n in_o we_o object_n then_o of_o power_n if_o we_o pretend_v far_o that_o they_o be_v incorrigible_a and_o will_v have_v their_o own_o swinge_n and_o be_v at_o their_o own_o liberty_n that_o day_n answ_n we_o have_v no_o warrant_n to_o burden_v our_o house_n with_o such_o person_n that_o will_v neither_o serve_v the_o lord_n nor_o obey_v we_o but_o rather_o infect_v other_o that_o live_v with_o they_o the_o prophet_n david_n profess_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o serve_v he_o that_o be_v ungodly_a his_o eye_n shall_v be_v upon_o the_o faithful_a to_o dwell_v with_o he_o but_o the_o wicked_a shall_v not_o tarry_v in_o his_o house_n psal_n 101_o 6_o 7._o why_o then_o shall_v we_o keep_v they_o in_o our_o house_n that_o love_v not_o the_o house_n of_o god_n we_o will_v quick_o discharge_v that_o servant_n which_o have_v no_o care_n of_o our_o business_n why_o then_o will_v we_o trouble_v ourselves_o &_o our_o house_n with_o he_o that_o be_v unfaithful_a towards_o god_n thus_o than_o we_o see_v the_o care_n that_o all_o aught_o to_o have_v of_o the_o sabbath_n both_o master_n and_o servant_n father_n and_o son_n husband_n and_o wife_n but_o alas_o the_o profaneness_n of_o our_o time_n be_v so_o great_a that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n utter_o contemn_v &_o we_o give_v he_o lest_o service_n on_o that_o day_n wherein_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o give_v he_o most_o duty_n for_o we_o see_v here_o under_o the_o law_n how_o the_o lord_n command_v that_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n which_o every_o morning_n and_o evening_n be_v offer_v shall_v be_v double_v upon_o the_o sabbath_n but_o our_o people_n for_o the_o most_o part_n perform_v single_a service_n and_o double_a impiety_n upon_o that_o day_n the_o great_a service_n be_v do_v to_o ourselves_o or_o that_o which_o be_v worse_o to_o the_o devil_n but_o of_o the_o sabbath_n we_o have_v speak_v before_o chap._n 15._o 11_o and_o in_o the_o beginning_n of_o your_o month_n you_o shall_v offer_v a_o burn_a offering_n unto_o the_o lord_n two_o young_a bullock_n and_o a_o ram_n and_o seven_o lamb_n of_o a_o year_n old_a without_o spot_n 12_o and_o three_o ten_o deal_v of_o flower_n for_o a_o meat_n offer_v etc._n etc._n 13_o and_o a_o several_a ten_o deal_n of_o fine_a flower_n mingle_v with_o oil_n
it_o be_v know_v that_o they_o do_v it_o for_o conscience_n sake_n except_o they_o make_v conscience_n of_o the_o holy_a exercise_n of_o the_o sabbath_n so_o then_o every_o man_n ought_v to_o examine_v himself_o and_o see_v whether_o he_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o some_o evil_n even_o while_o he_o abstayn_v from_o evil_a and_o hereby_o we_o may_v find_v out_o the_o truth_n if_o we_o make_v conscience_n of_o the_o contrary_a good_a command_v and_o require_v than_o our_o heart_n be_v right_a for_o this_o be_v a_o certain_a rule_n that_o never_o fail_v and_o we_o shall_v always_o find_v it_o true_a that_o he_o never_o have_v any_o true_a fear_n of_o sin_n or_o of_o displease_v god_n that_o have_v not_o withal_o a_o care_n to_o please_v god_n three_o this_o doctrine_n convince_v we_o as_o use_v 3_o guilty_a of_o sin_n even_o from_o our_o mother_n womb_n we_o have_v all_o go_v astray_o and_o be_v culpable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n for_o all_o that_o man_n can_v boast_v off_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o abstayning_a from_o evil_n they_o can_v say_v nothing_o touch_v any_o good_a that_o they_o have_v do_v they_o can_v allege_v for_o themselves_o they_o have_v not_o be_v corrupt_a idolater_n scoff_a ismaelite_n or_o profane_a esave_n they_o can_v challenge_v unto_o themselves_o that_o they_o have_v be_v zealous_a worshipper_n or_o faithful_a and_o careful_a professor_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o what_o shall_v it_o profit_v we_o not_o to_o be_v profane_a as_o esau_n except_o we_o have_v labour_v to_o be_v like_o david_n a_o man_n after_o god_n own_o heart_n what_o shall_v it_o profit_v we_o not_o to_o be_v scoff_v ishmaelite_n except_o also_o we_o labour_v to_o preserve_v the_o good_a name_n of_o our_o brethren_n or_o what_o shall_v it_o avayle_v we_o not_o to_o be_v oppressor_n and_o such_o as_o be_v full_a of_o cruelty_n except_o we_o be_v also_o lover_n of_o mercy_n and_o full_a of_o good_a work_n certain_o except_o this_o be_v in_o we_o we_o can_v free_v ourselves_o from_o the_o just_a imputation_n of_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n will_v any_o man_n account_n that_o a_o good_a hand_n which_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v any_o good_a to_o the_o body_n and_o to_o be_v able_a only_o to_o say_v it_o do_v never_o cut_v out_o the_o tongue_n out_o of_o the_o mouth_n or_o pull_v the_o eye_n out_o of_o the_o head_n or_o draw_v the_o heart_n out_o of_o the_o body_n the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o other_o member_n for_o will_v any_o praise_n and_o commend_v the_o mouth_n to_o be_v fit_n and_o profitable_a to_o the_o body_n that_o can_v only_o say_v thus_o much_o for_o itself_o that_o it_o do_v never_o tear_v the_o flesh_n from_o the_o body_n or_o swallow_v poison_n to_o the_o end_n to_o destroy_v the_o body_n if_o then_o it_o be_v evil_a that_o the_o member_n shall_v not_o do_v those_o good_a duty_n and_o function_n about_o the_o body_n that_o be_v require_v of_o they_o we_o may_v reason_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n for_o our_o purpose_n why_o shall_v not_o a_o man_n be_v just_o condemn_v that_o can_v only_o boast_v that_o he_o have_v not_o do_v evil_a when_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n he_o can_v show_v any_o good_a that_o he_o have_v do_v doubtless_o such_o a_o one_o be_v no_o true_a member_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o we_o make_v god_n our_o adversary_n when_o he_o find_v we_o a_o barren_a field_n without_o good_a corn_n as_o well_o as_o when_o we_o bring_v forth_o nothing_o but_o thorn_n and_o thistle_n and_o our_o house_n be_v fit_a to_o lodge_v and_o entertain_v satan_n and_o other_o unclean_a spirit_n math._n 12_o verse_n 44_o when_o they_o find_v it_o sweep_v and_o empty_a of_o god_n grace_n if_o we_o have_v never_o actual_o commit_v any_o sin_n yet_o because_o we_o omit_v such_o duty_n as_o almighty_a god_n look_v for_o at_o our_o hand_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o work_v our_o condemnation_n and_o destruction_n wherefore_o be_v meroz_n curse_v in_o the_o song_n of_o deborah_n be_v it_o because_o they_o fight_v against_o god_n people_n and_o join_v with_o the_o enemy_n no_o it_o be_v because_o they_o do_v not_o assist_v they_o and_o help_v they_o against_o the_o mighty_a judg._n 5_o verse_n 23._o and_o the_o unprofitable_a and_o unfaithful_a servant_n be_v cast_v into_o utter_a darkness_n not_o for_o mispend_v his_o master_n talon_n or_o for_o waste_v it_o on_o harlot_n or_o riotous_a live_n but_o because_o he_o do_v not_o use_v it_o well_o nor_o employ_v it_o to_o his_o master_n advantage_n math._n 25_o verse_n 27_o 33._o and_o wherefore_o shall_v many_o reprobate_n be_v condemn_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n shall_v it_o be_v for_o take_v food_n from_o the_o hungry_a or_o drink_v from_o the_o thirsty_a or_o garment_n from_o the_o needy_a or_o lodging_n from_o the_o stranger_n or_o comfort_n from_o the_o sick_a or_o relief_n from_o the_o prisoner_n no_o because_o they_o do_v not_o feed_v they_o nor_o clothe_v they_o nor_o visit_v they_o nor_o harbour_v they_o he_o that_o be_v a_o true_a and_o loyal_a subject_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o he_o not_o to_o serve_v his_o prince_n enemy_n but_o he_o must_v serve_v his_o prince_n also_o so_o if_o we_o will_v be_v the_o lord_n servant_n and_o subject_n we_o must_v not_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o live_v ydle_o and_o to_o serve_v no_o body_n but_o we_o must_v do_v faithful_a service_n to_o he_o that_o have_v create_v redeem_v call_v justify_v and_o sanctify_v we_o otherwise_o there_o will_v always_o be_v sufficient_a matter_n for_o our_o endightment_n and_o just_a condemnation_n when_o we_o shall_v appear_v before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n for_o every_o tree_n that_o bring_v not_o forth_o good_a fruit_n shall_v be_v hew_v down_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n math._n 3_o verse_n 10._o will_v a_o man_n accept_v of_o such_o a_o servant_n that_o content_v himself_o to_o do_v he_o no_o hurt_n or_o no_o evil_a when_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n he_o do_v he_o no_o good_a shall_v the_o briar_n or_o thistle_n only_o be_v cut_v down_o in_o the_o wilderness_n no_o the_o fruitless_a tree_n also_o shall_v go_v with_o it_o though_o it_o grow_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o paradise_n to_o conclude_v the_o word_n of_o exhortation_n arise_v from_o hence_o be_v thus_o much_o for_o every_o one_o of_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v labour_v to_o join_v these_o two_o together_o know_v that_o the_o one_o can_v be_v profitable_a without_o the_o other_o and_o therefore_o we_o must_v labour_v to_o perform_v the_o good_a require_v as_o well_o as_o to_o abstain_v from_o the_o evil_n forbid_v so_o shall_v we_o find_v almighty_a god_n to_o be_v gracious_a unto_o we_o and_o we_o shall_v please_v he_o in_o our_o obedience_n verse_n 15_o 16._o and_o moses_n say_v unto_o they_o have_v you_o save_v all_o the_o woman_n alive_a now_o therefore_o kill_v every_o male_a and_o every_o woman_n etc._n etc._n a_o man_n will_v think_v at_o the_o first_o that_o this_o sex_n shall_v move_v commiseration_n and_o pity_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o stay_v the_o hand_n from_o execution_n the_o wrath_n of_o moses_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v too_o severe_a object_n and_o to_o savour_n of_o barbarousnes_n in_o that_o he_o will_v the_o man_n of_o war_n to_o commit_v such_o carnage_n not_o only_o upon_o the_o woman_n but_o upon_o the_o little_a one_o that_o can_v not_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o parent_n neither_o be_v able_a to_o discern_v between_o good_a and_o evil_a neither_o know_v the_o right_a hand_n from_o the_o left_a the_o woman_n perish_v just_o who_o have_v lay_v a_o stumble_a block_n before_o israel_n but_o the_o poor_a infant_n and_o suckling_n what_o have_v they_o do_v answ_n i_o answer_v they_o be_v by_o nature_n sinner_n and_o as_o a_o brood_n of_o serpent_n and_o albeit_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n ezek_n 18_o yet_o who_o can_v accuse_v god_n of_o injustice_n see_v all_o be_v guilty_a of_o original_a sin_n which_o deserve_v death_n but_o of_o this_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o now_o to_o apply_v this_o the_o woman_n that_o have_v know_v man_n be_v command_v to_o be_v destroy_v because_o they_o have_v worthy_o bring_v that_o general_a judgement_n by_o their_o horrible_a sin_n they_o transgress_v against_o god_n and_o god_n bring_v this_o judgement_n upon_o they_o himself_o doctrine_n every_o man_n death_n &_o destruction_n come_v from_o himself_o this_o teach_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o a_o man_n ruin_n the_o procurer_n of_o his_o plague_n and_o of_o destruction_n be_v none_o other_o but_o himself_o let_v we_o never_o seek_v the_o cause_n out_o of_o ourselves_o but_o within_o us._n the_o cause_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o these_o midianitish_a woman_n be_v not_o in_o
purchase_v it_o the_o prophet_n teach_v that_o the_o people_n be_v destroy_v for_o want_n of_o knowledge_n hos_fw-la 4_o 6_o &_o thereby_o deprive_v themselves_o of_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n use_v 3_o last_o we_o shall_v learn_v to_o eschew_v &_o avoid_v idolatry_n in_o the_o very_a beginning_n before_o by_o custom_n and_o continuance_n it_o be_v increase_v if_o we_o once_o entertain_v it_o with_o the_o least_o like_n and_o approbation_n we_o shall_v never_o or_o hardly_o reclaim_v ourselves_o till_o we_o fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o it_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v we_o to_o abstain_v from_o all_o appearance_n of_o evil_a 1_o thess_n 5_o 22._o and_o jude_n admonish_v we_o to_o hate_v the_o garment_n spot_v with_o the_o flesh_n verse_n 23._o we_o must_v hate_v therefore_o as_o well_o the_o occasion_n and_o appurtenance_n of_o idolatry_n as_o idolatry_n itself_o as_o those_o thing_n which_o bring_v much_o dishonour_n to_o god_n and_o much_o hurt_n unto_o our_o own_o soul_n objection_n but_o some_o peradventure_o will_v say_v what_o need_v all_o these_o thing_n or_o what_o cause_n be_v there_o of_o so_o many_o word_n touch_v idolatry_n &_o the_o remnant_n thereof_o all_o this_o may_v well_o enough_o be_v spare_v and_o pass_v over_o forasmuch_o as_o here_o be_v none_o of_o we_o that_o be_v idolater_n and_o if_o any_o have_v be_v so_o that_o be_v forget_v and_o forgive_v long_o ago_o i_o answer_v answ_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v but_o confess_v that_o we_o live_v in_o a_o reform_a church_n wherein_o idolatry_n be_v sweep_v away_o and_o yet_o many_o do_v in_o this_o point_n much_o deceive_v themselves_o and_o be_v like_o the_o pharisy_n that_o justify_v themselves_o for_o if_o we_o will_v examine_v ourselves_o by_o the_o strict_a rule_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n what_o idolatry_n be_v and_o what_o it_o be_v not_o then_o certain_o it_o will_v manifest_o appear_v that_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n there_o be_v idolater_n yea_o notable_a idolater_n to_o be_v find_v the_o law_n be_v plain_a and_o do_v we_o not_o read_v what_o god_n say_v exodus_fw-la 20_o verse_n 4_o thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o any_o grave_a image_n neither_o the_o similitude_n of_o any_o thing_n thou_o shall_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o they_o nor_o serve_v they_o if_o these_o be_v ask_v of_o this_o commandment_n they_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o answer_v with_o the_o young_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n all_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o keep_v from_o my_o youth_n matth._n 19_o 20._o for_o we_o think_v common_o that_o unless_o we_o be_v popish_a idolater_n to_o fall_v down_o before_o a_o idol_n &_o worship_n it_o we_o be_v no_o idolater_n at_o all_o but_o hereby_o we_o show_v that_o we_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o law_n of_o god_n neither_o the_o rule_n of_o interpretation_n for_o as_o murder_n consist_v not_o only_o in_o take_v away_o life_n but_o in_o hatred_n also_o and_o revenge_v as_o the_o apostle_n john_n testify_v whosoever_o hate_v his_o brother_n be_v a_o murderer_n and_o you_o know_v that_o no_o murderer_n have_v eternal_a life_n abide_v in_o he_o 1_o john_n chapter_n 3_o verse_n 15._o matth._n chapter_n 5_o verse_n 22_o and_o as_o adultery_n consist_v not_o only_o in_o the_o outward_a act_n but_o also_o in_o the_o inward_a and_o secret_a lust_n of_o the_o heart_n so_o may_v there_o be_v idolater_n that_o do_v not_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_v a_o idol_n and_o there_o be_v a_o idolatry_n in_o the_o heart_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o practice_n the_o apostle_n paul_n in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n chapter_n 4_o verse_n 4_o call_v the_o devil_n the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v none_o in_o the_o church_n that_o worship_n the_o devil_n in_o any_o outward_a or_o visible_a shape_n but_o they_o hate_v the_o thought_n of_o it_o no_o less_o than_o the_o deed_n how_o then_o be_v it_o that_o many_o or_o that_o any_o make_v he_o their_o god_n but_o that_o they_o believe_v in_o he_o obey_v he_o and_o trust_v more_o in_o he_o then_o they_o do_v in_o almighty_a god_n whereupon_o he_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v no_o better_a than_o worshipper_n of_o the_o devil_n howsoever_o not_o in_o outward_a fashion_n yet_o in_o the_o inward_a affection_n so_o if_o we_o will_v examine_v our_o own_o heart_n and_o spirit_n by_o this_o law_n which_o be_v spiritual_a we_o shall_v find_v ourselves_o to_o be_v gross_a idolater_n many_o way_n many_o worship_v their_o wealth_n and_o make_v their_o riches_n their_o god_n and_o set_v it_o up_o as_o a_o idol_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o this_o be_v one_o relic_n of_o idolatry_n these_o be_v they_o that_o think_v gain_v to_o be_v godliness_n 5._o 1_o tim._n 6_o 5._o and_o be_v gross_a idolater_n in_o their_o heart_n howsoever_o they_o never_o worship_v any_o visible_a image_n again_o there_o be_v some_o that_o worship_n god_n with_o their_o belly_n phil._n 3_o 19_o such_o be_v the_o drunkard_n &_o gluttonous_a person_n howsoever_o otherwise_o they_o hate_v a_o image_n yet_o be_v they_o notable_a idolater_n in_o their_o heart_n there_o be_v also_o idolater_n of_o other_o sort_n and_o other_o relic_n of_o idolatry_n some_o have_v make_v their_o pleasure_n their_o god_n this_o be_v the_o common_a sin_n of_o great_a man_n and_o these_o worship_n and_o serve_v their_o own_o delight_n and_o pastime_n &_o love_v they_o more_o than_o the_o lord_n now_o whatsoever_o a_o man_n love_v better_a than_o god_n that_o same_o he_o make_v to_o be_v his_o god_n many_o such_o there_o be_v among_o we_o who_o albeit_o they_o abhor_v the_o open_a worship_v of_o image_n yet_o in_o their_o heart_n they_o retain_v the_o dregs_n of_o idolatry_n and_o be_v indeed_o notable_a idolater_n and_o if_o we_o will_v make_v diligent_a trial_n of_o ourselves_o and_o search_v into_o the_o secret_a corner_n of_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o clear_a light_n of_o the_o word_n as_o with_o a_o candle_n we_o shall_v find_v our_o place_n person_n and_o time_n to_o be_v full_a of_o idolatry_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o most_o part_n have_v prefer_v their_o pride_n their_o covetousness_n their_o lust_n before_o god_n himself_o and_o therefore_o these_o be_v idolater_n &_o have_v join_v themselves_o to_o idol_n and_o concern_v those_o that_o have_v live_v heretofore_o in_o idolatry_n and_o think_v that_o now_o they_o have_v forsake_v it_o &_o therefore_o shall_v do_v well_o enough_o let_v they_o take_v heed_n they_o do_v not_o deceyve_v themselves_o for_o a_o man_n may_v leave_v sin_n and_o yet_o not_o repent_v for_o it_o a_o man_n may_v cease_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o not_o hate_v it_o neither_o turn_n unto_o god_n and_o doubtless_o if_o these_o man_n can_v yet_o laugh_v hearty_o at_o their_o former_a practice_n and_o make_v a_o jest_n and_o sport_n in_o tell_v what_o they_o have_v do_v before_o a_o abominable_a idol_n they_o may_v just_o suspect_v that_o they_o remain_v filthy_a idolater_n still_o and_o if_o occasion_n be_v present_v unto_o they_o again_o they_o will_v fall_v afresh_o to_o their_o former_a idolatry_n as_o the_o dog_n to_o his_o vomit_n i_o say_v therefore_o unto_o such_o that_o without_o unfeigned_a repentance_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n but_o as_o they_o live_v in_o idolatry_n so_o they_o shall_v die_v idolater_n and_o be_v condemn_v with_o idolater_n eternal_o revel_v 21._o verse_n 8._o chap._n xxxiii_o 1_o these_o be_v the_o journey_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n which_o go_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n with_o their_o army_n under_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n and_o aaron_n 2_o and_o moses_n write_v their_o go_n out_o according_a to_o their_o journey_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o these_o be_v their_o journey_n according_a to_o their_o go_n out_o 3_o and_o they_o depart_v from_o ramese_n in_o the_o first_o month_n on_o the_o 15_o day_n of_o the_o first_o month_n on_o the_o morrow_n after_o the_o passeover_n the_o child_n of_o israel_n go_v out_o with_o a_o high_a hand_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o the_o egyptian_n 4_o for_o the_o egyptian_n bury_v all_o their_o first_o bear_v which_o the_o lord_n have_v smite_v among_o they_o upon_o their_o god_n also_o the_o lord_n execute_v judgement_n 5_o and_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n remove_v from_o ramese_n and_o pitch_v in_o succoth_n 6_o and_o from_o succoth_n etc._n etc._n after_o the_o inheritance_n be_v give_v to_o the_o two_o tribe_n &_o the_o half_a on_o this_o side_n jordan_n moses_n describe_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o place_n of_o their_o abode_n in_o the_o wilderness_n their_o several_a mansion_n where_o they_o pitch_v &_o their_o tent_n until_o they_o enter_v into_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n in_o this_o chapter_n consider_v
but_o meet_v with_o they_o one_o way_n or_o other_o either_o he_o strike_v they_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n that_o do_v lift_v up_o their_o hand_n to_o strike_v other_o or_o he_o deliver_v they_o over_o to_o the_o magistrate_n some_o time_n he_o make_v they_o to_o be_v witness_n against_o themselves_o sometime_o to_o discover_v themselves_o in_o their_o dream_n sometime_o to_o feel_v the_o torment_n of_o hell_n in_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o sometime_o the_o bird_n of_o the_o air_n to_o reveal_v they_o we_o see_v this_o in_o cain_n that_o slay_v his_o brother_n for_o god_n set_v a_o mark_n upon_o he_o and_o brand_v he_o for_o his_o wretched_a parricide_n genesis_n 4_o verse_n 15._o this_o the_o very_a heathen_a themselves_n know_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n that_o howsoever_o the_o murderer_n may_v escape_v out_o of_o some_o danger_n yet_o vengeance_n will_v pursue_v and_o overtake_v he_o act_v 28_o 4._o this_o we_o see_v in_o herod_n that_o kill_v james_n with_o the_o sword_n and_o put_v peter_n in_o prison_n intend_v also_o the_o like_a against_o he_o he_o escape_v not_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n long_o but_o his_o deep_a vengeance_n do_v so_o dog_v he_o at_o the_o heel_n that_o he_o be_v smite_v short_o after_o by_o the_o great_a stroke_n of_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n and_o be_v eat_v up_o of_o worm_n act_n 12_o 2.23_o thus_o do_v samuel_n speak_v to_o king_n agag_n 1_o sam._n 15_o 33._o as_o thy_o sword_n have_v make_v woman_n childless_a so_o shall_v thy_o mother_n be_v childless_a among_o woman_n and_o he_o hew_v he_o in_o piece_n before_o the_o lord_n the_o like_a we_o see_v in_o joab_n who_o be_v smite_v with_o the_o sword_n as_o he_o have_v kill_v other_o 1_o kings_z 2_o 31_o 32._o and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v what_o david_n say_v of_o he_o concern_v the_o blood_n of_o abner_n that_o he_o have_v spill_v 2_o sa._n 3_o 29._o let_v it_o rest_v on_o the_o head_n of_o joab_n and_o on_o all_o his_o father_n house_n and_o let_v there_o not_o fail_v from_o the_o house_n of_o joab_n one_o that_o have_v a_o issue_n or_o that_o be_v a_o leper_n or_o that_o lean_v on_o a_o staff_n or_o that_o fall_v on_o the_o sword_n or_o that_o lack_v bread_n three_o god_n do_v so_o detest_v murder_n that_o if_o a_o beast_n kill_v a_o man_n it_o must_v be_v stone_v to_o death_n and_o his_o flesh_n not_o eat_v exod._n 21_o 28._o what_o be_v god_n offend_v with_o the_o bruit_n beast_n or_o do_v they_o sin_n against_o he_o and_o break_v his_o commandment_n no_o but_o thereby_o god_n will_v show_v how_o much_o he_o abhor_v the_o shed_n of_o man_n blood_n and_o that_o man_n shall_v lay_v it_o to_o his_o heart_n four_o it_o be_v a_o offence_n against_o a_o man_n own_o flesh_n eph._n 5_o 29_o no_o man_n ever_o yet_o hate_v his_o own_o flesh_n but_o nourish_v and_o cherish_v it_o now_o every_o man_n be_v as_o our_o own_o flesh_n esay_n 58_o 7._o we_o see_v bear_n and_o lion_n and_o tiger_n and_o wild_a beast_n do_v play_v together_o because_o they_o be_v of_o one_o kind_n mankind_n be_v of_o one_o kind_n if_o we_o do_v not_o agree_v together_o but_o prey_v one_o upon_o another_o we_o be_v more_o fierce_a than_o bear_n more_o cruel_a than_o lion_n more_o merciless_a than_o tiger_n and_o more_o savage_a than_o wild_a beast_n five_o such_o as_o slay_v another_o violent_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o city_n of_o refuge_n by_o violence_n god_n will_v give_v no_o protection_n to_o such_o beast_n neither_o city_n nor_o altar_n nor_o tabernacle_n nor_o any_o thing_n can_v yield_v they_o any_o safeguard_n deu._n 19_o 11_o 12_o 13._o 1_o king_n 2_o 31_o 32._o six_o it_o be_v a_o cry_a sin_n blood_n have_v a_o very_a loud_a voice_n and_o never_o cease_v cry_v until_o judgement_n fall_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o murderer_n gen._n 4_o 10._o behold_v the_o blood_n of_o thy_o brother_n cry_v from_o the_o earth_n abel_n be_v now_o dead_a his_o mouth_n be_v stop_v and_o he_o can_v not_o speak_v but_o his_o blood_n can_v speak_v the_o which_o call_v and_o cry_v in_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n from_o the_o earth_n for_o vengeance_n hebre._n 11_o 4._o seventh_o no_o pardon_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o such_o as_o appeareth_z in_o this_o chapter_n and_o verse_n 32._o you_o shall_v take_v no_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o life_n of_o he_o that_o be_v a_o murderer_n which_o be_v guilty_a of_o death_n but_o he_o shall_v sure_o be_v put_v to_o death_n last_o the_o land_n be_v defile_v by_o it_o ver_fw-la 33_o 34._o blood_n defile_v the_o land_n and_o the_o land_n can_v be_v cleanse_v of_o the_o blood_n that_o be_v shed_v therein_o but_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o he_o that_o shed_v it_o defile_v not_o therefore_o the_o land_n which_o you_o shall_v inherit_v wherein_o i_o dwell_v for_o i_o the_o lord_n dwell_v among_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o use_n first_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o fear_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o if_o he_o come_v to_o make_v inquisition_n of_o blood_n he_o shall_v find_v much_o blood_n spill_v upon_o the_o earth_n like_o water_n that_o can_v be_v gather_v up_o again_o throughout_o the_o whole_a land_n what_o abundance_n of_o injustice_n and_o cruelty_n be_v there_o to_o be_v find_v in_o every_o place_n and_o think_v to_o be_v just_a and_o upright_o deal_n how_o many_o be_v there_o to_o be_v find_v that_o have_v once_o conceyve_v anger_n and_o malice_n in_o their_o heart_n will_v remain_v whole_a day_n and_o month_n and_o year_n before_o they_o will_v be_v reconcile_v nay_o speak_v one_o to_o another_o thereby_o deprive_v themselves_o of_o the_o mutual_a comfort_n they_o may_v reap_v and_o receyve_v and_o by_o suffer_v the_o sun_n to_o go_v down_o upon_o their_o wrath_n do_v give_v place_n to_o satan_n to_o enter_v into_o they_o &_o to_o possess_v they_o eph._n 4_o 26_o 27._o and_o what_o colour_n soever_o man_n set_v upon_o their_o cruelty_n it_o be_v but_o a_o false_a paint_n of_o a_o foul_a face_n as_o adam_n figleave_n that_o cover_v his_o shame_n but_o can_v not_o hide_v his_o sin_n if_o it_o be_v do_v under_o pretence_n of_o law_n it_o be_v a_o most_o fearful_a sin_n the_o pretence_n itself_o make_v it_o more_o fearful_a because_o feign_a justice_n be_v a_o double_a injustice_n when_o the_o law_n be_v so_o wrest_a that_o it_o be_v make_v the_o occasion_n of_o murder_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v offensive_a &_o displease_v unto_o god_n and_o albeit_o this_o sin_n be_v commit_v by_o the_o magistrate_n in_o let_v malefactor_n go_v unpunished_a yet_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v offensive_a unto_o god_n because_o it_o be_v that_o which_o bring_v the_o guilt_n of_o blood_n upon_o the_o land_n &_o nothing_o can_v cleanse_v the_o land_n from_o blood_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o he_o that_o shed_v blood_n this_o make_v the_o prophet_n say_v to_o ahab_n because_o thou_o have_v let_v go_v out_o of_o thy_o hand_n a_o man_n who_o i_o appoint_v unto_o destruction_n therefore_o thy_o life_n shall_v go_v for_o his_o life_n and_o thy_o people_n for_o his_o people_n 1_o king_n 20_o 42._o when_o there_o be_v a_o famine_n in_o the_o land_n in_o the_o day_n of_o david_n three_o year_n year_n after_o year_n and_o he_o inquire_v of_o the_o lord_n the_o cause_n of_o that_o sore_a judgement_n the_o lord_n answer_v it_o be_v for_o saul_n and_o for_o his_o bloody_a house_n because_o he_o slay_v the_o gibeonite_n 2_o sam._n 21_o 1_o and_o the_o atonement_n can_v not_o be_v make_v until_o seven_o man_n of_o his_o son_n be_v deliver_v into_o their_o hand_n and_o they_o be_v hang_v up_o unto_o the_o lord_n that_o his_o inheritance_n may_v be_v bless_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o son_n of_o eli_n become_v to_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o their_o father_n not_o because_o he_o be_v their_o father_n neither_o yet_o because_o he_o be_v the_o committer_n of_o they_o but_o because_o he_o be_v a_o magistrate_n do_v not_o punish_v &_o correct_v they_o so_o likewise_o when_o judgement_n be_v not_o execute_v upon_o man_n for_o their_o sin_n the_o blood_n of_o those_o which_o be_v slay_v must_v needs_o remain_v in_o the_o land_n if_o this_o be_v commit_v by_o way_n of_o revenge_n it_o be_v also_o a_o heinous_a sin_n against_o almighty_a god_n because_o he_o that_o do_v it_o prevent_v god_n work_n and_o so_o provoke_v god_n wrath_n for_o he_o take_v god_n office_n out_o of_o his_o hand_n and_o take_v up_o his_o place_n who_o have_v say_v vengeance_n be_v i_o rom._n 12._o and_o if_o we_o ascend_v to_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o man_n shall_v we_o not_o find_v among_o they_o little_a conscience_n make_v of_o shed_v
priest_n servant_n if_o he_o have_v call_v to_o mind_n that_o the_o sword_n be_v not_o put_v into_o his_o hand_n math._n 26_o 51._o let_v every_o man_n labour_n to_o see_v what_o god_n have_v call_v he_o unto_o and_o look_v to_o the_o thing_n command_v unto_o he_o private_a man_n may_v not_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o reform_v every_o thing_n that_o be_v amiss_o have_v no_o authority_n thereunto_o and_o if_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o suffer_v for_o such_o thing_n they_o shall_v find_v but_o little_a comfort_n in_o their_o suffering_n because_o this_o be_v to_o suffer_v as_o evil_a doer_n albeit_o not_o for_o do_v of_o evil_a use_v 3_o last_o if_o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o do_v good_a sometime_o when_o it_o be_v do_v unlawful_o then_o how_o much_o more_o be_v it_o unlawful_a to_o do_v that_o which_o in_o itself_o and_o in_o it_o own_o nature_n be_v unlawful_a and_o if_o god_n reject_v the_o action_n of_o man_n when_o they_o be_v do_v in_o a_o evil_a manner_n how_o much_o more_o do_v he_o abhor_v the_o work_n of_o carnal_a man_n when_o they_o be_v wicked_a &_o ungodly_a in_o the_o very_a substance_n and_o if_o he_o accept_v not_o those_o action_n which_o might_n be_v do_v well_o if_o they_o be_v do_v by_o another_o how_o much_o less_o those_o that_o can_v be_v well_o do_v by_o none_o of_o which_o we_o may_v say_v with_o solomon_n behold_v the_o righteous_a shall_v be_v recompense_v in_o the_o earth_n how_o much_o more_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o sinner_n prou._n 11_o 31._o if_o the_o faithful_a offend_v in_o do_v lawful_a thing_n much_o more_o do_v the_o ungodly_a that_o never_o regard_v to_o do_v any_o good_a and_o if_o they_o sin_n against_o god_n that_o hear_v his_o word_n amiss_o how_o much_o more_o sinful_a be_v they_o that_o will_v not_o hear_v it_o at_o all_o and_o if_o they_o provoke_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n that_o do_v good_a in_o a_o evil_a manner_n much_o more_o do_v they_o that_o sin_n in_o a_o evil_a matter_n and_o most_o of_o all_o when_o the_o heart_n be_v evil_a also_o as_o prou._n 21_o 27_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v abomination_n how_o much_o more_o when_o he_o bring_v it_o with_o a_o wicked_a mind_n the_o faithful_a have_v many_o time_n a_o good_a intent_n when_o they_o think_v to_o do_v god_n good_a service_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o accept_v because_o they_o fail_v in_o the_o manner_n woe_n then_o to_o those_o who_o very_a heart_n be_v set_v upon_o evil_n and_o have_v no_o delight_n in_o that_o which_o be_v good_a at_o any_o time_n 30_o whoso_o kill_v any_o person_n 5.19_o deut._n 17_o 6_o &_o 19_o 15_o math_n 18_o 16_o 2_o cor._n 13_o 1._o heb_fw-mi 10_o 28_o 1_o tim._n 5.19_o the_o murderer_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o witness_n but_o one_o witness_n shall_v not_o testify_v against_o any_o person_n to_o cause_v he_o to_o die_v 31_o moreover_o you_o shall_v take_v no_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o life_n of_o a_o murderer_n which_o be_v guilty_a of_o death_n but_o he_o shall_v be_v sure_o put_v to_o death_n 33_o and_o you_o shall_v take_v no_o satisfaction_n for_o he_o that_o be_v flee_v to_o the_o city_n of_o his_o refuge_n that_o he_o shall_v come_v again_o to_o dwell_v in_o the_o land_n until_o the_o death_n of_o the_o priest_n 33_o so_o you_o shall_v not_o pollute_v the_o land_n wherein_o you_o be_v for_o blood_n it_o defile_v the_o land_n and_o the_o land_n can_v be_v cleanse_v of_o the_o blood_n that_o be_v shed_v therein_o but_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o he_o that_o shed_v it_o 34_o defile_v not_o therefore_o the_o land_n which_o you_o shall_v inhabit_v wherein_o i_o dwell_v for_o i_o the_o lord_n dwell_v among_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n the_o three_o and_o last_o part_n remain_v lay_v forth_o the_o office_n of_o the_o judge_n touch_v slaughter_n wherein_o observe_v two_o thing_n first_o the_o law_n of_o put_v the_o murderer_n to_o death_n which_o must_v pass_v by_o the_o verdict_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n verse_n 30._o second_o the_o judge_n be_v forbid_v to_o take_v any_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o life_n of_o a_o murderer_n because_o innocent_a blood_n shed_v defile_v the_o land_n yea_o in_o such_o a_o horrible_a manner_n and_o measure_n that_o all_o the_o water_n in_o the_o sea_n can_v wash_v it_o away_o for_o the_o land_n can_v be_v cleanse_v of_o the_o blood_n that_o be_v shed_v but_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o he_o that_o shed_v it_o and_o no_o marvel_n see_v they_o may_v take_v no_o satisfaction_n for_o he_o that_o bid_v kill_v a_o man_n at_o unaware_o to_o deliver_v he_o from_o the_o city_n of_o his_o refuge_n before_o the_o death_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n from_o these_o word_n we_o learn_v how_o heinous_a a_o sin_n murder_n be_v again_o that_o wilful_a murderer_n be_v not_o to_o be_v spare_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o magistrate_n must_v not_o pity_v they_o if_o they_o be_v desirous_a to_o revenge_v the_o dishonour_n do_v unto_o god_n or_o to_o cleanse_v their_o own_o land_n or_o to_o save_v their_o own_o life_n but_o mark_v far_o how_o god_n will_v have_v such_o proceed_v against_o they_o shall_v not_o die_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o one_o witness_n he_o require_v in_o judicial_a court_n that_o every_o matter_n shall_v be_v try_v by_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n that_o the_o guilty_a shall_v not_o be_v acquit_v and_o that_o the_o innocent_a may_v not_o be_v condemn_v death_n doctrine_n god_n will_v have_v no_o innocent_a person_n put_v to_o death_n so_o then_o the_o point_n from_o hence_o be_v this_o that_o god_n will_v have_v no_o innocent_a person_n put_v to_o death_n but_o that_o every_o one_o shall_v receive_v according_a to_o his_o own_o work_n deut._n 13_o 14_o and_o 17_o 4_o thou_o shall_v inquire_v and_o make_v search_n and_o ask_v diligent_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n and_o the_o thing_n certain_a he_o will_v have_v no_o man_n condemn_v upon_o accusation_n suspicion_n and_o presumption_n esay_n 5_o 13_o psal_n 37_o 6_o pro._n 24_o 23._o this_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o saul_n who_o command_v to_o kill_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o lord_n 1_o sam._n 22_o 16_o as_o if_o they_o have_v conspire_v against_o he_o job_n 29_o 16._o reason_n 1_o the_o ground_n be_v these_o first_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n he_o be_v a_o just_a and_o righteous_a god_n the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o he_o respect_v no_o man_n person_n therefore_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o his_o place_n and_o execute_v his_o judgement_n and_o have_v his_o name_n communicate_v unto_o they_o aught_o to_o deal_v upright_o deuter._n 1_o 16_o 17._o second_o wrong_a judgement_n be_v abominable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n pro._n 17_o 15_o whether_o it_o be_v to_o justify_v the_o wicked_a or_o to_o condemn_v the_o innocent_a three_o it_o kindle_v the_o lord_n wrath_n against_o the_o land_n when_o innocent_a blood_n be_v shed_v jer._n 26_o 14_o 15_o as_o for_o i_o behold_v i_o be_o in_o your_o hand_n do_v with_o i_o as_o seem_v good_a and_o meet_v unto_o you_o but_o know_v you_o for_o certain_a that_o if_o you_o put_v i_o to_o death_n you_o shall_v sure_o bring_v innocent_a blood_n upon_o yourselves_o and_o upon_o this_o city_n and_o upon_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o as_o 1_o king_n 21_o 19_o use_v 1_o the_o use_n follow_v first_o this_o serve_v for_o instruction_n to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n to_o take_v heed_n to_o themselves_o that_o they_o walk_v with_o a_o right_a foot_n and_o turn_v neither_o to_o the_o right_a hand_n nor_o to_o the_o left_a according_a as_o god_n require_v levit._n 19_o 15_o thou_o shall_v do_v no_o unrighteousness_n in_o judgement_n thou_o shall_v not_o respect_v the_o person_n of_o the_o poor_a nor_o honour_v the_o person_n of_o the_o mighty_a but_o in_o righteousness_n shall_v thou_o judge_v thy_o neighbour_n against_o this_o they_o offend_v many_o way_n when_o they_o give_v false_a judgement_n and_o cause_v the_o same_o to_o be_v execute_v when_o they_o defer_v judgement_n &_o put_v it_o off_o as_o felix_n do_v from_o day_n to_o day_n act_v 24_o 25_o for_o while_o judgement_n hang_v thus_o in_o suspense_n the_o just_a be_v often_o take_v for_o the_o unjust_a and_o contrariwise_o the_o unjust_a fot_o the_o just_a last_o when_o the_o sentence_n right_o pronounce_v be_v delay_v and_o sometime_o not_o at_o all_o execute_v the_o scripture_n express_v the_o fault_n and_o the_o punishment_n by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o word_n 24_o gen_n 4_o 7_o 13_o esay_n 24_o 20_o 1_o peter_n 2_o 24_o to_o teach_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v join_v together_o and_o not_o sever_v and_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v hold_v for_o innocent_a and_o unblameable_a that_o have_v no_o punishment_n inflict_v
be_v command_v to_o give_v no_o offence_n to_o jew_n or_o gentile_a or_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 10_o 32_o neither_o to_o they_o that_o be_v within_o nor_o to_o they_o that_o be_v without_o but_o by_o such_o marriage_n the_o papist_n be_v offend_v the_o ignorant_a people_n that_o know_v not_o the_o law_n be_v offend_v the_o weak_a sort_n that_o aught_o to_o be_v respect_v be_v offend_v and_o many_o of_o the_o godly_a brethren_n be_v offend_v and_o general_o not_o some_o few_o but_o the_o whole_a multitude_n i_o answer_v answer_v here_o be_v much_o a_o do_v about_o offence_n and_o this_o be_v in_o effect_n as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o all_o man_n take_v offence_n at_o it_o howbeit_o this_o conceit_n be_v over_o lavish_a i_o confess_v if_o this_o be_v true_a in_o every_o part_n there_o be_v just_a and_o necessary_a cause_n to_o forbear_v our_o christian_a liberty_n for_o a_o time_n rather_o than_o to_o give_v a_o universal_a offence_n but_o i_o neither_o see_v nor_o hear_v of_o any_o such_o scandal_n or_o exception_n take_v by_o the_o multitude_n which_o also_o be_v the_o ignorant_a sort_n against_o such_o match_n sort_n touch_v the_o offence_n of_o the_o multitude_n or_o ignorant_a sort_n which_o be_v daily_o in_o use_n and_o practice_v before_o their_o eye_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o reason_n or_o likelihood_n that_o they_o shall_v take_v such_o offence_n because_o they_o be_v the_o party_n to_o the_o law-making_a in_o the_o high_a court_n and_o council_n of_o parliament_n for_o the_o lawful_a liberty_n of_o such_o match_n and_o they_o have_v the_o table_n of_o degree_n in_o many_o place_n hang_v open_o in_o their_o church_n to_o be_v see_v and_o read_v of_o all_o and_o carry_v often_o about_o they_o or_o at_o least_o have_v in_o their_o house_n the_o english_a bibles_n express_v the_o same_o in_o common_a use_n touch_v the_o offence_n of_o the_o particular_a weakling_n weak_a touch_v the_o offence_n of_o the_o weak_a such_o as_o it_o may_v be_v be_v or_o at_o least_o may_v be_v in_o any_o estate_n when_o any_o such_o appear_v and_o be_v know_v they_o be_v much_o to_o be_v respect_v and_o a_o long_a time_n to_o be_v bear_v withal_o but_o yet_o not_o always_o for_o there_o be_v a_o time_n of_o ignorance_n to_o be_v allow_v to_o such_o or_o rather_o a_o time_n wherein_o they_o be_v to_o learn_v and_o to_o be_v instruct_v till_o the_o christian_a liberty_n be_v sufficient_o make_v know_v unto_o they_o this_o have_v be_v already_o thorough_o perform_v to_o any_o that_o have_v mind_n to_o learn_v or_o heart_n to_o inquire_v or_o ear_n to_o hear_v and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n that_o their_o wilful_a ignorance_n and_o causeless_a offence_n shall_v still_o hold_v our_o christian_a liberty_n in_o perpetual_a slavery_n and_o servitude_n this_o therefore_o only_o remain_v further_a to_o be_v perform_v in_o regard_n of_o their_o offence_n to_o proffer_v the_o mean_n of_o satisfaction_n and_o resolution_n by_o open_v to_o they_o the_o truth_n wherein_o if_o they_o will_v still_o persist_v obstinate_a and_o stiffnecked_a against_o the_o clear_a shine_a thereof_o in_o their_o face_n as_o the_o sun_n at_o noon_n day_n than_o i_o may_v well_o say_v the_o offence_n be_v take_v by_o themselves_o and_o wilful_o hold_v rather_o than_o give_v by_o other_o and_o then_o they_o have_v more_o need_n to_o learn_v a_o rule_n of_o charity_n of_o the_o apostle_n mouth_n then_o to_o teach_v we_o one_o which_o be_v not_o to_o judge_v their_o brother_n nor_o to_o condemn_v another_o man_n servant_n but_o themselves_o see_v he_o do_v stand_v or_o fall_v to_o his_o own_o master_n rom._n 14_o 4_o 10_o and_o every_o man_n at_o the_o last_o day_n shall_v give_v account_n for_o himself_o to_o god_n that_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o dead_a before_o who_o judgement_n seat_n all_o must_v stand_v and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o to_o judge_v their_o brother_n in_o that_o which_o he_o do_v to_o the_o lord_n with_o thankfulness_n as_o do_v those_o that_o do_v eat_v to_o the_o lord_n with_o thankfulness_n verse_n 6._o and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o their_o brethren_n therein_o where_o if_o i_o do_v not_o mistake_v i_o take_v the_o offence_n to_o be_v the_o more_o forcible_a then_o in_o this_o of_o the_o marriage_n of_o cousin_n german_n because_o that_o offence_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n of_o god_n then_o bury_v and_o abolish_v whereas_o this_o offence_n in_o the_o marriage_n of_o cousin_n germans_n be_v ground_v either_o upon_o the_o rot_a post_n of_o our_o own_o fancy_n or_o upon_o the_o ragged_a piece_n of_o the_o pope_n canon_n beside_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o weak_a brethren_n in_o those_o ceremony_n of_o moses_n law_n be_v only_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o infancy_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o when_o once_o in_o far_a growth_n and_o deep_a root_n take_v of_o the_o gospel_n they_o be_v vanish_v by_o the_o clear_a manifestation_n of_o the_o truth_n than_o they_o be_v mighty_o oppugn_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o offence_n little_o favour_v in_o this_o case_n do_v we_o stand_v at_o this_o day_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o marriage_n between_o cousin_n german_n after_o so_o long_a abolish_n of_o those_o popish_a constitution_n to_o the_o contrary_a papist_n touch_v the_o offence_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o sufficient_a manifestation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n against_o they_o so_o that_o the_o offence_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v little_a to_o be_v regard_v especial_o see_v it_o tend_v to_o the_o bring_n of_o we_o back_o again_o to_o their_o canonical_a servitude_n that_o be_v the_o antichristian_a yoke_n which_o god_n forbid_v for_o see_v we_o be_v escape_v from_o they_o why_o shall_v we_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v entangle_v therewith_o again_o and_o why_o do_v we_o not_o rather_o stand_v for_o the_o christian_n liberty_n whereunto_o the_o lord_n have_v call_v we_o and_o if_o we_o will_v sober_o and_o serious_o consider_v of_o this_o matter_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o offence_n be_v rather_o give_v to_o a_o papist_n by_o refrain_v that_o christian_a liberty_n of_o god_n law_n then_o by_o profess_v &_o use_v of_o it_o in_o such_o marriage_n as_o be_v against_o their_o canon_n and_o by_o make_v scruple_n of_o such_o marriage_n as_o be_v prohibit_v by_o the_o pope_n canon_n do_v we_o not_o confirm_v the_o papist_n in_o the_o idol_n subjection_n to_o the_o popish_a canon_n and_o make_v they_o still_o to_o judge_v amiss_o of_o the_o christian_a liberty_n give_v unto_o we_o by_o god_n law_n and_o profess_v also_o by_o our_o own_o law_n to_o conclude_v a_o papist_n no_o doubt_n will_v be_v more_o offend_v in_o his_o conceit_n to_o see_v any_o refuse_v their_o canonical_a obedience_n by_o approve_v or_o make_v such_o match_n prohibit_v by_o they_o whereas_o by_o refrain_v or_o not_o approve_v such_o marriage_n great_a occasion_n be_v give_v to_o make_v the_o papist_n think_v well_o of_o their_o canon_n and_o of_o he_o that_o make_v it_o last_o from_o hence_o arise_v comfort_n to_o those_o use_v 3_o that_o be_v already_o enter_v into_o such_o marriage_n as_o now_o we_o justify_v to_o be_v lawful_a howbeit_o as_o they_o that_o dissuade_v marriage_n in_o this_o kind_n do_v notwithstanding_o profess_v ingenuous_o that_o they_o seek_v not_o to_o entangle_v any_o man_n conscience_n that_o have_v so_o match_v so_o in_o like_a manner_n i_o write_v not_o to_o persuade_v or_o encourage_v any_o that_o be_v free_a to_o match_v this_o way_n neither_o do_v i_o see_v why_o any_o shall_v be_v discourage_v from_o it_o or_o leave_v comfortless_o that_o be_v already_o enter_v into_o it_o again_o albeit_o i_o teach_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o this_o marriage_n yet_o i_o will_v have_v no_o man_n presume_v to_o enter_v and_o adventure_v upon_o the_o same_o with_o doubt_n of_o mind_n and_o perplexity_n of_o conscience_n because_o than_o it_o become_v sin_n to_o he_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o do_v it_o not_o in_o faith_n last_o where_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n do_v restrayn_a and_o prohibit_v this_o degree_n it_o be_v meet_v &_o reason_n that_o the_o people_n shall_v forbear_v the_o same_o as_o in_o all_o other_o civil_a ordinance_n which_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o moral_a law_n of_o god_n true_a it_o be_v in_o geneva_n and_o other_o free_a city_n there_o be_v some_o restraint_n of_o this_o degree_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n sect_n 18._o 18._o harmony_n of_o the_o church_n sect_n 18._o touch_v marriage_n nevertheless_o touch_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o marriage_n of_o cousin_n german_n beza_n be_v plain_a in_o his_o observation_n upon_o that_o confession_n when_o he_o say_v we_o admonish_v the_o people_n diligent_o that_o they_o do_v not_o think_v that_o this_o degree_n be_v
indeed_o one_o of_o they_o be_v what_o be_v these_o to_o the_o stream_n and_o current_n of_o the_o learned_a writer_n which_o this_o age_n have_v bring_v forth_o who_o as_o it_o be_v with_o one_o mouth_n their_o pen_n and_o tongue_n not_o divide_v do_v hold_v and_o maintain_v confident_o and_o constant_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o this_o marriage_n and_o first_o i_o produce_v among_o this_o cloud_n of_o witness_n john_n caluin_n caluine_n john_n caluine_n who_o we_o name_v before_o who_o in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o precept_n not_o to_o come_v near_o any_o of_o the_o kindred_n of_o our_o flesh_n have_v these_o word_n non_fw-la omnes_fw-la consanguineas_fw-la hoc_fw-la nomen_fw-la complectitur_fw-la precept_n com._n in_o 7._o precept_n &c_n &c_n that_o be_v these_o word_n do_v not_o comprise_v all_o kinsfolk_n because_o it_o be_v permit_v to_o the_o cousin_n german_n either_o of_o the_o father_n or_o of_o the_o mother_n side_n to_o marry_v his_o cousin_n german_a either_o of_o the_o father_n or_o mother_n side_n this_o matter_n he_o make_v so_o clear_a that_o in_o the_o 385._o epistle_n he_o say_v of_o it_o thus_o quod_fw-la lege_fw-la dei_fw-la mandatum_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o call_v in_o question_n that_o which_o be_v command_v in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o he_o take_v the_o freedom_n of_o cousin_n german_n to_o be_v for_o see_v it_o be_v not_o forbid_v we_o be_v command_v and_o enjoin_v to_o account_v the_o same_o to_o be_v leave_v free_a for_o all_o man_n and_o thereupon_o he_o give_v this_o resolution_n that_o in_o this_o matter_n our_o conscience_n remain_v free_a before_o god_n so_o that_o in_o his_o harmony_n upon_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n 18._o com._n in_o levit._n cap_n 18_o 18._o he_o term_v it_o diabolica_fw-la papae_fw-la superbia_fw-la qui_fw-la novos_fw-la excogitando_fw-la propinquitatis_fw-la gradus_fw-la supra_fw-la deum_fw-la sapere_fw-la voluit_fw-la a_o devilish_a pride_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o devise_v new_a degree_n of_o kindred_n will_v make_v himself_o wise_a than_o god_n himself_o now_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v farther_o tend_v to_o any_o restraint_n of_o this_o match_n of_o cousin_n germans_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o positive_a law_n of_o the_o magistrate_n which_o be_v the_o law_n of_o man_n not_o of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o long_a use_n of_o the_o contrary_a in_o both_o which_o respect_v offence_n be_v take_v at_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o with_o they_o to_o be_v forbear_v howbeit_o these_o thing_n do_v no_o way_n touch_v we_o neither_o can_v challenge_v any_o place_n in_o our_o kingdom_n where_o we_o have_v no_o law_n of_o man_n to_o forbid_v we_o no_o disuse_n or_o long_a discontinuance_n of_o it_o to_o discourage_v we_o neither_o any_o offence_n of_o learned_a or_o unlearned_a to_o dissuade_v we_o &_o therefore_o we_o be_v no_o way_n bind_v in_o conscience_n equity_n or_o charity_n to_o renounce_v that_o kind_n of_o marriage_n for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o with_o we_o what_o be_v at_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n and_o towards_o all_o person_n convenient_a but_o simple_o of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o it_o beza_n beza_n the_o judgement_n of_o beza_n accord_v with_o the_o former_a testimony_n and_o serve_v as_o ample_o and_o full_o to_o depose_v and_o witness_v this_o truth_n of_o which_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o peter_n martyr_n shall_v be_v the_o next_o martyr_n peter_n martyr_n professor_n of_o divinity_n among_o we_o in_o the_o late_a day_n of_o k._n edward_n for_o howsoever_o some_o deliver_v out_o that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n indifferent_a or_o doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a in_o his_o opinion_n it_o be_v certain_a &_o a_o matter_n out_o of_o doubt_n that_o these_o man_n never_o read_v he_o with_o judgement_n but_o with_o partiality_n for_o be_v themselves_o enemy_n in_o this_o case_n and_o have_v teach_v the_o unlawfulnesse_n thereof_o they_o will_v draw_v all_o other_o also_o either_o to_o be_v enemy_n thereunto_o or_o have_v they_o to_o sit_v still_o as_o silent_a and_o to_o stand_v by_o as_o newter_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v he_o be_v as_o resolute_a as_o the_o former_a for_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o such_o marriage_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o appear_v by_o a_o large_a discourse_n in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o judge_n out_o of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n &_o the_o roman_n and_o show_v the_o same_o not_o to_o be_v unlawful_a but_o to_o be_v exempt_v out_o of_o the_o prohibition_n for_o speak_v of_o the_o marriage_n of_o achsah_n with_o othniel_n of_o which_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o he_o show_v that_o if_o these_o two_o be_v brother_n child_n their_o marriage_n be_v lawful_a non_fw-la enim_fw-la divinis_fw-la legibus_fw-la coniugium_fw-la inter_fw-la ●stos_fw-la usquam_fw-la fuit_fw-la prohibitum_fw-la that_o be_v by_o god_n law_n marriage_n between_o such_o be_v never_o forbid_v and_o afterward_o reprove_v the_o opinion_n of_o ambrose_n who_o dislike_v the_o same_o thou_o faith_n quod_fw-la verò_fw-la ambrose_n etc._n etc._n and_o whereas_o ambrose_n affirm_v that_o such_o marriage_n be_v prohibit_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n no_o man_n can_v allow_v thereof_o that_o advise_o consider_v either_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o father_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v plain_a than_o this_o or_o can_v any_o man_n deliver_v his_o mind_n more_o express_o so_o then_o to_o pass_v from_o he_o i_o come_v to_o lewes_n lavater_fw-la of_o tigurine_n lavater_fw-la ludo._n lavater_fw-la a_o judicious_a and_o painful_a man_n he_o expound_v the_o 15_o of_o joshua_n say_v si_fw-mi othniel_n achsa_n consobrinus_fw-la fuit_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o othniel_n be_v achsaes_n cousin_n german_a he_o may_v marry_v she_o to_o wife_n but_o if_o he_o be_v her_o uncle_n he_o can_v not_o by_o the_o law_n thus_o do_v he_o also_o speak_v of_o the_o same_o man_n and_o the_o same_o marriage_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o judge_n where_o he_o say_v it_o appear_v by_o other_o place_n jud._n comm._n in_o jud._n that_o they_o be_v cozen_v german_n and_o therefore_o marriage_n may_v be_v consummate_v between_o they_o by_o the_o law_n to_o he_o i_o will_v add_v zepperus_n minister_n of_o the_o church_n at_o herborne_n he_o affirm_v 19_o leg._n mosai_n ex_fw-la plan_n lib._n 4._o c._n 19_o that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v so_o far_o from_o forbid_v the_o marriage_n of_o cousin_n german_n that_o it_o propound_v sundry_a example_n thereof_o and_o after_o he_o have_v produce_v the_o practice_n of_o it_o in_o those_o we_o name_v before_o to_o wit_n jacob_n and_o othniel_n gen._n 29_o 12_o 13_o 19_o joshua_n 15_o 17._o judg._n 1_o 12._o he_o allege_v other_o also_o that_o rehoboom_n take_v to_o wife_n mahalath_n the_o daughter_n of_o jerimoth_n the_o son_n of_o david_n and_o likewise_o abihail_n the_o daughter_n of_o eliab_n the_o son_n of_o jesse_n who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o david_n 2_o chron._n 11_o ver_fw-la 18._o so_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n joseph_n and_o mary_n the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v cousin_n german_n matth._n 1._o ver_fw-la 15._o luke_n 3_o 23_o 24_o 8._o euseb_n eccl_n hist_o lib._n 1._o cap._n 8._o and_o so_o do_v eusebius_n testify_v the_o same_o in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n out_o of_o a_o certain_a epistle_n of_o africanus_n to_o aristides_n for_o matthan_n beget_v two_o son_n jacob_n and_o heli_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o place_n before_o name_v out_o of_o the_o evangelist_n jacob_n beget_v joseph_n and_o heli●ega●_n ●ega●_z mary_n child_n jo●●ph_n &_o mary_n be_v brother_n child_n and_o thus_o both_o matthew_n and_o luke_n be_v full_o and_o fi●ly_o reconcile_v for_o whereas_o o●e_n say_v joseph_n be_v the_o son_n of_o jacob_n &_o the_o other_o say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o heli_n it_o be_v certain_a he_o can_v not_o be_v both_o in_o one_o and_o the_o some_o respect_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v take_v in_o a_o diverse_a consideration_n and_o that_o be_v in_o this_o manner_n he_o be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o jacob_n but_o legal_a son_n of_o heli_n he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o jacob_n by_o consanguinity_n but_o the_o son_n of_o heli_n by_o light_n of_o affinity_n that_o be_v his_o son_n in_o law_n because_o he_o marry_v his_o daughter_n mary_n as_o also_o naomi_n call_v her_o daughter_n in_o law_n she_o own_o daughter_n and_o david_n call_v saul_n his_o father_n 1_o sam._n 24_o 11_o and_o saul_n he_o his_o son_n ver_fw-la 16_o neither_o do_v the_o ancient_a civil_a law_n condemn_v these_o marriage_n nuptijs_fw-la lib._n 1_o instit_fw-la tit_n 10_o de_fw-la nuptijs_fw-la the_o law_n of_o justinian_n be_v extant_a touch_v marriage_n which_o be_v this_o the_o child_n of_o two_o brethren_n or_o two_o sister_n or_o of_o the_o brother_n and_o sister_n may_v lawful_o be_v join_v together_o in_o marriage_n the_o same_o law_n be_v
than_o to_o keep_v the_o day_n they_o think_v it_o enough_o to_o leave_v the_o work_n of_o their_o call_n though_o they_o do_v never_o forsake_v the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o therefore_o he_o charge_v they_o that_o their_o hand_n be_v full_a of_o blood_n verse_n 15._o so_o be_v it_o with_o we_o we_o rest_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o the_o outward_a ceremony_n in_o honour_v god_n with_o our_o lip_n and_o bodily_a presence_n in_o his_o house_n we_o bring_v no_o more_o but_o our_o outward_a ear_n to_o hear_v and_o neglect_v the_o preparation_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o yet_o flatter_v ourselves_o as_o if_o we_o have_v do_v all_o that_o he_o require_v howbeit_o god_n reject_v and_o refuse_v such_o duty_n at_o our_o hand_n he_o can_v abide_v the_o service_n and_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v offer_v in_o this_o manner_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o he_o say_v i_o hate_v i_o despise_v your_o feast_n day_n and_o i_o will_v not_o smell_v in_o your_o solemn_a assembly_n though_o you_o offer_v i_o burn_v offering_n and_o your_o meat_n offering_n i_o will_v not_o accept_v they_o neither_o will_v i_o regard_v the_o peace_n offering_n of_o your_o fat_a beast_n amos_n chapter_n the_o five_o the_o 21_o and_o 22_o verse_n not_o that_o almighty_a god_n hate_v or_o abhor_v the_o thing_n themselves_o he_o do_v not_o reject_v their_o work_n but_o the_o evil_a of_o their_o work_n esay_n chapter_n 1_o verse_n 16_o so_o he_o can_v abide_v that_o we_o come_v before_o he_o in_o that_o corrupt_a manner_n but_o we_o assemble_v for_o the_o worse_o and_o not_o for_o the_o better_a and_o by_o our_o corruption_n turn_v his_o save_a ordinance_n into_o sin_n 16_o and_o in_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o the_o first_o month_n be_v the_o passeover_n of_o the_o lord_n 17_o and_o in_o the_o fifteen_o day_n of_o this_o month_n be_v the_o feast_n seven_o day_n shall_v unleavened_a bread_n be_v eat_v 18_o in_o the_o first_o day_n shall_v be_v a_o holy_a convocation_n etc._n etc._n 19_o but_o you_o shall_v offer_v a_o sacrifice_n make_v by_o sire_n for_o a_o burn_a offering_n unto_o the_o lord_n two_o young_a bullock_n one_o ram_n and_o seven_o lamb_n of_o a_o year_n old_a etc._n etc._n 20_o and_o their_o meat_n offer_v shall_v be_v of_o etc._n etc._n 21_o a_o several_a ten_o deal_n etc._n etc._n 22_o and_o one_o goat_n for_o a_o sin_n offer_v etc._n etc._n 23_o you_o shall_v offer_v these_o beside_o the_o burn_a offering_n in_o the_o morning_n etc._n etc._n after_o this_o manner_n etc._n etc._n 25_o an_o on_o etc._n etc._n we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o yearly_a feast_n and_o sacrifice_n whereof_o the_o passeover_n have_v the_o first_o place_n wherein_o beside_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n they_o be_v to_o offer_v two_o young_a bullock_n and_o one_o ram_n and_o seven_o lamb_n of_o the_o first_o year_n without_o blemish_n for_o a_o burn_a offering_n and_o their_o meat_n offer_v must_v be_v of_o flower_n mingle_v with_o oil_n and_o they_o must_v eat_v unleavened_a bread_n seven_o day_n the_o first_o day_n &_o the_o seven_o must_v be_v a_o holy_a convocation_n wherein_o they_o must_v do_v no_o servile_a work_n of_o this_o feast_n we_o read_v at_o large_a exod._n 12_o 18._o levit._fw-la 23_o 5_o 7._o deut._n 16_o 1._o of_o this_o feast_n we_o have_v also_o speak_v before_o at_o large_a chap._n 9_o 2_o 3._o and_o it_o be_v of_o great_a importance_n even_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o the_o benefit_n which_o the_o jew_n receyve_v at_o god_n hand_n without_o which_o they_o have_v be_v no_o people_n separate_v and_o dedicate_v unto_o almighty_a god_n this_o paschall_n lamb_n be_v not_o a_o bare_a ceremony_n use_v 1_o without_o doctrine_n and_o instruction_n the_o jew_n depart_v in_o great_a haste_n out_o of_o egypt_n and_o how_o not_o arm_a or_o with_o bannner_n display_v as_o if_o their_o enemy_n have_v stand_v in_o fear_n of_o they_o but_o they_o go_v out_o like_o a_o company_n of_o poor_a fugitive_n or_o banish_a person_n the_o woman_n carry_v their_o child_n upon_o their_o shoulder_n the_o man_n take_v up_o their_o stuff_n upon_o their_o neck_n and_o flee_v out_o of_o the_o land_n as_o lot_n do_v out_o of_o sodom_n for_o their_o life_n they_o be_v a_o people_n that_o have_v no_o skill_n to_o handle_v the_o sword_n or_o weapon_n of_o war_n defensive_a or_o offensive_a they_o have_v be_v use_v like_o ox_n for_o labour_n and_o like_a ass_n for_o burden_n and_o when_o they_o must_v depart_v it_o be_v say_v get_v you_o hence_o exod._n 12_o 29_o they_o must_v truss_v up_o the_o corn_n they_o have_v ground_n and_o bake_v cake_n by_o the_o way_n to_o eat_v this_o solemnity_n they_o observe_v yearly_a wherein_o they_o do_v eat_v cake_n without_o leaven_n which_o serve_v to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o when_o their_o father_n depart_v out_o of_o egypt_n they_o be_v a_o poor_a distress_a people_n and_o run_v away_o like_o silly_a lamb_n pursue_v by_o devour_a wolf_n this_o shall_v teach_v all_o of_o we_o that_o god_n will_v have_v we_o remember_v such_o deliverance_n out_o of_o danger_n as_o he_o have_v send_v us._n we_o be_v apt_a to_o forget_v what_o he_o have_v do_v for_o we_o as_o the_o jew_n be_v and_o therefore_o we_o must_v consider_v to_o what_o end_n god_n command_v his_o people_n to_o celebrate_v this_o feast_n every_o year_n &_o that_o not_o for_o one_o day_n but_o for_o seven_o day_n together_o and_o do_v so_o often_o urge_v it_o upon_o they_o as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o albeit_o this_o feast_n have_v no_o place_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o be_v just_o abrogate_a &_o abolish_v because_o the_o shadow_n must_v give_v place_n to_o the_o body_n and_o the_o ceremony_n to_o the_o truth_n yet_o we_o must_v not_o think_v the_o commend_v of_o it_o every_o where_o to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o it_o serve_v to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n both_o of_o god_n mercy_n and_o goodness_n unto_o his_o church_n who_o though_o he_o bring_v they_o into_o sundry_a peril_n that_o be_v ready_a to_o oppress_v they_o yet_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o all_o yea_o when_o thing_n seem_v to_o be_v most_o desperate_a and_o also_o of_o our_o duty_n towards_o he_o to_o give_v he_o thanks_n for_o our_o deliverance_n and_o to_o praise_v his_o name_n second_o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o use_v 2_o be_v a_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a controversy_n which_o trouble_v sundry_a church_n and_o rend_v in_o sunder_o one_o of_o they_o from_o another_o touch_v the_o keep_n of_o the_o passeover_n some_o will_v have_v it_o keep_v on_o the_o 14._o day_n of_o the_o month_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o other_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n after_o lest_o the_o church_n shall_v follow_v the_o synagogue_n victor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v threaten_v all_o the_o east_n church_n with_o the_o censure_n of_o excommunication_n because_o they_o celebrate_v the_o passeover_n another_o day_n then_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n but_o ireneus_fw-la and_o other_o holy_a bishop_n reprove_v he_o of_o obstinacy_n of_o pride_n and_o arrogancy_n &_o write_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o do_v not_o well_o in_o that_o he_o cut_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o observe_v the_o order_n deliver_v unto_o they_o from_o ancient_a time_n as_o appear_v in_o eusebius_n for_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n pretend_v that_o they_o follow_v john_n and_o philip_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o west_n allege_v the_o example_n of_o paul_n and_o peter_n for_o their_o warrant_n and_o one_o claim_n be_v full_o as_o good_a and_o haply_o as_o true_a as_o the_o other_o this_o strife_n do_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n nourish_v and_o renew_v again_o that_o have_v be_v long_o bury_v in_o the_o grave_n and_o cover_v with_o ash_n by_o his_o new_a calendar_n and_o thrust_v upon_o the_o church_n his_o own_o ordinance_n concern_v the_o observation_n of_o easter_n as_o a_o divine_a precept_n and_o consequent_o necessary_a to_o be_v keep_v and_o observe_v of_o the_o church_n usurp_a jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n over_o all_o church_n to_o rule_v over_o they_o and_o their_o faith_n at_o his_o pleasure_n cardinal_n bellarmine_n go_v about_o to_o establish_v tradition_n against_o the_o all-sufficient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n avouch_v that_o we_o must_v necessary_o believe_v that_o the_o passeover_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n only_o because_o they_o have_v be_v account_v heretic_n who_o keep_v it_o otherwise_o and_o yet_o this_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n i_o answer_v the_o former_a controversy_n be_v at_o the_o last_o thus_o define_v and_o
determine_v by_o polycarp_n and_o victor_n that_o every_o one_o shall_v follow_v their_o own_o custom_n and_o judgement_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a foolish_a and_o absurd_a thing_n for_o such_o rite_n to_o separate_v one_o from_o another_o as_o enemy_n euethes_n ethôn_n heneken_fw-mi allêlôn_fw-mi charizesthai_fw-mi sozom_fw-mi histor_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 19_o now_o that_o which_o be_v leave_v free_a &_o at_o liberty_n for_o either_o side_n to_o follow_v can_v be_v hold_v necessary_a but_o to_o keep_v the_o passeover_n on_o this_o day_n or_o that_o day_n be_v leave_v free_a and_o at_o liberty_n for_o either_o side_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a unto_o salvation_n so_o then_o nothing_o be_v more_o uncertain_a than_o tradition_n for_o both_o part_n pretend_v the_o apostle_n and_o apostolic_a tradition_n but_o both_o of_o they_o can_v not_o be_v true_a nay_o socrates_n tax_v they_o both_o of_o error_n affirm_v that_o this_o spring_v not_o of_o tradition_n but_o of_o custom_n and_o if_o either_o the_o one_o opinion_n or_o the_o other_o have_v any_o good_a foundation_n from_o the_o apostle_n it_o may_v be_v that_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o first_o plant_v of_o the_o gospel_n to_o bear_v with_o the_o infirmity_n of_o other_o they_o observe_v certain_a day_n and_o time_n which_o afterward_o be_v observe_v and_o urge_v as_o a_o precept_n liberty_n be_v abolish_v and_o that_o which_o be_v retain_v of_o charity_n be_v turn_v into_o a_o law_n of_o necessity_n again_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n or_o reason_n at_o all_o why_o any_o church_n or_o person_n shall_v contend_v to_o have_v the_o passeover_n receive_v much_o less_o so_o bite_o &_o bitter_o for_o socrates_n speak_v well_o and_o true_o that_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v nothing_o of_o holy_a or_o festival_n day_n and_o show_v at_o large_a the_o vanity_n of_o those_o that_o strive_v to_o no_o purpose_n about_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socrat._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 22._o forasmuch_o as_o the_o passover_n be_v a_o type_n and_o ceremony_n but_o type_n and_o ceremony_n be_v abolish_v so_o than_o it_o be_v superstitious_o do_v of_o such_o as_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_a church_n to_o bring_v in_o a_o feast_n of_o passeover_n under_o pretence_n that_o the_o jew_n have_v the_o same_o for_o that_o be_v to_o compel_v the_o gentile_n to_o live_v as_o do_v the_o jew_n which_o paul_n reprove_v in_o peter_n gal._n 2_o 14_o but_o these_o tradition_n get_v authority_n in_o the_o church_n by_o little_a and_o little_a i_o have_v speak_v this_o not_o that_o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o have_v one_o day_n in_o the_o year_n wherein_o to_o celebrate_v the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n for_o that_o be_v to_o run_v into_o extremity_n whereas_o our_o infirmity_n be_v allow_v to_o have_v some_o help_n to_o quicken_v our_o faith_n that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o bethink_v we_o all_o our_o life_n what_o benefit_n the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n have_v bring_v unto_o we_o nevertheless_o this_o be_v establish_v only_o for_o order_n sake_n but_o to_o urge_v this_o strict_o of_o necessity_n or_o to_o make_v a_o service_n of_o god_n thereof_o or_o to_o think_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o fashion_v ourselves_o after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o wit_n that_o as_o they_o have_v their_o passeover_n so_o ought_v we_o to_o have_v we_o in_o these_o day_n be_v to_o turn_v all_o thing_n upside_o down_o and_o to_o put_v a_o veil_n before_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v not_o see_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n shine_v upon_o us._n use_v 3_o last_o this_o passeover_n be_v celebrate_v with_o many_o circumstance_n whereof_o some_o be_v observe_v only_o at_o the_o first_o passeover_n while_o they_o be_v in_o egypt_n as_o the_o prepare_n of_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n and_o keep_v it_o apart_o from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o flock_n from_o the_o 10_o day_n to_o the_o 14._o the_o sprinkle_n of_o the_o blood_n upon_o the_o door_n post_n the_o eat_n of_o it_o in_o haste_n and_o the_o kill_n of_o it_o within_o their_o own_o house_n but_o afterwards_o it_o be_v do_v in_o the_o public_a place_n of_o god_n worship_n deut._n 16_o 5_o 6_o 7_o for_o which_o purpose_n jerusalem_n be_v afterward_o choose_v where_o it_o be_v kill_v by_o the_o priest_n and_o flay_v in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o blood_n sprinkle_v on_o the_o altar_n 2_o chron._n 35_o 1_o 2_o 6_o 10_o 11_o then_o the_o owner_n of_o the_o lamb_n take_v it_o at_o the_o priest_n hand_n &_o bring_v it_o to_o his_o own_o house_n and_o roast_v it_o all_o these_o thing_n aim_v at_o the_o shed_n of_o christ_n blood_n and_o the_o sprinkle_n that_o be_v the_o applying_z of_o it_o to_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o true_a believer_n ezek._n 45_o 19_o 1_o pet._n 1.2_o heb._n 9_o 13_o 14._o as_o when_o the_o law_n be_v command_v to_o be_v write_v upon_o their_o door_n post_n it_o point_v out_o the_o write_n of_o it_o into_o their_o heart_n as_o it_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o prophet_n jer._n 31_o 31._o hebr._n 8_o 10._o and_o whereas_o they_o be_v to_o sprinkle_v the_o upper_a door_n post_n not_o the_o threshold_n or_o the_o floor_n under_o their_o foot_n it_o do_v put_v they_o and_o we_o in_o mind_n what_o recoverent_a account_n and_o estimation_n we_o ought_v to_o have_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o tread_v under_o our_o foot_n the_o son_n of_o god_n neither_o account_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o covenant_n wherewith_o we_o have_v be_v sanctify_v as_o a_o unholy_a thing_n heb_fw-mi 10_o 29._o some_o point_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v at_o all_o time_n whensoever_o and_o wheresoever_o they_o kill_v and_o keep_v the_o passeover_n and_o consume_v it_o with_o fire_n they_o must_v eat_v it_o with_o unleavened_a cake_n for_o all_o leaven_n must_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o their_o house_n &_o to_o this_o they_o join_v bitter_a herb_n the_o roast_n of_o it_o with_o fire_n be_v a_o figure_n both_o of_o god_n spirit_n math._n 3_o 11._o through_o which_o christ_n offer_v himself_o to_o god_n heb._n 9_o 14_o &_o also_o of_o god_n fiery_a wrath_n which_o he_o be_v to_o suffer_v whilst_o he_o be_v make_v a_o curse_n for_o we_o by_o his_o death_n upon_o the_o cross_n gal._n 3_o 15_o jer._n 4_o 4._o the_o unleavened_a loaf_n signify_v that_o none_o can_v be_v partaker_n of_o any_o benefit_n by_o christ_n but_o such_o as_o cast_v out_o the_o leaven_n of_o maliciousness_n and_o wickedness_n out_o of_o their_o heart_n 1_o cor._n 5_o 8._o this_o belong_v to_o every_o one_o to_o eat_v the_o unleavened_a cake_n or_o loaf_n of_o sincerity_n &_o truth_n of_o which_o before_o chap._n 9_o the_o sour_a or_o bitter_a herb_n which_o be_v think_v by_o the_o hebrew_n rabbin_n to_o be_v wild_a lettuce_n cichory_n horehound_n 7._o maimon_n treat_v of_o leaven_n cap._n 7._o and_o such_o like_a and_o be_v eat_v with_o the_o lamb_n bring_v to_o their_o remembrance_n the_o affliction_n in_o egypt_n where_o their_o life_n have_v be_v bitter_a exod._n 1_o 14_o yea_o more_o bitter_a than_o gall_n or_o wormwood_n where_o the_o egyptian_n make_v their_o life_n bitter_a with_o hard_a bondage_n in_o mortar_n and_o in_o brick_n and_o in_o all_o manner_n of_o service_n in_o the_o field_n and_o hereunto_o the_o church_n seem_v to_o allude_v lament_v 3_o 15_o and_o all_o these_o be_v as_o type_n of_o the_o bitter_a sorrow_n of_o christ_n to_o who_o they_o offer_v gall_n to_o drink_v as_o also_o of_o our_o mortification_n and_o affliction_n with_o he_o for_o we_o must_v be_v make_v like_o unto_o he_o 1_o cor._n 5_o 7._o &_o 11.26_o phil._n 3_o 10._o also_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o first_o fruit_n when_o you_o bring_v a_o new_a meat_n offer_v unto_o the_o lord_n after_o your_o week_n be_v out_o you_o shall_v have_v a_o holy_a convocation_n you_o shall_v do_v no_o servile_a work_n 27_o but_o you_o shall_v offer_v the_o burn_a offering_n for_o a_o sweet_a savour_n etc._n etc._n 28_o and_o their_o meat_n offer_v of_o fine_a flower_n etc._n etc._n 29_o a_o several_a ten_o deal_n unto_o one_o lamb_n etc._n etc._n 30_o and_o one_o kid_n etc._n etc._n 31_o you_o shall_v offer_v they_o beside_o the_o continual_a burn_v offer_v etc._n etc._n here_o be_v handle_v the_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n or_o of_o week_n which_o be_v keep_v yearly_o among_o the_o jew_n harvest_n the_o feast_n of_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o wheat_n harvest_n to_o give_v god_n thanks_n after_o the_o gather_n of_o their_o harvest_n this_o be_v a_o mean_a to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n to_o honour_n god_n for_o send_v his_o benefit_n to_o the_o sustenance_n of_o man_n leu._n 23_o 17._o deut._n 16_o 9_o 10._o it_o